Jhe History OF THE English Bible yy'F ' *.*i Yale University Library 'J,'' V ¦ ' THE HISTORY THE ENGLISH BIBLE EXTENDING FROM THE EARLIEST SAXON TRANSLATIONS TO THE PRESENT ANGLO-AMERICAN REVISION. SECOND EDITION. REVISED, ILLUSTRATED, AND ENLARGED. BY BLACKFORD CONDIT, D.D. A. S. BARNES & COMPANY, NEW YORK. Copyright, 1881, 1896, iy A. S. Barnes &' Co, Dedication to First Edition. tDljosc Sntcrcst in tl)c |)rogres6 of tljesc |)agc0 Ijas been scorcele less tijon tns own Ci)i0 Volume 10 affectionately 31nscritieti. Dedication to Second Edition. PROFESSOR GEORGE E. DAY, D.D. A Member of the late Ameriean Committee on Revision of tlie Old. Testament, also Secretapy of the late Amerieari Committees on Revision of the Old, and Ne-w Testaments, this Volume is MostJ Respectfully Dedicated BY THE AUTHOR PREFACE TO THE FIRST EDITION. THE following chapters had their origin in the desire to trace the influence of the Bible upon the English ianguage. Dr. Noah Webster, in the preface to his "Amended Bible," 1838, says: "The language of the Bible has no inconsiderable influence in forming and preserving our National language." A slight acquaintance with the subject showed that this influence could not be understood without tracing back the history to the earliest Saxon and English translations. All praise is due to King James' revisers for their wisdom in approving as well as improving the labors of previous translators. Their design was not to make a new translation " nor yet to make of a bad one a good one, but to make a good one better, or out of many good ones, one prin cipal good one." Our English Bible of to-day, therefore, comprises in itself the labors of the best scholars during a period of two and a half centuries, together with a correspond ing growth of the English language. In the Louvre gallery at Paris the history of painting is illustrated by grouping the pictures on the walls in chrono logical order. Something of this plan may be found in the VI PREFACE. following pages by way of illustrating the history of the English language. Specimens of the various Saxon and English versions of the Scriptures have been inserted in chronological order, and in their original spelling. All quo tations from early English authorities are given literally as to wording and orthography, and in each case, so far as practi cable, preference has been given to the earliest editions. Another agreeable surprise in this investigation, was the im portant part the Anglo-Saxon language has played in the strug gle between the rights of the people and Romanism, before as well as since the Norman Conquest. The ascendancy of the Latin tongue meant practically the ascendancy of Eome not only in language and literature, but in religion and politics. It was the struggle of a David with a Goliath. And the victory was all the more remarkable because incidental. At the first the Reformers did not perceive the intimate relation between language and religion. Hopeless ignorance of the Latin on the part of the people was reason enough for translating the Scriptures into English. But afterward they learned that the Latin language was the stronghold of the Romish Church. The Latin tongue was imperial by birth, and seemed destined through its connection with victorious Rome to become the universal language. It was stately and magnificent, and in its movement it had something of the pomp and pride of a victorious Roman legion. Possibly it may be too much to affirm that the Latin, into which the Bible had for very many years been translated, exerted a powerful influence in Roman izing the Christian Church, since so little is known of the inner workings of that sad history. But we are safe in stat ing that leading bishops in the very beginning as well as in P E E F A C E . vii the after development of the Roman Catholic Church, found the Latin language adapted to their ambitious purposes. Consoquently when in after years their deep-laid plans were endangered by Vernacular versions of the Holy Scriptures, they erected their Latin barriers around both Bible and Church, and pronounced it heresy to translate or read the Bible save in the Latin tongue now chosen and ordaiued to be the sacred language of the Church. Pagan Rome failed in carry ing out her ideal of Universal Empire, but Papal Rome, clothed with the same imperial language and inspired with the same imperial ideal, hoped to succeed. She still has faith in her destiny notwithstanding serious cheeks upon her power. The first of these checks was in the domain of lan guage through Vernacular Versions of the Bible, which marks the rise and progress of Protestantism in its struggle with Romanism. Intimately connected with the religious stands the literary element in this conflict of languages. At the period of the Norman Conquest the Saxon tongue had a hard struggle for mere existence. It was driven from the court and palace, but it took refuge around the firesides of the peasantry. The Latin tongue even down to the Elizabethan age was the literary language. But during this same period the English language had become a power, and by its inherent vitality was already the giant that succeeding centuries have proved it to be. And prominent among the causes which lie at the foundation of this victory of the English over the Latin tongue we must recognize the fact of early translations of the Scriptures into the language of the people. The design of the following chapters was not to treat this subject at large, VUI PREFACE. but in giving an account of the several translations to note in cidentally the literary infiuence of these versions. In order to bring down the history of English translations to the present time, an extended account will be found in the following pages, of various public and private attempts to wards translations and revisions since that of King James' Bible, 1611. The great majority of these efforts were by private individuals and consequently of no special impor tance. There were other attempts made by public authority, and hence of greater significance. By far the most important of these, is the Anglo-American revision undertaken by the authority of the Convocation of Canterbury and with the ex press design of superseding King James' version. Whether it will accomplish this design must remain, for the present at least, an open question. It must be confessed, however, that in the history of English translations no version ever attracted so wide-spread expectation. And then it carries with it the recommendation of the most profound English and American scholarship— a scholarship in every way com petent to deal with original authorities and to make the best use of all critical helps. While this is true of the New Testament revisers whose labors have just closed, it is equally true of tho Old Testament revisers whose labors will not be completed for some three years to come. At the expense of burdening the page with foot-notes, care has been taken to give credit to all authorities quoted — an honest though laborious mode of acknowledging indebtedness. The historic field of English Bible translations has been sadly neglected by Church historians. Foxe, the martyrologist, is PREFACE. IX an honorable exception. The early Black Letter editions of his "Acts and Monuments," are mines of wealth in the rich mass of facts he has brought together including original documents bearing upon the external history of the English Bible. Rev. John Lewis was the original pioneer in this special field ; and in every bibliographical list, chronologically, his work must stand first. Lewis' "History of English Translations of the Bible " was first published as an introduc tion to Wycliflfe's " Translation of the New Testament," 1731. The work was issued separately in 1739. He crowded so much into so small a space, to the general reader his account seems heavy ; but to the searcher for facts his work, though not reliable in every particular, is most invaluable. Ander son's " Annals of the Bible " have been severely criticised, and yet they render most acceptable service in honoring the memory of the ever-memorable William Tyndale. The work was first published in 1845, in two octavo volumes. The ear liest editions were burdened with extended sketches of the civil history of the times, which interfered seriously with the simple narrative. These sketches were afterwards omitted in the revised edition put forth by his nephew in 1863. " A General View of the History of the English Bible," by Canon Westcott, published in 1868 and 1872, together with the two noble volumes by Dr. Eadie, entitled, " The English Bible ; an External and Critical History of the Various English Trans lations of the Scriptures," 1876, leave scarcely anything to be desired in the way of an extensive and critical account o^ English translations of the Holy Scriptures. My thanks are hereby extended to the Librarians of the following Libraries — Boston Public, Boston Athenaeum, Har- X PREFACE. vard College, Watkinson, Wabash College, and Lane Semi nary, for special favors. My personal acknowledgments are also due to many friends for aid and encouragement, but to none more than to my friend and former teacher. Prof. George E. Day, D.D., of New Haven, Conn. BLACKFORD CONDIT. Terbe Haute, Nov., 1881. PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION. rr^HB first edition of this work contained important par- -*- ticulars respecting the revision of the Old Testament, such as lists of Committees, both English and American, and the rules by which they were to be governed ; but a full account could not be given, since the revision was not issued until some four years later. Hence the necessity of an appen ded chapter to complete the history of the Old Testament revision, and of the Revised Bible as a whole. The importance of the work of the Old Testament revisers is appreciated the more one becomes familiar with it. Almost every page bears evidences of improvement. Many passages where the meanings were obscure, have been made clear; while some that were quite misleading, have been corrected. Beyond the efforts of the revisers a wide field opens up to the critical student of the Hebrew and its cognate languages, for the application of somewhat the same rigorous tests that were made in dealing with the Greek of the New Testament. When, therefore, this field shall have been conscientiously worked and the results submitted to the public, as in the case of the New Testament, doubtless the resultant will have an important bearing upon the text of the Old Testament. For the present, however, the revisers have done all that seemed wise, in the way of changes in the Hebrew text, to bring out the intended meaning of the sacred writers. xn PREFACE TO THE SECOSTD EDITION. While grateful acknowledgments are due to a generous pub lic for their appreciation of the first edition, possibly a higher sense of gratitude should be felt towards those who kindly called attention to some needful corrections. Among the illustrations that add materially to the interest of this volume, the noble head of William Tyndale will attract the attention of those who are more familiar with his fame than with his face. Special attention is also called to the frontispiece of the first edition of the Authorized version, which carries with it a peculiar interest. The same may be said in respect to the frontispiece of the Great Bible of 1539, attributed to Hans Holbein. These panel pictures are his torical, portraying as they do the activity of the times in the circulation of the Bible. The scenes are most remarkable when we call to mind the fact that only fourteen years had elapsed since all England was burning Tyndale's New Testa ments. The appended chapter, while it brings down the history of the work of revision to date, and indicates the gradual growth of public sentiment in favor of the revision, is yet compelled to leave the question of the ultimate adoption of the Revised Bible as still an unanswerable question. THE AUTHOR. Terre Haute, Jan., 1896, CONTENTS. CHAPTER I. SAXON AND ENGLISH TRANSLATIONS OF THE SCRIPTURES BEFORE THE TIME OF WTOLIFFB, A. D. 597-1324. PAGE Cheistianitt as fiest inteoduoed among the Saxons.— Rome not as tet op posed to the Bible in, the Language of tee People.— Colman and Wil- FRITH. — The Whitby Stnod.— CiEDMON.— Bede's Account of. — C^dmon's Paraphrase. — Specimen. — Guthlac's Psalter. — Specimen. — Aldhelm, " THE Good Author."— His Version of the Psalms. — Bbdb.—Alcuin.— In vasion or THE Danes. — King Alfred.— Extent of his Bible Translations. — Specimen.— Saxon Versions op the Four Gospels.— Specimen. — .^lfeic. — His Heptateuch. — Specimen. — Close of the Saxon Period. — Saxon Lan guage IN relation to the Norman Conquest.— The Beginning of the Eng lish Language and its Literature.— A New Era of Bible Translations. —The Ormulum.— Specimen. — Sowle Hele. — Schorham's Version op the Psalms.- Probablt the Earliest Prose Version. — Specimen— Richard Rolle's Version of the Psalms.-Specimen.— Early English. — Vernacu lar Versions of the Bible, an Offense to the Hierarchy. — The Wat prepared for John Wtcliffe , , 17 CHAPTER II. WTCLIFFE AND THB WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS, a.d. 1380. Birth of John ijjb. Wtcliffe. — His Education. — Civil and Canon Law.— Mo nastic Orders^ — Wycliffe's Attack upon the Mendicants. — Church and State.- Wtoliffb defends the Parliament.— Wtcliffe at Bruges.- His Lectures on Divinitt. — Wycliffe before the Council.— His Defense. — John Ball and Wat Tyler. —Wycliffe as a Reformer. — At Lctter- •woRTH. — He Translates the Bible. — Latin Language and Roman Catholic Church. — ^Romish Hatred of the English Bible.— Earlier and Later Texts of the Wtclifpite Versions. — Wycliffe and Hereford. — Spitci- MENB OF THE EARLIER TeXT. — JOHN PURVEY. — THE AUTHOR OF THE Later Text. — " Wycliffb^s Glossee." — Specimens of the Later Text. — FORSHALL AND MaDDBN'S WYCLIPFITE VERSIONS, 1850. — THB BlSHf^^S xiv CONTENTS. PAGE Registers.- Manuscripts of Single Books of thb Eiblb.— .\ntiquatbd FoEMs AND Obsolete Woeds.— Wtcliffb's Superior Renderings. — Exam- PLBS.— Relation of Vernacular Versions of thb Bible to Language and Literature. — Influence of Wtcliffite Versions upon Religion and Lan- OUAQE.— Character of Wycliffe.— Wycliffe and Chaucer.— Death op John Wtclipfb. — His Epitaph 53 CHAPTER III, TYNDALE AND HIS TRANSLATION OF THE NEW TESTAMENT, a.d. 1526. Revival of Learning in the Fifteenth Centurt. — Printing introduced into England. — Greek and Latin New Testament of Erasmus. — Opposed by Romish Priests. — Bishop Standish Appeals to the King and Quben. — Thb Way prepared for the New Testament in English.— William Ttndale. — Removes to Cambridge.— Acts as Tutor in the Family of Sir John Walsh. — Tyndale in London. — Departs to Hamburgh. — Cologne. — Worms, — Printing of the First English Testaments.- Hanseatio Ships convey them to London. — English Testaments concealed in Thomas Garrett's House. — "Diligent Search" instituted. — New Testament DisTRrsuTERs arrested. — Burning of New Testaments.— Stoet of Anthony Dalabee.— Bishop ToNSTAL AT Antweep.— The Seaech for Tyndalb.— "Bitter Days OF Persecution." — Mart-yrdom of John Fryth.— Ttndale's Re-vised New Testament, 1534.— Examples bt Way of Comparison. — Specimens of Tyn dale's Translation. — With Spelling Modernized. — The English Lan guage OF this Period.— Ttndale's Relation to Wycliffe.— Latinisms. — Examples. —Familiar Expressions.— Examples.— Obsolete Words.- Ar chaic Forms.— Old English Idioms.— Tyndale's Second Revision, 1535.— His Translations of Portions of the Old Testament.— Tyndale's Be trayal AND Arrest.— His Letter from Prison.— Trial and Martyrdom. — His Character and Life Work oi CHAPTER IV. COVERDALE'S bible, a. d. 1535. The New Testament of Erasmus. — Religious Awakening. Society or "Christlan Brodees."— Tyndale's New Testaments.— Prior Bucking ham's Sermon.— Hugh Latimer's Ans-wbr.- Myles Coverdale.— A Pupil of Dr. Barnes.— His Sympathy with Latimer and Bilnet.— Revival at Bum- STEDE.— Gospel Meetings.— Coverdale before the Bishops.— Is with- DRA-WN FROM PUBLIC NOTICE —ENTERS UPON THE WORK OF TBANSLATINQ THE Bible.- Cromwell's Patronage —Council called.— Henry VIII. presidhb. —Opposition to the Scriptures in English.— Latimer's Letter to the King.— Demand of the People for the Bible in English.— Cranmer's ef forts UNSUCCESSFUL.- COVERDALE'S BiBLE.— ThE DEDICATION.— CROMWELL'S Injunctions.— Bishops in Council.— Coverdale as a Translator.— His Version of the Psalms and Prophetic Books.— Specimens,— In Original AND Modern Spelling — Quaintnbss in Style — Familiabity in Expres- CONTENTS. XV PAGE SION. — Archaic Forms and Obsolete Words.— Romish Opposition.—" Eng lish Bielers."— The Diglott New Testament.—Coverdalb in England. — Arrangements for a New Translation.— Matthewb's Bible appears nr England lao CHAPTER V. MATTHEWE'S bible, a.d. 1537. Confusion in the Accounts of the Several Editions of the English Bible. — Origin of the Name of Matthewe's Bible. — John Rogers.— His Intimacy WITH Tyndale. — Editor of Matthewe's Bible. — This Bible Printed at Ant-werp.— Introduced into England by Grafton.— Ceanmer's Zeal for ITS Circulation.— Crom-well's Proclamation. — His Injunctions.— Romish Opposition.— Occasions of Offense. — This Version the Basis of subse quent Revisions.— Title.— Prefatort Matter. — Taverner's Bible.— Prep- ATORT Matter. — This Revision instigated by the Printers. — Taverner a Scholar and Lay Preacher.- Second Edition of the New Testament. — The Edition of 1549. — "In Sundry Partes."— Becke's Taveenee, 1551. — Petyt and Redman's Edition op Matthe-we's Bible, 1540. — Becke's Matthbwe, 1549.— Specimens op the Translation.— Reprint of Matthe-we's Bible by Hyll and Reynolds.— "Faultily Done."- Nycolas Hill's Edi tion, 1551.— Specimens. — Nicknamed the " Bug Bible."— A New Enterprise PROJECTED 172 CHAPTER VI. BIBLES OF THB LARGEST VOLUME, A. D. 1540. Cromwell's Bible. — Edited by Mylbs Coverdale.— Grafton and White- church iN'Paeis. — Letters to Cromwell. — Threatened by the Papists. — Printers and Presses brought ovee to London. — First Edition published Apeil, 1539. — Holbein's Feontispiece. — Prefatory Matter.— Specimens of the Translation.— Condemnation of Lambert. — Cranmer against the "Bloody Six Articles." — Monastic Houses dissolved.- Henry VIH. fa vors THE Scriptures in English.— Cranmer's Bible, 1540.— Prologue.— Edited bt Coverdale. — " Supplementary Clauses."— Changes not al ways Improvements.— Examples — Character op Cromwell.— November Edition of the Great Bible. — Convocation, 1542.— Gardiner's Scheme for A Latinized English Bible.— List of Latin Woeds to be Retained.— Cean- mee's Successful Opposition. — Latin Language and Latin Chuech. — Latin the Language of Liteeatuee. — English Language at this Period. —Persecution. — Reign of Edward VI.— Sir John Cheke's Translation of Portion op New Testament.— His Pcrism.—Orthogeapht.— Specimens of his Translation.— English Language growing in Importance.— Roger AscHAM.— His " Toxophilus" and "Schole Master "-Progress of Bible Truth during the Reign of Edward VI,— Retaliations against the Prot estants DURING the Reign of Queen Mary.— Persecution and the Gene van Bible 199 XVI CONTENTS, CHAPTER VII. THE GENEVAN BIBLE, A.D. 1560. PAGE William Whittingham.— His Revision of the New Testament, 1557. — Verse Divisions.— Originality op Whittingham's Version. — Spbcimens.—Prot- bstants op Geneva.— The Genevan Bible, 1560.— Dedication,— Address to THE Reader.- Not an Independent Translation.— Specimens from O. T. — An Improvement on Preceding Translations.— The Genevan Bible and THE Puritans.- Chief Characteristics. —Marginal Notes.- Excessive Use OF Commentaries. — ^How to read the Bible. — "Mappbs." — Wood-cuts. — Extended Circulation op the Genevan Bible.— Its Saxon Language.— English Versions op the Bible and the English Language.— Influence OF Pagan Rome upon Literature and Social Life.— Ltly's " New-fangled English."— Literary Influence of the Genevan Bible. — English Lan guage AT THIS Period. — Religious and Social Influence of the English Bible. — Antiquated and Obsolete Terms.— Examples.— Title-page of THE New Testament of 1660.— Specimens of the Translation.- Lawrence Tomson's Revision op N. T., 1576. — His Rendering of the Greek Article. — Examples.- Enlargement of the English Vocabulary.— New Words NOT Traceable to the Rheims Version.- Examples. — Annotations.— Ex cerpts from Tomson's N. T. — Popularity of the Genevan Version. — Oppo sition bt English Bishops. — A New Version proposed by Archbishop Parker. — Genevan and Authorized Versions 2S4 CHAPTER VIII. THE BISHOP'S BIBLE, a.d. 1568. QuBBN Elizabeth's Reign.— Order in the State and Uniformity in the Church. — Ecclesiastical Paetttsm.— Evangelical Spieit among Clergy and People. — Manners and Morals.— Sabbath Reform. — Influence of THE English Bible.— Parker's Plan for a New Revision.— Rules Pre- bcribed.— Co-operation of the Bishops.— Why called the Bishop's Bible. —Title-page.— Preface.— The Revision based upon Cranmer's Bible, 1540.— But pew Changes in the O. T.— Examples.— Specthens of the Translation. - Scholarship of the N. T.— Collation showing Changes FOR THE Better. — Specimen of the Translation. — Affectation in Lan guage, -Resisted BY THE Revisers op this Bible. — Commonplace Words AND Phrases.— Collation op. — ExplanatoryPhrases.— Examples.— Latin isms.— Examples.— Obsolete Woeds.—Examples.— Vulgar Terms avoided. —Passages to be Omitted in Public Reading.— Marginal Notes.— Circu lation Limited.— This Version a Link in the Chain of Authorized Re vision.— Romish Hatred.— Fulke's Reply to Martin.— Mtles Covebdalb. — His Life and Labors,— His Death, 1569 : CONTENTS. xvii CHAPTER IX. RHEIMS NEW TESTAMENT, A. D. 1582. DOUAY BIBLE, A. D. 1609. page Reasons for Publishing the Douay Bible.— Gregory Martin the Chief Translator.- The New Testament first Printed.— Title-page. — Pre face.— Fulke's Refutation —Why Translated from the Vulgate.— Un translated Words.— Examples, — Dark Phrases.— Examples. — Specimens op the Translation.— Latinized English.— Examples.— Rhemish Version AND Scripture Vocabulary. —Illustrations. — Saxonisms. — Examples, — An Untruthful Translation.— Papistical Notes.- Collation of. — Cart- "wright's Confcjtation. — The Controversy. — The Old Testament. — Trans lated FROM THE Vulgate. — Rival Editions of the Vulgate. — Clementine Edition, 1592, adopted.— Title-page.— Limited Circulation.— The Latin Text the Foundation of the Wtcliffite Versions. — The Vulgate the Source of Early Religious Kno-wlbdge. — Influence of the Vulgate upon English Theological Speech. — Examples.— Office of the Wyc- LiFFiTE Versions. Naey's Translation of the N. T.— His Design.— Dr. Wetham's Version, 1730-33.— Dr. Challoner's Revised Edition of Douay Bible, 1749-50. — Specimen^.— Dr. Murray's Edition, 1825. — Conformed to THE Authorized Version. — Dr. Lingard's Four Gospels. — Tendency to Liberality among Modern Catholic Revisers. — The Roman Catholic Bible op To-dat not that op 1609-1635. — Its Circulation among Americak Catholics 295 CHAPTER X. THE AUTHORIZED VERSION, A.D. 1611. Accession op James I. — Hampton Court Conference.- A New Translation RESOLVED upon.— Committees Appointed.— Their Eminence for Scholar ship. — Rules foe their Guidance.— Title-page.— Dedication.— Preface.— Opposition to the New Translation.— Hugh Broughton.— Dr. Gill. — " Authorized Version." — "King Jambs' Bielb."— The Bishop's Bible the Basis op the Revision.- Latin Versions Accessible.— Recent Veenaculae Versions. — Hebrew Bibles Extant.— Soncine and Bomberg's. — Complu- tensian and antwerp polyglotts.— text op erasmus. — third edition of Stephens.— Text of Beza.— "Textus Receptus."— Relation of King James' Bible to previous English Versions.— Changes for the Better.— Some times FOR THE Worse. — Illustrations. — Greek Article. — Examples. — Single Greek Word translated by Several English Words.- Examples. —Several Greek Words by Single English Word.— Examples.— Punctua- ¦noN.- Examples. — Saxon Element op our Language re-established in EJCNG James' Bible. — Literary Influence. — The Bible the Book op the Household.- Words in aKore.— Latin Derivatives displaced by Saxon Words. — Milton.— Shakespeare. — Religious Influence. — Typographical Eerors.—Illusteations.— Corrupted Bibles.— Corrected Editions.— He braisms. — Old English Idioms. — Examples. — Archaisms. — Obsolete Words. —Examples. — Relation of the English Bible to Textual Criticism.— xvm CONTENTS. PAGE Earliest Greek MSS.— Collation of Facts, and Second Thoughts of Biblical Scholars.— Results of Textual Criticism in its Application to OUR English Bible. — Examples.- Doubtful Passages.- Integrity of our English Bible. — Yet a Revised Edition desirable. — The Anglo-Ambeioan Revision now in progress 324 CHAPTER XI. REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE a.d. 1611. Dsjiand foe a Revision of King James' Bible.— Early Attempts.- Proposals ET Henry Jessby and Prop. Rowe, 1650-55. — Resolutions in the Long Par liament, 1653-58. — Era of the Restoration. — Its Underl-ting Principles. -King James' Bible firmly Established. — "Tide of Glowing Panegy ric."— Influence, Literary and Religious, of King James' Bible. — Mace's Version op the N. T.— " A Doughty Translation."— Puevbr's Transla tion, 1764.- Undertaken for the Society of Friends. — Harwood's N. T., 1768.— Its "Elegance" in Language. — Blatnet's Edition of the Bible, 1769.— A CORRECTED ENGLISH TEXT.— DR. LoWTH's TRANSLATION OP ISAIAH, 1778.— Dr. Geddes' Translation of Parts of the O. T., 1780-97.— Dr. George Campbell's Four Gospels, 1789. — Wakefield's Translation of N. T., 1791.— Unitarian.- Dr. Newcome's N. T., 1796.— Scarlett's Version, 1798. — Favors the Doctrine of Universalism.— McRea's Revision of the Bible, 1799.— Improved Version of the N. T.,1808. — Unitarian.— Bellamt's New Translation, 1818-1821.— Alexander Campbell's Version of N. T., 1820.— Noah Webster's "Amended Bible," 1833. — Rodolphus Dickinson's " Elegant Translation" of the N. T., 1833.— Its Fashionable Language. — ^Alexander's Revision of the Pentateuch, 1833.— Indelicate Words AND Phrases corrected. — American Bible Societt Revision, 1851.— A Standard Copy adopted. — Public Dissatisfaction. — Standard Revoked, 1858.— Examples op Changes proposed. — Critical Revision op the Gospel op John, etc., by Five Clergymen, 1857. — Sawyer's N. T., 1858.— American Bible Union Revision, 1850-1860.— Revision by Convocation op Canter- EURT.— Begun in 1870. — English Old and New Testament Companies.— Rules Adopted.— Scholarship and Catholicity of the English Revisers. —Formation op American Companies, 1871. — Constitution Adopted. — Changes in American Companies. — Progress op the Work. — The Rb-vibiok International and Interdenominational. — The Unajtswerable Ques tion.— Publication AND Reception of the Revised Version. — Title-page AND Prefatory Matter. — Treatment op Debatable Passages. — Coeeect Teeatmbnt op Greek Tenses. — Improvements from an Amended Greek Text. — Translation of Greek Articles and Prepositions.— Ikh!0tembnjb8 PROM Displacing Obsolete Words. — Language of the Revised VEesi^. — New Woedb Introduced.— The Ajeeeioan Appendix < CONTENTS. XIX CHAPTER XII. THE REVISED VERSION OF THE OLD TESTAMENT AND THE REVISED BIBLE AS A WHOLE, A. D. 1881-1885. PAGE Interest in the Revision. — Reception of Revised Old Testament. — Antiq uity op the Hebrew Language.— Preservation op the Sacred Writ ings OF THE Jews. — Higher Criticism in its Application to Books of THE Old Testament.— Date of Old Testament Manuscripts.— Standard Manuscripts. — Transcribed bt Jews. — Printed Hebrew Bibles. — Cele brated Editions of.— The Septuagint.— Preparation for Greek of the New Testament. —The Accepted Bible op Christ and His Apostles.— Purpose of the Revision op the Old Testament. — Mabsoretic Text. — The Word Peoples. — Conservation op the Saxon Element in our Lan- guagb.- Archaic Words. — Familiar Passages Disappointing by Reason of Changes. — Marked Improvements. — Exabiples of. — Book of Job — Book of Psalms. — Doctrinal Changes. — Inspiration Emphasized. — Cooperation of American Scholars. — Demand for Revision Originated with Bibli cal Scholars.- Underlying Motive.— Earliest Promoters.— Organized Effort. — ^Expenses of Re-vision. — List of American Finance Committee. — Revised Bible the Inheritor of the Excellencies of the Authorized Veesion. — Attacks upon. — Double Task op the Revisers. — Estimate of, in England. — How Regarded in America.— Evidences of Some Progress. —Revised Bible Come to Stay.— Re-revision out of the Question.— An American Revised Edition Possible but not Probable.— Apocrtpha.—No Place in Hebrew Bible.— Revised bt British Committee.— Issued in Uniform Size -with Revised Old and New Testaments 494 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. 1. Portrait of John Wycliffe 2. Portrait of William Tyndale 3. Portrait of Mylbs Coverdale 4. Holbein's Frontispiece . 5. Title Page to King Jambs' Bible 6. Portrait op Rev, Db. Philip Schaff opposite Title Page. 189204324433 CHAPTER I. SAXON AND ENGLISH TRANSLATIONS OP THE SCRIPTURES, BEFORE THE TIME OP WTCLIFFE. A, D. 597-1324 CHRISTIANITY was first mtroduced among the Anglo- Saxons by Roman missionaries in the year 597.^ These "strangers from Rome" landed on the island of Thanet. They immediately sent word to King Ethelbert that they came to declare the glad tidings of the Gospel. The king, through his Christian wife. Bertha, and Bishop Luidhard, the pre cursor of Augustine, had heard of the Gospel, yet, being suspicious of strangers, he met them in the open air, lest they should impose upon him by their magic. At his bidding, they approached in an orderly procession, bearing a silver cross, also an image of the Saviour painted on a board, and singing the litany. After listening to the address of Augus tine, the king answered : " Your words and promises are very fair, but as they are new to us, and of uncertain import, I cannot approve of them so far as to forsake that which I have so long followed with the whole English nation. But because you are come from far into my kingdom, and, as I conceive, are desirous to impart to us those things which you believe to be true, and most beneficial, we will not molest you, but give you favorable entertainment, and take care to supply you with ' The date of the first introduction of Christianity into Britain is quite another question. The general impression prevails that it waa planted as early as the first century. But Thomas Wright, in hia Gelt, Soman and Saxon, asserts that Christianity could not have been established at so early a period, since ¦' among such an immense num ber of altars and inscriptions of temples, and -with so many hundreds of Roman sepulchres and graves as have been opened in this country, (Eng land), we find not a single trace of the religion of the Gospel." p. 358. 18 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. your necessary sustenance ; nor do we forbid yon to preach and gain as many as you can to your religion." ^ Augustine brought with him a Latin Bible, in two volumes, which is said to have been extant in the time of James I. ; a Psalter with the creed and several Latin hymns ; two copies of the Gospels ; another Psalter with hymns ; a book of Legends of the Sufferings of the Apostles ; another volume of Martyrology ; an Exposition of the Gospels and Epistles ; and Gregory's Pastoral Care.^ Bede, in enumerating a variety of articles sent by Pope Gregory to his missionaries in Britain, mentions: "many books."* But, however well Augustine may have been furnished for his enterprise, and however fair may have been his promises, the Christianity planted by him and his followers among the Saxons, was a Latin Christianity. "It was a compound," says Sharon Turner, "of doctrines, ritual, discipline, and polity, derived partly from the Scrip tures, partly from tradition, partly from the decisions and orders of former councils and popes, and partly from popular customs and superstitions, which had been permitted to inter mix themselves." * It was a Christianity that, from the first, was marked by pious frauds and feigned miracles. It is re lated of Laurentius, the successor of Augustine, when he was about to quit Britain on account of the Saxons relapsing into idolatry, tliat " in the dead of night, the blessed Prince of the Apostles appeared to him, and scourging him a long time with apostolical severity, asked of him, ' why he should forsake the flock which he had committed to him ? ' Lauren tius, the servant of Christ, being excited by these words and stripes, the very next morning repaired to the king, and tak ing ofl his garment, showed the scars of the stripes which he had received. The king, astonished, asked, 'Who had pre sumed to give such stripes to so great a man ? ' And was ' Bede's Ecclesiastical History, p. 38, Bohn's ed. Sharon Turner gives this in the original Saxon. See Hist. Anglo-Saxons, I., 330, ¦note. ' Ibid, p. 38, note. See also Turner, Hist. A. S., I., 332, note. s Ibid, p. 54. ¦• History of the Anglo-Saxons, L, 381. London, 1823. 616.] ROME AS YET NOT OPPOSED TO THE BIBLE. 19 much frightened when he heard that the bishop had suffered so much at the hands of the Apostle of Christ for his salvation." ' This pious fraud was successful. King Eadbald was converted aud baptized. He renounced his idolatry, and sought in every way to promote the interests of the Church. But though it was a Latiu Christianity introduced among the Anglo-Saxons, it was not the thoroughly Romanized Chris tianity of later times. There was as yet no claim by the papacy to infallibility; nor was there any prohibition on the part of either pope or council against the right of the people to have the Holy Scriptures in their own language. Not until the Council of Thoulouse, 1229, was there any such restraint, when it was shamefully enacted : " We forbid that Laymen be permitted to have the books of the Old and New Testaments ; unless some out of Devotion desire to have the Psalter or Breviary for Divine Ofl&ces, and the Hours of the Blessed Virgin ; but even these, they may not have in the Vulgar Tongue."^ The Roman hierarchy, up to the time of Inno cent III., the beginning of the thirteenth century, entertained no serious designs against the Scriptures translated into the language of the people. "It is remarkable," says Neander, " that pope Innocent the Third was originally inclined rather to encourage than to suppress the reading of the Bible by the laity, till, influenced by the principles of the church theocracy, of which he was the representative, he was led, by the conse quences growing out of that tendency, to contend against it."^ There was a lurking danger in Vernacular versions of the Scriptures which the hierarchy did not at first apprehend. But from the time of Innocent III. its Romish policy was settled. The enactment of the Council of Thoulouse shall henceforth be rigidly enforced. As yet, however, the Bible was regarded " as furnishing the best means of nourishment for the soul, and the surest remedy for all the disorders of the soul."^ ' Bede's Ecclesiastical History, p. 79, Bohn's ed., London, 1871. ' Neander's Church History, IV., 324, note. Boston, 1853. 8 Ibid, p. 321. " I^ii, P- 322. 20 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. At this time even popes rejoiced that the Bible, by means of translations, found its way among the people. This was especially true of Gregory the Great, who was so zealous in the conversion of the Anglo-Saxons. "The Sceiptures," said he, "are infinitely elevated above all other instructions; they instruct us in the truth ; they call us to heaven ; they change the heart of him who reads them The sweetness and con descension of the Holy Scriptures comfort the weak and im perfect; their obscurity exercises the strong They seem to expand and rise in proportion as those who read them rise and increase in knowledge. Understood by the most illiterate, they are always new to the most learned." ^ It was this same Gregory who compared the Scriptures " to a river, in some places so shallow, that a lamb might easily pass through them ; in others so deep, that an elephant might be drowned in them." ^ To hearty eulogy, Gregory added exhortation to the reading and study of the Scriptures. To a physician he wrote : " Study, meditate, the words of your Creator, that from them you may learn what is in the heart of God towards you, and that your soul may be inflamed with the most ardent desires after celestial and eternal good." * Such sentiments, however, could not have been shared by his missionaries iu Britain, otherwise they would have translated, at least, portions of the Bible into the Saxon language. But they depended more upon rites and ceremonies, than upon the Bible, for success in converting the Saxons. But to understand the relation of Christianity to the uncon verted Saxons, we must take into the account the influences brought to bear upon them by the Irish Church. Previous to the conquest of Britain by the Saxons, Christianity had been carried into Ireland, where it was received with enthusiasm. "The science and Biblical knowledge which fled from the Continent took refuge in famous schools which made Durrow and Armagh the universities of the West Patrick, the first ' Townley's Biblical Literature, I., 210, 211. » 7ii(i, p. 210. 2 /6jd,p. 311. 664.J THE WHITBY COUNCIL. 21 missionary of the island, had not been half a century dead when Irish Christianity flung itself with a fiery zeal into battle with the mass of heathenism which was rolling in upon the Christian world For a time it seemed as if the course of the world's history was to be changed, as if the older Celtic race that Roman and German had swept before them had turned to the moral conquest of their conquerors, as if Celtic and not Latin Christianity was to mould the destinies of the Churches of the West." ^ In the year 565, Columba, a native of Ireland, founded the monastery of lona, on an island of the same name,^ off the west coast of Scotland. In this abbey Oswald, king of the Northumbrians, was educated ; and through his influence Culdee missionaries were sent to preach among the Saxons. Bishop Aidan was the most noted of these missionaries. He founded the monastery of Lindisfarne, or Holy Island, off the northeast coast of Northumbria, about the year 636. Aidan, according to Bede, was " a man of sin gular meekness, piety, and moderation." He was zealous in preaching the Gospel, and for this purpose traveled on foot from place to place. Even before he had learned the lan guage, "it was most delightful," says Bede, "to see the king interpreting for liim when he spake publicly to the people." Besides Lindisfarne other monasteries were founded. Among these was Streaneshalch, afterwards called Whitby, founded by Abbess Hilda on the east coast of Deira. This monastery is celebrated as the place where the synod was held to decide the vexed questions of the tonsure,* and the time of Easter. Hitherto the monks of Lindisfarne, and other re ligious houses whose ecclesiastical relations were with lona, ' Green's Short History of the English People, p. 58. New York, 1 877. = The ancient name was Hi, or I, or Aoi, which was Latinized into Hyona, or Iotm. Compare Bede's Ecclesiastical History, p. 118, note. Bohn's edition. 3 The Romans shaved the crown of the head and considered the circle of hair left as a figure of the crown of thorns worn by the Saviour. The Scots shaved only the front of the head in the form of a crescent. Compare Lingard's History of England, I., ICO. Boston, 1858. 22 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. followed the usages of lona rather than of Rome. The con troversy ran high between the opposing parties, until Oswy, king of the Northumbrians, determined to call a council to meet at Whitby, to decide their differences. This council con vened in 664. Bishop Colman, the successor of Aidan, sup ported the usages of lona ; while Abbot Wilfrith plead for the usages of Rome. The former appealed to the authority of Columba, the latter to that of St. Peter. In the course of the debate, Wilfrith quoted Matt. xvi. 18 : Thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my church ; and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it. And I will give unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven. Upon which the king said : " Is it true, Colman, that these words were spoken to Peter by our Lord ?" He answered : " It is true, 0 King ! " Then says he, " Can you show any such power given to your Columba ?" Coleman answered, "None." Then added the king: "Do you both agree that these words were principally directed to Peter, and that the keys of heaven were given to him by our Lord ? " They both answered, " We do." This ended the dis cussion ; the king and all present determined henceforth to conform to the authority and ritual of Rome.^ But previous to the meeting of this synod, there arose one whose name gave still greater notoriety to this monastery. It was none other than Csedmon, the cowherd of Whitby, whose name is honored in ancient literary annals, as the singer of the first great English song. So in tracing the history of Saxon versions of the Bible, the paraphrase of Csedmon stands chronologically at the head of the list. Bede's ac count of Csedmon partakes something of a monastic tinge, yet it is the original source of our information concerning him. Bede declares in substance that Csedmon belonged to the monastery of Whitby, then under the rule of Abbess Hilda, as a cowherd, whose business it was to look after the horses and cattle. He was no singer, and when at entertain- ' See this controversy fully treated of in Bede's Ecclesiastical History , pp. 153-160. Bohn's edition. 680.] C^DMON, THE COWHERD OP WHITBY. 23 ments the harp, in turn, was passed to him, he would rise from the table and go home. On one such occasion, after retiring to rest in the stable where he had charge of the horses, " a person appeared to him in his sleep, and saluting him by his name, said, ' Csedmon, sing some song to me.' He answered, ' I cannot sing ; for that was the reason I left the entertain ment, and retired to this place, because I could not sing.' The other who talked to him, replied, ' However you shall sing.' ' What shall I sing ? ' rejoined he. ' Sing the beginning of created beings,' said the other. Hereupon he presently began to sing verses to the praise of God which he had never heard."* In the morning he informed the steward, his superior, of his dream, and of the gift he had received ; whereupon he was conducted to the abbess, where, in the presence of learned men, he related his dream, together with the verses composed in his sleep. They immediately con cluded " that heavenly grace had been conferred upon him by our Lord. They expounded to him a passage in holy writ, either historical or doctrinal, ordering him, if he could, to put the same into verse." Returning the next morning he gave it to them in most excellent verse. By the order of the abbess he was instructed " to quit the secular habit, and take upon him the monastic life. " ^ They taught him the principal facts of the Old and New Testaments, which in turn he put into poetic phraseology. "He sang the creation of the world, the origin of man, and all the history of Genesis; and made many verses on the departure of the children of Israel out of Egypt, and their entering into the land of promise, with many other histories from holy writ ; the in carnation, passion, resurrection of our Lord, and his ascension into heaven ; the coming of the Holy Ghost, and the preaching of the apostles; also the terror of future judgment, the pains of hell and the delights of heaven."* By which he sought to turn men from the love of vice to the love of virtue. He died in the year 680. 1 Bede's Ec. Hist., p. 217. « lUd, pp. 218-219. = Ibid, p. 219. 24 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. The metrical paraphrase of > Csedmon though not to be ranked as a translation, holds an important place in the his tory of Anglo-Saxon versions, as being the first attempt to set forth any portion of the Scriptures in the Saxon tongue. The following fragment, preserved in Alfred's Saxon version of Bede's Ecclesiastical History, is a paraphrase of the first verse of the first chapter of Genesis. A comparison with the translation will show that while the Saxon language of the seventh century is to us an unknown tongue, yet our present English is deeply embedded in its Saxon original. Sharon Turner pronounces this to be the most ancient piece of Anglo-Saxon poetry that we possess.' Now we should praise Nu we sceolan herigean The Guardian of the heavenly Heaf on rices weard ; kingdom ; The mighty Creator, Metodes mihte. And the thoughts of his mind, And his mod gethanc. Glorious Father of his works ! Weorc wuldor feeder ! As he, of every glory Swa he wuldres gehwaes Eternal Lord I Ece drihten ! Established the beginning ; Ord onstealde ; So he first shaped He aerest gescop The earth for the children of Eorthan bearuum men. And the heav'ns for its canopy. Heofon to rofe. Holy Creator ! Halig scyppend ! The middle region, Tha middan geard. The Guardian of Mankind, Mon cynnes weard. The eternal Lord, Ece drihtne. Afterwards made .Sifter teode The ground for men. Firum foldan; Almighty Ruler 1 Frea Almitig I Csedmon made no change in the form of Saxon verse. His style is the same as that of the old Saxon war song, which by its energy and force was suited to the spirit of Old Testament ' Turner's History of Anglo-Saxons, III., 260. Csedmon's poem was published by Junius in 1655 ; and by Benjamin Thorpe in 1832. In the above transcript the Saxon characters give place to Roman letters. 680.] cjedmon's paraphrase. 35 history. "The temper of Csedmon," says Green, "brings him near to the early fire and passion of the Hebrew, as the history of his time brought him near to the old Bible history with its fights and wanderings." i The following extracts are from Sharon Turner, who refers them to the original Csedmon in opposition to Warton and others who would assign to them a much later date. In re ferring to this paraphrase Mr. Turner says : " It was published by Junius as the work of the ancient Csedmon .... It treats on the first part of the subjects which Bede mentions to have been the topics of the elder Csedmon ; but it is pre sumed by Hickes not to be so ancient as the poet mentioned by Bede. I confess that I am not satisfied that Hickes is right in referring it to any other author than the person to whom Junius ascribes it." ' The following soliloquy of Satan illustrates the bold fancy of the poet, and not unfrequently re minds us of the grandeur so peculiar to Milton's descrip tions : * Why should I contend ? strong companions ! I cannot have who will not deceive me any creature for my superior I in this contention. I may with my hands Warriors of hardy mind ! so many wonders work ! they have chosen me and I must have great power for their superior ; to acquire a more godlike illustrious soldiers ! stool, with such, indeed, higher in the heavens ! one may take counsel ! Tet why should I with such folk sue for his grace ? may seize a station ! or bend to him My earnest friends they are, with any obedience 7 faithful in the effusions of their I may be mind. a god, as he is. I may, as their leader. Stand by me, govern in this kingdom. ' For an estimate of Csedmon as a poet, see Green's Short History of the English People, p. 63. New York, 1877. Also Taine's English Literature, I., 48. New York, 1874. « History of the Anglo Saxons, llh.ZdQ. London, 1828. 3 IbU, pp. 813, 314. 26 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. So I think it not right, nor need I flatter any one, as if to any gods a god inferior. I will no longer remain his subject. After the defeat of Satan and his followers, the poet thus graphically describes their fall and abode in the lower regions : The fiend, with all his fol- lowers, fell then out of heaven ; during the space They suffer the punishment of three nights and days ; of their battle against their the angels from heaven Ruler ; into hell ; and them all The fierce torrents of fire the Lord turned into devils ; in the midst of hell : because that they brands and broad flames ; his deed and word so likewise bitter smoke, would not reverence. vapour and darkness. One other extract will suffice, taken from another of Satan's speeches.^ Is this the narrow place, unlike, indeed, to the others which we before knew, high in heaven's kingdom, that my Master puts me in ? He hath not done us right, that he hath filled us with fire to the bottom of this hot hell, and taken away heaven's king dom. This is to me the greatest sor row. that Adam shall, he that was made of earth, my strong like stool possess. He is to be thus happy, while we suffer punishment ; misery in this hell 1 Oh that I had free the power of my hands, and might for a time be out ; for one winter's space, I and my array 1 but iron bonds lay around me ! knots of chains press me down ! I am kingdomless I hell's fetters History of the Anglo-Saxons, III., p. 314. » Ihid, 315. 'J'35.J GUTHLAC'S PSALTER. 27 hold me so hard, above and beneath ; so fast encompass me 1 I never saw Here are mighty flames A more hateful landscape. Guthlac, the first Saxon anchoret at Croyland, flourished in the early part of the eighth century. He is reputed to have made an Anglo-Saxon version of the Latin Psalter. At least there is an ancient Psalter preserved in the British Museum among the Cotton MSS, ' which is said to have " well-grounded pretensions " as being one of the books sent by Pope Gregory the Great to Augustine in Britain. The original text is Latin, and "is written in that thin, light hand which characterises MSS. penned iu Italy." ^ This Psalter contains an interlinear Saxon translation, but by whom it was done remains a matter of doubt. And yet from its antiquity it is referred by com mon consent to Guthlac. Moreover, during the reign of Henry VIII. there was in the Croyland Abbey Library an ancient copy of the Psalter in Saxon, which was kept as a relic and called St. Guthlac's Psalter. John Lambert's testi mony is, however, that this translation was made by a Saxon king and copied by Guthlac* The twenty-second Psalm is here transcribed, with the characters peculiar to the Saxon changed to ordinary letters.* Ps. XXn. 1. dryht receth me & ne wiht me wonu bith 2. in stowe leswe ther mec ge-steathelade ofer weter ge- reodnisse a-ledde mec 3. sawle mine ge-cerde ge-laedde me ofer stige rehtwis- nisse fore noman hia 4. weotud-Iice & thaehe ic gonge in midle scuan deathes ne on-dredu ic yfel for-thon thu mid -me erth, gerd thin & cryc thin hie me froefrende werun 5. thu gearwades in ge-sihthe minre biod with him tha swencath mec thu faettades in ele heafud min, & drync thinne in-drencende swithe frea-berht is ' Edited by Stevenson for the Surtees Society, 1843. ' Baber's Preface to Wycliffe's N. T., p. Iviii. London, 1810. 3 See his answer to Article 26, in Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1373. ^ Anglo-Saxon and Early English Psalter. By Rev. J. Stevens, Sur tees Society. Boston Athenaeum Library. 28 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. Ps. XXIL 6. & mil-heortniss thin efter-fylgeth mec allum degum lifes mines thaet io in-eardie in huse dryht' in longer dega Bishop Aldhelrn was by birth a West Saxon, and was related to King Ina. In 675 he was made Abbot of Malmsbury. He composed both Latin and Saxon verse, and is described by Bede as one " most learned in all respects, for he had a clean style, and was, as I have said, wonderful for ecclesiastical and liberal erudition." 1 In his own day he was renowned as : The man skilled in books ; The good author Aldhelm, the noble poet. He was also In the country of the Anglo-Saxons, A bishop in Britain.^ Besides his notable tract on the Praise of Virginity, Aldhelm composed a number of songs in which passages of Scripture were " ingeniously interspersed " ; and being skilled in music, he sang them standing on a bridge, surrounded by crowds of people. He afterwards became Bishop of Sherborne, and about the year 706 translated the Psalter into Saxon. By some this version is thought to have been lost during the incursions of the Danes ; but by others, that a copy of it was found in the Royal Library at Paris, at the beginning of this century.* The following miracles were attributed to Aldhelm, which in dicate the credulity of the age and also as well the reputed piety of the man. It is recorded that " a beam of wood was once lengthened by his prayers" ; also that "the ruins of the church he built, though open to the skies, were never wet with rain during the worst weather"; also that " one of his gar ments, when at Rome, once raised itself high in the air, and was kept there a while, self-suspended" ; and that "a child, ' Ecclesiastical History, pp. 267, 268. Bohn's ed. " Turner's Hist. Anglo-Saxons, III., 327. Transcribed from Wanley's Catalogue, p. 110. " Edited by Thorpe. Liber Psalmorum, &c. 700.] INFLUENCE OP LATIN CULTURE. 29 nine days old, at his command, once spake to clear the calum niated pope from the imputation of being its father." i Aldhelm may be regarded as an illustration of the fact of Latin culture, at this period, on the character not only of in dividuals, but of the nation at large. He was a native Saxon, but educated as a Roman. As an author his genius remained Saxon, though his language was Latin. As a learned bishop, he appreciated the art and culture of Rome, yet he did not forget his Saxon simplicity and the love of his native tongue. Somewhat so Roman civilization touched upon the Saxon people. The Saxons, when they first invaded Britain, despised the Latin culture of the Britons ; but afterwards they were influ enced both by their manners and speech. " I believe, indeed," says Mr. Wright, "that when the Angles and Saxons came into Britain, they found the people talking not a Celtic dialect, but Latin, and hence when they formed the English language, the foreign words introduced into it were not Celtic but Latin." ^ A very small class of words are thought to have been intro duced at this early period, through Celtic Latin, into Saxon English. As examples we have cester, a common ending of the names of English towns, describing them as fortified, from the Latin castrum, a fortified camp. The word coin, is another common ending of the names of towns, describing them as originally settled by a colony. This is doubtless derived from the Latin colonia.^ Again, in this coming of Augustine, Anglo-Saxon genius resists Roman influences. Ecclesiastically, there is introduced the form of worship with its language and art culture, and Saxon character is influenced ; but the effect is only external. Had it been otherwise, it is probable that the descendants of the Saxons to-day would have been Latin, both in their religion and language. ' Turner's History of the Anglo-Saxons, IIL, 376. ^ Wright's {IThos.) The Celt, The Boman and The Saxon, p. 460. Lon don, 1875. 3 Compare Marsh's {Q. P.) English Language and Literature, p. 60. New York, 1860. 30 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. It is claimed that the Venerable Bede, who lived in the early part of the eighth century, translated the whole Bible into English. " For if worldli clerkis," says the author of the pro logue to the Wycliffe Bible, " loken wel here (their) croniclis and bokis, thei shulden fynde, that Bede translatide the bible, and expounide myche in Saxon, that was English." ^ Lewis, in quoting Foxe's dedication of his work to the Queen, says : '•'that our countryman Bede did translate the whole Bible in the Saxon tongue a little before his departure." But the probabilities are that Bede's translations were confined to the Lord's Prayer, select passages from several books of the Bible, and the Gospel of John.^ The last is justly regarded as the earliest effort to translate the Bible into Saxon. This work of Bede, with his other literary labors, were accomplished at the monastery of Jarrow. " The region in which this monastery was situated" (in the time of Bede), says Eadie, "was quiet, lone, and thinly peopled," (but) " is now planted with a forest of furnaces, throwing out fire and smoke, and soiled with unsightly mounds of cinders and igneous refuse, while the din of heavy hammers is ever resounding, as great iron vessels are built in succession, by swart and busy myriads." * Hallam bestows merited praise, when he declares that " the Venerable Bede, as he was afterwards styled, early in the eighth century, surpasses every other name of our ancient literary annals ; and, though little more than a diligent com piler from older writers, may perhaps be reckoned superior to any man whom the world then possessed."^ Bede's most celebrated work is his Ecclesiastical History. He was a great student of the Scriptures. He possessed some knowledge of the Greek and Hebrew languages, and employed much of his 1 Forshall and Madden 's edition, I., 59. Oxford, 1850. This Pro logue dates back to the close of the fourteenth century. ' Dr. Marshall's judgment is that Bede's Translation of John's Gospel is preserved in Parker's edition of the Four Saxon Gospels, published in 1571. 8 History of the EngUsh Bible, I., 11. New York, 1874. * Introduction to the Literature of Europe, I., 29. 806. J INVASION OF THE DANES. 31 time in writing Bibhcal commentaries. In a letter to Egbert, Archbishop of York, he wrote : " Above all things avoid use less discourse and apply yourself to the Holy Scriptures, appoint presbyters in each village, to instruct and administer the sacraments : and let them be studious that every one of them may learn, by heart, the Creed and the Lord's Prayer ; and that, if they do not understand Latin, they may repeat them in their own tongue, I have translated them into Eng lish, for the benefit of ignorant presbyters." i Bede died on the 27th of May, 735, at the age of fifty-nine years, having spent his whole life in the same monastery. Though celebrated as a scholar, and warmly urged by the pope to visit Rome, it does not appear that he ever left England. Such scholars as Aldhelm, Bede, and Alcuin, gave to Eng land, at this period, a reputation throughout Europe as a seat of learning. Alcuin was a disciple of Bede, and was distin guished as a poet, scholar, and teacher. In 780 he was in vited by the Emperor Charlemagne to his court, where, among other duties imposed upon him, was that of correcting the current Latin Bible, "which through the negligence and ignorance of transcribers had in many cases become wholly unintelligible." 2 But even before the death of Alcuin, 806, learning in England began to fall into neglect. The incursion of the Danes in their barbarous warfare, rolled back the tide of civilization three and a half centuries. In their first invasion they ravaged the country with fire and sword, sparing neither sex nor age, leaving nothing in their savage war-path but famine and distress. And when, in years after, they came to conquer that they might occupy the country, their barbarities were, if possible, more cruel. "From this period,'' says Turner, "language cannot describe their devastations. It can only repeat the words plunder, murder, rape, famine and distress. It can only enumerate towns, villages, churches and ' Milner's Church History, p. 432. Edinburgh, 1842. « Neander's Church History, III , 155. Boston, 1854. 32 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. monasteries, harvests and libraries, ransacked and burnt." ^ The following sad picture of the times was drawn by a contemporary Saxon bishop : " We perpetually pay them (the Danes) tribute, and they ravage us daily. They ravage, burn, spoil and plunder, aud carry off our property to their ships. Very often they seize the wives and daughters of our thanes and cruelly violate them before the great chieftain's face Soldiers, famine, fiames and effusion of blood abound on every side The poor men are sorely seduced and cruelly betrayed, are sold far out of this land to foreign slavery The right of freedom is taken away ; the rights of the servile are narrowed, and the right of charity is diminished." ^ This terrible state of affairs continued for over three-fourths of a century, till King Alfred came to the throne ; who for months after his accession was compelled to contend with the invading Danes. But singularly enough, " when the wild burst of the storm was over, land, people, government reappeared unchanged, .... the Danes sank quickly into the mass of those around them Nowhere over Europe was the fight so fierce, because nowhere else were the combatants men of one blood and one speech. But just for this reason the fusion of the Northmen with their foes was nowhere so peaceful and so complete." * With the accession of Alfred, in the year 871, light again breaks upon the page of English history. King Alfred is justly celebrated as a statesman, warrior, scholar and Christian man. He had a care for the intellectual and religious as well as for the political interests of his people. It has been claimed that Alfred translated the whole Bible into the vernacular of the people. But a serious objection to this is, that no manuscript of any such translation is extant. As has been suggested, " the selections which he made for his own use appear to have ' History of the Anglo-Saxons, I., 505. « Ibid, IL, pp. 321, 822, note. ^ Green's Short History of EngUsh People, p. 78. New York, 1877. 871.] KING ALFRED'S TRANSLATION. 33 been confounded with a general translation." i The probable extent of Alfred's translations are selections from different books of the Bible, particularly the Psalms. Very early testimony in respect to this, is found in the prologue to Wycliffe's Bible, which was written about the year 1380. It reads: "KingAlured that foundide Oxenford, translatide in hise laste dales the bigynning of the Sauter into Saxon, and wolde more if he hadde lyued lengere." ^ He translated the Ten Commandments and placed them at the head of the laws of his kingdom. The following is transcribed from Wilkins' Leges Saxonica,* as a specimen of Alfred's work and the language of his time. The Saxon characters are changed to Roman to make the text more intelligible. Ex. XX. 1. Drihten wsss sprecende thaes word to Moyse, & thus cwseth ; Ic earn Drihten thin God. Ic the ut gelsedde of MgJTpta. londe, & of heora theowdome ; Ne lufa thu othre fremde godas ofer me : 2. Ne minne naman ne cig thu on idelnesse, forthon the thu ne bist unscyldig with me, Yif thu on idelnesse cigst minne naman. 3. Gemine th thu gehalgie thone reste daeg ; wyrceath eow syx dagas, & non tham seofothan restath eow, thu & thin sunu, & thine dohter, & thin theowe, & thine wylne, & thin weorcnyten, & se cuma the bith binnan thinan durum ; Portham on syx dagum Cryst geworhte heofenas, & eorthan, sses, & ealle gesceafta the on him synd, & hine gereste on thone seofothan daege ; & forthon Drihten hine gehalgode : 4. Ara thinum feeder and thinre meder tha the Drihten sealde the, th thu sy thy leng libbende on eorthan: 5. Ne slea thu : 6. Ne stala thu : 7. Ne lige thu dearnunga: 8. Ne ssege thu lease gewitnesse with thinum nehstan: 9. Ne wilna thu thines nehstan yrfes with unrihte: 10. Ne wyrc thu the gyldene godas oththe seolfrene. ' Turner's History of the Anglo-Saxons, IL, 96. 2 Forshall and Madden's edition, I., 59. Oxford, 1850. 3 From a copy in the Watkinson Library, Hartford, Conn. London, 1781. 34 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. The following is a word for word translation of the above : Ex. XX. 1. Lord was speaking this word to Moses, and thus saith; I am Lord thy God. I thee out led of Egypt land, and of their thralldom : Not love thou other strange gods beside me : 2. Not my name not utter thou in vain, for that thou not art guiltless with me, if thou in vain utterest my name. 8. Be mindful that thou hallowest the rest day, work ye six days ; and on the seventh rest ye, thou and thy son, and thy daughter, and thy man servant, and thy maid servant, and thy cattle, and (those) who come who shall be within thy gate. For in six days Christ created heavens, and earth, seas, and all creatures that in them are, and him rested on the seventh day. And therefore God him (it) hallowed. 4. Honor thy father and thy mother whom the Lord hast given thee, that thou may be therefore long living on earth. 5. Not kill thou. 6. Not steal thou. 7. Not commit thou adultery. 8. Not say thou false witness against thy neighbor. 9. Not desire thou thy neighbor's inheritance with un righteousness. 10. Not make thou the golden gods or silver (gods). The language of Alfred's time was the old Saxon. When in the guise of a minstrel he entered the Danish camp his language did not betray him. ^ As a literary and spoken language the Saxon, at this period, attained its highest per fection. Its literature comprised works in poetry, history and science, either in original works or in translations.^ The Franks and the Normans, though they became conquerors and lords of the soil, lost their language and nationality, but the Saxons retained both of these as did no other Teutonic race. There is so much confusion as to the dates of Saxon manuscripts, that it is difficult to determine how early Bible truth was disseminated in Vernacular versions among the ' Though this story may be nothing more than a pleasant legend as some suppose, all that is claimed in the above reference is verisimilitude. ' SchlegeVa History of Literature, ¦p. 168. Bohn's edition, 1873. 750-950.] SAXON VERSIONS OF THE FOUR GOSPELS. 35 people. But from the fact that learning was confined to the few, even in the days of Aldhelm and Bede, there could have been but little demand for Saxon versions of the Bible — a demand which would almost confine itself to such presbyters as were ignorant of the Latin language. The Anglo-Saxon versions of the Four Gospels may be referred to the age of Alfred ; though the manuscripts differ widely in their prob able dates, ranging as they do all the way from the time of Bede to that of the Norman Conquest. The earliest of these versions 1 have been published several times ; first, under the superintendence of Archbishop Parker, by Foxe the martyr ologist, in 1571. They were printed in Saxon type, and ac companied by the English version of the Bishop's Bible. On account of the inaccuracies both in the transcribing and printing of this volume, it was revised and republished by Junius in connection with Dr. Marshall in 1638-1665. These Four Gospels were again published by Benjamin Thoi-pe in 1842 ; by Bosworth in 1865 ; and more recently by Skeat. These Saxon Gospels were originally translated from the Latin, either of the Old Italic, or of the Vulgate. In the work of translation they found many words in the Latin, for which the Saxon had no equivalent; but instead of adopting the Latin words, so jealous were the translators for their native speech, that they coined new words, for their transla tion. In referring to the purity in language of these Saxon Gospels, Marsh says that while our common Bible is com paratively free from Latinisms yet it adopted a large number of Latin words, whereas the Anglo-Saxon employed instead native words framed for this special purpose. "Thus for prophet, we have w i t e g a, a wise or knowing man ; for scribe, b o c e r e, book-man ; for sepulchre, b y r g e n, whence our word bury, and the word barroom in the sense of funeral-mound ; ' Six of these original manuscripts are still in existence. One of the earliest is preserved in Corpus Christi College, Cambridge ; the others among the Cotton MSS., British Museum. 36 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. for centuriori, h u n d r e d-m an; for baptize, f u 1 1 i a n ; for synagogue, gesamnung, congregation; for resurrection, se r i s t, uprising ; for disciple, leorningcniht, learning- youth ; for treasure, g o 1 d-h o r d ; for pharisee, sunder- h al g a, over-holy." * As a specimen of the translation of the Anglo-Saxon Gospels the Lord's prayer is here transcribed.^ Matt. VI. 9 Feeder ure thu the eart on heofonum, si thin nama gehalgod : 10. To-becume thin rice ; gewurthe thin willa on eorthan swa sw4 on heofonum : 11. Time dseghwamlican hlaf syle us to-daeg : 12. And forgyf us ure gyltas, swa swa we forgyfath urum gyltendum : 13. And ne gelaed thu us on costnunge ac 41ys us of yfle Sothlice. To this period belongs also another Saxon version of the Gospels known as the Durham Book, St. Cuthbert's Gospels, or Lindisfarne Gospels. The original Latin manuscript dates about the year 680. The text is in a good state of preserva tion. It is written in a round Roman letter, and is the work of Eadfrid, a monk of Lindisfarne, and after the Latin version of Jerome. This volume was highly ornamented with gold and precious stones, and decorated with illumina tions of most elaborate workmanship. The book was first deposited in the church of Lindisfarne, but when the mon astery was ravaged by the Danes, 793, it is said that the monks, in making their escape with it, let it fall into the sea in their passage to the main land. The book was recovered and placed in the monastery of Chester, where it remained for two hundred years, when it was transferred to the mon astery of Durham. Here the monks, on account of its re covery from the sea, pretended that it possessed miraculous powers, and thus imposed upon the ignorance and credulity ' Lectures on English Language, p. 199. New York and London, 1860. ^ Gothic and Anglo-Saxon Gospels. By Rev. Joseph Bosworth, Vol. I. London, 1865. From a copy in the Boston Athenaeum Library. 750-950. J SAXON VERSIONS OF THE FOUR GOSPELS. 37 of the people, deriving therefrom a considerable revenue for the monastery. The ornaments that remain are, " pictures of the Evangelists, prefixed to their respective Gospels; many capital letters beautifully illuminated; and four tessellated tablets, each most laboriously executed and containing a fanciful design of the cross painted with a rich variety of brilliant body colours."! This manuscript is regarded as the finest specimen of Saxon caUigraphy and decoration extant. But that which gives special interest to this Latin manu script, is its interlinear Saxon translation made by Aldred, a priest. There is some difference of opinion as to the date of the translation. It is thought by some to belong to the earlier part of the eighth century ; and by others to the middle of the tenth century. This confusion arises, in part, from the fact of there being more than one priest bearing the name of Aldred. The learned Wanley assigns the translation to the time of Alfred. The original manuscript is still pre served among the Cotton MSS. in the British Museum. The translation was written in red ink, which is now much faded. As a specimen of this translation the Lord's prayer is here inserted.' Matt. VI. 9-13. Fader usser thu arth or thu bist in heofnu or in heofnas sie gehalgad noma thin; tocymeth ric thin; sie willo thin suae is in heofne and in eortho ; hlaf userne of wistlic sel us todseg ; & fgef us scylda usra suae woe f 'gefon scyldgum usum ; & ne inlaed usih in costunge ah gefrig usich from yfle. Another celebrated Saxon version of the Gospels which dates back to the tenth century, and possibly to the age of Alfred, is preserved in the Bodleian Library at Oxford, and is known as the Rush worth Gloss.* It contains the four Gospels in Latin written by an Irish scribe named Macreogol, in a ' Townley's Biblical Literature, I., 233. London, 1821. ' Anglo-Saxon Gospels, Surtees Society, Vol. XXVIIL, 1854. Wat kinson Library, Hartford, Coim. ¦' So called from the fact that it belonged formerly to John Rush- worth, Esq., and was presented by him to the Bodleian Library in the middle of the seventeenth century. 38 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I, large hand similar to that of the Durham Book, with an interlinear Saxon translation. At the end of Matthew's Gospel is added : " Farmen Presbyter thas boc thus gleosode." Also at the close we find: "The min bruche gibidde fore Owun the thas boc gloesede Fsermen thsem preoste set Harawada." That is: "He that of mine profiteth bead (pray) he for Owen that this book glossed, and Farman the priest at Harewood." ^ From which we may conclude that this Saxon translation was the joint production of Farmen and Owen. After this there follows iu Latin text: "Macregol delineated this gospel, whoever hath read and understood its recital, pray he for Macregol the writer." During the middle ages, when the multiplication of books depended upon copyists, these subscriptions were common. Besides a certain degree of meritoriousness was attached to the act of copying particularly the Holy Scriptures. In the way of correctness every thing depended upon the copyist, and hence authors were wont to express their anxiety, as did ^Ifric when he wrote: "I pray now if any one will write this book, that he make it well from this example, because I would not yet bring into it any error through false writers. .It will be then his fault, not mine. The un-writer doth much evil if he will not rectify his mistake." ' The ornaments of this volume of the Gospels consists in "delineations of the four Evangelists, and divers colored initial letters." The translation of Matthew is thought to have been an independent translation, while the other Gospels are supposed to be transcripts of the Durham Book. The Lord's prayer is here given as a specimen.* Matt. VI. 9. Feeder ure thu the in heofunum earth beo gehalgad thin noma. 10. cume to thin rice weorthe thin willa swa swa on heofune swilce on eorthe, 1 Baber's Preface. Wycliffe's JV. T., p. Ix. London, 1810. ^ Turner's History of the Anglo-Saxons, IIL, 400. London, 1828. ' Anglo-Saxon Gospels, Surtees Society, Vol. XXVIIL, 1854. Watkin son Library, Hartford, Conn. 975.] .aiLFRIC's HEPTATEUCH. 39 Matt. VI. 11. hlaf userne or ure daeghwaemlicu or in stondenlice sel us todsege. 12. & forlet us ure scylde swa swa we ec forleten thas the scyldigat with us. 13. & ne gelaet us gelaede in costongae ah gelese us of yfle. ^Ifric was a Saxon abbot, who lived at the close of the tenth century. He was eminent for his piety, learning, and the abundance of his Biblical labors. He "Englished" a large portion of the Old Testament, and was the first to make accessible to Saxon readers the historical books of the Bible. The list of his translations includes the Pentateuch, ^ Joshua, Judges,* parts of the books of Kings, Esther, Job, Judith, and the whole of Maccabees. The chief sources of informa tion respecting j^llfric, are his prefaces, dedications, and homilies. These last he composed and distributed among the priests to be read from their pulpits. Many of his transla tions were undertaken at the instigation of others; but he protests that he labored not for the gratification of kings and ealdormen alone, but " for the edification of the simple, who know only this (Saxon) speech ; — ' We have therefore put it not into obscure words, but into simple English, that it may easier reach the heart of those who read or hear it.' " * The Saxon Church was episcopal in form but evangelical in spirit. It was even Puritan in its tendency, since King Alfred took the Bible as the foundation of his laws. The Bible was not only translated into "simple English," but the people were exhorted to read it. In other words the religious life of the Saxons was founded on a knowledge of the Holy Scriptures. A single extract from one of iEIfric's homilies will show the high estimation put upon the truths of the Bible : " Whoever would be one with God," he wrote, " must often pray, and often read the Holy Scriptures. ' Genesis together with the other books are incomplete. " The Heptateuch together with parts of Job and Judith were pub lished in 1698, by Thwaites ; and recently by Greiner in his Library of Anglo-Saxon Prosi. » Turner's History of the Anglo-Saxons, III., 471, note. 40 SAXON AND ENGLISH VEi:SIONS. [CHAP. I. For when we pray, we speak to God; and when we read the Bible, God speaks to us. The reading of the Scriptures produces a two-fold advantage to the reader. It renders him wiser, by informing his mind ; and also leads him from the vanities of the world to the love of God, Happy is he then, who reads the Scriptures, if he convert the words into actions. The whole of the Scriptures are written for our salvation, and by them we obtain a knowledge of the truth."! For the specimen of jElfric's translation given below, the reader is indebted to the kindness of P. J. Child, Professor of Anglo-Saxon in Harvard College, who by request tran scribed it from -iEIfric's Heptateuch,* and at the same time changed the characters peculiarly Saxon into English letters. Ex. XX. 1. Qod spraec thus : 2. Ic eom Drihten thin God. ...... 4. Ne wire thu the agrafene Godas. 5. Ne ne wurtha. Ic wrece faedera unriht wisnysse on bearnum. 6. And ic do mildheortnysse tham the me lufiath, and mine bebodu healdath. 7. Ne nem thu Drihtnes naman on ydel ; ne byth unscyldig se the his naman on ydel nemth. 8. Gehalga thone restedaeg. 9. Wire six dagas ealle thine weorc. 10. Se seofotha ys Drihtnes restedaeg thines Godes ; ne wire thu nan weorc on tham daege, ne nan thara the mid the beo. 11. On six dagon God geworhte heofenan and eorthan and S3e and ealle tha thing the on him synd, and reste thy seofothan daege, and gehalgode hyne. 12. Arwurtha faeder and modor. 13. Ne sleh thu. 14. Ne synga thu. 15. Ne stel thu. 16. Ne beo thu on liesre gewitnysse ongen thinne nehstan. ' Townley's Biblical Literature, I., 841. London, 1821. ^ Prom a copy in Harvard College Library, edited by Thwaites. 1086-71.] ANCIENT SAXON AND MODERN ENGLISH. 41 17. Ne wilna thu thines nehstan buses, ne thu his wifes, ne his wyeles, ne his wylne, ne his oxan, ne his assan, ne nan thara thinga the his synd. With ^Ifric closes the Saxon period of Bible versions. Critically these Saxon translations are not without their im portance, since they were made from early Latin versions while yet in their comparative purity.i But as a matter of fact these ancient Saxon have no special relation to succeeding English versions. And this is traceable to the fact of the Norman Conquest, which proved a fearful epoch in the history of the language, in that it so wrought upon the Saxon that it soon became almost an unknown tongue. It is a singular fact in the history of the Anglo-Saxons, that while they resisted the influences of Rome, first through the per son of the Early Britons, and afterwards through that of the Roman missionaries under Augustine, yet when Roman influences came through the Teutonic Normans, the Saxon in his language, religion, laws and manners, succumbed to the conquerors; and yet only for a season, for in the end the Saxon obtained the ascendency. The language, therefore, of the Anglo-Saxon and his descendants, though more or less tinged by Latinisms is still Saxon. The language of our Saxon forefathers may be to us an unknown tongue, yet their speech is still our heart language, our mother tongue. The tree of modern English, in its body and main branches, is a Saxon tree. Cuttings from other languages may have been grafted into it, from time to time, yet the sap which gives them their vitality is Saxon sap. By a wonderful energy and inherent capacity the Saxon tongue has showed itself able to appropriate words from other languages, and thus adapt itself to the wants of the Anglo-Saxon race though it has be come widespread and highly cultured. So that while modern Ancflo-Saxon versions of the Bible cannot be said to touch ^ " Both Mill and Tischendorf refer to Anglo-Saxon 'oersions of the Scriptures in connection with textual criticism." Eadie's History of the English Bible, I., 17, note. 42 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. visibly upon ancient Saxon versions, yet the real life and ex cellency of modern versions arise from an inseparable relation existing in the oneness of the language and genius of the race. While it is correct in the main, to regard the period of the Norman Conquest as the turning point in the history of the Saxon tongue, yet for years previous to this, causes had been silently at work, which had much to do with the final result. "In the year 652," says Warton, "it was the common practice of the Anglo-Saxons to send their youth to the monasteries of France for education." ^ This custom prevailed for years, and became very common in the days of Edward the Confessor. He came to the English throne in 1042, but remained Norman both in his sympathies and speech. From the first "he set Norman families in the highest posts in Church and State." As a natural result the French language and customs were adopted by the English court. But back of all this, both as to time and influence, there was a marked superiority in Norman literature, architecture and tradesmanship, a superi ority in general culture, which was appreciated and appro priated by the Saxons. And thus the way for the Norman Conquest was prepared, which completed what had already been done. At first William took quiet possession of the throne, desir ing to reign not as a conqueror but as a king. No changes were made either in the laws or customs. It is even said, that the king attempted, though without success, to learn the English tongue, that "he might administer justice, person ally, to the suiters in his court." But this quiet was soon broken. In the revolt of the people, the true character of the king was revealed. He swore an oath of revenge, and fulfilled it most cruelly with fire and sword. Foxe, in describ ing this change in policy, says: "He chaunged the whole state of the gouernaunce of this comen weale ; and ordeyned new lawes at his owne pleasure, profitable to him selfe, but ' History of English Poetry, I., 3. London, 1774. 1175.] SURVIVAL OF THB SAXON TONGUE. 43 greuous and hurtful! to the people." i In ecclesiastical affairs the king's tyranny was especially felt. Saxon bishops were removed and foreigners put in their places. So degraded be came the Saxon name that it was regarded as a reproach to be called an Engfishman. The language was despised, and was driven from the court, castle and pulpit. Children at school were forbidden the use of their native tongue and in structed in the knowledge of the Norman only. For a season it seemed as though the nationality of the people would be swallowed up. William the Conqueror and his descendants for four generations were not Englishmen.^ But if the language was driven from the court of the king and the castles of the barons, it took refuge around the fire sides of the peasants. And if civil and religious liberty seemed to have been banished the country, yet the love of liberty still lived in the hearts of the people. During these days of darkness it is impossible to trace the intricate conflict of race and language, and tell where and when the elements of each coalesced. Yet results show, there was such a coming together that new elements were formed whose chief characteristics, both as to race and language, were Saxon and not Norman. During this long night of a century and a half, broad foundations were laid in the departments of language, religion and government, upon which the Anglo-Saxon race arose anew. The survival of the Saxon language, is seen in the Brut of Layamon, a poem written in Semi-Saxon in the latter part of the twelfth century.* For although it com- ' Acts and Monum.ents, p. 222, folio, 1596. ' " This apayringe of the birthe tonge is by cause of tweye thinges ; oon is for children in scole, agenes the usage and maner of alle other naciouns, beth compelled for to leve her owne langage, and for to con- strewe her lessouns and her thingis a Frensche, and haveth siththe that the Normans come first into England. Also gentil mennes children beth ytaugt for to speke Frensche, from the tyme that thei beth rokked in her cradel, and kunneth speke and playe with a childes brooche. " As cited by Tyrwhitt in preface to Chaucer's Worhs, I., 17. London, 1798. 3 Compare Marsh's Origin and History of English Language, p. 156. New York, 1862. 44 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. prises more than thirty thousand lines, yet it is said to con tain "less than fifty Norman words." With the Brut of Layamon begins the new English literature. Again the re vival of the Saxon love of freedom is seen in the Great Chai-ter so reluctantly signed by King John in 1315, in which English liberty finds no mean origin. Although this Charter was but the embodiment of the principles of freedom already existing in the written and in the unwritten law of England.* With the thirteenth century the history of modern England begins. Upon these early foundations the descendants of the Saxons have ever since built. All English speaking peoples are interested in these facts, for had the Saxons been sub jugated permanently, our language would have been Romance, and our religion Roman Catholic. Prominent among the causes which underlaid this victorious struggle of Saxon over Norman, was the inherent character of the Saxon. By nature he was strong, courageous and independent. Saxon character was remarkable for its simplicity and seriousness. A disposition which Mr. Taine declares predisposed him to Christianity " with its gloom, its aversion to sensual and reck less living, its inclination for the serious and. sublime." ^ Be sides, Mr. Taine is inclined to ridicule this serious and Hebraic spirit which he finds to be common both to the Bible and to Saxon character. Such derision is not to be wondered at, since the essence of this spirit is so antagonistic to French ideals. And yet this constitutional seriousness is a tower of strength to individuals and nations of Saxon descent. With this new historical period, which began a hundred and fifty years after the Norman Conquest, there arose not " " But in itself," says Green, " the Charter was no novelty, nor did it claim to establish any new constitutional principles The Great Charter marks the transition from the age of traditional rights to the age of written legislation, of Parliaments and Statutes, which was soon to come.'' Short History of English People, p. 153. New York, 1877. 1 Literature, I., 44. New York, 1874 1200-50.] THE ORMULUM. 45 only a new era of Anglo-Saxon literature, but also of Bible translations. If the old Saxon versions began with the metrical paraphrase of Csedmon, the new Enghsh versions begin with the poetical paraphrase of Ormin. This work, ac cording to Tyrwhitt, belongs to the middle of the thirteenth century. But according to Dr. White, it belongs to the first rather than the middle of the century. Although this para phrase, like that of Csedmon, is not to be ranked as a transla tion, yet it deserves attention as the first attempt in this new period, to render the Scriptures into the vernacular of the people. The Ormulum, which takes its name from the au thor, is a metrical paraphrase of selections from Gospel histo ries; or as Dr. White describes it, "a series of Homilies in an imperfect state, composed in metre without alliteration, and, except in a few cases, also without rhyme ; the subject of the Homilies being supplied by those portions of the New Testa ment which were read in the daily service of the Church." * There remains but a single manuscript of the Ormulum, which is preserved in the Bodleian Library. " It is a folio volume, consisting of ninety parchment leaves, besides twenty-nine others inserted, upon which the poetry is written in double columns .... and without division into verses." '^ The Ormulum was edited by Dr. White in two vols. 8vo, 1852, from the Bodleian manuscript. Thomas Tyrwhitt was the first to point out the metrical character of the Ormulum.* The following is inserted as a specimen in which the Saxon characters give place to English letters.^ Aifterr thatt tatt te Laferrd Crist After that thatthe Lord Christ Wass cumenn off Bgyppte was come from Egypt • Craik's English Literature and Language, l„ 213. New York, 1863. = lUd, p. 211. = Chaucer's Worhs, Introduction,, I., 40. Oxford, 1795. * Marsh's English Language and Literature, pp. 180, 185. New York, 1862. 46 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. L InntUl the land off GaUleo, into the land of Galilee, Till Nazaraethess cheastre, to Nazareth's town, Thaeraffterr seggth the Goddspellboc Thereafter saith the Gospelbook And siththenn o thatt yer thatt Crist And afterwards in the year that ChiiBt Wass off twellf winnterr elde was of twelve winters age Theyy comenn inntill Gerrsalaem they come Into Jemsalem Att teyyre Passkemesse, at their Passover, & Jesu Crist wass thasr withth hemm and Jesus Christ was there with them & afflerr thatt te tid wass gan and after that the time was gone Theyy wenndenn fra the temmple, they wended from the temple. An dayyes gang till efenn, a day's journey tUI evening, & ta theyy misstenn theyyre child, and then they missed their child, & teyy tha wendenn efft onngaen and they then turned back again thatt dere child to sekenn, that dear child to seek, & teyy himm o the thridde dayy and they him on the third day thaer fundenn 1 the temmple there found in the temple Bitwenenn thatt Judisskenn flocc among the Jewish flock Thatt Ijeredd wass o boke ; that learned was in bookj 1175.] SOWLE HELE. 47 & he tha gede forth withth hemm and he then went forth with them & dide hemm heore wille, and did them their will, & wass withth hemm till thatt he wass and was with them till that he was Off thrittig winnterr elde. of thirty winters age. During this period and even earlier, a number of Scripture paraphrases were produced. The most remarkable is that which is "cald in Latyn tonge, Salus Animce," and in Enghsh tongue, Sowle Hele. The manuscript of this version is pre served in the Bodleian Library, and was the gift of Edward Vernon. It is a translation of the Old and New Testaments into verse, and is supposed to have been made before the year 1200. The manuscript is highly illuminated. The following is inserted as a specimen of this paraphrase.^ Our ladi and hire suster stoden under the roode. And seint John and Marie Magdaleyn with wel sori moode ; Vr ladi bi heold hire swete son i brouht in gret pyne, Ffor monnes gultes nouthen her and nothing for myne, Marie weop wel sore and bitter teres leet. The teres fulleu uppon the ston douu at hire feet. Alas, my son, for serwe wel off seide heo Nabbe iche bote the one that hongust on the treo ; So ful icham of serwe, as any wommon may beo. That ischal my deore child in all this pyne iseo ; How schal I sone deore, how hast I yougt liven withouten the, Nusti nevere of serwe nougt sone, what seyst you me ? Then spake Jhesus wordus gode to his modur dere, Ther he heng uppon the roode here I the take a fere. That trewliche schal serve ye, thin own cosin Jon, The while that you alyve beo among all thi son ; Ich the hote John, he seide, you wite hire both day and niht That the Gywes hire son ne don hire non un riht. The earliest English prose version of any portion of the • Warton's History of English Poetry, L, 19. London, 1774. 48 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. Scriptures was that of the Psalms, by William de Schorham, Vicar of Chart-Sutton, near Leeds, in Kent. He was admit ted to this vicarage in 1320. The manuscript, therefore, be longs to the earlier half of the fourteenth century. The ver sion is attributed to Schorham, principally on the ground that in several parts of the manuscript "the welfare of his soul is commended to the prayers of the devout reader." The trans lation is pronounced to be, for the most part, "faithful and literal, except that the words of the gloss are frequently sub stituted for those of the text." The following is transcribed as a specimen of the translation. ^ Ps. XXII. Our Lord gouerneth me, and nothyng shal defailen to me ; in the stede of pasture, he sett me ther. He norissed me vp water of fyllynge ; he turned my soule fram the feude. He lad me vp the bistiges of rigtfulness ; for his name. For yif that ich haue gon amiddes of the shadowe of deth ; Y shal nougt douten iuels, for thou art wyth me. Thy discipline and thyn amendyng ; comforted me. Thou mad est radi grace in my sight ; ogayus hem that trublen me. Thou makest f att myn heued wyth mercy ; and my drynke makand drunken ys ful clere. And thy merci shal folwen me ; alle dales of mi lif . And that ich wonne in the hous of our Lord ; in lengthe of dales. During this same period, but a few years later, appeared Richard Rolle's version of the Psalms. He was chantry priest at Hampole, and was often called the hermit of Hampole. He died in 1349. " The business of whose life," says Baber, "was devotion, and whose amusement was study." » In his prologue Hampole gives some account of the Psalms, and describes them as comprehending " al the elde and newe Testa ment and teching pleynly al of it, and the Misteries of the ' Preface. Forshall and Madden's Wydiffite Versions, I., iv. 'Preface. WjcliSe'a Jflew I estament. Baber's ed., p. Ixvi. London 1810. 1349.] rolle's VERSION OP THE PSALMS. 49 trynyte and Christ's incarnation." At the close of the pro logue, he says : " In this werke, I seke no straunge Ynglys, bot lightest and communest, and swilk that is most like unto the Latyne ; so that thai that knowes noght the Latyne be the Ynglys may come to many Latyne wordis. In the translacione I felogh the letter als - mekille as I may, and thor I fyne no proper Ynglys, I felogh the wit of the wordis In the ex- powning I felogh holi Doctors." * The following Psalm corres ponds with number XXIII. of our version. It was transcribed by Mr. Baber from a manuscript of the British Museum, and is here inserted as a specimen of Hampole's version.^ Ps. XXII. Our lord gouerneth me aud nothyng to me shal wante ; stede of pasture thar he me sette. In the water of the hetyng forth he me brougte ; my soule he turnyde. He ladde me on the streetis of rygtwisnesse for his name. For win yif I hadde goo in myddil of the shadewe of deeth ; I shal not dreede y ueles, for thou art with me. Thi geerde and thi staf ; thei haUe coumfortid me. Thou hast greythid in my sygt a bord ; agens hem that angryn me. Thou fattide mine heued in oyle ; and my chalys drunkenyng what is cleer. And thi mercy shal folewe me ; in alle the dayes of my lyf. And that I woue in the hous of oure lord in the lengthe of dayes. Besides the above there are other extant manuscripts bear ing the name of the hennit of Hampole. One of these is in the Bodleian, and the other in the Sydney College Library. The Sydney manuscript is regarded as the oldest, and is proba bly the original. The Bodleian manuscript has prefixed to it some verses which give au account of the original version made by Richard RoUe about a hundred years before. These verses state that he made the translation at the instigation of ' Preface. Wycliffe's New Testament. Baber's ed., p. Ixvi. London, 1810. ° Ibid, p. Ixvii. 3 50 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS, [CHAP. I. one Margaret Kirkby, and that the original manuscript at that time, 1422, was preserved in the nunnery of Hampole, where it was chained to the tomb of Rolle ; also that the evil Lollards had copied the same, and in their comments had engrafted upon it their heretical opinions. The following is a short ex tract which comprises some of these particulars : * Therfore a worthy holy man, cald Rychard Hampole, Whom the Lord, that all thingus can, leryd lely on his scole, Glosed the Sauter that sues here, in Englysch tong sykerly. At a worthy recluse prayer, cald dame Merget Kyrkby. This same Sauter in all degre, is the self in sothnes. That lygt at Hampole in surte, at Richards own berynes. That he wrote with his hondes, to dame Merget Kyrkby, And ther it lygt in cheyn bondes, in the same nonery. In Yorkshyre this nonery ys, who so desires it to know, Hym thar no way go omys, Copyed has this Sauter ben, of yuel men of LoUardry, And afturward hit has bene sene, ympyd in with eresy. And sclaundrid foule this holy man, with her wykked waryed wyles, Hier fantom hath made mony a son, thoro the fend that fele begiles. In translating the Scriptures a decided preference was given, during this early period, to the book of Psalms. There was in the combined spiritual teaching and poetical flow of the Psalms that which both pleased and met the religious wants of the people. Other portions of the Scriptures were translated by those " among the clergy who were studious of the spiritual welfare of the flock over which they were appointed " ; espe cially such portions " as the church in its service brought more immediately into public notice."' The following be longs to this period, or somewhat earlier, and is taken from " Specimens of Early English," edited by Morris and Skeat.* ' Preface. Forshall and Madden's Wyclifflte "Versions, I., v. Oxford, 1850. ' Baber's Preface. Wycliffe's N. T., p. Ixvii. ' Part II., p. 105. Oxford, 1873. The Saxon changed to English characters. 1350.] SPECIMENS OF EARLY ENGLISH. 51 Matt. VI. 9-13. Vader oure thet art ine heuenes, y-halged by thi name, cominde thi riche. y- worthe thi wil, as ine heuene ; and ine erthe. bread oure echedayes ; gef ous to day. and uorlet ous oure yeldinges ; ase and we uorleteth oure yelderes. and ne ous led naght ; into uondinge, ac vri ous vram queade. (evil.) guo by hit. The specimens given below are from a manuscript of the New Testament supposed to belong to the fourteenth century, and not far from the time of Hampole, though the language seems to indicate a much later date. Lewis makes special mention of the English of this version, as that spoken after the Conquest, though he fixes upon no definite period. The manuscript comprises the Gospels of Mark and Luke, and the Epistles of St. Paul.i Mark I. 7. And he prechyde sayande, a stalworther thane T schal come eftar me of whom I am not worthi downfallande, or knelande, to louse the thwonge of his Chawcers. VI. 22. When the Doughtyr of that Herodias -w&s in-comyn and had tomblyde aud pleside to Harowde, and also to the sittande at mete, the kynge says to the wench. XII. 1. A man made a vynere, and he made aboute a hegge, and grose a lake & byggede a tower. 38. Be se ware of the scrybes whylke wille go in stolis and be haylsede in the market aud for to sit in synagogis in the fyrste chayers. Luke II. 7. . . . and layde hym in a cratche ; for to him was no place in the dyversory. Among the evidences that this manuscript belongs to the age of Hampole is that the comments upon it are very like those he made upon the Psalter. But the language, as before suggested, places it later in the century. If so, its place is nearer to Wycliffe than to Hampole. Thus far, in tracing the history of Saxon and Enghsh ver sions, we have found that translations confine themselves, for the most part, to single portions or books of the Bible. Not- ' History of Translations of Eng. Bible, p. 16. London, 1739. 52 SAXON AND ENGLISH VERSIONS. [CHAP. I. withstanding this, as historic monuments these early versions are of the highest importance, illustrating as they do the Eng lish language in its Saxon origin. They further show that the evangehcal idea prevailed, which sought to have the Holy Scriptures in the language of the people. Indeed, this was the unquestioned right of the people until the beginning of the thirteenth century, when the Romish decree of the Council of Thoulouse forbade the reading of the Holy Scriptures by the laity — a decree which required little or no authority to enforce, on account of the intellectual darkness of the people. But from the latter half of the fourteenth century, the trans lation of the whole Bible and the reading of the same, became living questions. For already there had begun an intellectual awakening : Edward the Third reigned, Mandeville traveled, and Chaucer wrote. In a word, the way was prepared for the labors of John Wycliffe, the sworn enemy of priestcraft, the translator of the Bible, and the forerunner of the Reformation of the sixteenth century. CHAPTER II. WYCLIFFE AND THE WYCLIFFITB VERSIONS. A. D. 1324.-1525. JOHN WYCLIFFE was born in 1324,i in a village "cauUid Wiclif," from which he received his family name. But little is known of his early boyhood. Although doubts have been thrown upon the date of his entering Queen's College, and upon the statement of his removal to Merton College, yet we are safe in accepting the fact of his early connection with the University of Oxford. In many respects the age was favorable for education. Schools were established for youth, not only at Oxford and Cambridge, but in every borough. However, a significant sign of the times was, that no person could act in the capacity of a school teacher unless licensed by a priest.^ Wycliffe studied at Ox ford as a student, he also taught there as a professor. In fol lowing the example of his predecessor Grosstete, who, in the previous century, resisted the arbitrary will of the pope in his disposal of Church benefices, Wycliffe possessed superior ad vantages, drew a keener sword, and maintained a more suc cessful struggle against the inroads of the papacy. If, like Richard of Armagh, Wycliffe contended with the Mendicant orders, he sought not like that good bishop to reform them, but to exterminate them. Again, if like Geoffrey Chaucer, Wycliffe had confidence in his native tongue, and by his writings helped to give the English language a fixed place in literature, yet, unlike Chaucer, he gave to his age not works of poetry but the Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments. ' The probable date of his birth. ^ Vaughan's Tracts and Treatises of Wydiffe, Introduction, p. iii London, 1815. 54 THE WTCLIFPITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. Wycliffe was a master of the accepted learning of his times. He especially gave himself to the study of the civil and canon law. The former was a system of jurisprudence which had descended from the times of the Roman Empire, and even of the Republic. It was feudal in its characteristics, and most unfavorable to the liberties of the people. "However wise it may have been," says Vaughan, "in some of its provisions as relating to questions between man and man, it was in every way unfavorable to hberty as between sovereign and subject." ^ The latter, the canon law, was made up of the decrees of councils and popes. It was supreme in all ecclesiastical mat ters, and not unfrequently it infringed upon the civil powdr.^ The temporal power of the papacy was both strenuously as serted and denied in the time of Wycliffe. The writings of Wycliffe show how zealously he embraced the cause of civil > Vaughan's Tracts and Treatises of 'Wycliffe. Introduction, p. vi. ^ The foUovring are a few selected tenets of the canon law which show the assumptions and fearful power of the Romish Church : I. Princes' laws, if they be against the canons and decrees of the bishop of Rome, be of no force nor strength. II. The see of Rome hath neither spot nor wrinkle in it, nor can not err. III. The bishop of Rome may excommunicate emperors and princes, depose them from their states, and assoil (absolve) their sub jects from their oath of obedience to them, and so constrain them to rebellion. IV. The bishop of Rome may open and shut heaven unto men. V. The bishop of Rome may give authority to arrest men, and im prison them in manacles and fetters. VI. The bishop of Rome may compel princes to receive his legates. VII. The clergy ought to give no oath of fidelity to their temporal governors, except they have temporalities of them. VIII. Kings and princes ought not to set bishops beneath them, but reverently to rise against them, and assign them an honor able seat by them. IX. He is [no] manslayer which slayeth a man which is excommuni cate. (The no is " wanting in the C. C. C. MS.") See Cran mer's Writings and Letters, pp. 68-75. Parker Soc. edition, 1846. 1360.] wtclifpe's opposition to the mendicants. 55 freedom in its struggle with ecclesiastical tyranny. Next to the mastery of the civil and canon law, Wycliffe distinguished himself in the study of the philosophy of his times. This was the old system of Scholasticism, which had been recently revived by the renowned Ockham. Wycliffe, though naturally practical in his tendencies, was gifted with a speculative mind, and was thus fitted to wield the scholastic sword in the con flict with his opponents. By his book on the Reality of Uni versal Conceptions "he had created," says Neander, "an important epoch extending into the fifteenth century." i His writings on subjects purely religious show how much he was infiuenced by this scholastic method. But Wychffe, unlike other prominent school-men, made the Scriptures the supreme authority in all disputes, and insisted on their being inter- . preted in accordance with their plain meaning, in opposition to the "sentences of the Doctors, or the philosophy of Aristotle." ^ The life of Wycliffe was one of conflict. As eariy as the year 1360, he distinguished himself as an opponent of the Mendicant friars. It is an evidence both of his ability and courage, that, single-handed, he dared to attack a Monastic order of such power and authority in the Romish Church. Two of these orders, the Dominican and Franciscan, ruled the Roman Catholic Church throughout Europe for neariy three centuries, with an absolute sway. And that too against the united influence of prelates and princes. These two orders were to the Romish Church and to the world, before the Reformation, what the Jesuits have been since that time.^ Devoting themselves to the interests of the papacy, they en joyed peculiar immunities. They trampled upon the rights of the regular clergy and ignored their authority. By the 1 Church History, V., 135. Boston, 1854. 2 Singulariy enough Scholasticism made Aristotle the interpreter of St. Paul. . ., , inn A 3 Warton's History of English Poetry, I., 394. London, 1774. 56 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. IL sole condition of professed poverty, they assumed to them selves all riches. They begged for bread, yet dived in luxury. They professed to be the humblest of the humble, yet exalted themselves above kings. Though a servant of servants, yet they claimed that the dignity of the friar was above that of the bishop. " For they say," says Wycliffe, " that each bishop and priest may lawfully leave their flrst dignity, and after be a friar ; but when he is once a friar, he may in no manner leave that, and live as a bishop, or a priest, by the form of the Gospel." 1 By their zeal and show of piety, they grew in au thority among the people ; and so infatuated did many become that they regarded the very garments of the friars as possessing miraculous powers ; and hence " made it an essential part of their last wills, that their carcasses after death should be wrapped in ragged Dominican or Franciscan habits, and in terred among the Mendicants," ^ in the belief that they might the more readily obtain mercy in the day of judgment if they should appear thus associated with these friars. The occasion of Wycliffe's flrst attack upon the friars was their successful attempt to entice the students from Oxford into their convent schools. To such an extent were they suc cessful, that parents refused to trust their children at the Uni versity, lest they should be inveigled by the monks into their convents. In this contest Wycliffe appeared in behalf of the University, and dealt heavy blows against the friars. As a reward for his services, as well as in testimony of his ability, the mastership of Balliol College was bestowed upon him by the University in 1361.^ Wycliffe's opposition to the friars did not stop here. But from the pulpit and by his pen he at tacked the very foundations of the Order, showing up the un lawfulness of their begging and the baseness of their religious pretensions. For all this the people were prepared, for the land was burdened by these abuses as by a curse. ' Tracts and Treatises, p. 219. London, 1845. ° Mosheim's Church History, I., p. 390. New York, 1851. ' Baber's Preface. Wycliffe's New Testament, p. xi. London, 1810. 1369.] CHURCH AND STATE. 57 At the same time Wycliffe, with a supreme regard for right, stood in readiness to defend it, in the State as well as in the Church, against the demands of the hierarchy. And the opportunity soon presented itself In 1365 Urban V. revived the papal claim of tribute of a thousand marks, with arrear-s that had occurred since 1332, " as a feudal acknowledgment for the sovereignty of England and Ireland." i Edward III. refused the demand and referred the matter to his Parliament. The Parliament decided to resist by every means possible this proposed usurpation. About this time, there appeared an anonymous pamphlet, which maintained that the sovereignty of England had been forfeited to the pope by the failure to pay the annual tribute. And Vaughan justly remarks, "We may judge of the celebrity of Wycliffe at this time, from the fact that he is called upon by name (in this tract) to show the fallacy of these opinions."^ The challenge was promptly ac cepted. Wycliffe's reply, which he put in the form of a debate in the House of Lords, took strong grounds against this claim, also against the ecclesiastical theory of the Middle Ages, that the State is but the child of the Church, consequently that kings are but vassals of the pope. This reply of Wycliffe is interesting, indicating as it does the intelligence of the age, since the arguments he puts into the mouths of his speakers are supposed to be their own sentiments. It shows, too, the in trepidity and disinterestedness of Wychffe, in that just at this time his own preferment is subject to the good will of the pope. Wycliffe had received the appointment of Warden of Canterbury Hall in 1365, which was superseded by the act of Archbishop Langham in 1367. The appeal of this question to Rome was as yet undecided. But notwithstanding this, Wycliffe, in this reply, boldly opposes papal assumptions, and thus imperiled his private interests at Rome."* ' Wycliffe's Tracts and Treatises. Intro., p. xviii. London, 1845. ^ lUd, p. xix. 2 The appeal was lost. The pope confirmed the sentence against Wycliffe in the year 1370. Compare Milman's Latin Christianity, VIL, p. 365. New York, 1874. 58 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. Day by day Wycliffe used greater plainness of speech in por traying the scandalous conduct of the friars. He was equally plain in showing up the arbitrary interference of the papacy in conferring church oflBces upon foreigners, many of whom were wholly unfltted for such positions. Such an appointment was that of Louis Beaumont as Bishop of Durham. This Beaumont was an illiterate French nobleman. He is reputed to have been so ignorant that he was unable to read the bulls announced at his consecration. In his attempt, it is said that he stumbled at the word metropoliticcB. After trying in vain to pronounce it, he said in French, "Suppose that said." Again, when he came to the words, in cenigmate, he called out, as before : " By St. Louis, it could be no gentleman who wrote this stuff." 1 Frequent remonstrances by the English Crown against this gross usurpation effected but little. The celebrated acts of Parliament against provisors, in 1350, and of praemunire, in 1353, the former of which wrested from the papacy the right of disposing of all benefices, and the latter vindicated " the right of the State of England to prohibit the admission or the execution of all Papal Bulls or Briefs within the realm "^ — these acts, however bold and salutary, had become virtually dead letters. Romish spoliation was now greater than ever before. Hence, to save the property of the whole realm from being swallowed up by the hierarchy, embassies were sent out in 1373 and 1374, to treat with the pope and his nuncios, and remonstrate still further against papal " reservation of bene fices in the Anglican Church." ^ Wj'cliffe was a member of the latter commission, which met at Bruges and sat for two years, but accomplished comparatively nothing. The insight, however, which Wycliffe gained during the sittings of this commission into the spirit and policy of Rome, doubtless ¦ Townley's Biblical Literature, II., p. 3. London, 1831. 2 Milman's iafia Christianity, 'VII. , p. S5i. The custom existed "of appealing on questions of property from the decision of the English courts to the courts of the pontiffs." ' Tracts and Treatises of WicHffe. Intro., p. xxix. 1381.] WTCLIFFE BEFORE THE POPISH COUNCIL. 59 strengthened his convictions in respect to the necessity of further reformation. The prominent part which Wycliffe took in the controversy between the king and the pope excited the bitterest hatred against him. But if he lost with the pope, he gained with the king. His influence is now at its height at court. He is already the king's chaplain. Royal patronage is bestowed upon him. As an example, the rectory of Lutterworth is nota ble, since he occupied it till the time of his death. At the Uni versity of Oxford he was regarded almost as an oracle. His lectures in Philosophy and Divinity attracted students even from the Continent.^ His influence was not confined to his lectures at Oxford, but extended abroad through his writings, which were extensively read at the University of Prague. John Huss declared in a paper written about the year 1411, that for " thirty years the writings of Wycliffe were read at Prague University, and that he himself had been in the habit of reading them for more than twenty years." ^ If Wycliffe is summoned before papal councils, he is protected by powerful friends at court. In the Councils of London, 1377, and Lam beth, 1378, he was thus protected. But afterwards, when, in the spirit of a true reformer, he attacked the fundamental doctrines of the Church of Rome, his court friends desert him, and clouds big with wrath gather around his unprotected head. Even the Duke of Lancaster, heretofore a firm supporter, now " advised him to subrnit in all doctrinal matters to the judg ment of his Order." But Wycliffe did not so understand his duty. And now that he is deserted by his political friends, his enemies are exultant. They fiatter themselves that he will now retract his heretical opinions. They hasten, therefore, to summon him before an ecclesiastical court at Oxford. The court assembles, and is made up of archbishops, bishops, chan- ' " Bohemians studied in Oxford, and were there seized with enthusi asm for the doctrines of Wicklif." Neander's Church History, V., 241. Boston, 1854. •> Ibid, p. 343. 60 THE -WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. cellors, doctors, with many of the inferior clergy. Before this array of dignity Wycliffe stands alone. But in pleading his own cause, he is inspired with such consciousness of right, with such clear insight of truth, and with such force of native genius, that his defense extorts from his adversaries nought but praise. From this scene Wycliffe returned to Lutterworth, where, though silenced, he continued to lift up his voice against the false doctrines and base practices of the Romish Church. The reign of Edward III. was brilhant with military, com mercial and social successes. But towards its close, sad re verses set in. Great prosperity bred moral corruption. In stead of victory on the battle-field there was defeat. Then financial troubles ensued, which involved burdensome taxes, conflict between capital and labor, and the interference of legislation with the rights of the laborer. And in addition to all this there were repeated visitations of that fearful scoutge, known as the Black Death, which paralyzed every nerve of the social system. In its ravages through towns and villages, about- one half of the population was swept away. And the end was not yet, for hard upon this scourge followed organized systems of beggary and outlawry. The beggar and the bandit stalked independently through the land. This state of things worked a class jealousy between the rich and the poor; and matters were brought to a crisis by the uprising of such men as John Ball and Wat Tyler, who preached and headed insurrections among the people. This was the period of England's shame ; a period when the priests of religion did most to dishonor religion ; a period that cried aloud for refor mation ; a period that called for such an one as John Wycliffe, who, though driven from the court and the University, yet in taking up his permanent abode at Lutterworth found coadju tors, who were one with him in sympathy, persecution and labor. Here he organized a preaching ministry. He declared preaching to be the duty of the priestly office. " Mattins, masses and chantings," he wrote, were " man's ordinances," 1380.] WTCLIFFE AT LUTTERWORTH. 61 but the preaching of the Gospel was of " Divine obligation,"* Oneof "the deceits" of the times which Wycliffe exposed was that priests should give themselves to prayers rather than preaching. " These enhghtened views," says Vaughan, " con cerning the paramount importance of preaching exhibit the mind of Wycliffe as some two centuries in advance of his age. "2 Besides he had no respect for the kind of preaching practiced by the Romish priests, and in order to improve upon their methods he said: "If begging friars stroll over the country preaching the legends of saints and the history of the Trojan war, we must do for God's glory what they do to fill their wallets, and form a vast itinerant evangelization to con vert souls to Jesus Christ." « The followers of Wycliffe, in de rision styled Lollards, increased rapidly in numbers towards the close of Wycliffe's life. And the secret of their power was that they bore in their hands, and hearts, and upon their tongues, the Scriptures in the language of the people. As to the exact time when Wycliffe conceived and executed his translation of the Bible we have no means of determining. But it was about the year 1380, and was the great work of his life. It was a permanent step in the way of reformation, the preparation of spiritual seed which his followers might sow, and from which year after year grand harvests might be reaped. The translation of the Bible into English was an offense to the hierarchy. Not that the Roman Catholic Church had discarded the Bible, but rather had consecrated it as a thing of the Church, consequently a thing too sacred for the people to handle. The very language of the Bible, which for a thousand years had been Latin, was sacred because it was the language of the Church service ; to handle it, therefore, by way of translating it into a vulgar tongue, was sacrilege in the ' Tracts and Treatises of Wycliffe, p. 14 London, 1845. « Tbid, p. 34. s Cited by D'Aubigne's Hist, of Bef., V., 91. N. D., New York. 62 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. eyes of the Church. There had already grown up a fixed re lation between the Latin language and the Romish Church. So mutual had become this relation that they must stand or fall together. History plainly shows that Rome has relied upon the Latin Bible as a stronghold of defense. Hence Wycliffe's desire to give the Holy Scriptures to the people in their own language, and to deprive the Church of Rome of one of its chief sources of superstitious reverence. Hence also the violent opposition of the Romish Church to English versions of the Bible. The Gospel, said the papists, is the peculiar property of the Church " which Christ had entrusted with the Clergy and Doctors of the Church, that they might minister it to the Laity and weaker sort according to the exigency of the times." But now they bewailed the fact that through Wycliffe's translation, the Church was robbed of its " Evan gelical Pearl," which was now cast out " and trodden under foot of swine," and that by this means, "the Gospel was made vulgar, and laid more open to the Laity and even to women who could read, than it used to be to the most learned of the Clergy." ^ These words of Knyghton, a canon of Leicester, and a cotemporary with Wycliffe, have been quoted often and deserve to be set forth again and again, since they show what has been the spirit of Rome from the flrst, in with holding the Bible from the people. The English version of the Bible by Wycliffe was such an offense, that a bill was introduced into the House of Lords in 1390, to suppress it. In the course of the debate the Duke of Lancaster is reported to have said : " We will not be the dregs of all ; seeing other Nations have the Law of GOD, which is the Law of our Faith, written in their own Language That he would maintain our having the Law in our own tongue against those, whoever they should be, who I Lewis' History of English Translations of tlie Bible, p. 31. Lon don, 1739. 1415.] ROMISH HATRED OF THE BIBLE IN ENGLISH. 63 first brought in the Bifi." He was sustained by others, and finally the " Bill was thrown out of the House." ^ Soon after the death of Wycliffe, the papists in their wrath sought to prohibit further translations of the Bible, and to destroy those already made. The constitution of Arundel, which Foxe calls " a cruel constitution," ordained in solemn council at Oxford in 1408, among other decrees, " that no man here after by his owne authoritie, translate any text of the Scripture into English, or any other tongue by way of a boke, libell, or treatise ; and that no man read any such boke, libell or treatise, now lately set forth in the tyme of John Wycliffe, or sithens, or hereafter to be set forth, in parte or in whole, privily or appertly ; upon payne of the greater excommuni cation, until the sayd translation be allowed by the ordinary of the place, or (if the case so require) by the councell prouinciall : He that shall do contrary to this shall likewise be punished as a fauourer of errour and heresie."^ In the year 1389 the followers of Wycliffe separated themselves from the Romish Church, ahd in their public services used not only the Scriptures in English, but also the breviary, missils and primer. Hence the alarm and severe action of this council, which as an instrument of terror was held suspended over the heads of all who dared to translate, or even read, the Holy Scriptures in English. But instead of intimidating the Lollards and banishing their heretical opinions, their numbers were multiplied and their courage increased. So enraged was the archbishop on account of the spread of Lollardism, "that he solicited the Pope to grant him the privilege of burning the remains of Wycliffe." This fiendish request was not then granted ; but in a few years afterwards the council of Constance, 1415, condemned Wycliffe as a heretic, and decreed the "burning of his books, also the exhuming and burning of his bones, if they might be discovered and known from the bodies of other ' Lewis' History of English Translations of the Bible, p. 38. 2 Acts and Monuments, p. 637. Black Letter copy, 1596. 64 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. faithful people." But even this sentence was not executed until some thirteen years after, when, by the order of the pope, the grave was opened and the bones burnt and the ashes cast into the brook called the Swift. We have Wycliffe's testimony concerning the bitter hatred of the papists of the Scriptures in English. In one of his homilies he writes: "And algates (always) they dyspysen that men shulden knowe Cryste's lyfe, for thenne prestos schulden scheme (be ashamed) of hyre lyves, and specially these bye prestes, for thei reversen crist bothe in worde and in dede. And herfore on (one) gret byschop of englelond, as men sayen, is yuel payed (pleased) that Goddb's lawe is written in englysche to lewede (ignorant) men." ^ Again in Wycliffe's Wickett we read : " They say it is heresy to speak of the holy scripture in English, and so they would condemn the Holy Ghost that gave it in tongues to the apostles of Christ."* And in his tract written to expose the friars he says : " And thus they pursue priests both to bren (burn) them and the Gospel of Christ written in English."* In respect to the English version of the Bible made in the time of Wycliffe, friend and foe concur in attributing the translation to Wycliffe. And while it is difficult to determine with certainty his share in the work, there is no question but that its accomplishment must be traced to his zeal, encourage ment, and devotion. That there should be obscurity as to the exact date of the enterprise, and to the persons engaged in it, is by no means surprising, since it was undertaken in times of danger and persecution. The principal data, upon which to base an opinion regarding the time of the translation, must be found in the writings of Wycliffe, in which he defends the right of the people to the Scriptures in English, both as indi cating his interest in the work and the opposition against it. Aud further, as intimating that the New Testament in whole ' Lewis' History of English Translations of tlie Bible, p. 33. ' Tracts and Treatises of Wycliffe, p. 375. » Ibid, p. 347. 1380.] EARLIER AND LATER TEXTS. 65 or in part had already been set forth. Tracts of Wycliffe con taining such references are frequent after the year 1378. The year 1380 is the accepted date of the Wycliffe versions, and is probably the nearest approximation that can be made to the true date. It has long been understood by those who have had to do with the Wycliffe MSS. that there were evidences of an earlier and a later version, and that probably one was but the revision of the other. And yet great confusion has existed as to which was the earlier and which the later version. The question, however, has been most satisfactorily settled by the admirable edition of the Wycliffite versions by Forshall and Madden, 1850.1 In their preface they give the credit to Henry Whar ton as the one who first determined the respective authorships and dates of the two versions. Wharton assigned the earlier to Wycliffe, and the later version to the author of the General Prologue. Dr. Waterland rejected this theory, and took as the earlier that which in fact was the later version. Lewis, who edited the New Testament of Wycliffe, unfortunately adopted the opinions of Waterland, and Mr. Baber followed his example. But in the examination of a large number of manuscripts, these last editors found one or two manuscripts containing a part of one and a part of another text, and that the earlier text occupied the first place. Again, they found fewer of the earher MSS. extant ; also, that the language of the earlier MSS. was somewhat more antiquated, and the style more involved.* Bat the chief evidence is found in the Gen eral Prologue, where it speaks of " the EnglisTi bible latetrans- latid."^ From which we may infer not only an earlier version, but also that the author of this Prologue was the author of the later version. While it is now generally accepted that the earlier text of the New Testament is that of Wycliffe, there are evidences ' Preface, Wycliffite F«r«wres, by Forshall and Madden, I., p. xxi. Ox ford, 1850. 2 Ibid, p. xxii. ^ Ibid, Prologue, p. 58. 66 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II, that go to show that the earlier text of the Old Testament is the work of Nicholas de Hereford, who was a coadjutor of Wyc liffe, and a prominent leader of the Lollard party. His name is intimately associated with those of Wycliffe, Reppington, and others, who were denounced as base heretics. In 1382, . on the 18th of May, Hereford was summoned before the Synod of Preaching Friars, in London, for trial, and at an adjourned meeting in July he was excommunicated. He ap pealed from this sentence to Rome, where he was thrown into prison. Obtaining his release he returned to England, only to be again imprisoned; but in 1387 he was at liberty, and engaged in disseminating Lollard opinions.^ The original copy of this Hereford manuscript of the Old Testament is preserved in the Bodleian Library, and is " corrected throughout by a contemporary hand." There is also a second copy in the same Library which contains at the end a note, in a different hand, and in paler ink, which assigns by name this version to Here ford. Both of the manuscripts end with Barucli iii., 20.* This abrupt ending, together with Hereford's apprehension in 1382, form a coincidence which so far helps to confirm the fact of authorship as rightly belonging to him. Moreover, from this break in the third chapter of Baruch, the translation is by another hand, which is judged to be that of Wycliffe. One of the grounds of this judgment is, that certain words of the text have a uniform rendering with the same words in the earlier text of the New Testament, while these same words are rendered differently in the portion of the Old Testament as signed to Hereford.^ In respect to the earlier version then, the New Testament text, and that portion of the Old Testa ment which follows Baruch iii., 20, is the work of Wycliffe. The following excerpts are from Forshall and Madden's Wyc liffite versions, and are here inserted as specimens : Matt. VI. 9-13. Forsothe thus ye shulen preyen, Oure fadir that art in heuenes, halwid be thi name ; thi kyngdom cumme to; ^be ' Preface, Wycliffite Versions,'by Forshall and Madden, I., p, xvii.,?!o*e. ' Ibid, p. xvii. ' lUd, p. xviii., note. 1380. J wycliffe's choice of words. 67 thi wille doa as in heuen and in erthe; gif to vs this day oure breed ouer other substaunce ; and forge ue to vs our dettis, as we forgeue to oure dettours ; and leede vs nat in to temtacioun, but delyuere vs fro yuel. '''Amen, that is, ^so be it. 1 Cor. XIII. 1-13, If I speke with tungis of men and aungels, ^sothli I haue not charite, I am maad as bras sownnynge, or a sym- bal tynkynge. And if I schal haue prophesye, and haue knowun alle mysteries, and al kunnynge, ^or science, and if I schal haue al feith, so that I '''bere ouere hillis, fro o place to another, forsoth if I ^sohal not ^haue charite, I am nogt. And if I schal departe alle my goodis into metis of pore men, and if I schal bytake my body, so that I brenne, forsothe if I ^schal not haue charite, it profitith to me no thing. Charite is pa- cient, it is benygne, Vr of good idll, charite enuyeth not, it doth not gyle, it is not inblowyn ^with pride, it Is not ambi- cious, *or coueitous of worschipis, it sekith not tho thingis that ben her owne, it is not stirid to wraththe, it thenkith not yuel, it ioyeth not iu wickednesse, forsoth it ioyeth togidere to treuthe ; it suffrith alle thingis, it bileueth alle thingis, it hopith alle thingis, it susteyueth alle thingis, Charite fallith not down, where prophecyes schuleu be voydid, ether lan- gagis schulen ceesse, ether science schal be distroyed. Forsoth of party we han knowen, and of party we propbesien ; forsothe whanne that schal come that is perfyt, that thing that is of party, schal be avoydid. Whanne I was a litil child, I spak as a litil child, I undirstood as a litil child, I thougte as a litil child ; forsoth whanne I was maad man, I auoydide tho thingis that weren of a litil child. Forsoth we seen now by a myrour in a derknesse, thanne forsothe face to face ; now I knowe of party, '^thanne forsoth I schal knowe, as I am know7n. Now forsothe dwellen feith, hope, and charite, thes thre ; for soth the mooste of thes is charite. The above extracts shovv but in part the excellencies of Wycliffe as a translator. There is a marked simplicity in his phraseology whioh has been peculiar ever since to English ver sions of the Scriptures. It is true that the English language at that period was favorable in the " simphcity of its vocabu lary and verbal combinations," which corresponded in these particulars to the Greek and Hebrew of the original text. Then Wycliffe's ideal in the choice of words was to adapt the Scriptures to the common people ; and though he translated 68 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. from the Latin Vulgate he did not follow it literally either as to the order or the form of its words. Hereford, on the contrary, was a literal translator. He fol lowed closely the order of the Latin text in his desire to make a correct translation. He introduced many Latinisms; and yet so comparatively free was he from them that Mr. Marsh refers to him as a resuscitator "of obsolete Anglo-Saxon forms." Marsh further suggests that Hereford might have been familiar with an Anglo-Saxon version of a part at least of the Bible. 1 This is no unimportant point in the history of English translation, since, if it can be established, our English Bible of to-day may be traced back, with scarcely a broken link, to its Saxon origin. While there can be no question in regard to the fact that when the WyclLfiB.te versions were first circu lated there was no other English version extant, yet may there not have been a copy or copies of -iELfric's Heptateuch not only in existence but accessible to such scholars as Wycliffe and Hereford ? In assuming an affirmative answer to this ques tion there is involved nothing improbable, since the Hepta teuch is assigned to the first quarter of the eleventh century; the period therefore intervening from ^Ifric to Wycliffe would be less than three hundred and fifty years. A very old tract, written about the year 1400, mentions "a Bible possessed by one Wering, of London, which had been seen by many, and seemed two hundred years old."* If any depend ence can be placed upon the presumed age of this Bible, it must have been not only a very early version, but possibly a copy of -iEIfric's Heptateuch. The following specimens are here inserted from the earlier version attributed to Hereford : ^ Gen. XXII. 1-19. Aftyr that thes thingis weren doon, God temtide Abraham, and seide to hym, Abraham! Abraham! He an- sweride, I am nygh. He seide to hym, Tak thin oonlie gotun sone, whom thow louest, Ysaac, and go into the loond of ' English Language and Literature, p. 360. New York, 1863. ^ Preface, Forshall and Madden's Wycliffite Versions, I., p. xxi., note. ' Lbid. Extracts from, in loco. 1382.] HEREFORD'S TRANSLATION. 69 visioun, and there offre hym into sacrifice al brent, vpon oon of the hiUis whiche I shal shewe to thee. Thanne Abraham on the nyght with rysynge, dighte his asse, ledynge with hym two yong men, and Ysaac his sone ; and when he had hewid his wode into brent sacrifice, he gede to the place which com- aundide hym God. And the thrid day, the eyen heued vp, he sawe a place "'a feer ; and seide to his children, Abydith here with the asse, I and the child vnto thidir goynge, aftir that we hann onowryd, we shulen com agen to yow. And he toke the wode of the sacrifice, and putte vpon Ysaac, his sone ; be forsothe bare in his hondis fier, aud a, swerd. And whanne thei two geden to gideris, seide Ysaac to his fadir. My fadir ! And he answeride, What wilt thow, sone ? Lo ! he seith, fier and wode, where is the sacrifice of that that shal be brent ? Abraham seide, God shal puruey to hym, my sone, the sacri fice of that that shal be brent. Thanne thei geden togider, and comen to the place whom God shewide to hym, in the which he bildide an auter, and aboue made the wode ; aud whan he had boundun Ysaac, his sone, he putte hym in the auter, vpon the heep of wode. And he strawghte his honde, and toke the swerd, that he myght offre his sone. And loo ! the aungel of the Lord fro heuene cryede, seiynge, Abraham ! Abraham ! The which answeride, I am nygh. And he seide to hym, Strecche thow not thin bond out vpon the chUd, and do not eny thing to hym ; now I haue knowun that thow dredist God, and thow hast not sparid to thin one goten son for me. And the aungel of the Lord clepide Abraham eftsonys fro heuene, seiynge, Bi my sylf I swore, seith the Lord, for thow hast do this thing, and thow hast not sparid to thin oon gotun sone for me, I shal blis to thee, and I shal multiply thi seed as sterris of heuene, and as grauel that Is iu the brenk of the see ; thy seed shal weeld the gatis of his enemyes; and al folk of the erthe shal be blessid in thi seed, for thow hast obeishid to my vols. And Abraham turnyde agen to his children, and gede to Bersabee togider, and he dwellide there. Compare the following, which is also a specimen of the ear lier version of Hereford, with the translations of the same by Schorham and Hampole, inserted above.i The numbering of the Psalms, in the Wycliffe versions, follows the Latin Vulgate, ' See pages 48, 49, above. 70 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. IL which, with the Septuagint, differs from the Hebrew Bible. Consequently, Number XXII. here corresponds with Number XXIII. of our present English Bible, which, in its numbering, follows the Hebrew: 1 Ps. XXII. 1-6. The Lord gouerneth me, and no thing to me shal lacke ; in the place of leswe where he me ful sette. Ouer watir of fulfilling he nurshide me ; my soule he conuertide. He broghte doun me vpon the sties of rightwisnesse ; for his name. For whi and if I shal go in the myddel of the shadewe of deth ; I shal not dreden euelis, for thou art with me. Thy gerde and thy staf ; tho han confortid me. Thou hast maad redi in thi sighte a bord ; agen hem that trublyn me. Thou hast myche fattid in oile myn hed ; and my chalis makende ful drunken, how right cler it is. Aad thi mercy shal vnder- folewe me ; alle the dayis of my lif. And that I dwelle in the hous of the Lord ; in to the lengthe of dayis. The later version, by John Purvey, is in part a revision, and in part a new translation. The date of the work is vari ously estimated, some ascribing it to the year 1388, others putting it as late as 1396. The former is probably nearer the correct date.* In the New Testament, and that portion of the Old Testament translated by Wycliffe, few changes compara tively were made; but in that part of the Old Testament attributed to Hereford the changes are more marked. Before ' The Septuagint and Vulgate join the IX. and X. Psalms, thereby making the X. to correspond with the XI. of the Hebrew Bible ; and so on to the CXIV. of the Hebrew, where the Septuagint and the Vulgate unite two Psalms into one, that is, the CXIV. aud CXV. of the Hebrew, so that iu the Septuagint and Vulgate the CXIV. corresponds vrith the CXVI. of the Hebrew Bi'ole. But as the Septuagint and Vulgate end the CXIV. Psalm with the ninth verse, and number the remaining portion as the CXV. Psalm, in numbering they are only one behind the Hebrew Bible till they come to the CXLVIL, which they divide at the twelfth verse, thereby making the CXLVIII. Psalm to correspond as to number in each of the three versions. So also in Wycliffe's version, and that of our Authorized version ; the former of which follows the Vulgate, and the latter the Hebrew numbering. * Forshall and Madden's Wycliffite Versions, Preface, pp. xxiii., xxiv. 1388.] JOHN PURVET, "WTCLIFFE'S GL0S8ER." 71 entering upon the work of revision. Purvey states that he made a uew Latin text by first gathering " manie elde biblis ... .to make oo (one) Latyn bible sumdel trewe." ^ He then compared it with the glosses of learned commentators, and "speciali Lire on the elde testament, that helpide ful myche in this werk ; the thridde tyme to counseile with elde grama- riens, and elde dyuynis of harde wordis, and harde sentencis. The iiij tyme to translate as cleerli as he coude to the sentence, and to haue manie gode felawis and kunnynge at the correcting of the translacioun."* From this we learn that he had fellow-helpers, and that he sought to make thorough work. John Purvey was a leader in the Lollard party after the death of Wycliffe. He was learned and eloquent, and was an able defender of the Wycliffite doctrines. Knyghton describes him as being intimately associated with Wycliffe, and a boarder in his house.' Falling into the hands of Archbishop Arundel, he was imprisoned and forced to abjure, after which he was promoted by that wily bishop. But it was all in vain, for Purvey coming again to his right mind relapsed into his former opinions, and was again deprived of his liberty, and probably died in prison. Thomas Walden, though an enemy of the Lollards, graphically describes John Purvey as "the Library of the Lollards and Wiclif 's Glosser, an eloquent Divine, and famous for his Skill in the Law."^ The question settled that John Purvey is the author of the General prologue of the Wycliffite versions ; the fact is thereby established that he is the author of the later version.^ But so soon was this revision undertaken after the first was set forth ; and as it was done by one who was familiarly styled, " Wycliffe's Glosser;" by one who was a boarder in his house; by these and other facts put together, we are constrained to ' Forshall and Madden's General Prologue, p. 57. 2 lUd, p. 57. ' Levris' History of English Translations of the Bible, p. 34. ^ Ibid, p. 35. ^ See the several steps by which this conclusion is reached in the Preface to the Wycliffite Versions, p. 35. Forshall and Madden's ed., 1850. 72 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. believe that in its origin at least, this later version was largely due to John Wycliffe. Though it is true, that he could not have witnessed much of its progress, as he died in 1384. The following is inserted for the sake of comparison, from the later version, though it but imperfectly illustrates the im provements made by Purvey. Gen. XXII. 1-19. And after that these thingis weren don, God assaiede Abraham, and seide to hym, Abraham ! Abraham ! He answerde, Y am present. God seide to him. Take thi ^sone oon gendrid, whom thou louest, Ysaac ; and go into the lond of visioun, and offre thou hym there in to brent sacri fice, on oon of the hillis whiche Y schal schewe to thee. Therfor Abraham roos by night, and sadlide his asse, and ledde with hym twey yonge men, and Ysaac his sone ; and whanne he hadde hewe trees in to brent sacrifice, he gede to the place which God hadde comaundid to him. Forsothe in the thridde dai he reiside hise iyen, and seiy a place afer ; and he seide to his3 children. Abide ye here with the asse, Y and the child schulen go tbidur ; and after that we han wor- Bchipid, we schulen turne agen to you. And he took the trees of brent sacrifice, and puttide on Ysaac his sone : forsothe he bar fier, and swerd in hise hondis. And whanne thei tweyne geden togidere, Isaac seide to his fadir. My fadir ! And he answerde. What wolt thou sone ? He seide, Lo I fier and trees, where is the beeste of brent sacrifice 1 Abraham seide. My sone, God schal puruey to hym the beeste of brent sacri fice. Therfore thei geden togidere, and camen to the place which God hadde schewid to hym, in which place Abraham bildide an auter, and dresside trees aboue ; and whanne he hadde bounde togidere Ysaac, his sone, he puttide Ysaac in the auter, on the heep of trees. And he helde forth his hond, and took the swerd to sacrifice his sone. And lo ! an aungel of the Lord criede fro heuene, and seide, Abraham ! Abra ham ! Which answerde, I am present. And the aungel seide to hym, Holde thou not forth thin honde on the child, nether do thou ony thing to him ; now Y haue knowe that thou dredist God, and sparidist not thin oon gendrid sone for me Forsothe the aungel of the Lorde clepide Abraham the secounde tyme for heuene, and seide. The Lord seith, Y haue swore bi my silf, for thou hast do this thing, and hast not sparid thin oon gendrid for 1860. J FORSHALL AND MADDEN'S EDITION. 73 me, Y schal blesse thee, and Y schal multiplie thi seed as the sterris of heuene, and as grauel which is in the brynk of the see ; thi seed shal gete the gatis of hise enemyes ; and alle the folkis of erthe schulen be blessid in thi seed, for thou obeiedist to my vois. Abraham turnede agen to hise children, and thei geden to Bersabee togidere, and he dwellide there. Forshall and Madden's noble volumes i from which the above was taken, render accessible a mine of wealth hereto fore closed except to a favored few. A mine rich in speci mens not only of the earliest English Scripture versions, but of the English language of the fourteenth century. This edition was published in 1850, and furnished for the first time the Wycliffite versions of the whole Bible in print. The later version of the New Testament was published by J. Lewis in 1731 ; which was reprinted by H. H. Baber in 1810. Again this later version was published by the Messrs. Bagster in the English Hexapla, 1841, from a manuscript now in the collection of the earl of Ashburnham. The earlier version was not printed till 1848, when it was pubhshed by Mr. Lea Wilson. The Song of Solomon was the only portion cf the Old Testament of the Wycliffite versions published previous to 1850. This was printed by Dr. Adam Clarke in his Com mentary, 1810-1825.* The Messrs. Forshall and Madden in preparing their edition of the Wycliffite versions, examined over a hundred and fifty manuscripts. In giving an account of their work they say: "The texts have been printed from ; the MSS. with scrupulous exactness ;" that four copies were selected in the earlier version, and the text formed from these, was collated with nineteen other manuscripts. For the later text one manuscript was followed, but it was compared 1 The Holy Bible, with the Apocryphal Books in the Earliest English Versions, by John Wycliffe and his Followers. With the General Pro logue ; also with an invaluable Preface and Glossary, 4 vols. 4to. Edited by Rev. Josiah Forshall, and Sir Frederic Madden. Oxford, 1850. - Ibid, I., Preface, p. 1, note. 4 74 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. with "no less than thirty-four other copies."^ The majority of the manuscripts examined by these editors were transcribed about the year 1420 ; while some date as early as 1390. From the large number of the Wycliffite MSS. still pre served in the public and private libraries of Great Britain, it is evident that the later manuscripts soon displaced the earlier ones. It is likewise evident that this Manuscript English Bible of Wycliffe enjoyed a wide circulation, notwithstanding the fiery persecution waged against its friends. A dark page in the history of these times was recorded by Foxe when he published extracts from the Bishop's Registers, which were filled with the names of the accused, with an account of the cruel penalties inflicted upon thera, Margery Backster was accused on the ground of inviting Joan Cliffeland, her maid, to come to her chamber " to hear her husbande reade the lawe of Christ vnto them, which law is written in a booke that her husbande was wont to reade to her by night, and that her husbande is well learned in the Christian verity." * The ac cusation against Richard Fletcher reads : " A most perfect doctour in that sect, and can very well and perfectly expounde the Holy Scriptures, and hath a booke of the new law in English." 5 Those thus accused were forced to abjure their opinions, or suffer imprisonment or some humiliating pen ance. Notwithstanding all this, the people during these evil times, eagerly sought and read the Scriptures, To meet this demand manuscripts were transcribed containing separate books, particularly those of the New Testament. "These, because writing was dear and expensive," says Lewis, "and copies therefore of the whole New Testament not easy to be purchased by the generality of Dr. Wiclif's followers, were often written in small Volumes. One of these little books in > IMd, I., p. 34. ' In 1439, Nicholas Belward was accused for possessing a New Tes tament which he bought in London for 4 marks and xl. pence ; equal to £3 16s. 8d., or about fourteen dollars in American money. Compare Foxe's Acts and Mon., p. 788, folio edition, 1596. 8 Tbid, p. 788. 1400.] ANTi:iUATED FORMS AND OBSOLETE WORDS. 75 24° I have; it contains St. Aohn's Gospel, the Epistles of ^S*^. James, St. Peter, St. John, St. Jude, and the Apocaly2)s." i By reference to the Bishop's Registers it will appear that these little books were numerous, as they are often specified as being found upon the persons of those accused. Some times the Gospels are spoken of either separately, or together ; or it is the book of Acts, or the Epistle of James, or the Apocalypse that is specified. It appears also from these Registers, that many of those who possessed these little volumes were either servants or tradesmen. And it is not an unfair inference to suppose that there were those who were both able and willing to bear the expense of copying the manuscripts for distribution among the people. In these Wycliffite versions, which are now five hundred years old, there are, as we might expect, antiquated forms of speech, peculiarities in spelling, and obsolete words, which unite in making the printed page' somewhat obscure. And yet it is quite noticeable that when the spelling is modernized, so simple is the style and Biblical the phraseology, that the text is easily read and understood, though a certain quaint- ness remains. The following list will illustrate how words most familiar become strange through their orthography, and consequently obscure the text: Asaught, assault ; eeris, ears ; earnys, earnest ; felough, follow ; fend, fiend ; gestis, guests ; hole, whole ; hoo, who ; iche, each ; iye, eye ; kilden, killed ; ligyng, lying ; maad, made; meest, most; wo^^, nought ; noi- ther, neither ; oo, one; oost, host; pawme, palm ; pite, piety; priCi'praj; schoon, shun ; thennis, thence ; ty things, tidings; unpesible, unpeaceable; waast, waste; wolun, will; ynough, enough. The above were selected from the glossary attached to Mr. Baber's edition of " Wychffe's New Testament," printed in 1810. A glance at this glossary shows also a large number of words, at that time considered obsolete or strange, which are ' History of Translations of Eng. Bible, p. 39. 1739. 76 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. now familiar ; which argues incidentally, that we are draw ing nearer in knowledge and use of language, to the age of Wycliffe and Chaucer. There are, however, in the Wycliffite versions many obsolete words, which divide themselves into two classes ; those that have changed their meaning, but not their form, and those that have changed both form and mean ing. In the first class we have such words as catel, substance or goods; castel, town or village; cofyns, baskets; departe, divide; lechis, physicians ; o;?yw«OMra, rumor; sad, firm, and sadnesse, firmness or steadfastness ; oppresse, stop ; clarified, glorified ; tent, attention, heed ; tree, wood ; bitake, deliver ; gdbbe, lie ; all of which may be found below in their several connections.^ Matt. IX. 35. And Jhesus compaside aboute alle citees and castels. X. 35. Sothely Y cam to departe a man ageins his fadir. XIV. 30. . . . twelue cofyns ful. XXIV. 9. Thenne thei schulen bitake you '''in to tribulacioun and thei schulen slee you. Mark XIII. 7. Sothli whanne ye schulen heere batels and opyniouns of bateils, drede ye not. Luke VI. 48. . . . for it was foundid on a sad stoon. VIII. 43. . . . which hadde spendid al hir catel in to lechis, nether myghte be curid of ony. XL 53. . . . aud oppresse his mouth ^f many thingis. John XV. 8. In this thing my fadir is clarified. Gal. I. 30. . . bifore God for I lye not, Vr gabbe not. I. Tim. IV. 16. Tak tent to thi silf and doctryn. II. Tim. II. 20. But iu a greet hous ben not oneli vessels of gold and of siluer, but also of tree and of erthe.'' II. Pet. III. 17. . . . bi errour of vnwijse men, falle awey fro youre owne sadnesse. In the second class, which is made up of words obsolete both in form and meaning, we have such examples as aisel, vinegar ; arettide, reckoned ; anentis, with ; chawcers, shoes ; clepe, call ; contakes, reproaches ; dyteris, writers ; eft-soone, ' These examples are from the Earlier version, See Forshall and Madden's ed. in loco. ' This from the Later iiersion. Ibid, in loco. 1400.] INFLUENCE UPON SUBSEQUENT TRANSLATIONS. 77 again; egre, sour or sharp; faage, flatter; grees, steps or stairs ; heriynge, praising ; herbore, lodging ; liestis, commands, though the word Hves in behest ; hyne, laborer ; kitte, cut ; knytchis, bundles; lepis, baskets; maiometis, idols; querne, mill ; rewrne, kingdom ; rochet, cloak ; scot, payment, though it lives in scot-free ; sotheli, truly ; thilke, that ; thral, servant or slave, though the word lives in thralldom ; lued, a pledge, though it lives in wedding ; wonne, custom ; this change, however, is only in form, as it is the same as wont; woot, know. While the Wycliffite versions were translated from the Latin Vulgate, and in many instances may be obscure, yet not a few passages might be cited to show the possible influence of these versions upon subsequent translations. Passages also are not wanting which show a superiority in rendering over more re cent translations. Something of this superiority and influence will appear in the following passages from Forshall and Mad den's Wycliffite versions: Matt. VII. 14. How streit is the gate and narewe the weye, that ledith to lijf, and Hhere ben fewe that fynden it.' This reading is followed by Tyndale and the A. V. XVI. 83. And Petre took hym, and bigan to blame him, and seide, Fer be it fro thee. Lord ; this thing schal not be to thee.* The Genevan version reads : Master, looke to thy self; and in Tyndale's version the read ing is : Master, faver thy selfe. The A. V. reads after Wycliffe : Be itfarrefrom thee Lord. John III. 3. . . . Treuh, treuU, I seye to thee, no but a man schal be bom agen, he may not se the kyngdom of God.' Tyndale reads : except a man be boren a newe ; while the Genevan version has : begotten againe. The A. V. foUows Wycliffe. Though pos sibly Tyndale furnishes the preferable reading. IV. 23. But the our cometh, and now it is, whanne trewe worschiperis schulen worschipe the fader in spirit and treuthe ; for whi and the fadir sekith suche, that ¦ Earlier version. " Later ¦version. ^ Earlier version. 78 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS [CHAP. II. John IV. 33. schulen worschipe him.' This is followed by the A.V. But Tyndale has : requyreth such ; and is followed by the Genevan version. Rom. Vin. 15. . . . but ye han taken the spirit of adopcumn of sondes? This is followed by Tyndale, the Ge nevan version, and the A. V. But in common with Wycliffe, they are all indebted to the Vulgate. XII. 1. . . . that ye gyue youre bodies a lyuynge sacri fice.^ This is followed by the A. V. But Tyndale renders : aguicke sacrifice ; which is adopted by the Genevan version. I. Cor. II. 10 the depe thingis of God.* Tyndale translates : the bottome of God's secretes, Wycliffe's rendering is followed by the A. V. X. IQ.ThecuppeofblessyngeHhewhichweblessen. Thisia followed by Tyndale, also by the Genevan and the Authorized versions. n. Cor. VI, 14. . . . or what/gfowwA^ of lighttoderknessis? This rendering is adopted by the A. V. Tyndale has : company ; and is followed by the Genevan version. The Vulgate has : societas, showing that in this instance Wycliffe was not indebted to the Vulgate. VIIL 1. But, britheren, we maken knowun to you the grace of God. This reading is preferable to that of Tyndale, who translates : I do you to wit brethren ; and is followed by the Genevan and Authorized versions. In the time of Tyndale and even when our present translation was made, the word do was used in the sense of make, and to wit in the sense of to know ; hence the phrase at the time was intelligi ble though now obsolete. James I. 5 and vpbraydith not. This was fol lowed by the Authorized version. Tyndale trans lates; and casteth no man in the teth; which is followed by the Genevan version. The above passages and others that might be added, look ' Earlier ¦version. ' Earlier and Later versions. ' Later version. * This with the remaining examples, belongs in common to both versions. 1514.] LITBRART INFLUENCE OF BIBLE VERSIONS. 79 very much as though there was an intimate relation between the Wycliffite versions and subsequent translations of the New Testament. But as this is questionable the matter will come up for consideration in another connection. ^ There is an important relation existing between Ver nacular versions of the Scriptures and the languages into which they are translated. So marked is this influence where such translation is made, that it constitutes an epoch in the literary and in the religious history of a people. " The trans lation of the Bible into Latin," says Schlegel, " created an epoch altogether new in that language, constituting a late and, in some instances, a rich after-crop of Latin literature. On the extinction of the old literature there was an almost universal literary dearth, until the period when Chris tian writers made their appearance, in the fourth and fifth centuries. "2 What is true of the Latin is likewise true of the German language. Luther's translation of the Bible lies at the founda tion of German literature as well as the Reformation of the sixteenth century. Schlegel speaks with authority when he says: "It is remarkable that no other modem tongue has adopted so many Biblical terms and phrases, and introduced them into common language. My own opinion quite coin cides with that of the critics who hold this circumstance to be most felicitous, to which I think I am justified in ascribing some portion of that continuous intellectual energy, life and simplicity, which preeminently characterize the diction of our most distinguished German writers." ^ Now what Latin and German versions did for their respec tive languages, English versions of the Bible have done for the Enghsh tongue. It was a bold stroke on the part of ' See on pages 136, 137, below. ' History of Literature, p. 143. Bohn's edition. London, 1873, ' lUd, p. 339. 80 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS, [CHAP. II. Wycliffe to set forth the Scriptures in the language of the people, but the results far exceeded his fondest expectations. In all simplicity he thought to give the word of God to his own age, but in fact he laid the foundation for the Reforma tion in England, and for the permanence and excellence of the English language. To understand the inflnence of the Wycliffite manuscript versions upon the religion of those times, as well as years afterwards, we have but to trace the history of the Lollards from the age of Wycliffe to that of Tyndale, For in this history of almost a century and a half, we shall find that the religious life of the persecuted Lollards was based upon these Wycliffite versions of the Holy Scriptures. Even in the closing years of this period, in the reign of Henry VIII,, it was adjudged a crime to read or possess the Scriptures in the English tongue. One of the charges against Richard Hunn, who suffered martyrdom in 1514, was "the kepyng diners Englishe bookes, prohibited and dampned by the law ; as the Apocalips in Englishe, Epistles and Gospels in Englishe, Wickleffe's dampnable workes, and other bookes conteyning infinite errours, in the whiche hee hath bene long tyme accustomed to read, teach, and study dayly." i So in the case of James Brewster, who was burned at the stake in 1511. One of the items against him was the " hauing a certaine litle booke of Scripture in Englishe of an old writyng almost worne for age, whose name is not there expressed." * Like wise William Swetyng, who suffered martyrdom with Brewster, was charged with " having much conference with one Wil liam Man of Boxstede, in a booke, which was called Mathewe." ^ These Wycliffite versions are the visible links which connect the Reformation of the sixteenth with that of the fourteenth century, " Wickliffe is the greatest English reformer," says D'Aubigne, " he was in truth the first re former of Christendom, and to him, under God, Britain is indebted for the honor of being the foremost in the attack ' Vo-^e'& Acts and Monuments, -p. 931, 1596. = Ibid, p. 944. 3 Ibid, p. 944. 1365.] REVIVAL OF THE TEUTONIC ELEMENT IN SPEECH. 81 upon the theocratic system of Gregory VII. The work of the Waldenses, excellent as it was, cannot be compared to his. If Luther and Calvin are the fathers of the Reformation, Wickliffe is its grandfather." i Yea, so long as Protestantism means, separation between Church and State, hatred of spiritual hierarchies, the love of Jesus Christ in the heart, and the love of his word in the language of the people, the name of John Wycliffe will stand the first among its founders, and the chief among its supporters. If there vvas in the time of Wycliffe a revival of the Teu tonic in opposition to the Latin in religion, so there was in language. And if the influence of the former reached for ward into the centuries, even into the sixteenth century, so likewise did the influence of the latter. And in both cases the influences were kept alive and extended by means of these old, brown, and much used manuscripts of the Wyc liffite versions. True, Wycliffe wrote much in Latin. It was the learned language of his times, and he used it iu addressing the learned. But in addressing the people, whether in writ ing or speaking or in translating the Bible, he used the language of the people. The reign of Edward III. was a transition period, to whicli may be traced a new beginning of intellectual life and activity. It was this Edward who enacted, about the year 1362, that the English language should be restored to the courts, that is, " that all pleas .... in any courts whatsoever, .... shall be pleaded, showed, defended, answered, debated, and judged, in the English tongue." The reason for this action was assigned in the preamble that, " the French tongue was too much unknown." * This was a grand step in advance, favoring the people's rights, for as yet the French was the polite language, but not understood by the mass of the people. Trevisa, who wrote in 1385, records that ' History of the Reformation of the Sixteenth Centuiry, V. , 104. Am. Tr. Soc. edition. '^ The original statute was in old French. See History English Lan- g~iage ; Appendix, p. cxxxiv. ; Johnson and Todd's English Dictionary, I. London, 1818. 82 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. in his day: "inaile the gramer scoles of Englond children leveth Frensch and construeth and lerneth an Englisch, and haveth therby avauntage in oon side and desavauntage in another." 1 The advantage, according to Trevisa, was that they learned their lessons more easily ; and the disadvantage was that they acquired no French, He further adds: "also gentel men haveth now mych ylefte for to teche her (their) children Frensch,"* The name of John Cornwaile, "a maistre of grammer," who introduced this innovation, de serves to be held in grateful remembrance by all lovers bf the English tongue. Sir John Maunde ville, 1356, wrote his travels in Latin, But afterwards he translated them into English, to the end, as he says in his prologue, " that every man of my nation may understand it ; and that lords and knights and other noble and worthy men that know Latin but little, and have been beyond the sea, may know and un derstand, if I err from defect of memory, and may redress it and amend it." ^ The Teutonic leaven has been at work, though we may not be able to trace it, so gradual has been the intellectual im provement of the people. Langland, the author of Piers' Ploughman's Vision and Creed, which were written about the year 1365, was not a "precursor of Wycliffe," though in spirit and feeling he was a reformer. In his poem, which is highly allegorical, and sometimes very plain and practical, he mourns the abuses of the Church, rebukes the religious orders, and ridicules the palpable weaknesses of the friars. The fat friar he describes as — ^ A greet chorl and a grym, growen as a tonne. With a face so fat, as a ful bleddere, Blowen bretful of breth, and a bagge honged. ' Tyrwhitt's Essay on the Language and Versification of Chaucer. Chaucer's Works, Preface, p. 17. Oxford, 1798. s Lbid, p. 17. ' Sir John Maundeville's Travels, p. 139, Bohn's ed. London, 1848. * Warton's History of English Poetry, I., 305. London, 1714. 1375.] CHARACTER OF WTCLIFFE. 83 On bothen his chekes, and his chyn, with a chol (jole) loUede So greet a gos ey, growen al of grece. That al wagged his fleish, as a quick (quag) mire. " The people who could listen with delight to such strains were far advanced," says Milman, " towards a revolt from Latin Christianity." 1 Langland adopted the alliterative form of Saxon poetry. His language is largely Saxon, though inter spersed with Norman words, some of which were already a part and parcel of the language, while others " appear like strangers." His Latin words seem to have been drawn di rectly from the Vulgate.* What is true of Langland in respect to language is true also of Wycliffe, They both wrote for the people. Chaucer in his writings sought to please the court, and yet, to his enduring fame, preferred "to show his fanta sies in such wordes as we learneden of our dames tongues." And as a matter of fact, after an etymological comparison by actual count. Marsh declares that "Chaucer's vocabulary is more purely Anglo-Saxon than that of Langland." ^ Though Wycliffe's language was no purer than that of these cotempo rary poets ; and though he did no more than they to fix the language in its then English mould, yet we must attribute to him the greater influence, since, in addition to his writings he translated the Holy Scriptures, which became the book of the household. A book most sacredly kept and religiously read ; a book whose teachings were treasured up in the hearts of parents and taught to their children. And all this not for a single generation, but for generations even to the beginning of the sixteenth century. This chapter would be incomplete without a few words respecting the character of John Wycliffe. It is painful to witness the low estimate put upon the man and the reformer ' History of Latin Christianity, VIIL, 384. New York, 1874. 2 Ibid. p. 378. 3 Lectures on the EngUsh Language, p. 134. New York, 1860. 84 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. by some Church historians. From several paragraphs of Mil ner's Church History, one is led to think that there is some thing dark and inexplicable hanging over Wycliffe's character; yet in other paragraphs he does him full justice. Evidently Milner, in his attempt to be impartial, has gone to the other extreme. He confesses that the character of no other public man had given him so much trouble in forming his estimate as that of Wycliffe. We are indebted to the enemies of Wyc hffe for much of our information concerning him, and it may be that Mr. Milner suffered their testimony to bias his judg ment. In some degree the same is true of Mosheim. He failed, however, to make the character of Wycliffe a subject of careful study. Consequently, he expresses himself, if not carelessly, at least unsatisfactorily. But it remained for Nean der, the prince of Church historians, to do justice to Wycliffe's character. In seeking, however, to set forth the facts concern ing Huss and the Hussite movement, that it was independent of Wycliffe's infiuence, his statements are very fair, though not altogether convincing. The more, however, the history of the age is searched into, and the public acts of Wycliffe scanned, the better his character will be understood, and the nobler it will appear. This was doubtless the experience of D'Aubigne in writing the history of the Reformation, and with an honest pen he drew the character of John Wycliffe. It is refreshing likewise to read Milman's chapter on Wycliffe in his History of Latin Christianity. Yet even Milman, with all his high appreciation, declares that as a reformer Wycliffe was prema ture. That he possessed the power to pull down but not to build up. True, Wycliffe spent the greater part of his life in breaking down the barriers and clearing away political as well as religious rubbish; and of his success in these particulars let his enemies bear witness. But this was only a part of his work, for it was he who set in motion a positive evangelistic movement, which flowed like a majestic river, growing deeper if not wider, and forming a grand channel for the Reformation of the sixteenth century. Intellectually Wycliffe stood first among his cotemporaries. .1380.] CHARACTER OF WTCLIFFE. 85 His superiority was acknowledged by both Parliament aud University. Even the pope felt his power. Of Wycliffe's moral character there is but one opinion, and that is, that it was irreproachable. A member of a brilliant but sensual court, whose chief head set the worst possible example of im morality, yet Wycliffe was untainted. He was there as chaplain of Edward III., and commanded the respect and reverence of all. It would be gratifying to know more of the social life of Wycliffe. History never wearies of placing him before us as a warrior steel-clad and mounted for battle. We see him always in public, never in private ; even in his own writings he is reticent respecting himself Was there no retirement for him? Was there never a smile upon that sad countenance? His face so narrow and pale, yet beneficent; how different from the round ruddy face of Luther. In many respects how different from Luther. The one is like a Gothic castle, with commanding towers and high walls, without any signs of life; while the other is like an ordinary dwelling, with its interior every-day life activities all exposed to view. We have no table- talk of Wycliffe. It is only by inference that we know that he had a home. Notwithstanding this, Wycliffe had his friends. At the court of Edward III. he met with Chaucer, and in him doubtless found a genial spirit. Wycliffe was Chaucer's ideal of a good priest, and doubtless Chaucer had the parson of Lutterworth in mind when he wrote :i A good man ther was of religioun. That was a poure Pbrsonb of a toun : But riche he was of holy thought and werk. He was also a lerued man, a clerk. That Cristes gospel trewely wolde preche. His parishens devoutly wolde he teche. Benigne he was — and wonder diligent. And in adversite ful patient : Wide was his parish, and houses fer asonder, But he ne left nought for no rain ne thonder, ' The Canterbury Tales, I., 30, 21, Tyrwhitt's ed. Oxford, 1798. 86 THE WTCLIFFITE VERSIONS. [CHAP. II. In sikenesse and in mischief to visite The ferrest in his parish, moche and lite. Upon his fete, and in his hand a staf. This noble ensample to his shepe he yaf. That flrst he wrought, and afterward he taught. He sette not his benefice to hire, And lette his shepe acombred in the mire, And ran unto London, unto Seint Poules, To seken him a chanterie for soules. Or with a brotherhede to be withold : But dwelt at home, and kepte wel his fold. So that the wolf no made it not miscarie. He was a shepherd, and no mercenarie. And though he holy were, and vertuous. He was to sinful men not dispitous (angry), Ne of his speche dangerous (sparing), ne digne (proud). But in his teching discrete and benigne. To drawen folk to heven, with fairenesse. By good ensample, was his besinesse : A better preest I trowe that nowher non is. He waited after no pompe ne reverence, Ne maked him no spiced conscience. But Cristes lore, and his apostles twelve. He taught, but first he fol wed it himselve. If Wycliffe was Chaucer's ideal of a good parson, doubtless Chaucer was Wycliffe's ideal of a good poet, Chaucer sang to please the ear of a pleasure-loving court ; he sang also to please the ear of a gospel-loving Wycliffe. Chaucer dealt heavy blows against the friars. The religious influence of Chaucer's poe try in the reform movement of his time has been too little appreciated. Among his political friends Wycliffe numbered such men as the Duke of Lancaster. But it was at his parish at Lutterworth, where, surrounded by his parishioners and by learned men in his own house and at his own table, fellow- laborers with himself in translating the Scriptures and preach ing the Gospel, notable men who afterwards became leaders 1384.] WTCLIFFE'S DEATH, 87 in the Lollard party which Wychffe founded, among these he found true sympathy and a lasting friendship. But with all this, at Lutterworth, we have only his fervent words addressed through his tracts and sermons to the public, consequently nothing of his private conversations or feelings. As we have no particulars of Wycliffe's private life, so we have scarcely any of his death. We are told that while ad ministering the Lord's Supper in the chapel at Lutterworth he was seized with paralysis, which " deprived him at once of utterance, if not of consciousness." ^ This was on the twenty- ninth day of December, 1384, and in two days afterwards his devout spirit returned to God who gave it. If we would know of the excessive hatred heaped upon the head of Wycliffe, and of the debt of gratitude his friends in every age owe to his memory, we have only to read the following account of his death, written by the hand of an enemy: "On the day of St, Thomas the martyr, .... December 29, ... . John Wyclif, the organ of the Devil, the enemy of the Church, the confusion of the common people, the idol of heretics, the looking-glass of hypocrites, the encourager of schism, the sower of hatred, and the maker of lies, when he designed, as it is reported, to belch out accusations and blas phemies against St. Thomas in the sermon he had prepared for that day, was suddenly struck by the judgment of God, and had all his limbs seized with palsy, his tongue was speechless, .... shewing plainly that the curse which God had thundered forth against Cain was also inflicted on him."* However great the dishonor and indignity intended by his enemies, these words, from the standpoint of his friends, must ever be regarded, considering their source, as a most honorable epitaph. ' Vaughan's Tracts and Treatises of Wyckliffe, p. xciii. London, 1845. » Lewis' Life of Dr. John Wycliffe, pp. 133, 134. Oxford, 1830. CHAPTEE III. TYNDALE, AND HIS TRANSLATION OF THE NEW TESTAMENT. A.D. 1535. IN the time of Wycliffe, England held an enviable position among the nations of Europe. The Teutonic love of free dom here flrst came to the surface ; but it was stifled so far as human effort could avail, and then followed a period of more than a century of intellectual darkness. In Italy and Ger many there arose with the art of printing an intellectual awakening. The Greek and Latin languages were cultivated. Under Pope Nicolas V., 1447-1454, the city of Rome became more literary than religious. "He seemed determined," says Milman, " to enrich the West with all that survived of Grecian literature."^ Besides, his efforts were not conflned to the classics, but embraced the writings of the Church fathers. He even went so far as to authorize the execution of a new Latin version of the Bible from the Hebrew and Greek. Pope Nicolas was not aware of the fire he was kindling, nor the distance to which its light and heat would penetrate. He did not dream of the intimate relation of the revival of learning with Vernacular versions of the Holy Scriptures and the Refor mation of the sixteenth century. Printing was introduced into England by William Caxton about the year 1474, and its influence was soon felt. A Latin translation of Aristotle's Ethics was among the first isshes from the Caxton press. It is said that Cornelius Vitelli, an educated Italian, came to Oxford in 1488, and not only taught in the University but became the instructor of William Grocyn. However this may be, Grocyn, though a reputed Greek scholar, ' History of Latin Christianity, VIIL, 133. New York, 1874. VxifJ-MU/ lAMU^O L ^MlOIUl JK < f rOKIHMMin- Vl\I llVl fU IJUO Jl t.^M tl \ WiT \ LU 11 \fU TOtV WWIJT mi 111 iO\M!Kl4 t llvtiL 1516.] CHAKACTEE OF SIE THOMAS MOEE. 89 quitted his lectureship of Divinity and went to Italy to per fect his knowledge of the Greek language, and after remaining three years returned and taught Greek in Exeter College, Ox ford. He introduced a new pronunciation, and so popularized the study that it gave rise to the two factions in the Univer sity known as the Greeks and Trojans, who bore the most violent animosities towards each other. But the day has dawned, and learning is in the highest repute. The first visit of Erasmus to England was in 1497, He praises not only Grocyn, but Colet, Linacre, and More, He says that he found in England "a treasure of old books," and the highest appre ciation of learning.! In such estimation was learning held at this time that even Henry VIII. sighed for it, and was ready to turn from the pursuits of pleasure, and the labors of diplo macy, for its sake. His words were : " Ah ! how I should like to be a scholar." Not only did Henry VIII. sigh for learning, and Cardinal Woolsey affect it; but there were some who really possessed it. As yet, however, the revival of learning is only intellectual. The single example of Dr. Thomas Linacre, whom Erasmus praises so highly, illustrates this fact. He was president of the College of Physicians, and a reputed scholar. Late in Hfe he changed his profession to that of Divinity, yet so ignorant was he of the Scriptures, that after he was ordained as a priest he took up the New Testament, and after reading the fifth and sixth chapters of Matthew's Gospel, he threw down the book, exclaiming: "Either this is not the Gospel, or we are not Christians."* Another remarkable example was that of Sir Thomas More, a man of superior ability and attainments, au acknowledged wit, a safe counselor, a just judge, a friend and a defender of Greek learning, a Christian man, and yet withal an extreme papist, opposing with all his might and oflQcial power the progress of the Reformation and the circular tion of the Vernacular Scriptures, The character of More, as ' Hallam's Literature of Europe, I., 341. New York, 1874. ' Townley's Illustrations of Biblical Literature, IL, 165. Ijondon, 1831. 90 TTKDALE'S TEANSLATION' OF THE N. T. [CHAP, IIL a papist and a persecutor, is the more difBcult to understand in the light of his great sincerity and Christian simplicity, and still more when we consider his previous liberal sentiments. He was a decided friend of the New learning so long as it confined itself to the classics, though at first he openly de fended the New Testament of Erasmus, He was in sympathy with the author of the Praise of Folly, and must have enjoyed his sarcastic thrusts at the Monastic orders, since Erasmus was his guest when he wrote this book. Then the liberal opinions of More are distinctly revealed in his Utopia. " In that short but extraordinary Book," says Burnet, "he gave his Mind full Scope, and considered Mankind and Religion with the Free dom that became the true Philosopher. By many Hints it is very easy to collect, what his Thoughts were of Religion, of the Constitutions, of the Church, and of the Clergy at that time. "1 But in all how changed. Those who have attempted to dehneate the character of Sir Thomas More have been in doubt whether to represent him as " a foolish wise man, or a wise foolish man." But leaming the most extensive and profound is not an end in itself, but a means to a higher end. And the end at this time was religious reformation. And it is the learned name of Erasmus which links this intellectual movement with the Holy Scriptures and the Protestant Reformation. This grand end, and his noble contribution to it, is well described by himself when he says : "A spiritual temple must be raised in desolate Christendom, the mighty in the world will contribute towards it their ivory, their marble, and their gold; I, who am poor and humble, offer the foundation stone." This foundation- stone was none other than his Greek aud Latin New Testa ment. And well might he thus designate it, since it was the Scriptures, and only the Scriptures, that could form a substan- ' The first edition of the Utopia contained many passages ridiculing the folly and ill-nature of the friars, which were left out of later editions. See Burnet's H'lstory of the Reformation, III., 39. 1715. 1516.] GRE-K AND LATIiT TESTAMENT OF ERASMUS. 91 tial foundation for the building up of the faith of a Reformed Christianity. The Greek Testament of Erasmus was collated from all the MSS. he could obtain. The text thus formed he printed together with a Latin translation. It appeared at Basle in 1516, and was the first Greek New Testament pub lished in priut."^ Transported across the channel, it was re ceived into England with enthusiasm, and was offered for sale in the book-stalls of London, Oxford, and Cambridge. The friends of the New learning were delighted, but the hierarchy was alarmed. " The priests saw the danger," says D'Aubigne, "and by a skilful manoeuvre, instead of finding fault with the Greek Testament, attacked the translation and the translator." * They cried out: "He has corrected the Vulgate, and puts himself in the place of St. Jerome Look here ! this book calls upon men to repent, instead of requiring them, as the Vulgate does, to do penance." ^ Notwith standing this opposi tion, edition after edition was called for, and accordingly it was reprinted in 1519, 1523, 1527, and 1535. This Greek and Latin Testament of Erasmus was a preparatory step towards a Vernacular version of the New Testament ; and this was his desire. In his preface he says: "I differ exceedingly from those who object to the Scriptures being translated into the vernacular tongues, and read by the illiterate; as if Christ had taught so obscurely, that none could understand him but a few theologians ; or as if the Christian religiou depended upon being kept secret. The mysteries of kings ought, per haps, to be concealed, but the mystery of Christ strenuously urges pubhcation And I wish that the Scriptures might be translated into all languages, (that) the husbandman might 1 The Complutensian Polyglott of Cardinal Ximenes did not appear till 1533, though the New lestament was printed in 1514, and the Old Testa ment in 1517. But the consent of the pope for their publication was not granted till 1530. See Hallam's Literature of Europe, I., 393. New York, 1874. 2 History of the Reformation, V., 155, Am. Tr. Soc. edition. New York, N. D. s lUd, p. 155. 92 ttndale's translation of the n. t. [chap. III. repeat them at his plough, the weaver sing them at his loom. Letters, written by those we love and esteem, are pre served and prized, .... and yet there are thousands of Chris tians who .... never once, in the whole of their life, read the books containing the Gospels and Epistles." ^ The wish of Erasmus was fulfilled, but not through his direct agency. The storm of opposition gathered as he did not anticipate. From a literary standpoint he thought to harmonize the conflicting elements and gradually reform the abuses of the papacy. Erasmus was a professed papist, yet a leader in the party of the New learning up to a certain point. He was friendly to the work of Reformation under Luther, yet was unwilling to break with the pope. He sought a mid dle course, which proved displeasing to both extremes. He called Luther his dear friend and brother, and at the same time wrote flattering letters to the pope. And yet neither Wycliffe or Luther sent forth such broadsides of wit and sar casm against the Romish priests. But Erasmus was not a reformer. He had no taste for martyrdom. He could retreat from the storm of battle he had helped to raise, but he could not fight; and in 1517 he was compelled so to do. His Greek Testament, however, remained notwithstanding the attempts to banish it the kingdom. Archbishop Lee, from a professed friend of Erasmus became his open enemy, and was inde- ^^fatigable in his efforts to prepare "a prison for Erasmus, (and) the fire for the Holy Scriptures." * But while the enemy raged his New Testament was eagerly sought after, and as eagerly read. Another attack was made by Bishop Standish. Single-handed, and with more zeal than knowledge, he made a desperate attack. From the pulpit of St. Paul's Cathedral he appealed to the mayor and corporation of London. In the midst of his sermon he cried out: "Away with these new translations or else the religion of Jesus Christ is threatened ' Townley's Biblical Literature, II. , 365. London, 1831. ' " If we do not stop this leak," said Lee in referring to Erasmus' New Testament, " it wiU sink the ship." — D'Aubigne's History of the Uefor- mation, V., 159. 1516.] THE APPEAL OF BISHOP STANDISH. 93 with utter ruin My lord, magistrates of the city, and citi zens all, fly to the succour of religion." ' This empty harangue was a failure ; but he will appeal to the king. The story is told by Erasmus himself, and the scene was worthy of his pen. The royal family, with invited guests, were in the midst of a social rejoicing when the good bishop, making his way through the gay crowd, prostrated himself before the king and queen. All were amazed, and wondered what the old bishop could mean. "Great king," he cried, "your ancestors who have reigned over this island, and yours, 0 great queen, who have governed Aragon, were always distinguished by their zeal for the Church. Show yourselves worthy of your forefathers. Times full of danger are come upon us, a book has just ap peared, and been published too by Erasmus ! it is such a book that, if you close not your kingdom against it, it is all over with the rehgion of Christ among us." The bishop ceased for a moment, and then raising his eyes and hands towards heaven, exclaimed in a sorrowful tone: "0 Christ! 0 Son of God! save thy spouse ! for no man cometh to her help." The bishop acted his part well; Henry VIII. was embarrassed, and Queen Catherine was deeply affected ; and had the scene closed here, the appeal possibly might not have been in vain. But the chief actor, thinking that he had won the judgment of the king and the sympathy of the queen, waited that he might depart in triumph. But the scene changes ; that which was just now so serious becomes most ludicrous. Sir Thomas More, the friend of Erasmus, and a great admirer of his Latin translation of the Greek Testament, was present, and breaking the silence calmly inquired: "What are the heresies this book is likely to engender ? " The bishop, seeking to keep up the dramatic dignity of the scene, " with the foreflnger of his right hand, touching succes.sively the flngers of his left," enumerated one by one the heresies ; " First, this book," he said, " destroys the resurrection ; secondly, it annuls the sacrament of mar riage ; thirdly, it abolishes the mass." Then, uplifting his ' Tykahigne's History of the Reformation, Y., 171,173 94 TTNDALE'S TRANSLATION OF THE N. T. [CHAP. III. thumb and two fingers, " he showed them to the assembly vnth a look of triumph," But the friends of learning called for "the proof, the proof," The poor old man, still full of cour age and elated by success, attempts the proofs, but they are so weak that his friends blush for him, Henry VIII, in disgust turns away. The bishop, greatly chagrined, withdraws.^ The New learning triumphs, and in its triumph Protestantism and the New Testament of Erasmus rejoice. But this Greek and Latin Testament was but a preparatory step to something better. It must needs be translated into the language of the people. This was the desire of Erasmus, but the purpose of Tyndale. A purpose not to be fulfilled excepting through opposition, danger, exile and final martyr dom. The story of Tyndale's life and of his translation of the New Testament into English, is one. There were succes sive steps in the life of John Wycliffe, which both fitted and unfitted him for the work of translating the Bible. How long he meditated the design we do not know ; but he did not exe cute it till the close of his eventful life. It was otherwise with William Tyndale. The purpose to translate the Holy Scrip tures was the one purpose and the one work of his life. No name in the whole history of Vernacular versions deserves such prominence as that of William Tyndale. Our common English Bible of to-day is so largely indebted to Tyndale's translation that all who love their English Bible will unite in honoring the memory of William Tyndale, who suffered ex patriation and martyrdom for the sake of giving to his countrymen the New Testament in their own tongue. William Tyndale was born, most probably, in 1484, in Gloucestershire, in the village of North Nibley. The obscurity which hangs over the family relations of Tyndale, arises from the fact, that he lived in times of persecution, and hence his reticence lest he should involve his relations in his own troubles. He was early sent to Oxford, and studied ' D'Aubigne's History of the Reformation, V., 173, 173. 1514.] TTNDALE AT CAMBRIDGE. 95 grammar, logic and philosophy in Magdalene Hall. Foxe, the martyrologist and chief biographer of Tyndale, records that Tyndale was brought up in the University of Oxford, that he increased in the knowledge of tongues, and other liberal arts, and especially in the knowledge of the Scriptures. Also that he privately read lectures in Divinity to the students, and instructed them inthe Holy Scriptures. But "spying hys tyme," he removed to the University of Cambridge.' Tyndale's motive for going to Cambridge is not known. Some conjecture that it was on account of his liberal opinions ; while others, with more reason, perhaps, suppose that it was his desire to study Greek under Erasmus, who about this time, 1509-1514, was professor of Greek at Cambridge.* But the New Testament of Erasmus was shortly to do a greater work for the students of Cambridge than Erasmus himself. Thomas Bihiey, a young Cambridge doctor, read it, at first, more for the elegance of its Latinity than for its religious teaching. But when at length his eyes fell upon the words : This is a faithful saying, and worthy of all acceptation, that Christ Jesus came into the world to save sinners ; of whom I am chief. His heart was touched. "I also am like Paul," he cried, " and more than Paul the greatest of sinners ! But Christ saves sinners I see it all, my vigils, my fasts, my pilgrimages, my purchase of masses and indulgences were destroying instead of saving me."^ Tyndale met with Bilney. They opened the New Testament together. They also read it to their fellow students. Here also Tyndale met with John Fryth, who already was distinguished for his scholarship and integrity of life. Fryth, through the influence of Tyndale, became a converted man, and afterwards became his associate in the work of translation. Fryth was well read in mathe matics, Bilney in the canon law, and Tyndale in the learned ' Acts and Monuments, p. 1334. ' Fuller's Church History of Britain. History of tlie University of Cambridge, p. 87. London, 1655. Fuller in this connection says, that Erasmus also " took upon him the Divinity Professors place." ' D'Aubigne's History of the Reformation, V., 163, 164. 96 ttndale's translation of the n. t. [chap. III. languages. These three young men associated themselves to gether, and strengthened each other's hands in the work of reading the New Testament and preaching the Gospel of repentance to their fellow students. After Tyndale's departure from Cambridge we next hear of him as a tutor in the family of Sir John Walsh, of Gloucester shire. " This Gentleman," says Foxe, " as hee kept a good ordinarie commonly at his table, there resorted to hym many times sondry Abbots, Deanes, Archdeacons, with other diners Doctors and great beneficed men ; who there together with M. Tyndall sittyng at the same table, did use many tymes to enter communication and talke of learned men, as of Luther and of Erasmus. Also diners other controuersies and questions upon the Scripture And when as they at any tyme did varye from Tyndall in opinions and judgement, he would shewe them the booke and lay playnly before them the open and manifest places of the Scriptures, to confute their erours, and to confirme his sayinges. And thus continued they for a certain season, reasonynge and contending together diuers and sundry tymes, till at length they waxed wery, and bare a secret grudge in their hartes agaynst hym," ^ Foxe enters minutely into the history of Tyndale's life while he remained in the family of Sir J. Walsh. At flrst, through the influence of Lady Walsh, the family inclined to the views of the learned and rich doctors, for there were among them those that could spend their three hundred pounds, a very large sum, since in modern values it stands as one to flfteen, and it was not reasonable, according to her protest, that she should listen to Tyndale, a poor tutor, in preference to these rich doctors. However, after Tyndale had translated the Enchiridion of Erasmus, a book which exposed the ceremonial observances of the Romish Church, he gave it to Sir John and his lady to read. The book had the desired influence. The family became more friendly to Tyndale, and more estranged from the Romish doctors. Whereupon the " Acts and Monuments, p. 1335. 1518.] ttndale in the FAMILT of sir j. WALSH. 97 latter were enraged, and " began to grudge and storme against Tyndall, rayling agaynst hym in ale houses and other places." * They flnally accused Tyndale secretly before the chancellor. Tyndale's offense was that of driving them from the well filled tables of Sir John, and that he was a zealous preacher " about the town of Bristol, and in the said town in the common place called St. Austin's Green." When Tyndale was brought before the chancellor, though nothing was proved against him, yet the chancellor " threatened hym greuously, reuilyng and ratyng hym as though hee had been a dogge." * Foxe further relates a conversation, which occurred at this time, between Tyndale and a certain learned divine, who in anger burst forth, saying : " We were better to be without Gods law than the Popes." Tyndale with spirit replied: "I defie the Pope and all hys lawes ; " and further added : " if God spared hym life, ere many yeares he would cause a boy that driueth the plough to know more of the Scripture, then he did."s There is no positive evidence that Tyndale began the work of translating the New Testament while at the house of Walsh ; but he has left words on record which show his state of mind at this period. He says : " Which thing only moved me to translate the New Testament. Because I had perceived by experience, how that it was impossible to establish the lay- people in any ti'uth, except the scripture were plainly laid be fore their eyes in their mother-tongue, that they might see the process, order, and meaning of the text ; for else, what soever truth is taught them, these enemies of all truth quench it again."* He labored much in preaching the Gospel while he stayed at this manor house, and it is to these labors, doubt^ less, he referred, when he wrote : " While I am sowing in one place, the enemy ravages the field I have just left. Oh, if Christians possessed the Holy Scriptures in their own tongue ' Acts and Monuments, p. 1335. ' lUd, p. 1335. ' Ibid, p. 1335. * Tyndale's Works, I., 394. Parker Soc. ed. Cambridge, 1848. 98 ttndale's translation of the n. t. [chap. III. they could of themselves withstand these sophists." The rage of the priests increased, and as Foxe relates, Tyndale came to Sir John and said : " I perceaue I shall not bee suffered to tarye long hire in this countrey, neither shal you be hable, though you would, to kepe me out of the handes of the spir- itualitie, and also what displeasure might grow thereby to you by kepyng me."^ Thus driven away, Tyndale came to London, hoping to find a patron in Bishop Tonstal, since he remembered that Tonstal was highly extolled by Erasmus for his great learning. So long as the revival of learning confined itself to classic litera ture, Tonstal, like Sir Thomas More, was a friend of the move ment ; but since it was opening wide the door of Protestant ism, he was no longer its friend. Consequently, in his house there was no place for Tyndale, though as an evidence of his scholarship Tyndale had sent him an oration of Isocrates which he had translated from the Greek into English.* But in Humphrey Monmouth, whom Foxe describes as "a right godly and sincere alderman of London," Tyndale found a friend and supporter, who received him into his own house for the space of six months. Here, doubtless, Tyndale applied himself to the work of translation. Monmouth's testimony respecting Tyndale, while he abode in his house, was that " he lyued lyke a good Priest, studying both night and day." * But the eye of the persecutor followed him to London, It is now the close of the year 1523. Tyndale has been in London almost a year, and can remain no longer. He says : "I saw things whereof I defer to speak at this time, and under stood at the last, not only that there was no room in my lord of London's palace to translate the New Testament, but also that there was no place to do it in all England, as experience doth now openly declare." * ' Acts and Mon., p. 1335. 2 Tyndale's Works, I., 395. * Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1133. * Tyndale's Works, L, 396. Parker Society edition. Cambridge, 1818. 1524-5.] TTNDALE AT HAMBURGH. 99 Probably by Monmouth's advice, and certainly by his aid,i Tyndale crossed the sea to Hamburgh, that he might carry out his purpose of translating the New Testament. He landed at Hamburgh in May, 1524, and found the city in a state of great excitement. The burghers were united in opposition to all political usurpations, but they were divided as to their re ligious opinions. For three or four years the Reformation under Luther had been steadily advancing in Hamburgh. Here Tyndale found friends; and, assisted by his "faithful companion," he proceeded with the work of translation. And when this friend was called away,* he was aided by William Roye, "a friar observant of the Franciscan order at Green wich." Tyndale describes him as "a man somewhat crafty, when he cometh unto new acquaintance Nevertheless, I suffered all things till that was ended, which I could not do alone without one, both to write and to help me to compare the texts together. ' When that was ended, I took my leave, and bade him farewell for our two lives, (and as men say) a day longer."^ During Tyndale's short stay in Hamburgh, it is very possible that he finished the translations of the Gos pels of Matthew and Mark, which he printed separately; and that one or both of these made up the " little book " that Humphrey Monmouth confessed to have received from Tyn dale in 1524.* Tyndale remained in Hamburgh till the begin ning of the next year. That he went from here to Wit- tenburgh to confer with Luther, though asserted by Foxe, ia very questionable. Sir Thomas More and other papists were anxious to make it appear that Tyndale was confederate with ' Humphrey Monmouth gave him an exhibition or annuity of ten pounds, suflficient, at this time, for the maintenance of a single man. The amount iu present values would be about $750. Lewis' History of Eng. Translations, p. 75. ^ Supposed to be his college associate, John Fryth, who afterwards suffered martyrdom at the stake iu Smithfield. Or possibly the person meant may be George Joy. » Tyndale's Works, I., 37, 38. * Anderson's Annals of the English Bible, p, 39. London, 1863. 100 ttndale's translation of THE N. T. [CHAP. III. Luther, hence the importance of this visit, and yet there is no positive evidence of it.^ Leaving Hamburgh, Tyndale with Roye arrived at Cologne in April, 1525. Cologne offered superior advantages for print ing. The celebrated printers, Quentel and the Byrcmans were established here. But the city was one of the strongholds of the papacy. The Protestant movement had reached Cologne, but the principal effect had been to stir up a violent opposi tion to the Reformation. Tyndale, aware of this, takes ob scure lodgings. When his manuscript was ready for the press, he was cautious in arranging with the printers for an edition of three thousand copies. The printing began in secret, and page after page was worked off from the press. Tyndale is overjoyed. But further disappointment awaits him. John Cochlffius, a violent opposer of the Reformation, was at Co logne. He had dealings with Tyndale's printers. They met over the winecup, aud Cochlseus learns from them what they would not have revealed in their sober moments — that two Englishmen, skilled in the languages, were concealed in the city for the purpose of superintending the printing the New Testament in English, and that four score pages in quarto had already been struck off. Cochlseus took immediate steps to inform the public authorities, and through an order from the senate the press was stopped. He likewise, by letters, warned Henry VIII. and his councilors, and directed them to give orders at every seaport to prevent the introduction of the baneful merchandise.* Anticipating any further action of the senate, Tyndale hastens to the printers, and securing his manuscript and the pages already printed, escapes the net of the fowler by fieeing the city. We next hear of Tyndale at Worms, where, without further opposition, he succeeds in his long cherished design. Two editions of his translation, an octavo and a quarto, were printed here, in the closing months of 1525. There has been much confusion as to the correct • Anderson's Annals of the English Bible, pp. 34, 35, 36. London,1863. 2 Ibid, p. 33. 1525-6.] THE QUARTO AND OCTAVO EDITIONS. 101 date, though the year 1526 has been heretofore generally ac cepted as correct. " The first time," says Strype, " the Holy Scripture was printed in English was about the Year 1526. And that was only the New Testament translated by Tyndal." ^ Le Long refers to the year 1526 as the positive date of the quarto edition. But Mr. Anderson thinks he makes a mistake of a whole year.* The introduction of these Testa ments into England in the spring of 1526 would seem to favor the close of the year 1525 as the true date. If possible, authorities have been more divided in respect to the place, than to the date, of printing these New Testaments. Some favor Wittenburgh, others Antwerp, while others more correctly fix upon Worms as the place of printing. This con fusion arises from the fact that the books were published with out either the name of the author, the place, or the date of the issue. Again, it has been an open question as to which was first printed, the quarto or the octavo edition. Mr. Offer, however, seems to have settled this question, quite satisfac torily, in favor of the octavo edition. The explanation seems to be, that while Tyndale intended the quarto edition should be the first printed, and so the vt^ork was actually begun at Cologne, yet, because it was interrupted and the English authorities were instructed particularly as to the character of the book issuing from the press at Cologne, he changed the form to an octavo, leaving out the prologues and glosses.^ And yet, from some unknown reason, the quarto volumes, though last from the press, appeared in England quite as soon as those of the octavo edition, and were the first condemned by the public authorities, since the books that were condemned con tained " prefaces and other pestylente gloses in the margentes." This appears in the reply of Henry VIII. to Luther, in which he charges Luther with being "in deuyce with one or two leude persons (referring to Tyndale and Roye) bome in this our ¦ Memorials of Archbishop Cranmer, p. 81. London, 1694. "^ Anderson's Annals, p. 43. ^ Tbid, p. 39. 102 ttndale's translation of THE N. T, [CHAP. IIL realme, for the translatyng of the Newe testament in to Bng- lysshe, as well with many corruptions of that holy text, as certayne prefaces, and other pestylente gloses in the margentes, for the aduauncement and settyng forthe of his adbomynable heresyes, In the aduoydynge wherof, we of oar especiall tendre zeale determyned the sayd and vntrue translatyons to be brenned, with further sharppe correction and punissh- ment against the kepars aud reders of the same." ^ So hot were the fires kindled by the king's "tendre zeal" that no entire copy of the quarto edition escaped the flames, so far as has been found. The only relic extant, contains the prologue to Matthew's Gospel, also a portion of the same Gospel, extending from the first chapter to the twelfth verse of the twenty-second chapter, inclusive. And it seems that this escaped by being bound up with a quarto tract of OEcolampadius. In this way it remained concealed for three hundred years; when it was discovered accidentally, and identified as a part of Tyndale's New Testament.* This fragment is now preserved in the Grenville collection in the British Museum ; and has been photo-lithographed and re printed in facsimile, both text and prologue, by Edward Arber. Of the octavo edition, there remains but one perfect copy,^ which is most sacredly preserved in the library of the Baptist College, Bristol. Another, though imperfect, may be found in the library of St. Paul's Cathedral, London.* The history of the Bristol copy may be traced back for a century or more, when it was in the Harleian library of Lord Oxford. Mr. John Murray, his collector, secured it, and as a reward, twenty pounds a year was settled upon him for life. On the ' As cited iu Arber's Preface. Photo-lithographed Fragment of Tyndale's N. T., p. 49. Loudon, 1871. This letter of Henry VIII. was in answer to Luther's published letter to him, which was received in March, 1536. ^ Anderson's Annals, pp. 36, 37. ' The title page is gone. * Arber's Preface, Photo-lithographed Fragment of Tyndale's N. T., p. 5. 1525-6.] THE QUAETO AND OCTAVO EDITIONS. 103 death of Lord Oxford, 1741, Mr. Thomas Osborne purchased his Hbrary, and not being aware of the value of this volume, sold it to Mr. Ames for fifteen shilhngs. In 1760, when the Ames' books were sold, this New Testament brought fourteen guineas and a half. The volume contains the following note : "N.B. This choice book was purchased at Mr. Langford's sale, (Mr. Ames' books) 13th May, 1760, by me John Whyte ; and on the 13th of May, 1776, I sold it to the Rev. Dr. Gif ford for twenty guineas, the price flrst paid for it by the late Lord Oxford." i Dr. Gifford bequeathed it to the Bristol Library in 1784. The English merchants abroad who had to do with the in troduction of these newly printed Testaments into England, were aware that the public authorities had been warned by Cochlaeus, and of the consequent difficulties to be overcome. But notwithstanding the impending dangers, five Hanseatic merchants took the precious books into their ships, and sailed for London. They expected to find the enemy on guard, bnt instead, the way was open and the books were landed and safely conveyed to the Merchants' warehouse in Thames Street.* If the enemy slept, the friends of the Bible were awake and expectant. Not only in London, but iu Oxford and Cambridge, they anxiously awaited the coming of the newly printed English Testaments. The soil was prepared for the seed. For almost a hundred and fifty years this preparation had been going forward : so intimately allied was the close of the fourteenth with the beginning of the sixteenth century. The name of John Wycliffe was still fresh in the minds and hearts of his friends ; neither was it forgotten by his enemies, for they still kept alive the fires of persecution so early kindled against his followers. Then these Lollards, or Broders in Christ, still preserved aud read the old brown manuscripts of Wycliffe's New Testament. They were familiar also with religious tracts of his writing. Besides all this ' Anderson's Annals of the English Bible, p. 41. London, 1863. ' D'Aubigne's History of the Reformation, V., 364. 104 ttndale's TRANSLATION OF THE N. T. [CHAP. III. there was a more recent preparation which began with the revival of learning, aud the publishing of Erasmus' Greek and Latin Testament. A movement which influenced the educated, not excepting those of the Universities. Finally, by way of preparation, the influence of Luther must not be forgotten, which was beginning to sweep like a great wave over England. Thus the way was fully prepared, and from the flrst the people received these newly printed Testaments joyfully, but, from necessity, secretly. The flrst distributer of these Testaments was Thomas Garret, curate of Honey Lane, London. He was a plain man, timid in disposition, but bold in faith, whose preaching was an offense to the hierarchy but a joy to the people. From the Merchants' warehouse these New Testaments were taken to the house of Garret. Other places of deposit were afterwards found, but the " dark corners " of Garret's house were the flrst hiding places of these lights, which must soon light up all England. So there were others who afterwards engaged, at the risk of personal liberty, in distributing, by sale, these precious volumes, yet, as the story comes to us, Thomas Garret was the flrst to do, and the first to suffer. The books came into his possession, probably in the early part of the year 1526, He proceeds cautiously in his work, selling to priest and laymen alike, but in every case with a special charge: "that they wold kepe yt close." How the good news must have spread among these Broders in Christ that a printed New Testament iu English could be bought of Thomas Garret, in Honey Lane, near Cheapside, "in the smal or biggest volume, for vii. or viii. grotes a pece."* ' Robert Necton in his confession (made probably at London in 1538) says : "Vicar Constantyne at diuers tymes, had of this respondent about XV. or xvi. of the New Testaments of the biggest .... That about the same tyme, he sold fyve of the said New Testaments to Sir William Purboshore synging man, iu Stowmarket, in Sufiolk, for vii or viii grotes a pece [3s. 4d. or 3s. 8d., equal to £1 15s. Od. or £3 Os. Od. now]." Ac cordingly the octavo copy would be worth in present values in American money $8.75, and the quarto, $10.00. Compare Arber's Preface, p. 43. 1526.] THE BURNING OF NEW TESTAMENTS. 105 They loved their old brown manuscripts of "the iiii Evan gelistes and certayn Epistles of Peter and Poule in Englishe," but now these are little regarded iu comparison with this New Testament in print with its "cleyner Englishe." ^ While Thomas Garret, Father Hacker and others are diligent in distributing these Testaments in London, Cam bridge, and other places, the hierarchy is on the alert. It has examined these books and has determined to condemn them, and all such persons as have to do with them. Bishop Tonstal, by the advice of Cardinal Wolsey, sent forth an injunction to the archdeacons of his diocese, under date of October 24, 1526, for the calling in of New Testaments translated by Tyndale; enjoining, "that within xxx dayes space .... under payne of excommunication and incurryug the suspicion of heresie, they do bryng in and really deliuer unto our vicare generall, all and singular such bokes as conteyne the translation of the new Testament in the Englishe tongue."* About this time, in October or November, 1526, Bishop Tonstal preached a sermon at Paul's Cross, in which he told the people that there were three thousand errors in the trans lation. It was on this occasion, according to Arber, " that Tyndale's New Testaments were first officially denounced, and TpvihMcl J burnt." ^ But that the people were not convinced ' John Tyball in his deposition made in April, 1528, says : " that at Mychaelmasse last past was twelve monethe, this respondent and , Thomas Hilles came to London to Frear Barons to buy a New Testament in Englishe The sayd Thomas Hilles, and this re spondent shewyd the Frear Barons of certayne old bookes that they had ; as of iiii Evangelistes, and certyne Epistles of Peter and Poule in Englishe. Which bookes the sayd Frear dyd little regard, and made a twyte of it, and sayd, A poynt for them, for they be not to be regarded toward the new printed Testament in Englishe. For it is of more cleyner Englishe. And then the sayd Frear Barons delyverid to them the sayd New Testament in Englyshe ; for which they payd iii s. ii d. (£1 13s, 6d.) and desyred them that they wold kepe yt close." Arber's Preface, p. 46. ^ Foxe's Acts and Monument.';, p. 1157. ' Arber's Preface, p. 49. 106 TTNDALE'S TEANSLATION OF THE N. T. [CHAP, IIL by Tonstal's assertions, we have the testimony of John Lam bert, who suffered martyrdom two years afterward, that he was at " Paules Crosse when the new Testament Imprinted of late beyond the Sea, was first forefended ; (forbidden ;) and truely my harte lamented greatly to heare a great man preachyng agaynst it, which shewed forth certaine thynges that he noted for hideous errors to be in it, that I, yea and not I, but lykewise did many other thincke verely to be none,"i But if now the New Testaments of Tyndale are burned, for every book thus destroyed hundreds of others will arise from its ashes. Already Dutch printers have taken up the work of printing English Testaments as a commercial enterprise. Christopher Endhoven printed an edition in 1527, at Antwerp; two other editions by Ruremond followed in 1528, so that English Testaments became plentier and cheaper. The years 1527 and 1528 were remarkable for the large number of New Testaments imported into England. The authorities were perplexed. They decided to purchase all the books printed and thus stop their circulation. Ac cordingly Archbishop Warham sent forth his agents; aud royal letters were sent to Hacket, the English envoy on the continent, to use every endeavor to get possession of English Testaments. So very successful were the archbishop's agents, that he lacked funds for their extensive purchases. Bishop Nix, in reply to the archbishop's letter soliciting aid, says: " Surely in myne opynion you have done therein a gracious and blessed dede." And that the "holle charge and coste" should not fall upon the archbishop, he contributed ten marks as his share, a sum equal to about five hundred dollars in present values. But the inquisitors are not satisfied with books, they must have men. These Bible readers and New Testament distrib uters must be arrested and severely dealt with. In the diocese ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1373. The above is a part of his answer to the 36th article, viz.: "Whether I beleue that the heades or rulers by necessity of saluation, are bounde to gene unto the people, holy Scripture in theyr mother language ? " 1526-8.] PERSECUTION OF MASTER GAEEET. 107 of London, and about Colchester, and other parts of Essex, these brethren were holding secret meetings for instructing "one another out of God's word."i And all this must be stopped. To do it a strict visitation was ordered. Tonstal in his wrath commanded that parties accused should be forced not only to criminate themselves but to implicate others. The Public Registers are filled with these cruel depositions. During this visitation, in the early part of the year 1527, Father Hacker, alias Ebb, a notable Lollard and Bible reader and teacher, who for the past six years had been going from house to house, reading and expounding the Scriptures, was arrested and compelled upon his oath to discover many of his friends and followers. A long list of the names of those thus detected, and the accusation against them, is recorded by Strype.* In 1528, persecution began in earnest. Wolsey's agents abroad are instructed to search out and arrest Tyndale the chief doer in all this mischievous work. At home the prisons are already filled to the full with those whose only crime is that of reading the New Testament in English. As a striking picture of the times, exhibiting both the rage of the Romish Church and the fierceness of the State, the story of Thomas Garret's sufferings, as told by Anthony Dalaber, is most graphic and interesting. The facts were written out by Dalaber from memory in 1562, by the request of Mr. Foxe, who inserted them in the early editions of his Acts and Monuments. The story as given below is abridged from Foxe, and the spelling modernized : " I, Anthony Dalaber, then scholar at Alborne Hall, who had books of M (aster) Garret, had been in my country, in Dorset shire, at Stalbridge, where I had a brother Parson of that Parish, who was very desirous to have a Curate out of Oxford, It was thought good among the brethren, . , . , that M(aster) Garret, changing his name, should be sent to "serve him there for a time, until he might secretly from thence, convey ' Strype's Ecclesiastical Memorials of the Reformation, I., 115. Lon don, 1816. ' Lbid, pp. 117, 118, 119. .: 108 TTNDALE'S TEANSLATION OF THE N. T. [CHAP. IIL himself somewhither over the sea, .... So the Wednesday, in the morning before Shrovetide, M (aster) Garret departed But the Friday next, in the night time, he came again to Rad- leis house, and so after midnight he was apprehended and taken there in his bed, and delivered over to D(octor) Cottisford, who kept him as a prisoner, in his own cham ber. There was great joy and rejoicing among the Papists, Who immediately sent their letters in post haste unto the Cardinal to inform him of the apprehension of this notable heretic, But of all this sudden hurly burly, was I utterly ignorant. So that I knew neither of M(aster) Garret's so sud den return, neither that he was so taken, until that afterwards, he came unto my chamber, as a man amazed, and as soon as he saw me, he said he was undone for he was taken I asked him why he went not unto my brother ? He said that after he was gone a day's journey and a half, he was so fearful, that his heart would no other, but that he must needs return again unto Oxford He prayed me to help convey him away, and told me that he would go into Wales, and thence convey himself into Germany. Then I put on him a sleeved coat of mine. He would also have had another manner of cap of me, but I had none but priest hke such as his own was, " Then kneeled us both down, and lifting up our hearts and hands to God our heavenly father, desiring him with plenty of tears, so to conduct and prosper him in his journey, that he well might escape the danger of all his enemies, to the glory of his holy name And so he departed from me, When he was gone down the stairs from my chamber, I straight way did shut my chamber door, and went into my study, and took the New Testament into my hands, kneeled down on my knees, and with many a deep sigh and salt tear, I did with much dehberation read over the x. chapter of S. Matthew his Gospel, aild with fervent prayer, I did commit unto God our dearly beloved brother Garret Also that he would endue his tender and lately born little fiock in Oxford with heavenly strength by his holy spirit that they might be well able to withstand to his glory all their fierce enemies. 1526,] PERSECUTION OF MASTEE GAEEET, 109 "This done, I. . . went towards Friswides to speak with that worthy martyr of God M(aster) Clarke and others, and to declare unto them what had happened that afternoon I met by the way one Master Eden,..., who with pitiful countenance said. We are all undone, for Master Garret was returned and was in prison But I told him that I was well assured he was now gone, how he came unto me, and how he went his way Then I went straight to Fris wides. . . . As I then and there stood, incometh D(octor) Cot tisford the Commissary, as fast as ever he could go, bare headed and as pale as ashes, (I knew his grief well enough) and to the Dean he goeth, into the Quire, and talked with him very sorrowfully About the middle of the church met them D(octor) London, puffing and blustering and blowing like a hungry and greedy Lion seeking his prey, they talked together awhile, but the Commissary was much blamed of them for keeping his prisoner so negligently, And it was known abroad that M (aster) Garret was escaped These Doctors departed, and sent abroad their servants and spies every where. Master Clarke came forth from the Quire, I followed him to his chamber and declared what was happened, that afternoon, of Master Garret's escape. He was glad for he knew of his foretaking .... I went to Alborne Hall and there lay that night. In the morning 1 went straight to wards Glocester College to my chamber And going up the stairs, would have opened my door, but I could not in a long season do it. Whereby I perceived that my lock had been meddled with all When I came in I saw my bed all tossed and tumbled, my clothes in my press thrown down and my study door open, whereof I was much amazed, and thought verily that some search was made there that night for M(aster) Garret. Now there was lying in the next chamber unto me, a monk, who as soon as he heard me,. . . .came and told me how M(aster) Garret was sought (for), and how every corner of my chamber was searched for M. Garret Then he told me that he was commanded to bring me as soon as I came in, unto the Prior. I went with him to the said 110 TTNDALE'S TEANSLATION OF THE N, T, [CHAP. Ill, Prior's chamber He asked me if M(aster) Garret were with me yesterday ? I told him yea. Then he would know where he was I told him I knew not, . . , . except he were at Woodstock Whither when I was brought into the chapel there I found D(octor) Cottisford, D(octor) Higdon, . . . .and D(octor) London. First, they asked what my name was. I told them that my name was Anthony Dalaber, Then, how long I had been student in the University, and I told them almost iii years Then, whether I knew M(aster) Gar ret and how long I had known him. I told them I knew him well and had known him almost a twelvemonth At the last when they could get nothing of me whereby to hurt or accuse any man, they all iii together brought me up a long stairs into a great chamber, wherein stood a great pair of very high stocks. Then M (aster) Commissary asked me for my purse and girdle, took away my money and my knives, and then they put my legs into the stocks, and so locked me fast in them ; in which I sat, my feet being almost as high as my head ; and so departed they,. . . .locking fast the chamber door Before dinner M(aster) Cottisford came up to me and requested me earnestly to tell him where M(aster) Garret was, and if I would so do, he promised me straightway to de liver me out of prison. But I told him I could not tell where he was, no more indeed I could. Then he departed to dinner, asking me if I would eat any meat. I told him yea, right gladly. He said he would send me some. When he was gone his servants asked me divers questions, which I do not now remember, and some of them spake me fair, and some threat ened me, calling me heretic, and so departed, locking the door fast upon me." ^ Thus far the story is related by Dalaber; but Foxe further records, that Garret was again arrested, imprisoned, and con victed as an heretic. Afterward he was compelled to carry a fagot in open procession from St. Mary's church to Friswide College, And all who were in the procession were commanded ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, pp, 1368-1369. 1528.] "A BURNING OF THE WORD OF GOD," 111 to throw a book into the fire, in token of repentance, as they passed by. After this, Garret escaped the tyranny of his ene mies by fleeing from place to place, but was hotly pursued and at last taken. He was condemned and suffered martyrdom at the stake in Smithfleld in the year 1541. ^ The opinion of the hierarchy now is, that if this flood of heresy is checked, the fountain heads must be dried up. Hacket, the agent ot Henry VIIL, is at Antwerp with special letters for the arrest of Christopher Endhoven, whose great crime is printing New Testaments in English. But Antwerp was a free city aud Endhoven a free citizen, and therefore could be heard in his own defense. Whereupon the lords of Antwerp decided " that the heresies and errors must be proved." The proof was not brought forward, and the " Margrave would proceed no further." Richard Harmau and his wife were the next victims. Failing to secure the conviction of Endhoven on the charge of heresy, they prosecuted Harman as a traitor. And on this charge, backed by royal letters, Harman and his wife were sent to prison on the 12th of July, 1528. Richard Har man was an English merchant, and for many years a burgher of Antwerp. One of the charges against him was that he had " received books from a German merchant (viz.. New Testa ments in English without a gloss), and sold them to an Eng lish merchant who has had them conveyed to England." He was charged further with "sheltering suspected Lutherans;" also with " eating meat on Saturday." But such charges did not, in the judgment of Margaret and her council, sustain the accusation of being a traitor, and consequently the prisoners were discharged on the 26th of February, 1529, after suffering not only imprisonment for seven months, but a great hurt and hinderance in their business.* The intense desire of Cardinal Wolsey was the apprehension of Tyndale and Roye. He communicated with Hacket on this ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1369. The more probable date of Garret's martyrdom is July 30, 1540. 2 Arber's Preface, p. 39. 112 TTNDALE'S TRANSLATION OF THE N. T. [CHAP. III. subject. He also sent a special messenger, in the person of John West, to Herman Rincke of Cologne, with orders to buy up everywhere books printed in English, and to arrest Roye and Hitchens (Tyndale). Rincke replied : "I will endeavour in every way to arrest Roy and Hutchins, and other opponents and rebels of the king's grace and yours." ^ Failing in their attempts to stop the work of printing and importing New Testaments by persecution, the English gov ernment sought the same end by treaty ; which stipulated that there should be the continuation of traffic for merchants be tween the two countries, but there should be no printing or selling of any Lutheran books on either side. This treaty was signed at Cambray in 1529. Bishop Tonstal, Sir Thomas More, and the agent Hacket were the commissioners. But after all they had more confldence in flre than in treaties; for Tonstal, on his return from Cambray, stopped at Antwerp for the purpose of buying New Testaments that he might burn them. He met with Augustine Packington, a London mer chant, and proposed to purchase all the New Testaments that remained unsold. As the story goes, Packington laid the matter before Tyndale, and the result was; " the Bishop of London had the bookes, Packington the thanks, and Tyndall had the money." * Furnished thus with the requisite means, Tyndale is said to have set about correcting his translation and having it newly printed ; so that the books came " thicke and threefolde ouer into England." The bishop perceiving this sent for Packington and said : " ' How cometh this that there are so many New Testaments abroad ? You promised me that you would bye them all.' Then annswered Packing- ton, ' Surely I bought all that was to bee had, but I perceaue they haue printed more since you were best to bye the stampes too, and so you shalbe sure ?' At which aunswere the Bishop smyled aud so the matter ended." * Foxe also records in this same connection, that Sir Thomas More in his exam- ' Arber's Preface, p. 33. '' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1159. ' Ibid, p, 1159. 1530. J "A BURNING OF THE WOED OF GOD." 113 Inatiou of George Constantyne said : " ' There is beyonde the sea Tyndall, Joye, and a great many of you ; I know they cannot line without helpe. There are some that helpe and succour them with money, and thou being one of them, had- liest thy part thereof, and therefore knowest from whence it came. I pray thee tell me, who be they that helpe them thus ?' ' My Lord ' quoth Constantine, ' I will tell you truly ; it is the Byshop of London that hath holpen us, for he hath bestowed among us a great deale of money upon New Testamentes to burne them, and that hath bene and yet is our onely succour and comfort,' ' Now by my truth,' quoth More,'I thinke even the same, for so much I told the Byshop before he went about it,' " 1 The year 1530 brought with it changes for the worse. Car dinal Wolsey, in whose opinion " heresy was an error," and who by his leniency made it possible for those thus charged to recant, was degraded from his authority; while Sir Thomas More, in whose opinion "heresy was a crime," was exalted to the high seat of the chancellorship.* And Sir Thomas as chancellor used his authority in concert with the Romish bish ops to blot out the very name of heresy. Also the effect of the king's flerce proclamation of December 24, 1529, for the abolishing of New Testaments, and other heretical books, and for the withstanding of all who taught or preached against the dignity and ordinances of the Catholic Church, began to be felt. "There ensued," says Foxe, "great persecution and trouble against the poor and innocent flock of Christ." Ton stal kindled a great flre of New Testaments in London about the 4th of May, 1530. ^ But the people were indignant. They remonstrated to no effect : but denounced it as "a burning of the Word of God," They further declared that " ' there must ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1159. Some objections have been raised to this story, and yet it illustrates the true state of aflTairs at that time. ^ Sir Thomas More was made Chancellor October 36, 1539. See More's Life of More, p. 155, note. London, 1736. 8 Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, I., p. 184. 114 TTNDALE'S TEANSLATION OF THE N. T. [CHAP. IIL be a visable contrariety between that Book and the Doctrines of those who so handled it'; by which both their prejudice against the Clergy, and their desire of reading the New Tes tament were encreased."^ Moreover, the impression abroad was that Henry VIII. was not altogether at one with the bish ops in their war against heresy. The following extract from a letter of Bishop Nix, written on the 14th of May, 1530, reveals something of the state of feeling at least in his own diocese. The bishop in his perplexity wrote to Archbishop Warham : "I am accumbred with such as kepyth and ready th these arroneous books in English My Lord, I have done that lyeth in me for the suppression of soch persons; but it passeth my power For diverse saith openly in iny Diocess, that the Kinges Grace wold, that they shold have the said arroneous books Show this to the Kinges Grace, beseeching him to send his honorable Lettres, under his Seal, down to whom he please, in my Diocess. That they may show and publish, that it is not his pleasure, that soche bookes should be had or red ; and also punish soch as saith so And how I thought best for the suppression of soch as holdyth these arroneous opinions. For if they continue any time ; I thynk they shall undoe us all But now it may be done wel iu my Diocess ; For the Gentlemen and the Communality be not greatly infected ; but merchants and soch that hath their abiding not far from the Sea."* The hierarchy is still on the alert for the apprehension of William Tyndale. Vaughan, the English envoy and successor of Hacket, has a special commission to watch Tyndale's move ments. In the meantime Tyndale has been engaged in trans lating the Pentateuch, aided doubtless by his friend Fryth, who, at the persecution at Oxford, fled across the sea. These five books were printed separately, with titles and prologues ' Burnet's History of the Ref, I., 160. Loudon, 1681. ^ Stvype'B Memorials of Arc/ibishop Cranmer. App., ¦p, 15. London, 1863. 1531.] vaughan's inteeview with ttndale. 115 to each, but without dates, excepting that of Genesis, which reads: "Emprented at Marlboro w, in the land of Hesse, by me, Hans Luft, the yere of our Lorde, M.D.XXX, the xvii dayes of Januarii." i These books are quite rare, since there is but one perfect copy known, which is preserved in the Gren ville Library, British Museum.' The story, told by Foxe, of Tyndale's voyage from Antwerp to Hamburgh, with the manu script of the newly translated Pentateuch, of his shipwreck and the loss of all his papers, and of Coverdale's connection with the work of retranslating at Hamburgh, seems to be without sufficient foundation. In January, 1531, Vaughan wrote to Cromwell: "It is un likely to get Tyndall into England, when he daily heareth so many things from thence which feareth him."' Again in April, iu giving an account of an interview granted him by Tyndale in the suburbs of Antwerp, he reports Tyndale as saying, among other things: "Again, may his Grace (Henry VIII.), being a Christian prince, be so unkind to God, which hath commanded His Word to be spread throughout the world, to give more faith to wicked persuasions of men, which presuming above God's wisdom, and contrary to that which Christ expressly commandeth in His Testament, dare say, that it is not lawful for the people to have the same, in a tongue that they understand ; because the purity thereof should open men's eyes to see their tvickedness? Is there more danger in the King's subjects, than in the subjects of all other Princes, which, in every of their tongues, have the same, under privilege of their sufferance ? " * After a lengthy interview, Vaughan adds, that Tyndale, "being something fearful of me lest I would have pursued him, and drawing also towards night, he took his leave of me, and departed from the town, and I towards the town — saying, ' I should shortly, peradventure, see him again, or if not, hear from him;' Hasty to pursue him I was not, because I had some likehhood to speak shortly again 1 Anderson's Annals of Eng. Bible, p. 137. London, 1863. = There is another copy almost perfect, in the Lenox Library, New York. Imperfect copies may also be found in the Baptist College Library, Bristol, and in the Astor Library, New York. A reprint of the Lenox copy has been made by Rev. J. 1. Lambert, D. D. New York, A. D. P. Randolph & Co. ; London, Samuel Bagster & Sons. » Anderson's Annals of the Eng. Bible, p. 151. * Ibid, p. 153. 116 ttndale's TEANSLATION OF THB N. T. [CHAP, III. with him ; and in pursuing him, I might perchance have failed of my purpose, and put myself in danger."'^ Vaughan wrote again to Cromwell in May, in regard to another meeting he had with Tyndale, and reports him as saying: "If it would stand with the King's most gracious pleasure to grant only a bare text of the Scripture to be put forth among his people, like as is put forth among the subjects of the Emperor in these parts, and of other Christian Princes, — be it of the translation of what person soever shall please his Majesty, I shall immediately make faithful promise never to write more, nor abide two days in these parts after the same (is done) And till that time, I will abide the asperity of all chances, whatsoever shall come, and endure my life in as much pains as it is able to bear and suffer," * It is but too evident that Cromwell's policy was by fair promises to entice Tyndale into England. But Tyndale remained unmoved in his sublime purpose to abide a stranger and a fugitive till the Scriptures were put forth in England in the language of the people. The time for this is near at hand ; but as yet the prospect is most gloomy. Fires are just now kindling in Eng land for men as well as for New Testaments. During this fiery year, 1531, Thomas Bilney, "the sainted Bilney" as he was justly called, was the first to burn at the stake. Among the thirty-four questions which were put to him when on trial the fifteenth reads : " Whether they would haue the Masses and Gospels openly to bee read in Churches in the vulgare tongue, rather then in the Latine tongue." ^ This was the test ques tion. It was death to answer it in the affirmative. And yet how firmly and nobly Bilney answered it. In reply he said, "hee would wishe that the Gospels and Epistles should bee read in Englishe. For I loould (sayth Paul) rather haue v. wordes &c. That the Church might be edified &c. And Chri- sostome exhorteth his hearers to looke uppon bookes, that they might the better committe vnto memory, those thynges whiche ' Anderson's Annals of Eng. Bible, p. 153. London, 1863. » Ibid, pp. 154, 155. " Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1136. 1531.] THE SEAECH FOR TTNDALE, 117 they had heard. And S, Bede did translate S. lohns Gospell into Englishe." i Richard Bayfield was the next to suffer. Against him as an heretic a long list of charges were brought, one of which was : " He being beyond the sea, bought and procured many bokes & treatises of sondry sorts." ^ Among these were Tyndale's New Testament and " the first booke of Moyses, called Gene sis." "He was," says Foxe, "beneficial to M. Tyndall and M. Frith, for hee brought substaunce with hym, and was their owne hande, and soldo all their woorkes and the Germaines woorkes both in Fraunce and in England." ^ Bayfield, after suffering the unprovoked violence of his persecutors, was led to the stake in Smithfield, in the month of November, 1531.* The Public Registers are filled with accounts, not only of those martyred, but of those who were imprisoned, put into stocks, and degraded by every indignity. " So great was the trouble of those tymes," says Foxe, " that it would ouercharge any storye to recite the names of all them which, .... were driuen out of the realme, or were cast out from their goodes aud houses, or brought to open shame by abjuration." ^ These " bitter dales " continued during the next year. The king's mind is engrossed in the public and private affairs of his realm, and yet he finds time to plan again for the arrest of William Tyndale. Sir Thomas Elyot, the man of letters, the friend of Sir Thomas More, and the favorite of the king, is charged with the duty of "seizing Tyndale." The enterprise failed, but the animus of Henry VIII. and his councilors is revealed. Elyot pledged his utmost diligence. "In me," he says, " there shall lack none endeavour." Again, in reference to the hopelessness of the task, he adds : " As far as I can perceive, (Tyndale) hearing of the King's diligence in the apprehension of him, he withdraweth him into such places, where he thinketh to be farthest out of danger." « Next to ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1137. ^ Ibid, p. 1161. 3 Ibid, p. 1161. " lUd, p. 1164. ^ Ibid, p. 1190. * Anderson's Annals, p. 176. 118 ttndale's translation of the n. t. [chap. IIL Tyndale, the man of all others whom the hierarchy wishes just now to apprehend is John Fryth. He was a notable scholar, a friend of the New leaming, an early companion of Tyndale, and his own child in the Gospel. On account of his learning he was selected by Cardinal Wolsey as one of his instructors in his new College at Oxford ; but on account of his religious opinions he was, with a notable band of sufferers,^ shamefully imprisoned in the filthy cellar of that same College. He was released, however, by order of Wolsey, and, as already noted, escaped further persecution by fleeing to the continent. But for some reason not known he returned to England, and through the hatred and " deadly persecution of Sir Thomas More," he was arrested and sent to the tower. When brought before the bishop he refused to recant, and firmly subscribed to his answers these remarkable words : " I Frith do thus thinke, and as I thinke, so haue I said, written, taught, and affirmed, and in my bookes haue published."* He was conse quently delivered over to the civil authorities, conveyed by them to Smithfield, and burned at the stake, on the 4th day of July, 1533. The shameful martyrdom of this innocent man made a deep impression upon the minds of the people. The change has already set in, and the cloud of persecution is being dispersed. The enemies of the truth hate heresy still, but the power of the people is felt in the House of Commons, and henceforth all cases of persons accused for heresy were taken out of the hands of the bishops.' Persecution ceasing for a season, the demand arose anew for more New Testaments. Tyndale is now, 1534, at the house of Thomas Poynts, an English merchant, at Antwerp. ' Chief among whom were M(aster) Clarke, M(a8ieT) Sumner, M(aster) Bettes, Bay ley and Goodman ; "most piked yong men of graue judge ment and sharpe wittes, who conferring together upon the abuses of Be ligion .... were therfore accused of heresie unto the Cardinall and cast into a prison." See Foxe's Acts and Mon. , p. 1174. « Ibid, p. 1178. 2 Burnet's Histwy of the Reformation, I., 170. 1534.] REVISED EDITION, 1534, 119 He is busily engaged in revising his New Testament, The Dutch printers were preparing to put forth another edition ; and when told that Tyndale was about to publish his revised edition, and consequently theirs could not be sold, they re plied: "If he prynte two thousand and we as many, what is so little a noumber for all England ? and we will sel ours better cheap, and therefore we doubt not of the sale." ^ The editors of the fourth Dutch edition employed George Joye to correct the copy. Now, about this time English exiles on the continent were expecting the publication of Tyndale's revised edition ; and when Joye's book fell into their hands, suppos ing it to be Tyndale's New Testament, they brought it to him, with the inquiry, why certain fanciful alterations had been made. This was the first intimation that Tyndale had received, that any such book had been in preparation for the press. He was not a little irritated and hurt, that such liberties had been taken with his translation; and in his Epistle to the Reader, appended to the revised edition, he ad ministered a sharp rebuke, to which Joye in reply, boastfully said : " I am not afraid to answer Master Tyndale in this matter, for all his high learning in Hebrew, Greek and Latin." * In this reply he paid an unintentional compliment to Tyndale's scholarship. The Dutch edition was published in August, 1534,3 In November following, Tyndale's revised edition appeared with the following title: "The New Testament dyligently corrected and compared with the Greek by WiUiam Tyndale and fynished iii the yere of oure Lorde God a. M. D, & XXXIIIJ. in the moneth of November." The second title reads : "The Newe Testament imprinted at Antwerp by Marten Emperowr, Anno M. D. XXXIIIJ." The subjoined collation will show something of Tyndale's care in the work of revision. Many of the changes which he then made have come down to us in bur present English ' Lewis' History of Translations, p. 83. ^ Tyndale's Works, I., Intro., p. Ixii. Parker Soc. edition, 1848. 3 " The only known copy of the edition corrected by Joye is in Mr. Grenville's bequest to the British Museum." Ibid, p. lxi. , note. 120 ttndale's TEANSLATION OF THE: N, T. [CHAP. III. Bible, as the few examples inserted below will show. The readings from the revised edition are taken fi-om Bagster's Hexapla, which is a reprint of the Bristol copy of 1534. The readings from the earlier edition are taken from Fry's fac simile of the Bristol copy of Tyndale's octavo New Testa ment, 1525-6.1 A facsimile noted for its accuracy in every particular. Matt. I. 11. Josias begat Jeconias and hys brethren aboute the tyme of the Captivite of Babilon. Revised edition reads : about the tyme tJiey were caryed awaye to Babylon ; which is followed by the A. V. 13. After they wer ledd captive to Babilon. Revised edition reads : And after they were brought to Babylon ; which is followed by the A. V. 18. The byrthe off Christe was on thys wyse. When hys mother Mary was maryed vnto Joseph. Revised edi tion has : When hys mother Mary was betrouthed to Joseph. 30. . . . behold the agell of the lord apered vnto hi in slepe sainge. Revised edition reads : . . , ap peared vnto him in a dreme. Which is followed by the A. V, 33 and they shall call his name Emanuel, which is as moche to saye be interpretacione as God with vs. Revised edition reads : . . . which is by interpretacion, God with vs. II. 8. . . . and sent them to bethleem saynge ; when ye be come thyder searche dyligently for the child. Revised edition reads: . . . saynge ; Goo and searche dyligently for the chUde. 13. And after that they were warned in ther slepe. Revised edition reads : . . . they were warned of God in a dreame ; and is followed by the A. V. ni. 6 knoledging their synes. Revised edition has : confessynge ; and is followed by the A. V. 10 shalbe hewe doue. Revised edition reads: is hewen doune; and is followed by the A. V. rV^. 8 and shewed him al the kyngdomes of the worlde, and the beauty of them. Revised edition reads : ¦ Prom copy in the Boston Public Library. 1^3*-] QUAETO EDITION, 1535. 121 and all the glorie of them ; and is followed by the A. V. ^ 10. . . . Thou shalt worshyp thy Lorde God. Revised edition reads: . . .the Lorde thy God ; and is followed by the A. V. V. 9. Blessed are the maywiej^raers o/peace. Revised edition has : peacemakers ; and is followed by the A. V. 16. Se that youre light so shyne before men. Revised edition has : Let your light . . , ; and is foUowed by the A. V. VI. 13. Leed vs not into temtacion, but delyvre vs ffrom yvell. Amen. Revised edition adds the doxology ; and is followed by the A. V. 38. Beholde the lyles off the felde. Revised edition has : con- sidre ; and is followed by the A. V. "^II- 31 but he that fulfilleth my fathers will which ys in heven. Revised edition has: dothe ; and is followed by the A. V, 35 and bet vppon that housse, and it waa not over throwen. Revi.sed edition reads : . 'it fell not; and is followed by the A. V. The following is the Lord's prayer from Tyndale's quarto edition of 1525. The Grenville fragment is all that remains of this edition. The following specimen is from Arber's Photo-lithographed facsimile. The original is in Black Letter. Matt. VI. 9-13. 0 oure father, which art in heven halowed be thy name. Let thy kyngdom come. Thy wyll be fulfilled, as well in erth, as hit ys in heven. Geve vs this daye oure dayly breade. And forgeve vs oure treaspases, even as we forgeve them whych treas- pas vs. Lede vs nott in to temptaeion. but de lyvre vs from yvell. Amen. The text of the Lord's prayer in Tyndale's octavo edition corresponds with the above word for word, and therefore is not inserted here. In the revised edition of 1534, the changes are unimportant, excepting the addition of the doxology as 6 122 ttndale's TEANSLATION OF THB N. T, [CHAP. IIL seen below. The text is taken from Bagster's reprint in the Hexapla. Matt. VI. 9-13. O oure father which arte in heven, halowed be thy name. Let thy kyngdome come. Thy wyll be fulfilled, as well in erth, as it ys in heven. Geve vs this daye oure dayly breede. And forgeve vs oure treaspases, even as we forgeve oure trespacers. And leade vs not into temptaeion : but delyver vs from evelJ. For thyne is the kingedome and the power, and the glorye for ever. Amen. The following specimens of Tyndale's translation is from the revised edition of 1534. The first is given with the spelling modernized to show at a glance the resemblance to our present version, Rom. VIII. 6-17. To be carnally minded, is death. But to be spiritually minded is life and peace. Because that the fleshly mind is enmity against God : for it is not obedient to the law of God, neither can be. So then they that are given to the flesh, cannot please God. But ye are not given to the flesh, but to the spirit ; if so be that the spirit of God dwell in you. If there be any man that hath not the spirit of Christ, the same is none of his. If Christ be in you, the body is dead because of sin ; but the spirit is life for righteousness sake. Wherefore if the spirit of him that raised up Jesus from death, dwell in you : even he that raised up Christ from death : shall quicken your mortal bodies, because that this spirit dwelleth in you. Therefore brethren we are now debtors, not to the flesh, to live after the flesh. For if ye live after the flesh, ye must die. But if ye mortify the deeds of the body, by the help of the spirit, ye shall live. For as many as are led by the spirit of God ; they are the sons of God. For ye have not received the spirit of bondage, to fear any more, but ye have received the spirit of adoption, whereby we cry Abba father. The same spirit certifleth our spirit : that we are the sons of God. If we be sons, we are also heirs, the heirs I mean 1534.] SPECIMENS FEOM THE EEVISED EDITION. 123 of God, and heirs annexed with Christ : if so be that we suffer together, that we may be glorified together. 36-30. Likewise the spirit also helpeth our infirmi ties. For we know not what to desire as we ought: but the spirit maketh intercession mightily for us with groanings which cannot be expressed with tongue. And he that searcheth the hearts, know eth what is the meaning of the spirit, for he maketh intercession for the saints according to the pleasure of God. For we know that all things work for the best unto them that love God, which also are called of purpose. For those which he knew before, he also ordained before, that they should be like fashioned unto the shape of his eon, that he might be the first begotten son among many brethren. Moreover which he appointed before, them he also called. And which he called, them also he justified, which he justified, them he also glorified. The following specimen from the edition of 1534 is here given with the original spelling, I. Cor. XIII, 1-13. Though I spake vrith the tonges of men and angels, and yet had no love, I were even as soundinge brasse : or as a tynklynge Cymball. And though I coulde prophesy, and vnderstode all secretes, and all knowledge : yee, yf I had all fayth so that I coulde move mountayns oute of ther places, and yet had no love, I were nothynge. And though I bestowed all my good des to fede the poore, and though I gave my body even that I burned, and yet had no love, it profeteth me nothinge. Love suffereth longe, and is corteous. Love envieth not. Love doth not frowardly, swelleth not dealeth not dishonestly, seketh not her awne, is not provoked to anger, thynketh not evyll, reioyseth not in iniquite : but reioyseth in the trueth, suffreth all thynge, beleveth all thynges, hopeth all thynges, endureth in all thynges. Though that prophesyinge fayle, other tongues 134 ttndale's TEANSLATION OF THE N, T. [CHAP, IIL shall cease, or knowledge vanysshe awaye, yet love falleth never awaye. For oure knowledge is vnparfect, and oure prophesyinge is unpert'et. But when that which is parfect is come, then that which is vnparfet shall be done awaye. When I was a chylde, I spake as a chylde, I vnderstode as a childe, I ymagened as a chylde. But assone as I was a man, I put awaye childesshnes. Now we se in a glasse even in a darke speakynge : but then shall we se face to face. Nowe I knowe vnparf ectly : but then shall I knowe even as I am knowen. Now abideth fayth, hope, and love, even these thre ; but the chefe of these is love. The revised edition of Tyndale's New Testament, 1534, must ever stand as a monument of his originality and faith fulness as a translator. In respect to it, he says : that he had looked it over "with all diligence and compared it unto the Greek ;" and had " weeded out many faults, which lack of help at the beginning and oversight did sow therein." Tyndale translated directly from the Greek. He used the Latin text of Erasmus, but "frequently adheres to the original (in cases) where Erasmus departs from it." ^ He had the Vulgate before him, also Luther's translation ; but he made a scholarly use of them, Tyndale's scholarship was not called in question by his cotemporaries. Even his enemies were inclined to magnify rather than detract from it. Buschius is reported as saying : " That the New Testament was translated by an Englishman, who was so learned in seven languages, Hebrew, Greek, Latin, Italian, Spanish, Enghsh and French, that, whichever he spoke, you would think his native tongue."* Sir Thomas More in his attack upon Tyndale, calls iu question not his knowledge and ability, but his motives as a translator. Hence Tyndale in his answers takes up the several words complained of by More, "as by ' Hallam's Lit. of Europe, I., 880, wte. New York, 1874, 2 Arber's Preface, p. 35. 1525.] THE ENGLISH OF TTNDALE'S TEANSLATION. 125 evil purpose changed," and shows that he sought to free them from a false and private interpretation. The word church, for example, Tyndale changed to congregation, meaning " the whole congregation of them that believe in Christ;" rather than, "the shaven flock of them that shore the whole world." ' Again the word charity, he changed to love ; since as he de clared that, "charity is no known English, in that sense ^hich agape requireth."* He further says: "By this word penance they make the people understand holy deeds of their own enjoining ;" hence he changed it to repentance.^ "So now," he adds, " the cause why our prelates thus rage, and that moveth them to call M (aster) More to help, is not that they find just causes in- the translation, but because they have lost their juggling and feigned terms; wherewith Peter prophesied they should make merchandise of the people." * One of the chief excellencies which lies at the foundation of Tyndale's translation of the New Testament is the sim plicity of its language. The English language in the time of Tyndale had arrived at what may be called the first stage of its maturity. The tendency already was against Latinized stateliness and French elegance. Sir Thomas Elyot, au ac complished author in the reign of Henry VIIL, was compli mented by the king for his freedom from new terms taken from the French. It is recorded of Dean Colet, who died iu 1519, that "he sought to improve his English style by the study of Chaucer and the old poets." Tyndale, as he was translating for the people, studied great plainness of speech. If possible, sometimes he erred on the side of too great home liness in the choice of language; though he nowhere affects purism in style. Besides, at this time the English language was written as it was spoken ; and in this particular it eor- re.sponded with the state of the languages in which the Scrip tures were first written. Tyndale, in defending English trans lations of the Bible, says : " For the Greek tongue agreeth ' Tyndale's Works, IIL, 13. Cambridge, 1850. ' Ibid, p. 30. s Ibid, p. 33. * I^id. V- 34. 126 ttndale's TEANSLATION OF THE N. T. [CHAP. IIL more with the English than with the Latin. And the prop erties of the Hebrew tongue agreeth a thousand times more with the English than with the Latin. The manner of speak ing is both one ; so that in a thousand places thou needest not but to translate it into the Enghsh, word for word ; when thou must seek a compass in the Latin, and yet shall have much work to translate it well-favouredly, so that it have the same grace and sweetness, sense and pure understanding with it in the Latin, and as it hath in the Hebrew. A thousand parts better may it be translated into the English than into the Latin." ^ Then Tyndale after Wycliffe has given us an unaffected Scriptural phraseology, which has stamped itself upon the several translations and revisions made since his time, the same which gives a peculiar charm to the style of our present English Bible. William Tyndale was a child of the New leaming, and a true disciple of Erasmus. The New Testament of Erasmus was his constant companion. At the same time he was a Lollard in spirit and a follower of Wycliffe. He was familiar with the life and writings of Wycliffe, He could berate Eras mus as a flatterer, but has only words of praise for Wycliffe as a preacher of repentance. He may or may not have had a copy of Wycliffe's New Testament before him when he made his translation. Tyndale's translation is in no sense " a full ¦grown Wycliffe." The Wycliffite versions could not have been a standard for Tyndale either in translation or language, for the former was from the Vulgate, and the latter was a ¦century and a half old. Besides, Tyndale affirms distinctly: "I had no man to counterfeit, neither was helped with Eng lish of any that had interpreted the same or such like thing in the scripture before time." * And yet all this does not dis prove a certain close connection between Wychffe and Tyn dale. The old Wycliffite manuscripts were common, and there is no doubt but that Tyndale was familiar with them. These were, up to this time, the only English versions extant. ' Tyndale's Works, I., 148, 149. « Ibid, p. 390. 1525-34,] elegance of expression, 127 And it was customary in those times to read the Bible much in public as well as in private ; also to commit portions of the Scriptures to memory for the individual's own benefit, or for the sake of repeating passages thus learned in social gather ings for the edification of others. So that largely the religious language and Scriptural phraseology of Christian men and women were derived from the Wycliffite versions. To this influence Tyndale was subject, which in itself would consti tute an intimate though an unconscious connection between Tyndale's translation and the Wycliffite versions. Also, upon actual compai-ison very many well-chosen words and phrases are common to these versions, and for which they were not indebted in common to the Vulgate, It is noticeable also that many single words, now obsolete, were used in common by Wycliffe and Tyndale, and continued iu good use till the time of James I., when they were introduced into the Author ized version. This conservating influence of Bible versions upon our English tongue is most easily traced, not only from Wycliffe to Tyndale, but from Tyndale to the Authorized version, and so from 1611 to the present time. But in esti mating the influence of Tyndale's translation upon subsequent versions, and particularly upon our present version, the con clusion may be stated, that while there have been many changes both in the rendering and in the language, and many of them for the better, yet Tyndale's words, sentences, and phraseology have been to a wonderful extent retained. But while the English of Tyndale's translation is replete with the Saxon element of our language ; and while there is a tendency in a few cases to a too great familiarity in diction, yet occasionally there is noticeable a certain elegance of ex pression, made up of words derived from the Latin and French, and yet words which were at the time naturalized. Few if any of these terms are objectionable ; but so far as they have been replaced by simpler terms, in later versions, the change has been for the bettet. As examples, we find in Tyndale such words as ascended, conversacion, certifieth, conspyred. 128 tyndale's translation of thb n. t. [chap. III. deceased, delectation, excommunicat, executed, fame, fortuned, lauding, perceavynge, pertayned, testymonyall, recompence, respyte, suffised, vengeaunce, veritie, and vesture, which may be found below in their several connections : ^ Matt. II. 16. Then Herod percecmynge that he was moocked of the wyse men. The A. V. reads : when hee saw. HI. 7. . . . Who hath taught you to fle from the ven geaunce to come. The A. V. reads : wrath to come. - V. 31 let hym geve her a testymonyall also of the devorcement. The Great Bible, 1539, has: a lettre ; afld the A. V. has : a writing of diuorcemeut. IX, 18. . . . my doghter is euen now deceased. The A. V. has : is euen now dead. XIV. 30. And they dyd all eate, and ixiere suffised. The A. V. has : were filled, 36. . . . that they myght touche the hemme of his vesture only. The A. V. has : his garment.'' XVIII. 36. . . . Sir, geve me respyte. The A. V. has : heme patience with me. XXIV. 6. . . . and of the famne of warres. The A. V. has : rumors of warres. Both of these words, however, are from the French ; the former originally &om the Greek, and the latter from the Latin. Luke II. 3. And this taxing was . . . executed. 4. And Joseph also ascended from Galile. 13. . . . laudynge God and sayinge. . one of the shippes, which perteyned to Simon, 6. And it fortuned in a nother saboth also. . I ¦will recompence the. . had conspyred, . . . shuld be excom municat. Yf the veritie of God appere moare excellent thorow my lye. . in a newe conversacion of the sprete. . certifieth our sprete. II Cor. XII. 10. Therefore have I delectacion in infirmities. The occasional tendency of Tyndale to the use of familiar ' The foUovring examples are taken from Bagster's Hexapla. Lon don, N. D. " Although this word garment is old English derived from the Norman French. V. 3. VI. 6. X. 35. John IX. 33. Rom. III. . 7. VII. 6. VIII. 16. 1525-34.] obsolete words. 129 words and phrases appears in the following examples; though it must be remembered that the language at this period was largely written as it was spoken. Consequently, that many terms which may now be regarded as colloquial, were then authorized by good usage : 7. And when ye praye, bdble not moche. . I wyll paye it every whit. . that which God hath cuppled togedder. . shalbe ester. . swete breed. . good frydaye. ' ' . touche not the packet with one of youre fyngers. . dyd not beleve of thefelowe. . and Manahen, Herode the Tetrarkes nors- felowe. . besechinge that at one tyme or another. . that one sweU not agaynst another. . a lytle leven soioreth the whole lompe of dowe. . kepe holy daye. . which choppe and chaunge with the worde of God. Col. II. 18. Let no man make you shote at a lorong {marke). Heb. VIII. 1. Of the thynges which we have spoken, ite is thepyth. In the natural growth and decay to which language is sub ject, many words in Tyndale's translation have become obso lete ; some only in their meaning, while others have suffered both in form and meaning. In the first class, we have such words as : angle, hook ; avoyd, depart ; aught, owed ; by and by, immediately ; come, wheat or barley ; dyd on, put on ; gostly, spiritually ; knowledge, confess ; meate, food ; diseasest, troublest; quicke, living; scrip, small bag; wittes, mind; and wode, tree. All of which may be found below in their connections : Then sayde Jesus vnto hym. Avoyd Satan. . nor yet scrip towardes your iomey. . and they toke vp of the broken meate that was lefte vii baskets full. XVn. 37. . . . goo to the see and cast in thyne angle : Matt. VI. 7. XVIIL 36. XIX 6. XXVI. 3. 17. XXVIL 63. Luke XL 46. John IX. 18. Acts XIII. 1. Rom. I. 10. I Cor. IV. 6. V. 6. 8. n Cor. IL 17. Matt. rV. 10. X. 9. XV. 37. Mark V. 35. John VI. 31. XIX. 3. Rom. VHI. 5. X. 9. xn. 1. 3. Rev. XXII. 3. 130 TTNDALE'S TEANSLATION OF THB N. T. [CHAP. III. XVIII. 34. . . . one was broughte -vnto him, which ought him ten thousande talentis. . why diseasest thou the master eny farther? . the ship was by and by at the londe whyther they went. And they dyd on him a purple garment. . But they that are spirituall, are £ro«Wymynded. 9. For yf thou shalt knowledge with thy mouth. . that ye make youre bodyes aquicke sacriflse. . by the renuynge of youre •wittes. and of ether syde of the ryver was there wode of life. The following are examples of the second class, in which the words are obsolete in form as well as in meaning : arede, prophesy ; bevjreyeth, betrayeth ; closse, field ; pill, make a gain; gobbets, fragments; grece, stairs; harbourless, shelter less; lyvelod, land; partlettes, handkerchiefs; sharnfastness, modesty ; woot not, know not ; yerwhyle, already ; which are inserted below in their respective connections. Matt. XIII. 37. . . . Syr sowedest not thou good seed in thy closse ? XIV. 30. And they gadered vp of the gobbets that remayned. XXV. 43. I was herbourlesse, and ye lodged me not. XXVI. 70. . . .1 woot not what thou sayst. 73. . . . for thy speache bewreyeth the. Mark XIV. 65. . . . arede vnto vs. John IX. 37. . . . I tolde you yerwhyle. Acts V. 3. . . . and kepe awaye parte of the pryce of the lyvelod. XIX. 13. . . . so that from his body, were brought vnto the sicke, napkyns or partlettes, and the diseases departed from them. XXI. 35. And when he came vnto a grece. II. Cor. XII. 17. Did I piU you by eny of them which I sent vnto you 1 Though this word still lives in pillage. I. Tim. II. 9. Lyk'wyse also the women that they araye them selves in comlye aparell with shamfastness, and discrete behaveour. In Tyndale's orthography, as we might expect, archaic forms occur continually. Many of which found a place in the first edition of King James' Bible. The following will seiwe as 1525-34.] AN OLD ENGLISH IDIOM. 131 examples : awne, own ; brent, burnt ; brydde, bird ; coostes, coasts ; faute, fault ; fothe, foot ; goo, go ; lotvse, loose ; moe, more; monethes, months; noo, no; rotte, root; se, see ; the, thee ; then, than ; thorow, through ; ynough, enough. One of the peculiar characteristics of Tyndale's translation is the presence of an old Enghsh idiom, in which the personal pronoun, as a nominative, follows the verb. An idiom which was adopted by subsequent versions, including that of King James' Bible. Occurring as it does constantly in the Gospels, it imparts a quaintness to the style, which is by no means un pleasant. Take the following as illustrations : ' Then brought they . . . him that a lytell before was blynde. Then spake they vnto the blynde agayne. Then agayne called they the man that was blynde. Then sayde they to him agayne. Then rated they him. Then after that sayd he to his disciples. . sayde I not vnto the. This spake he not of him selfe. This sayde he, not that he cared for the pooer. . but therfore c«m« /vnto this houre. . These thinges spake Jesus and departed. , Not as the worlde geveth, geve Jvnto you. . therfore as the father gave me commaund- ment, even so do I. Hence forth call I you not servauntes. These thinges sayde I not vnto you at the begynninge. . And yet am I not alone. These wordes spake Jesus. Now come I to the, and these wordes speake I in the worlde. . and for their sakes sanctify I my selfe. . of them which thou gavest me, have I not lost one. In 1535 appeared Tyndale's second revision of his trans lation of the New Testament. In fact, during this year there John IX. 13. 17. 34 36. 38. XI. 7. 40. 51. xn. 6. 37. 36. XIV. 37. 31. XV. 15. XVI. 4 33. XVIL 1. 13. 19. xvm. 9. apla. This collation is from Tyndale's edition of 1534. See Bagster's Hex- 133 ttndale's translation of the n. t. [chap. III. were two issues. One of these had the monogram G. H.^ (1535—1534. G. H.) attached to the second title. This is probably a genuine Tyndale, since its readings were adopted by Eogers in his Matthewe's Bible, It was doubtless selected by him as Tyndale's last and best work. Through Matthewe's Bible the readings of this edition of Tyndale passed into King James' Bible, The other issue of 1535 was doubtless a pirated edition, and is marked by a peculiar orthography. This peculiarity in spelling is explained by Mr, Offor and others as having been adopted intentionally by Tyndale in his attempt to adapt the text to the common people, in the fulfilment of his pledge to give the New Testament to the uneducated in their own tongue,' But a more probable explanation is, that this false orthography was the result of Flemish pronunciation of the English language. The compositor spelling from sound as the copy was read to him.^ The following are exam ples of this peculiarity : faether, maester, spaeke, faeyth, hoepe, moether, broether, aboede, woeld, stoene, oones, oonly, hoow, ¦whoom, poure, tought, holly cite, cloocke, and tacken.* Tyndale's labors as a translator extended into the Old Tes tament, and doubtless, had his life been spared, he would have completed the whole Bible. The five books of Moses were translated by him, and published separately, each with its own title-page. The books of Genesis and Numbers were printed in Black Letter, the others in Eoman character. They were all bound together and reissued in 1534. The book of Jonah was translated by Tyndale in 1531, but was not reprinted. There has been some doubt as to how much of the Old Testa ment Tyndale translated. Hall, the chronicler, claims that ' This monogram, as surmised by Mr. Stephens, " means the translator, Gillaume Hytchens, the assumed name of William Tyndale." See Cata logue of Caxton Exhibition, p. 90. London, N. D. 2 Offer's Memoirs of Tyndale, prefixed to N. T., p. 83. London, 1836. 5 Eadie's History of English Bible. I., 334. London, 1876. * For a full text of these words, see Francis Pry's Bibliographical De scription of Tyndale's New Testaments, pp. 63, 04, 65. Harvard College Library. 1534.] OLD testament translations. 133 beside the New Testament and the Pentateuch, he completed the books of Joshua, Judges, Euth, the four books of Kings, the two books of Chronicles, Nehemiah, and the first book of Esdras, and the Prophet Jonah. But whatever Tyndale may have left behind in manuscript, he only published, besides the New Testament, the Pentateuch and the book of Jonah.* That Tyndale translated directly from the Hebrew and that he was a master of that language, there is no longer any question.* But Tyndale's labors are drawing to a close. During the year 1534 he dwelt openly at the house of Thomas Poyntz, in Ant werp. He had never been so free as now from the fear of his enemies. The tidings from England continued to be most fiatteriug. The New Testament party was growing daily in strength, and was headed by Queen Anne Boleyn,' who, accord ing to Burnet, "' reigned iu the King's Heart as absolutely as he did over his Subjects."^ Next to her stood Archbishop Cranmer, whose heart, if not his hand, was always with the right ; and then Cromwell, the king's vicegerent in ecclesiastical affairs, who though not always true, yet from the first may be reckoned among the friends of the Bible. But there was at the same time the Eomish party, strong in numbers and crafty in council ; but just now seemingly powerless and inactive. All these things were encouraging, and so flattering that they proved most disastrous to Tyndale, in that he was put off his guard, and thus subjected to the power of his enemies. The following story of his base betrayal is recorded by Foxe. The 1 " A copy of Tyndale's translation of the book of Jonah was found in 1861, by Lord A. Hervey, which was reproduced in facsimile by Mr. F. Fry, 1863." ' See the question fully argued in Eadie's Hist, of Eng. Bible,!., 309-315. ' In recognition of her protection to the friends of the New Testa ment, Tyndale presented her with a copy of his revised N. T., printed on vellum. This book is preserved in the British Museum, though not in the original binding. ^ History of the Reformation, I., 171, 173. London, 1681. 134 TTNDALE'S TRANSLATION OF THE N, T, [CHAP, III. betrayer was one Henry Philipps. Tyndale's lodgings were in the house of Poyntz, at Antwerp. He was accustomed at this time to dine, by in-vitation, with the English mer chants of the city. At these social gatherings he met fre quently with this man Philipps, who by his learning and ad dress commended himself to the friendship of Tyndale. In the meantime Tyndale invited him to his own lodgings, and " shewed him his bookes and other secretes of hys study, so little did Tyndall then mistrust thys traytour," Philipps' pur pose was formed, and he set out for Brussels to visit the court. The emperor is just now engaged in a bitter controversy Tvith Henry VIII, respecting Lady Catherine, who is aunt to the emperor. This circumstance was favorable to the reception of Philipps, who was a representative of the Romish party. He was successful in obtaining the Procurator General, with other officers, with whom he returned to Antwerp. " The whiche," says Foxe, "' was not done with small charges and expences, from whom so euer it came." * Thereby intimating his opinion that the Eomish Church was at the bottom of this sad affair, with Phihpps as its agent. Foxe in further recording the particulars says ; that in the absence of Poyntz from Antwerp, Philipps arranged the officers at the street door of his house, and going up to Tyndale's room, as a friend requested of him the loan of forty shillings, under the pretense of having lost his purse, "The whiche was easie," adds Foxe, " to be had of him, if he had it; for in the wylye subtilities of thys world he was simple and unex- perte." Philipps, to keep up his base show of friendly confi dence, invited Tyndale to dine with him, but Tyndale declined, saying: " I go forth this day to dynner, and you shall go with me and be my geste, where you shalbe welcome," But as they went forth, Phihpps pointed him out to the officers who were waiting at the door. They arrested him and took him before the Procurator General ; and thence to the castle of Vilvorde, distant some eighteen miles from Antwerp ; not ' Acts and Monuments, pp. 1337, 1338. 1536.] THE ARREST OF TTNDALE, 135 however till they had searched his room " and sent away all that was there of M. Tyndals, as well hys bookes as other thynges." * The English merchants of Antwerp made every possible effort for Tyndale's release. They apphed to the Brussels court, also to the English court, and received favorable an swers, and when Poyntz, who was especially active, was about to obtain letters authorizing the delivering up of Tyndale, the sly and wily Philipps frustrated all, by entering complaint against Poyntz, " that he had ben a succourer of Tyndall and was one of the same opinion,"" And on this charge he had him arrested, Poyntz, after suffering imprisonment some four months, escaped. But Tyndale remained in prison about a year aud a half, having been aiTested on the 23d or 24th of May, 1535,° There is but one opinion in respect to Tyndale's seizure, that it was through the connivance of Eomish bishops. Although the English authorities pursued Tyndale, now by one agent and now by another, yet the dis grace of his final betrayal fastens upon this Henry Philipps, with all the circumstances pointing to the mysterious hand of Eomish authority. " Tyndale was betrayed and taken," says Hall in his Chronicles, " as many said, not without the help and procurement of some bishops of the realm." Poyntz had no doubt but that the arrest of Tyndale had been made " ' by procurement out of England,' but unknown to the king's grace." * The year 1536 is most memorable in the history of Tyndale's life, also in the history of his translation of the New Testa ment; for while it witnessed the binding of the translator, it likewise witnessed the unfettering of the translation. In Ant werp the press was busy in printing edition after edition of his revised New Testament. But above all Tyndale's New Testament is this year printed in London, which constitutes an important epoch, in that it was the first printing of the ' Acts and Monuments, p. 1328. ' Md, p. 1339 8 Edie's History of EngUsh Bible, I., 339. ¦* lbid, p. 339. 136 ttndale's translation of THE N. T. [CHAP. IIL English Scriptures on English ground. This London edition was a reprint of the revised edition of 1534. It was pub lished by Godfray, who favored the evangelical party.* Tyndale probably did not live to see a copy of this London Testament, but aware of its progress he must have been filled with joy, that so soon his fondest hopes would be realized. The title of this volume reads : " The Newe Testament yet ones agayne corrected by W. Tyndale : And in many places amended, where it scaped before by neglygence of the printer, Newly printed in the yere of our lorde MDXXXVI." At the end of the book are these words : " God saub the ETNGE and all HIS WELL-WTLLERS." The apostle Paul when a prisoner at Eome, with death staring him in the face, wrote to Timothy : 77ie cloke that I left at Troas with Carpus, when thou comest, bring {with thee,) and the books (but) especially the parchments.^ This request unimportant in itself, yet on account of the apostle's circum stances, is one of great interest. So likewise the following extracts from Tyndale's letter whUe a prisoner at Vilvorde, have a touching interest. " Your lordship will request the procureur to be kind enough to send me from my goods, which he has iu possession, a warmer cap, for I suffer ex tremely from cold in the head, being afflicted with a perpetual catarrh, which is considerably increased in the cell, A warmer coat also, for that which I have is very thin ; also a piece of cloth to patch my leggings ; my shirts are also worn out. He has also a woUen shirt of mine, if he will be kind enough to send it 1 wish also his permis sion to have a candle in the evening, for it is wearisome to sit alone in the dark. But above all, I entreat and beseech your clemency to be urgent with the Procureur, that he may kindly permit me to have my Hebrew Bible, Hebrew Grammar, and Hebrew Dictionary, that I may spend my time with that * Compare note in Westcott's Hist. Eng. Bible, p. 50. London, 1873. 2 IL Tim., IV., 13. 1536.] THE CHARACTER OF TTNDALE. 137 study. And in return, may you obtain your dearest wish, provided always that it be consistant with the salvation of your soul." * A commission was at last appointed for Tyndale's triaL For the law of the Low countries grants to him at least the form of a trial. He is permitted to have an advocate, but prefers to answer for himself. The commission consisted of four doctors of Louvain, which University was only nine or ten miles from the town of Vilvorde. From the first Tyndale looked for neither justice or mercy at the hands of his enemies. " If they burn me," he said, " they shall none other thing than I look for." And so it happened even as he expected. For " at last," says Foxe, " after much reason ynge, when no reason would seme, although he deserued no death, hee was condemned." * This took place on the 10th of August, 1536. On the 6th of October following, Tyndale was led forth to the place of execution. He was first chained to the stake, then strangled, and then burned. Just before his death, he cried out, "with a feruent zeal, and a loud voyce: 'Lorde open the Kyng of Englandes eyes!"^ From the testimony of those who came in direct contact with Tyndale we may learn something of the excellence of his character. The Procurator General declared him to be "a learned, a good, and a godly man." Foxe further records, that through the power of Tyndale's doctrine and the sincerity of his life, the jail-keeper, his daughter, and others of his house hold, were converted to Christianity. Others in the castle, ' who were conversant with Tyndale while there a prisoner, are reported as saying : " That if he were not a good Christen ' Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, L, 311, 343. A photograph copy of this autograph letter may be found in Fry's Bibliographical Description of Tyndall s Editions of the New Testament, p. i 4. " The letter has neither date nor superscription. But there is not the slightest doubt that it was written at Vilvorde aud addressed to the Governor of the Castle, the Marquis of Bergen with whom Cromwell had already interceded in Tyndale's favor." 2 Acts and Monuments, p. 1339. ' Tbid, p. 1329. 138 ttndale's TRANSLATION OF THE N. T, [CHAP, IIL man, they could not tell whom to trust," The estimate of John Frith, who for many years had been a most intimate friend of Tyndale, is expressed in a few words : " I am sure," he wrote, "that for hys learnyng and judgement in Scripture, he were more worthy to be promoted then all the Byshops in England," ^ The words of Foxe himself are : " The worthy vertues and doynges of this blessed Martyr, who for hys payne- full trauailes, and singular zeale to his countrey, may be called in these our dayes, an Apostle of England," * The influence of Tyndale's life is by no means to be limited to his own age, for it has come down through the ages to the present time, and shall go on so long as the English language is spoken, and the English Scriptures are read. Yea, the influence of Wil liam Tyndale shall be felt by every heathen nation among whom English or American missionaries labor and translate the Scriptures, But the immediate effect of his life-work was to create and in part supply a demand for the Holy Scriptures in the language of the people, ' Acts and Monuments, p. 1330. ' Ihid, p. 1330. niLES ^©¥El^i^LEo CHAPTEE IV. COVERDALE'S BIBLE. A. D. 1535. WHEN the New Testament of Erasmus found its way, 1516, into the Universities of Oxford and Cambridge, there was a beginning of the Eeformation in England. Learn ing, now reviving and revived, apphed itself to the Holy Scrip tures. The study of the Greek language occasioned such opposition on the part of the papists, that Henry VIII. sent his royal letters to the University of Oxford, " to allow and encourage that study among the young men." The friends of the Old learning carried the war into the pulpit, and warned each one of their hearers with the cry: "Take care of Greek, lest tou become an heretic ; avoid Hebrew, lest TOir BECOME LIKE Jews." ' It is related of a certain preacher that, in a sermon before Henry VIIL, "he railed violently against Greek learning and New Interpretations of the Scrip ture After sermon, Henry sent for the divine who had preached, and appointed a solemn disputation, ...between the preacher opposing, and Sir Thomas More defending, the use of the Greek tongue. More began with an eloquent apol ogy But the divine instead of replying to the arguments of More, fell upon his knees, and implored pardon of the king, saying, that 'what he had done was by the impulse of the Spirit.' 'Not the Spirit of Christ,' rejoined Henry, 'but the spirit of infatuation.' The king then asked him, ' whether he had read the writings of Erasmus, against which he had de claimed.' To this he answered in the negative 'I have read,' said he, 'something they call Moria.' {Moriae Encomium, The Praise of Folly.) 'Yes,' rephed Pace, 'may it please your ' Townley's IlluMrations of Biblical Literature, IL, 347. London, 1831. 140 coverdale's bible, [chap. IV. highness, such a subject is fit for such a reader.' At last, the preacher declared that he ' was now better reconciled to the Greek tongue, because it was derived from the Hebrew,' Upon which, the king, who was amazed at the ignorance of the man, dismissed him; but with an express charge, that he should never again preach at court," ^ At Cambridge there was the same opposition ; yet the study of the Scriptures was thought to be open to all. Erasmus, however, tells us, that one college at least, at Cambridge, for bade the study of the New Testament. But whatever the opposition, there arose very early a true spirit of inquiry. For it was here Tyndale first met with Erasmus' New Testament. Here also John Fryth, with his knowledge of mathematics, obtained a personal knowledge of the saving power of the Gospel. Here, likewise, Thomas Bilney, troubled in spirit, when he could find no hope or comfort from the penances im posed by the Church of Eome, purchased a New Testament, and in reading the passage. This is a faithful saying and worthy of all acceptation, that Christ Jesus came into the world to save sinners, of whom I am chief, he says : " This one sen tence, through God's instruction and inward teaching, which I did not then perceive, did so exhilarate my heart, being be fore wounded with the guilt of my sins, and being almost in despair, that immediately I felt a marvellous comfort and quietness, insomuch that my bruised bones leapt for joy." * The conversion of Bilney seems to have been the beginning of a genuine revival of religion. Having found Jesus in his own experience, he was zealous in his efforts to lead others to him. Among his first converts were Thomas Arthur and Hugh Lat imer. The latter had been a zealous papist. He was witty, sarcastic, and eloquent, and bid fair to become the successful champion of the Eomish Church against the New opinions now becoming so prevalent. But Bilney, observing his mis guided zeal, went to his chamber and desired him to hear his ' Townley's Illustrations of Biblical Literature, IL, pp. 348, 349. ' Anderson's Annals, pp. 59, 60. London, 1863. 1526-7.] RELIGIOUS awakening. 141 confession. "The hearing whereof," says Fuller, " (improved by God's Spirit) so wrought on Latimer, that of almost a Per- secutour, he became a zealous Promoter of the Truth." i His " blunt preaching," as Fuller characterizes it, was remarkable for its plainness and simplicity in matter, and seriousness and fervency in manner. Dr. Eobert Barnes was another one of the converts of Bilney. After Barnes returned from the con tinent he introduced a higher standard of learning at the University, "where by his readings, disputations and preach ing, he became famous and mighty in the Scriptures, preach ing ever against Bishops and Hypocrites ; and yet did not see ... .his outward idolatry till that good Master Bilney converted him wholly unto Christ." These brethren were inspired with a true evangelical spirit. Not only did they preach to the students and those who flocked to hear them, but carried the Gospel into prisons and lazar houses of the city. Not only so, but leaving the town they traveled from place to place, preaching the Gospel of the Kingdom. Thus began a revival of true religion and Apos- tohcal preaching. And from what we learn of the times, such revival was sadly needed. The discourses pronounced by the monks and friars, says Burnet, "on the Holy-days, were rather Panegyricks on the Saint, or the vain magnifying of some of their Eeliques In Lent there was a more solemn and serious way of Preaching Yet these (discourses) generally tended to raise the value of some of the Laws of the Church, such as Abstinence at that time. Confession, with other Cor poral Severities ; or some of the little devices, that both in flamed a blind Devotion, and drew Money ; such as Indulgences, Pilgrimages, or the enriching the Shrines, and Eeliques of the Saints And the design of their Sermons was rather to raise a present heat, which they knew afterwards how to manage, than to work a real Eeformation on their Hearers." * But the ' Church History of Britain. The History of the University of Cam bridge, p. 103. London, 1655. Also Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1903. ' Mstory of the Reformation, L, 316, 317. London, 1681. 142 coverdale's bible. [chap. IV. true preaching of the Gospel prevailed, and societies of " Chris tian Broders " were formed in London, Cambridge, Oxford, and other places. Bible readers and lay preachers also, to the great horror of the spirituality, greatly aided in the spread of the New opinions. Too httle is known of the labors of such men as " Old Father Hacker," who to the service of Bible reader afterwards added that of New Testament distributer. The particulars of his labors as he went from house to house, reading and expounding the Scriptures, must be left to easy conjecture, while history relates the facts of his arrest, ex amination, and persecution by the bishop of London.^ The Church in the house had existed secretly among the Lollards for more than a century, but now it began to seek a more open expression and recognition. At first these Christian brethren, like the Lollards, met in secret for conference, prayer, and reading the Scriptures, but as their numbers increased, and persecution abated, they grew more hopeful and bold. In the mean time the work received a new impetus from the introduction of Tyndale's translation of the New Testament. These newly-printed Testaments were scattered broadcast, and the people gathered them up gladly, for they contained the word of God in their own tongue. This English Testament of Tyndale did for the common people what the Greek Testa ment of Erasmus had done for the Cambridge doctors. The tree of leaming is now bearing its legitimate fruit. Tyndale's purpose is realized in that the people with the New Testament in their own language may read and judge for themselves as to the truth or error of what is preached to them. Arthur and Bilney not only go from place to place preaching, but they distribute these Testaments ; while Hugh Latimer maintains publicly from the pulpit in Cambridge : " That the Holy Scriptures ought to be read in the English Tongue of all Christen People, whether they were Priests or Lay-men."* 1 D'Aubigne's Hist, of Bef „ V., 384. Also pages 104, 105, above. '' Strype's Memorials of Archbishop Cranmer, B. IIL, Ch. XVIIL, p 369. London, 1694. 1529,] LATIMER'S REPLT TO FRIAR BUCKINGHAM, 143 Whereupon the papists said : " If Latimer so extol the blessings of Scripture, we must by a sermon show its dangers." The adroit Prior Buckingham is chosen to combat from the pulpit the heresy of reading the Scriptures in English. But hsten to his arguments, and mark his folly. Imitating Latimer's cel ebrated Card Sermon, and " thinkyng to make a great hand agaynst M. Latymer, .... brought out his Christenmas dice castjTig there to his audience, cinque and quater; meanyng by the cinque fine places in the new Testament, and the fonre Doctours by the quater, by which his cinque quater, he would proue that it was not expedient the Scripture to be in Eng lishe, lest the ignoraunt and vulgare sort through the occasion therof, might happely be brought in daunger toleaue their vocation, or els to runne into some inconuenience: As for ex ample the Plowman when he heareth this in the Gospel ; No man that layth his hand on the plowgh, and looketh backe, is meete for the kingdoms of God, might peraduenture hearyng this, cease from his plough. Likewise the Baker when he heareth that a litle leauen corrupteth a whole lumpe of dow, may percase leaue our bread unleauened, and so our bodyes shalbe unseasoned. Also the simple man, when he heareth in the Gospell : If thyne eye offende thee,plucke it out, and cast it from thee, may make him selfe blind, and so fill the world fuU of beggars. These with other mo, this Clerkely Friar brought out to the number of fine, to proue his purpose." ^ In the afternoon of the same day, an eager throng "as well of the Uniuersitie as of the town, both Doctors and other grad uates," gathered in the church to hear the reply of Latimer. In the course of his sermon Latimer so ridiculed the friar's " bold reasons " drawn from the improbable actions of plough men, bakers, and " simple men," should they be permitted to read the Scriptures, that " the vanitie of the Frier might to all men appeare." Then taking up the subject of figurative lan guage he explained its use not only in Scripture but in com mon speech, adding that " euery speach hath his Metaphors ' Foxe's Ai^s and Monuments, p. 1904. 1596. 144 coverdale's bible. [chap, iv. and lyke figuratiue significations, so common and vulgar to all men that the very Paynters do paynt them in walles and in houses ; As for example (saith he, lookyng towards the Friar that sat ouer agaynst hym) when they paynt a foxe preaching out of a Friars coule, none is so mad to take this to be a foxe that preacheth, but know well enough the meanynge of the matter, which is to paynt out vnto vs, what hypocrisie, craft, and subtile dissimulation lyeth hyd many times in these friers coules, wiUyng vs therby to beware of them. In fine. Friar Buckingham with this Sermon was so bashed, that neuer after he durst peepe out of the Pulpit agaynst M. Latymer." * This took place in the winter of 1529. The friars and monks were elated by Buckingham's sermon. They said : " These heretics are silenced." But after Latimer had replied, the bishops said : "We must cease to reason and apply authority. The best way to answer these Gospellers is to prevent their speaking." This counsel prevailed, and soon after Latimer was silenced by his bishop, and persecution on account of "religious opinion began afresh. During these years there was a quiet student at Cambridge who was the pupil of Friar Barnes. He was carried away, as were others, with the eloquence of Latimer and Bilney. He belonged to the brotherhood of the Augustines, but was in sympathy with the reformers, and attended the assemblies at the " White Horse," where the Gospellers met for mutual help and instruction.* This friend and pupil of Barnes was Myles Coverdale. Very little is known of his early life. The year 1488 is put down by his biographers as the date of his birth.* He was educated at Cambridge in the house of the Augustine friars, and assumed priest's orders about the year 1514. When Dr. Barnes was arrested and taken to London to answer before Cardinal Wolsey, at the close of the year 1526, Coverdale ac- ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1904. ^ In mockery these friends of the Gospel were styled Germans, stig. matizing them as followers of Luther. 2 Memorials of Myles Coverdale, p. 1. London, 1838. 1527,] THE revival AT BUMSTEDE, 145 companied him. By the decision of the Cardinal the only alternative left to Barnes was either "to abjure or burn." Strongly urged by his friends he chose the former, and by the injunction laid upon him performed a most humiliating pen ance at St. Paul's, at which the Cardinal and his retinue at tended in great pomp. The master fallen, the scholar took warning. It is recorded of Coverdale that from this time " he gave himself wholly up to propagating the truth of the gos pel." ^ Cromwell was a friend and patron of Coverdale. As early as 1527 they met at the house of Sfr Thomas More, when Cromwell advised him to enter upon the study of sacred learning ; but warned him against a too open expression of his evangelical sentiments. For, though Cromwell was in sym pathy with the New opinions, yet he was shrewd and politic, Coverdale, acting upon the advice of his friend, gave himself to study; but his sympathy with Bilney and Latimer in their work of preaching the Gospel, together with a report of a re ligious meeting held in the county of Essex, drew him from his retreat. For five or six years the leaven of the Gospel had been working among the people, and with the circulation of Tyndale's translation of the New Testament the spirit of in quiry was increased, resulting in a genuine revival of religion. In 1527, John Tyball, of Bumstede, in Essex, according to his own deposition, visited Friar Barnes in London,^ and ob tained from him a New Testament in English. He and Thomas Hilles had sought the acquaintance of Barnes, be cause they heard that he was a good man, and " wold have his eownsel in the New Testament." Further they showed the said Barnes, that " one Sir Eichard Fox, curate of Bumstede, by ther means was wel entred into therleruyng; & sayd, that they thowghte to gett hym hole in shorte space." Whereupon they desired Barnes that he would write a letter ' Memorials of Myles Coverdale, pp. 11, 13. '' Barnes, after his humiliation, was sent to the Fleet, where he was confined for six months ; but afterwards he was made a free prisoner at the Augustine Friars, in London, where he received ¦visits from hia brethren, 7 146 coverdale's bible, [chap, iv, to the curate exhorting him, " that he wold continew in that he had begon," ^ The curate did so continue and with him also a grey friar of Colchester, who was another one of Tyball's converts. At this same Colchester, which was in the county of Essex, there lived a worthy man named John Pykas. He had received a manuscript copy of Paul's Epistles from his mother, with this advice : " ly ve after the maner and way of the said Epistoles and Gospels, and not after the way that the church doth teche," Afterward he bought in Colchester a New Testament in English, and "payd for it foure shillinges,* he kept and read it thorowghly many tymes," Having himself accepted the truth of the Gospel, he began to teach it to others, affirming : that " there is no baptysm, but of the Holy Ghost," that confession must needs be made to God, and not " made to a pryst," and that men " should pray only to God and to no saints." After hear ing Bilney preach at Ipswich, he pronounced the sermon "most goostly and made best for his purpose and opinions, as any that ever he herd in his lyef." * It was this revival at Bumstede that attracted Coverdale, and he preached there in the spring of 1528. Among his hearers was an Augustine monk named Topley, who was sup plying the place of Friar Fox in his absence. Topley had recently read Wycliffe's Wicket, a book belonging to Fox, and his mind was sore troubled. But through the public preaching and private instruction of Coverdale he found peace in believing in Jesus as his only Saviour, These " brothren in Christ," as they called themselves, held frequent Gospel meetings in private houses, also in the halls of great mansions. These Gospellers were characterized by their boldness and self assertion. They already claimed to be a Church because "we pray in common and that consti tutes a Church." Latimer, Coverdale and Bilney, willingly ' Strype's Ecclesiastical Memorials, V., App. 368, 369. ^ Equal in modern values to about $15.00. ^ Strype's Ecclesiastical Memorials, I., 133, 134, 1530.] CROMWELL'S PATRONAGE. 147 recognized these incomplete societies in which the members met simply as disciples. ^ The Eomish bishops watched this religious movement with great uneasiness ; and they determined to check it. Public visitations were appointed; and the suspected and accused were severely dealt -with. Among others Coverdale was ac cused before the bishop of London, In a quiet way, how ever, he was withdrawn from public notice. Possibly this was done through the intervention of his patron, both for the sake of safety and for his appointed work of translating the Scriptures. The whereabouts of Coverdale from 1528 to 1536, is left almost entirely to conjecture. According to Foxe, he went at the close of 1528 to Hamburgh, by appoint ment^ to aid Tyndale in translating the Pentateuch, Though the story of Foxe enters into particulars and would seem to have had some foundation, yet so far as the laboring together of Coverdale and Tyndale is concerned, the probabilities are against it. The patronage of Cromwell is against any such prearrangement. Coverdale was doubtless in sympathy with Tyndale in his work, but he was more, though not altogether, in sympathy with Cromwell and the moderate party, who favored the Bible in English, but wished the translation from the Latin to be in Eomish phrase. Constitutionally and practically Coverdale was a compromiser, and his " speciali translacyon" was undertaken as a compromise. However, j " Not as a checker," he says, " not as a reprouer, or despyser of other mens translacyons." * Coverdale sets forth the spirit of his undertaking, when he says : " Be not thou offended therfore (good Eeader) though one call a scrybe, that another calleth a lawyer; or elders, that another calleth father and mother ; or repentaunce, that another calleth pennaunce or amendment. For yf thou be not disceaued by ' D'Aubigne's History of the Reformation, V., 384. Am. Tr. Soc. edition, N. D. " Prologue, Coverdale's Bible, p. 3. Bagster's Reprint, London, N. D, 148 coverdale's bible. [chap, IV, mens tradicions thou shalt fynde nomore dynersite betwene these termes then betwene foure pens and a grote. And this maner have I vsed in my translacyon, callyng it in some place pennaunce, that in another place I call repentaunce, and that not onely because the interpreters haue done so before me, but that the aduersaries of the trueth may se, how that we abhorre not this worde pennaunce (as they vntmly reporte of vs) no more then the interpreters of latyn abhorre penitere, whan they reade resipiscere. Onely our hartes desyre vnto God, is, that his people be not blynded in theyr vnderstond- yng, lest they beleue pennaunce to be ought saue a very re pentaunce, amendment, or conuersyon vnto God, and to be an vnfayned new creature in Christ, and to lyue acordyng to his lawe. For els shall they fal in to the olde blasphemy of Christes blonde, and beleue, that they them selues are able to make satisfaccion vnto God for theyr awne synnes, from the which erroure god of his mercy and plenteous goodnes pre- serue all his." ^ Though Coverdale's work as a translator was undertaken as a compromise, yet he yielded nothing of his evangelical spirit, neither does he in the least compromise his conscience. For further evidence that Coverdale was under the patron age of Cromwell, we have his letter written to CromweU in 1531, or 1532, in which, after referring to their conversation at the house of Sir Thomas More, he adds : " Now I begyne to taste of Holy Schryptures ; with the godly savour of holy and awncyent Doctoures, vnto whose knowlege I can not attayne, without dyversyte of bookys Nothyng in the world I desyre, but bookys Morover as tuching my behavour (your Mastyrschypes mynde onse knowne) wyth all lowlynes I offer my self, not only to be ordred in all thynges, as schall pleyse your wysdome." * If the conjectured date of this letter be correct then in 1531, Coverdale was at Cambridge and entering upon the work of translating the ' Prologue, Coverdale's Bible, p. 4. ' Memorials of Coverdale, App. No. 1, p. 193. London, 1838. 1530.] HENRT VIII. AND THE ENGLISH BIBLE. 149 Bible. But whether at home or abroad, he labors in secret. It is an open question whether Coverdale had other patrons than Cromwell. Some have thought that Sir Thomas More was at least aware of Coverdale's enterprise. Evidently there were those who took a substantial interest in his work, since he himself declares that he was emboldened to undertake it as " other men were moved to do the cost thereof," Year by year Tyndale's New Testament made friends for the Gospel, and also stirred up the hatred of its enemies. Be tween these two extremes there sprang up a moderate party, of which Coverdale was a leading representative. There were many curates that were well learned, who were exhorting their parishioners "to believe contrary to the Catholic faith." Bishop Nix, in May, 1530, wrote : " There is a Colledg in Cam bridg, called Gunnel haule, of the foundation of a Bp. of Norivich. I hear of no clerk, that hath commen out lately of that Colledg, but savoryth of the frying pan, tho he speak never so holily." ^ In this same letter the good bishop com plains both of the number and boldness of these heretics and of their boast : " that the Kings pleasure is, the N. Tes tament in English shal go forth, and men sholde have it and read it." Furthermore, that some " crakyth in the Kings name, that their false opinions shold go forth, and wil dy in the quarrel, that their ungracious opinions be true, and trustyth by Michaelmas day, there shal be more that shal beleve of thair opinion, than they that beleivyth the contrary."* The object of this letter was that he might obtain royal letters con ferring authority to suppress by force these false opinions. There was some grounds for supposing that Henry VIII. at this time was not altogether opposed to the circulation of the Scriptures in English, though Bishop Nix would have it otherwise. About this time a convocation was called to pronounce upon certain heretical books, including the English ' Strype's Memorials of Archbishop Cranmer. App., Num. XIL, p. 15. 5 Ibid, p. 15. 150 coverdale's BIBLE. [CHAP. IV. New Testament,! Bishops and learned men from the Univer sities were summoned to the council, and each was to have the liberty " to say what his own learning and conscience could maintain and justify."* This was a notable conference. Free dom of speech was granted to aU to utter their opinions -with out any necessity of agreeing with the majority, or fear of any blame to be imputed to them. The council met on the 24th of May, 1530, in the Star chamber, the king presiding. The leading question before the council was, whether "it was his (the king's) duetie to cawse the Scripture of God to be translated into English tonge to be communicate unto the people ; and that the prelates and also his highnes doo wronge in denying or letting (hindering) of the same ; his highnes therefor willed every man there present in the said assemble, freely and frankly to shewe and open nnto him what might be proved and confirmed by Scripture and holy doctours in that behalf, to the entent that his highnes, as he there openly protestid, myght conforme himself thereunto, mynding to doo his dutie towards his people, as he wolde they shulde doo their duties towards him," But after both sides had been heard, " fynally it appered, that having of the hole Scripture in Eng- lisshe is not necessarye to cristen men Wherein foras- muche as the kings highnes, by the advise and deliberation of his counceill thinkith in his conscience that the divulg ing of this Scripture at this tyme in Englisshe tonge, to be committed to the people, considering such pestilente books, and so evill opynyons as be now spred amonge them, shulde rather be to their further confusion and destruction then the edification of their soules." * These were the views as advo cated and decided by the Eomish party. But that they were strongly combated there can be no doubt, since further along in the report, which is from the pen of Archbishop Warham, ' The books condemned by this council were such as. The Obedience of a Christian Man; The Supplication of Beggars; The Matrimony oi Tyndale ; and Tyndale's New Testament. ' Memorials of Coverdale, p. 33. London, 1833. = Ibid, pp. 33-34. 1530.] THE BISHOPS IN COUNCIL. 151 we are told that " his highnes did there openlye saye and pro test, that he woulde cause the Newe Testament to be by lerned men faithfully and purely translated into Englishe tonge, to the entent he might have it in his handes redy to be gevyn to his people, as he might se their manners and behavour mete, apte, and convenient to recey ve the same," ^ From which it would seem that Henry VIII. was not unfavorable to the cir culation of a faithful version of the New Testament. Hall, in his Chronicles, affirms that the king commanded the bishops, with the assistance of learned men from the Universities, to cause a new translation to be made. So far as known, how ever, nothing was done.* The proclamation which followed the decision of this coun cil, was decidedly in the interests of the papists. In view of which Latimer wrote a bold letter to the king, which shows not only the earnest spirit of the reformer, but the confiict of opinion then raging. "But as concerning this matter," wrote Latimer, " other men haue shewed your grace their myndes, how necessary it is to haue the Scripture in English. The which thing also your grace hath promised by your last Proc lamation ; the which promise I pray God that your gracious highnes may shortly performe, euen to day before to morrow. And so as concernynge your last proclamation prohibityng such bokes, the very true cause of it, and chief Counsellours (as men say, and of likelihode it should be) were they whose euin lining and cloked hipocrisie these bookes uttered and dis closed. And howbeit that there were iii or iiij (in the convo cation) that wonld haue had the Scripture to go forth in Enghsh, yet it happened there, as it is euermore scene, that the most part ouercometh the better, and so it might be that these men did not take this proclamation as yours, but as theirs set forth in your name." * This council of 1530, though called in the interests of the 1 Memorials of Coverdale, p. 35. " -?**''. P- 36- ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, pp. 1916-1919. 152 coverdale's bible. [chap, iv, spirituality, is important as showing the demand of the people for the Scriptures in their own tongue. Also it is the first time that the question of Bible translation as a matter of expedi ency had been discussed in open council. Notwithstanding the authoritative exhortation of Archbishop Warham " that the people should decline from their arrogancy of knowledge and understanding of the Scriptures, and meekly await the movement of their superiors, making no further demands," their impatience increased. During the years 1531 and 1532, appeared Tyndale's version of the Pentateuch and the book of Jonah, which helped to create a demand for a translation of the whole Bible. In evidence of this, we have the recorded action of the convocation of 1534. "The Bishops, Abbots, Priors of this Upper House of Convocation, of the Province of Canterbury, met together in the Chapter House of St, Paul; unanimously did consent, that the most Eeverend Father the Archbishop, should make instance in their Names to the King, that his Majesty, would vouchsafe, .... to decree, that the Scriptures should be translated into the Vulgar Tongue by some honest and learned Men, to be nominated by the King, and to be delivered unto the People according to their Learn ing." ^ As this motion was made by Archbishop Cranmer, Strype says that they agreed upon him as the proper person to present the petition. But " they clogged it -with another that the Archbishop did not so well approve," which was to the effect, that all persons having books in Enghsh, or of suspected doctrine, were warned to bring them within three months to- persons to be appointed by the king, "under a certain Pain to be limited by the King." * No immediate results can be traced to this action ; yet on account of it, this convocation holds an important place in the history of English versions of the Bible, in that the papists, now for the first time, accede to the right of the people to have the Bible in their own tongue, ' Strype's Memorials of Archbishop Cranrner, B. I., Ch. VI., p. 34. London, 1694. » Ibid, p. 34. 1534.] THE CONVOCATION OF 1534. 153 Not long after this "the Archbishop," says Strype, "whose Mind ran very much upon bringing in the free use of the Holy Scripture in English among the People, put on vigorously a Translation of it," He began with the New Testament, taking an (old) English translation, dividing it into nine or ten parts, " causing each Pai-t to be written at large in a paper Book and then to be sent to the best Learned* Bishops and others : to the intent that they should make a perfect Correction thereof," After which they were to return the same to him " by a day limited for that purpose," ^ This enterprise of Cranmer, and the readiness with which the learned bishops entered into it, attests the progress of the reformed opinions, since all the bishops, excepting one, complied with the requirements of the archbishop. Even Gardiner, who so strenuously opposed in the council the resolutions relating to the translation of the Bible, diligently corrected the portion assigned to him. " Nev ertheless I have," he wrote, "as gret cause as any man to desire rest and quiet for the helth of my body; whereunto I thought to have entended, and to absteyne from bookes and wryting, having finished the translation of Saynt Luke and Saynt John, wherin I have spent a gret labour." * But Bishop Stokesley, instead of returning his portion after correcting it as requested, wrote to the archbishop a crispish letter, in which he said : " I marvel what my Lord of Canterbury meaneth, that thus abuseth the People, in giving them liberty to read the Scriptures ; which doth nothing else but infect them with Heresy. I have bestowed never an Hour upon my Portion, nor never will. And therefore my Lord shall have this Book again, for I never ¦will be guilty of bringing the simple People into Error," 3 During these years of conflict and ineffectual effort. Cover- dale has been at work in secret, till now at last his translation is ready for the press. It was printed abroad, probably at ' Strype's Memorials of Archbishop Cranmer, p. 34 ' Memorials of Myles Coverdale, p. 48. London, 1838. ' Strype's Memorials of Cranmer, p. 34. 154 coverdale's bible. [chap. IV. Zurich, by Christopher Proschover, in the year 1535, and finished on the fourth day of October. There are various sup positions as to the place of printing of Coverdale's Bible, Besides Zurich, Frankfort and Antwerp put in thefr claims. " Indeed, most of the cities of Germany come in for their share of the honor."! Tj^e evidence, favoring any given place, is limited, for the most part, to the types or woodcuts used by a given printer at that time, with which the types and cuts of this Bible are thought to correspond. But the boldest and most unsatisfactory supposition is that of Mr. Henry Stevens, as set forth in the Caxton Catalogue, wherein he affirms that the Coverdale Bible was printed at Antwerp, and that Jacob Van Meteren, and not Coverdale, was the translator. Mr. Stevens publishes this assertion in somewhat of a sensational style, and with all the zest of a new discovery, confidently believing that he has cleared away all the uncertainties that have hitherto hung over the authorship of the Coverdale Bible. But his statements fail to carry conviction with them. Dr. Moulton, in his recent " History of the English Bible," says, in opposition to the claims put forth by Mr. Stevens in favor of Van Meteren, " that the translation was by any other hand than Coverdale's we should be very slow to believe."* To Myles Coverdale, therefore, must still be accredited the honor of giving to England the first translation of the whole Bible printed in English. The following is the title of a copy in the library of the Duke of Sussex, which was reprinted by Bagster, and reads: " Biblia, the Bible, that is, the holy Scripture of the Olde and New Testament, faithfully and truly translated in to Englishe, — M.D. XXXV.— S. Paul, IL Tessa., IIL Pr aie for vs, that the worde of God mate haue fre passage, and be glorified, &cP This title occupies a small square in the middle of the page, and is inclosed by a border of woodcuts illustrating scenes both of the Old and New Testaments. The cut extending across the top of the page represents, the Fall and Redemption. The small squares on the right represent, ' Caxton Catalogue, p. 88. London, 1877. ' Note, p. 99. 1535.] DISAGREEMENTS IN TITLES AND DEDICATIONS. 155 the Giving of the law, and Ezra reading the book of the law to the people ; and on the left, Christ showing himself after his resurrection, and Peter preaching to the people. The cut extending across the bottom of the page, represents Henry VIIL on his throne, presenting a clasped Bible to his bishops, who kneel on his right, while the peers of the realm kneel on his left. Ou the extreme right in this cut, there is a full-length figure of King David playing on a harp, with a connecting scroll bearing an appropriate inscription ; so on the extreme left there is a corresponding full-length figure of the Apostle Paul, with a scroll bearing the inscription, / am not ashamed of the Gospell of Christ, for it is the power of God. Eo. I. Sebald Beham is the supposed author of these cuts. He was an engraver at Nuremburg and fiourished about this time. His pictures, as well as his engravings, were held in the highest esteem by his cotemporaries.* In respect to the titles of Coverdale's Bibles much has been made of the fact that in the earliest copies the title in some reads : " Faithfully and truly translated out of Douche and Latyn in to English," while in others the title reads simply : " Faithfully and truly translated into English." The specifi cation, out of Douche and Latyn, is pronounced by some as a " book-selling artifice of the time, to make the work circulate better"; by others as the honest insertion of Coverdale. The importance to be attached to this question is, that if inserted by Coverdale, it settles the question that he did not translate directly from the Hebrew. And yet Coverdale was not without some knowledge of the Hebrew, " by which he was guided at times in selecting his renderings ; but in the main his version is based on the Swiss-German version of Zwingli and Leo Juda, and on the Latin of Pagninus."* Again, there is a manifest disagreement in the dedicating prologue to Henry VIIL, which in soine copies specify Queen Anne "as the dearest wyfe and most virtuous pryncesse ; " while others of ' idence of the Authorship of the New Testament, p. 83, note. London, 1853. ' See above, page 155. 1535,] SPECIMENS FROM THE OLD TESTAMENT, 161 tion. " I haue nether wrested nor altered," he says, " so moch as one worde for the mayntenaunce of any maner of secte ; but haue with a cleare conscience purely and faythfuUy translated this out of fyue sundry interpreters, hauynge onely the many- f est trueth of the scripture before myne eyes."* He had an exalted appreciation of what the Scripture would do for the people. " The onely worde of God," he says, " is the cause of all felicite And why ? because it is geuen by the inspira- cyon of God."* And it was this word, by whomsoever minis tered, that he was desirous to have go forth to the people. And if he sometimes studied plainness of meaning at the ex pense of conciseness of expression, he bat followed Tyndale , and his other interpreters, particularly the Zurich Bible. Aud yet, if possible, the style of Coverdale is more remarkable for its simplicity than that of Tyndale. " No little of that inde finable quality," says Eadie, "that gives popular charm to our English Bible, and has endeared it to so many generations, is owing to Coverdale." ^ Especially is this true of the Psalms and the Prophetical books. The English Church to this day reads in her Prayer-book, Coverdale's version of the Psalms with very few changes, and even these are for the most part verbal, so that essentially the version of 1535 is retained. Not only the English Prayer-book, but our present version of the Psalms is indebted to Coverdale for its rhythmic flow and strength of expression. As illustrating the indebtedness of our English Bible to Coverdale, as well as showing the rich ness and simplicity of his style, take the following Psalms — the first of which is put into modern spelling : Ps. II. A. Why do the Heathen grudge ? Why do the people imagine vain things ? The kings of the earth stood up, and the rulers are come together, against the LORD and against his anointed. Let us break their bonds asunder, and cast away their yoke from us. Nevertheless, he that dwelleth in heaven, shall laugh them to scorn ; yea even the LoKD himself shall have them in derision. Then shall he speak • Coverdale's Bible. - Dedication io the King, p. 5. ^ Ibid, p. 4. " History of English Bible, I., 303. 162 coverdale's bible. [chap. rv. unto them in his wrath, and vex them in his sore dis pleasure. Tet have I set my king upon my holy hill of Sion. As for me I will preach the law, whereof the Lobd hath said unto me . Thou art my son, this day have I begotten thee. Desire of me, and I shall give thee the B. Heathen for thine inheritance. Yea the utmost parts of the world for thy possession. Thou shalt rule them -with a rod of iron, and break them in pieces like an earthen vessel. Be -wise now therefore (O ye kings) be warned, ye that are judges of the earth. Serve the LOKD vrith fear, and rejoice before him with reverence. Kiss the son, lest the Lord be angry, and so ye perish from the right way. For his wrath shall be kindled shortly : blessed are all they that put their trust in him. Psalm XXIL, which corresponds in number with the XXIII. Psalm of the Authorized version,* is here inserted with the original spelling and contractions: Ps. XXII. The Loedb is my shepherde, I can wante nothinge. He fedeth me in a grene pasture, ad ledeth me to a fresh water. He quickeneth my soule, and bringeth me forth in the waye of rightuousnes for his names sake. Though I shulde walke now in the valley of the shadowe of death, yet I feare no euell, for thou art with me : thy staffe & thy shepehoke coforte me. Thou preparest a table before me agaynst mine enemies : thou anoyntest my heade ¦with oyle, & fyllest my cuppe full. Oh let thy louynge kyndues & mercy folowe me all the dayes off my life, that I may dwell in the house off the LORDE for euer. The same rhythmical flow so noticeable in Coverdale's trans lation of the Psalms is found likewise in his translation of the Prophetical books, while the style on account of the original is more stately and elevated. Take a portion of the fortieth chapter of Isaiah, with the spelling modernized, as an example : Is. XL. A. Be of good cheer my people, be of good cheer (saith your God). Comfort Jerusalem, and tell her : that her travail ' In the numbering of the Psalms the Hebrew Bible and the Septua- ^nt version differ. Coverdale followed the Septuagint numbering, whUe our translations followed that of the Hebrew. Compare note on page 70 above. 1535.] SPECIMENS FROM THE OLD TESTAMENT. 163 is at an end, that her offense is pardoned, that she hath received of the Lord's hand sufficient correction for all her sins. A voice crieth ; Prepare the way for the Lord in the Wilderness, make straight the path for our God in the desert. Let all valleys be exalted, and every moun tain and bill be laid low. What so is crooked, let it be made straight, and let the rough places be made plain fields. For the glory of the Lord shall appear, and all flesh shall see it, for why, the mouth of the Lord hath spoken it. The same voice spake : Now cry. And I said : What shall I cry ? Then spake it : that all flesh is grass, and that all the beauty thereof, is as the flower of the field. When the grass is withered, the flower falleth away. Even so is the people as grass, when the breath of the Lord blow- eth upon them. Nevertheless whether the grass wither, or the flower fade away ; Tet the word of our God endur eth for ever. Moreover the voice cried thus : Go up unto the hill (o Sion) thou that bringest good tidings; lift up B. thy voice with power, 0 thou preacher Jerusalem. Lift it up without fear, and say unto the cities of Judah : Be hold your God : behold the Lord, even the almighty shall come with power, and bear rule with his arm. Behold, he bringeth his treasure ¦with him, and his works go be fore him. He shall feed his flock like an herdman. He shall gather the lambs together with his arm, aud carry them in his bosom, and shall kindly entreat those that bear young. The following specimens are given with the original spelling, contractions, and archaic forms retained : Is. LXI. A. The sprete of the Lorde God is ¦with me, for y« Lorde hath anoynted me, & sent me, to preach good tydiges vnto the poore, y' I might bynde vp y" wounded hertes, y' I might preach delyueraunce to y« oaptyue, & open the preson to the that are bounde : y' I might declare y' acceptable yeare of the Lorde & the daye of y= avegeaunce of oure God: that I might comforte all them that are iu heuy- nesse, that I might geue vnto them y' mourne in Sion, bewty in the steade of asshes, ioyful oyntmet for sigh- inge, pleasaunt raymet for an heuy mide : That they might be called excellent in rightuousnesse, a platinge of the Lorde for him to reioyce in. 164 coverdale's BIBLE. [CHAP. IV. LXIII. A. What is he this, that cometh from Edom, vrith stayned reade clothes of Bosra : (which is so costly cloth) & cometh in so neebly with all his stregth 1 I am he y' teacheth rightuousnes, & am of power to helpe. ¦Wherfore the is thy clothinge reade, and thy raymet hke his y' tread- eth in y« wyne presse ? I haue trodde the presse my self alone, & of all people, there was not one with me. Thus haue I trode downe myne enemies in my wrath, and set my fete vpo them in my indignacion : And their blonde sprange vpo my cloothes, & so haue I stayned all my ray- ment. For the daye of vengeance that I haue take in honde, & the yeare of my delyuerance is come. I loked aboute me, and there was no ma to shewe me eny helpe. I fel downe, and no man helde me vp. The I helde me by myne owne arme, & my feruetnesse susteyned me. And thus haue I troden down the people in my wrath, and bathed them in my displeasure : In so moch that I haue shed their blonde vpon the earth. The above examples are of Coverdale's translating, in which he was independent of Tyndale. By common consent, it is understood that the portions of the Scriptures already translated by Tyndale were used by Coverdale as the basis of his translation, especially the Pentateuch and the New Testa ment. The following specimens from Coverdale's translation of the New Testament will illustrate but imperfectly his work as a reviser, since in many instances his changes are rather for the worse than otherwise. The first example is that of the Lord's prayer, which is based upon Tyndale's version of 1534; it shows only a few verbal changes. Compare with Tyndale's version on pages 121, 122, above : Matt. VI. B O oure father which art in heauen halowed be thy name. Thy kyngdome come. Thy wyll be fulfilled vpon earth as it is in heauen. Geue vs this daye oure dayly bred. And forgeue vs oure dettes, as we also forgeue our detters. And lede vs not in to teptacion : but delyuer vs from euell. For thyne is the kyngdome, and the power, and the glorye for euer. Amen. 1535.] specimens from the new TESTAMENT, 165 The following specimen is here inserted with the spelling modernized : Eom. VIII. A To be fleshly minded, is death : but to be ghostly minded, is life and peace. For to be fleshly minded is enmity against God, since it is not subdued unto the law of God, for it cannot also. As for them that are fleshly, they cannot please God. Howbeit, ye are not fleshly, but ghostly, if so be that the spirit of God dwell in you. But who so hath not the spirit of Christ, the same is not his. Nevertheless if Christ be in you, then is the body dead because of sin. But the spirit is life for righteousness sake. B. Wherefore if the spirit of him, that raised up Jesus from the dead, dwell in you, then shall even he also that raised up Christ from the dead, quicken your mortal bodies, because that his spirit dwelleth in you. Therefore brethren we are now debtors, not to the flesh, to live after the flesh : for if ye live after the flesh, ye must die : but if ye mortify the deeds of the body through the spirit, ye shall live. For whosoever are led by the spirit of God, are God's children : for ye have not received the spirit of bondage to fear any more, but ye have received the spirit of adoption, whereby we cry : Abba, dear father. The same spirit certifieth our spirit, that we are the children of God. If we be children, then are we heirs also, namely the heirs of God, and heirs annexed with Christ, if so be that we suffer together, that we may be also glori fied together. C For the fervent longing of the creature looketh for the appearing of the children of God, because the creature is subdued unto vanity against their ¦will, but for his will that hath subdued them upon hope. For the creature also shall be free from the bondage of corruption, unto the glorious liberty of the children of God. For we know that every creature groaneth, and travaileth with us in pain unto the same time. D. Like-wise the spirit also helpeth our weakness ; for we know not what we should desire as we ought : 166 coverdale's BIBLE, [CHAP. IV. nevertheless the spirit itself maketh intercession mightily for* us with unoutspeakable groanings. Howbeit he that searcheth the heart, knoweth what the mind of the spirit is : for he maketh in tercession for the saints according to the pleasure of God. But sure we are, that all things serve for the best unto them that love of God, which are called of purpose. For those whom he knew be fore, hath he ordained also before, that they should be like fashioned unto the shape of his son, that he might be the first begotten among many brethren. As for those whom he hath ordained before, them hath he called also : and whom he hath called, them hath he also made righteous ; and whom he hath made righteous, them hath he glorified also. If in revising Tyndale, Coverdale made changes sometinies for the worse, yet more frequently they were for the better. As evidence take the following comparisons. The readings of Tyndale are fi-om his revised edition. The verse divisions are given below for the sake of reference, though they are not found in Coverdale's Bible. Matt. III. 14. . . .1 haue nede to be beptysed of the. Tyndale has : I ouglit to be. V. 36. . . . canst not make one heer whyte or blacke. Tyndale reads : one white heer, or blacke. XIII. 58 because of their vnbeleue. Tyndale reads : for there vnbelefes sake. XXI. 43 is become the heade stone in the corner. Tyndale reads : is set in tlie principall parte of the corner. John I. 14. . . . and we sawe his glory, a glory as of the onely begotten sonne of the father full of grace and trueth. Tyndale reads : . . and we sawe the glory of it, as the glory of the only be gotten Sonne of the father, which worde was full of grace and verite. III. 15 that who so euer beleueth in him, shulde not perishe. but haue euerla^tinge life. 1535.] quaintness and familiarity in expression. 167 Tyndale reads : . . . that none that be^ leveth in him perisshe : but have eternall lyfe. 31 He that is of the earth is earthly. Tyndale reads : . . He that is of the erth, is of the erth. XIV. 37. . . . Let not youre hert be troubled, nether let it be afrayed. Tyndale reads : . . . Lot not your liertes be greved nether feare ye. XV. 19. . . . therfore the worlde hateth you. Tyndale has : therfore hateth you the worlde. XVIII. 38. Pilate sayde vnto him : what is the trueth ? Tyndale reads : . . . what thinge is trueth ? XIX. 3. . . . and put a purple garment vpon him. Tyndale has : . . they dyd on him a purple garment. ' I. Tim. VI. 5. . . . which thynke that godlines is lucre. Tyndale reads: .... that l^ucre is godlines. He is followed by the Genevan version, 1557; also by the Authorized version. But Cover- dale's rendering is better, since the meaning is, that many supposed that godhness could be used as a means of gain. ^ I. John IIL 34. And hereby knowe we that he abydeth in vs, euen by the sprete which he hath geuen vs. Better than Tyndale, who reads : . . . and therby we know that ther abydeth in vs of the sprete which he gave vs. Coverdale's language is sometimes quaint, but compara tively, there are but few obsolete words. While he studied great plainness of speech, he sometimes descended into too great familiarity of expression, of which the following are examples : Ps. IX. 16. . . . trapped in the workes of his owne handes. 30. O Lorde, set a scolemaster ouer them. ' In the use of dyd on, Tyndale was followed by the Great Bible, 1539, also by the Genevan version of 1557. Wycliffe reads : diden aboute hym. In these instances the phrase is used inthe sense of put on. " Compare Alford in loco ; also Trench on Bible Revision, p. 110. 168 coverdale's bible. [chap, rv, X. 6. Tush, I shal neuer be cast downe. In the llth and 13th verses, also we read : Tush, God hath forgotten. Tush, he careth not for it. XIII. 1. The foolish bodyes saye in their hertes : T'ush, there is no God.' XXII. 4. Thy staffe and thy shepehoke comforte me. XXVI. 14. 0 tary thou y* Lordb's leysure. XXVII. 3. 0 plucke m,e not awaye amonge the vngodly. 7. . . . Therfore my hert daunseth for joye. XXXII. 3. . . . yee synge lustely vnto him. XLIV. 4. Good lucke haue thou unth thine honoure. XLV. 6. The Heithen are madd, the kyngdomes make moch adoo. XLVL 5. God is gone vp ¦with a mery noyse. In respect to obsolete words, whole chapters may be read in Coverdale's Bible without meeting with a single example, though three and a half centuries have passed since the trans lation was made. There are such words, however, and as examples the following will suffice : barowes, couches ; bugges, goblins ; chaftes, jaws ; creshettes, torches ; fiawe of loynd, tempest of wind ; hantch, snatch or devour ; hand reachinge, a favorite term with Coverdale for the act of ministering relief ; lyuelod, land; maundes, baskets ; rowneth, whispereth ; all of which may be found below in their several connections. Job XXIX. 17. I brake the chaftes of y* vnrightuous. Ps. VII. 3. Lest he hantch vp my soule like a lyon. XC. 5. So y' thou shalt not nede to be afrayed for eny bugges by night. Is. V. 9. The Lorde of hoostes rowneth me thus. Jer. XXIV. 1. . . . there stode two maundes of Ages. John XVIII 3. . . .he came thither with creshettes, with lan terns and with weapens. Acts V. 3. . . . and withdrawe awaye parte of the money of the lyvelod ? 15. . . . and layed them vpon beddes and barowes. VI. 1. . . . because their wyddo wes were not loked vpon in the daylie handreachinge. XXVII. 14. But not longe after there rose agaynst their purpose a fiawe ofwynde. • This XIII. corresponds with the XIV. Psalm of the A. V. So the XXII. with the XXIII., and so ou with thc remaining references. 1538,] THE DiGLorr new testament. 169 Archaic forms and contractions abound in Coverdale's Bible. These, together with the strange orthography, render his printed page somewhat obscure. The following are inserted as examples: ^m-, their; ^er, them; his, its; nee, nor; y',the; y', that; hi, him ; hogrie, hungry; Jho, John ; lodes, lands ; loge, long; stable, stumble; the, them or then; vpo, upon; axe, ask ; rote, root ; sprete, spirit ; the, thee ; thoroiv, through; twelve, twelve ; wawes, waves ; yee, yea. The circulation of Coverdale's Bible helped to awaken opposition to the Scriptures in English. The friends of the Bible are now in the ascendency through the Protestant ad visers of Henry VIII. Its enemies continue to rail from "inward malyce." They charge upon Coverdale as upon Tyndale the crime of corrupting and perverting the common Latin version. They revile all persons who possess or read the Bible in English as "heretikes," "new fangled fellowes," "English biblers," "Coblers in diuinitie," and as "fellowes of the new fayth."* They "cry out ¦\'pon vs," says Coverdale, " (because) we do not followe thys olde Latyn texte word for word. As though al were not as nye the truth to translate the scripture out of other languages, as to turne it out of the Latyn. Or as though the holy goost were not the authoure of his scripture aswell in the Hebrue, Greke, French, Dutche, and in Englysh, as in Latyn."* It was in part to silence these cavils and "put an end to this , clamorous importunyte of euell speakers ; " and in part " to ' satisfye the just request of certayne your graces faythful sub- jectes," who were friendly to a Vernacular version; and in part also "to induce and instructe such as can but Englishe and are not learned in, the Latin ;"^ that Coverdale favored an English translation of the New Testament directly from the Latin, and that it should be printed in a parallel column on the same page ¦with the Latin. This Diglott, or Latin and English Testament, was published in 1538, at Southwarke, ' Coverdale's Memorials, p. 96. ' Ibid, p. 97. ' Ibid, p. 96. 8 170 coverdale's bible. [chap. IV. by James Nycolson. Coverdale favored this work so far as to consent that under certain conditions his own translation should be used for this purpose, and that he would " set his name to it." But when it appeared he found it " so disagree able to his former translacion in English, (and) in many places both base, insensyble, and cleane contrary, not onely to the phrase of our language, but also from the vnderstondyng of the texte in latyn," * he was sore displeased, and imme diately set forth a corrected edition, which was printed in Paris by Francis Eegnault, in November of the same year. In the meanwhile Nycolson put forth another edition, partially revised and corrected, under the name of John Hollybushe, as the translator. These three editions of this Latin and English New Testament were published in the year 1538. That Coverdale had good reasons for being displeased with the first edition of the Diglott ¦will appear even from these few examples : Matt. XXVI. B. . . . beganne euery one of them to saye : Lorde, ame lit? Coverdale reads : Syr, is it I? C. . . . And the grace sayde, they went forthe in mounte Oliuete. Coverdale reads : And wlian they had sayde grace. Jesus sayde vnto hym : Verily I say vnto the : That in this night before the cock syng, thou shalt denye me thryse. Coverdale reads : before the cock crowe. Mark LA.. . . And John was clothed in the heeres of a Camel. Coverdale has : Camels heer. VIII. D. . . . Whome do men saye me to be f Coverdale reads: . . . tJiat lam? John II. A. . . . But thou hast kepte the good wyne hetherto. Coverdale has : untyll now. After publishing his Bible in 1535, Coverdale returned to England. In 1537 he published an exposition of the twenty- second, also of the twenty-third Psalm, translated from the German of Luther. He was employed about this time by Cromwell in the affairs of State ; but his great learning and ' Coverdale's Memorials, pp. 99, 100. 1537.] A NEW ENTERPRISE. 171 moral worth, as well as his signal success as a translator and reviser of the Enghsh Bible, united in pointing him out as the person of all others to take the leadership in an enterprise already determined upon, which was the putting forth the Bible in another translation. This contemplated enterprise resulted in due time in the Great Bible of 1539. In the mean while, however, another Bible, that of Thomas Matthewe, 1537, appeared in England. It came across the sea unheralded, but was kindly received. Some account of this Bible next com mands our attention. CHAPTER Y. MATTHEWE'S BIBLE, A, D. 1537. A BOUT this time there were three distinct versions of the Xjl. English Bible issued in the short space of four years. These were Coverdale's Bible, 1535, Matthewe's Bible, 1537, and Cromwell's Bible, 1539. In the accounts given of these several editions, more or less confusion has existed. Burnet complains that the facts respecting the translation of the Bible have not been preserved ¦with " that care that the Importance of the thing required."* Unfortunately, Burnet transmits an error in tracing a direct connection between the action of the convocation of 1536, and Cromwell's Bible of 1539. The arguments put forth in this convocation favoring the Bible in English, he says, " were so much considered by the King, that he gave order for setting about it immediately." ^ He farther adds in this connection, " that the work was carried on at a good rate ; for three years after this it was Printed at Paris." ^ There was a petition ordered to be presented to the king, requesting that the Bible might be given to the laity in their own tongue, during the sittings of this convocation of 1536, but with no known results. The Bible printed three years after was Cromwell's Bible, which was a revision of the Bible of 1537, and though the printing was begun at Paris it was completed in London. Again, Burnet in gi^ving an account of the Bible of 1537, says: "the Translation had been sent over to France to be printed at Paris, but upon a com plaint made by the French Clergy, the Press was stopt and ' History of the Reformation in England, I., B. III., p. 196. London, 1681. 2 Ibid, p. 195. 3 lUd, p. 196. 1535-39,] CONFUSION IN historical accounts. 173 most of the Copies were seized on, and publickly burnt; but some Copies were conveyed out of the way, and the Work men and Forms were brought over to England ; where it was now finished and published." * All of which is true of the Bible of 1539, but not that of 1537. Another example of this confusion is found in Strype, who gives Archbishop Cranmer the credit of originating the translation of 1537, and hence connects it with the efforts of Cranmer towards a new trans lation made soon after the convocation of 1534, in which the archbishop assigned certain portions of Scripture to divers learned bishops and others to be revised and corrected. And now, adds Strype, " to his inexpressible Satisfaction, he saw the Work finished. "^ But as a matter of fact this effort of the archbishop was unsuccessful.' In another connection, Strype gives comparatively a correct account of the Bible of 1537; that it was " called Matthews Bible of Tyndal's and Roger's Translation, (and,) was printed by Grafton and Whitchurch at Hamburgh It was done by one John Rogers, who fiour ished a great while in Germany, and was Superintendent of a Church there He added Prefaces, and Notes out of Luther; and dedicated the whole Book to King Henry, under the Name of Thomas Matthews, hj a,u Epistle prefixed; minding to conceal his own Name." * Still another example of this confusion is found in Fronde, when in describing Coverdale's Bible, 1535, he confounds it with Matthewe's Bible, 1537. He says: "Miles Coverdale silently went abroad with a licence from Cromwell ; with Tyndal's help ho collected and edited the scattered portions ; and in 1536, there appeared in London, published cum privilegio, and dedicated to Henry VIII. the first com plete copy of the English Bible The canon and text book of the new opinions — so long dreaded, so long execrated — was thenceforth to lie open in every church iu England; and ' History of the Reformation in England, p. 349. ' Memorials of Archbishop Cranmer, B. L, ch. XV., p. 57. London, 1694 3 See above on pages 152, 153. * lUd, p, 83. 174 matthewe's bible. [chap. v. the clergy were ordered not to permit only, but to exhort and encourage, all men to resort to it and read."* Possibly Eogers may have had Tyndale's help or they may have labored together in translating the Bible of 1537 ; but not so Coverdale and Tyndale, The above statement, however, is for the most part true of the Bible of 1535. So again Mr. Froude confounds the Great Bible of 1539, with the Bible of 1535, when he describes the frontispiece of the former as belonging to the latter ; introducing as he does the description, with the statement, that this frontispiece was " equally remarkable, and even more emphatic in the recognition of the share in the work borne by the king." ^ But so far as is known Henry VIII. had no " share in the work " of producing Coverdale's Bible, not even so much as granting his royal privilege to the first edition. Though these three editions appeared so near each other as to time, yet in their origin they were so distinct, that there can be no excuse for historically confounding them. There is, however, in the history of the Bible of 1537, an obscurity attaching itself to the name Thomas Matthewe, whicli the utmost discrimination and research has failed to make clear. In seeking to account for this straunge name of Thomas Matthewe being connected with the Bible, Foxe declares that : " In the translation of this Bible, the greatest doer was in dede Wilham Tyndall But because the sayd William Tyndall in ye meane tyme was apprehended, it was thought good to them whiche had the doyng therof, to chaunge the name of William Tyndall, because that name then was odious, and to father it by a straunge name of Thomas Mathewe." ^ Strype adopted the same theory, adding, that Tyndale's name " then growing into ignominy, as one burnt for an Heretick, tbey thought it might prejudice the Book, if he should be named for the Translator thereof : and so they used a feigned Name, calling it Thomas ' History of England, IIL, 83. New York, 1869. ' lUd, p. 85. ' Acts and Monuments, p. 1363. 1696-7. 1525-55. J JOHN ROGERS. 175 Matthews Bible,"* But whether Thomas Matthewe was a straunge, ox feigned name; or whether it was an alias of John Eogers, which seems the most likely as there are some incidental proofs ; ^ or whether it was the name of some in dividual who by his means first aided the enterprise, as has been surmised ; or whether it was the name of the first printer, which seems the most unlikely supposition of all, though Hallam states it not as a supposition but as a fact ; or whether it be a fictitious name "under which the Editor chose to appear," as Lewis thinks; whatever the relation of this name, it would seem as an act of justice, that the name of John Eogers ought to be more intimately linked with this Bible of 1537, on account of the prominent place he holds as its reviser and editor. John Eogers was educated at Cambridge, where, according to Foxe, "he profitably traueiled in good learnyng," At length he was called by the merchant adventurers at Antwerp to become thefr chaplain, whom he served to their " good contentation " for many years, " Knowing by the Scriptures that unlawfull vowes may lawfully be broken," Eogers was married. He afterwards went to Wittemburg, where he in creased not only in "Good and Godly learnyng; but iu the knowledge of the Dutch toung." A congregation here was committed to his care, which he served till the time of Edward VL, when he returned to England, "A prebend in the Cathedrall church of Paules " was granted him, and the dean appointed him reader of the divinity lessons, wherein he diligently served till the time of Queen Mary, when for the crime of preaching the Gospel and upholding the doctrines ' Memorials of Archbishop Cranmer, B. I., ch. XVL, p. 59. London, 1694. 2 In the condemnation of Eogers, as recorded by Foxe, he is referred to several times, as " John Rogers, Priest, alias called Mathew." Acts and Monuments, p. 1661. It was not uncommon in those bitter days of trial for good men to take upon themselves other names. Tyndale's alias was Hutchins or Hytdie'os. 176 matthewe's bible. [chap, v, " taught in King Edwardes dales," he was summoned before the council, by whose judgment he was commanded "as prisoner to keepe his own house ; " but afterwards by the un charitable procurement of Bishop Boner he was removed to New Gate,* Foxe, likewise, records the particulars of his trial before the Lord Chancellor, also his sentence of condemnation, together with an account of his martyrdom, which took place at Smithfield, February 4, 1555.8 At Antwerp Eogers became intimately acquainted with Tyndale, So intimate were they, according to Foxe, "that he was engaged with TyndaU in the prayerful and most profitable labour of translatyng the Bible in to the English toung, which is intituled the translation of Thomas Matthew." Doubtless, in John Eogers, Tyndale found a friend in whom he could trust, and to whom in his extremity he could com mit his private papers. The same morning in which Tyndale was led to the stake, " he deliuered a letter to the keeper of the Castle, which the keeper hym self brought to the house of the foresaid Pointz in Antwerpe, shortly after." This letter or package may have contained other private papers of Tyndale, or information respecting them ; or such papers may have remained, as Foxe understood, "in the handes of the keper's daughter." * In either case take into connection the circumstance of Tyndale's letter to the procurator, in which he requested the privilege of a candle and Hebrew books,* and the not unfair inference follows that Tyndale not only carried on his work of translation while in prison, but that the results of such labor were preserved. And as John Eogers was the editor of the Bible of 1537, it is not unreason able to conclude, that either through the family of Poyntz, or that of the keeper of the prison, these manuscripts together with any others he may have prepared before his arrest, found their way into the hands of Eogers, who incorporated them in the Matthewe's Bible, Besides, internal evidences favor the ' Acts and Monuments, p. 1657. ' lUd, p. 1663-4. ' lUd, p. 1330. « See above on page 136. 1525-37.] A EIIVISION OE TTNDALE AND COVERDALE. 177 conclusion, that this Bible was made up of Tyndale's trans lation, not only of the New Testament and Pentateuch already in print, but also of the historical books, from Joshua to the end of II. Chronicles. Wanley's opinion, as quoted by Lewis, was that Eogers adopted Tyndale's translation, which extended to the end of II. Chronicles.* Eadie favors the same opinion and cites a few characteristic renderings in Tyndale's Pentateuch, which are found also in the historical books above mentioned. As examples we find both in the Pentateuch and the historical books such words as; timbrel, which Coverdale had rendered tabret ; also Lebanon, which Coverdale rendered Libanus ; and ephod, which in Coverdale is, overbody cote. Again we find such phrases as. Ark of the Testament, and Ark of the Appointment of the Lord; which in Coverdale read. Ark of the Covenant of the Lord.^ The design of Eogers in editing the Bible of 1537, was to include all that Tyndale had translated, comprising whatever may have been in manuscript as well as what had afready been printed. So that the Bible as revised by Eogers is made up of the New Testament of Tyndale's translation, the edition of 1534, G. H., which was the last revision, and doubtless, in Eogers' opinion, the most accurate edition ; to gether with the Old Testament, of Tyndale's translation, extending from Genesis to the end of II. Chronicles. The remaining portions of the Old Testament he adopted from Coverdale's Bible. It is estimated, therefore, that this Bible of 1537, comprised two-thirds of Tyndale's and one-third of Coverdale's translation. All of which passed under the re vising hand of John Eogers. Besides, in revising and editing this Bible, Eogers was but carrying out the purpose of Tyn dale, whose great desire was to put forth the whole Bible in English. Tyndale was a rapid worker, an indefatigable ' mstory of Translations of English Bible, p. 107. ^ Compare Hist. Eng. Bible, I., 331. "No small presumption in favour of the tradition that Tyndale translated from Josh, to 3 Chron. is afforded by the fact that these books are transla'ied, according to Tyndale's wont, from the Hebrew text." Ibid, p. 330. 178 matthewe's BIBLE. [CHAP. V. student, as well as a thorough scholar ; and the one work, to which he had dedicated his life, was the giving to his country men the Holy Scriptures in their own tongue. This too was the expectation of his friends, especially after the publication of the books of the Pentateuch, In answer to some inquiries of John Fryth, his special friend, who about this time was confined in the tower of London, for the word of God, re specting the translation of the whole Bible, concerning which, evidently Fryth had heard some rumors, Tyndale wrote : "George Joye at Candlemas being at Barrowe, printed ii leaues of Genesis in a great forme, and sent one Copy to the kyng, and another to the newe Queene, ¦with a letter to N, for to deliuer them ; and to purchase licence, that he myght so go throughe all the Bible. Out of that is sprong the noyse of the new Bible." * To this same expectation. Cover- dale in his prologue gives expression, when he says : " Yet yf thou be feruent in thy prayer, God shal not onely sende it the in a better shappe by the mynistracyon of other that beganne it afore." Eeferring doubtless to Tyndale's purpose to trans late the whole Bible, as he had already completed the Penta teuch and the New Testament, which Coverdale had, by revision, incorporated in his Bible of 1535. But times change and expectations come to naught. Already William Tyndale, from whom Coverdale and others are expecting so much, is being hurried off to prison, from which he shall soon be led forth to be first strangled and then burned at the stake. It is a matter of conjecture when and where John Eogers set about the work of editing the Matthewe's Bible. It must have been immediately after the martyrdom of Tyndale, which occurred October 6, 1536, since the Bible appeared about the middle of the next year. This appears from the fact that ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1331. This letter is without date. It was written probably at the close of the year 1533, or the beginning of the year 1533, since John Fryth was brought before the bishops June 20, 1533, and suffered martyrdom July 4th of the same year. 1537.] GRAFTON AND WHITECHURCH THE PRINTERS. 179 Cranmer's letter to Cromwell, in which he thanks him for soliciting and obtaining the king's consent that the Bible should be bought and read within the realm of England, was dated August 13, 1537. In addition to this, Grafton's letter to Cromwell, in which he speaks of six copies of this Bible sent as a present by the hands of his servant, bears date of August 28, 1537.* As to the place where this Bible was printed, Strype, in his Memorials of Cranmer, fixes upon Hamburgh ; Wanley, as quoted by Lewis, decides in favor of Paris ; Lewis himself favors Marburgh ; while Eadie, with more probability as to correctness, suggests Antwerp. This last city having been for a long season the residence of Eogers, we naturally fix upon as the place where he would publish the work. But the enterprise from first to last was kept a pro found secret. There is no intimation whatever of the progress of this volume until completed and introduced into England by the hand of Grafton ; neither is there any intimation as to how Grafton became interested in the undertaking. The Bible itself, however, shows that the printing had gone on as far as the beginning of Isaiah, where .a new title-page was introduced, indicating that Grafton and Whitechurch took up the work of printing at this point. This new title-page reads: "The Prophetes in Englishe;" which is surrounded by wood cuts. On the reverse page is printed in large and fiourished capitals, E. G. and E. W., the initials of Eichard Grafton and Edward Whitechurch, The former of these initials is placed at the top, and the latter at the bottom of the page, while in the center is a large woodcut. From Grafton's letter to Cromwell it appears that he under took the publication as a business transaction. He claims that already the charges amounted to above five hundred pounds ; a very large sum in those days, and in modern values would equal about thirty-seven thousand dollars. In this same letter he pleads with Ci'omwell that the edition may go forth * Strype's MemoriaU of Cranmer, B. I., Ch. XV., pp. 58, 59. London, 1694. 180 matthewe's bible. [chap. v. under the privy-seal, as a defense against pirated editions. He says he had already printed " fifteen hundred books com plete," in large letter, and their sale was threatened by Dutch printers, who " wil and doth go about the printing of the same work again in a lesser letter ; to the intente that they may sel their little books better cheap than I can sel these great." Besides, he adds, that these printers would not only set forth a smaller volume, but one imperfect as to paper, ink, and cor rection. That the printing and correcting would be done by Dutch men, who could neither speak or write good English, and that they would not "bestow twenty or forty pounds to a Learned man to take pains in it, to have it wel done."* On these grounds he seeks the authority of the privy-seal, -with the exclusive right to print and sell these Bibles for the space of three years.'^ Further, he requested that Cromwell would issue a royal injunction to the effect that every curate should be compelled to have one of these Bibles, and " that every Abby should have six to be layd in six several places ; " that not only the whole convent, but those who resorted thither, might have the opportunity of reading the same.' Previous to this, how ever, it seems that through the infiuence of Cromwell and the interposition of Cranmer, Grafton had obtained the king's license, which was inserted upon the title-page in red letters, thus : " Set forth by the Kings most gracious License." But as many refused to believe that the king had licensed it, he sought as above to have it go forth under the privy-seal.* The relation of Archbishop Cranmer to this Bible of 1537 is variously estimated. Mr. Anderson protests against Cranmer having the slightest connection -with the enterprise, and so instead of " exerting himself for this book as Mr, Todd im- ' Strype's Memorials of Cranmer, Appendix, pp. 89, 40. ^ Levris, in referring to this request, says that he does not find that it was ever granted. He had seen a copy of the Bible iu a small thick folio, with tho text and notes the same, and the initial letters of Grafton • and Whitechurch omitted. Compare Hist. Eng. Translations, p. 109. ' Strype's Memorials of Cranmer, App., p. 40. * Ibid, p. 39. 1537.] cranmer's connection with. 181 •agiued," the Bible, when first brought to him, was a " delightful surprise."^ Lewis, on the contrary, regarded Cranmer not only as a favourer of this edition of the Bible, but as one of its chief Curators ; ^ while Eadie admits the possibility of a prior knoivledge on the part of the archbishop, and a conse quent prior understanding between him aud Grafton.' Thei^ can be no doubt of Cranmer's personal interest and efforts in the past in procuring an acceptable translation of the Scrip tures. This, Grafton as a shrewd business man understood, and as his enterprise was dependent upon court authority, he would naturally seek first of all the archbishop's sympathy and influence. But whatever Cranmer's previous knowledge of the enterprise may have been, there can be no doubt of his intense satisfaction when a copy of this Bible was put into his hands; neither of his personal influence to have it go forth under royal privilege, and " to be bought and read "within the realm." He wrote to Cromwell, under date of August 5, 1537: "You shall receive by the bringer thereof a bible in English, both of a new translation, and a new print, dedicated unto the king's majesty, as farther appeareth by a pistle unto his grace in the beginning of the book, which in mine opinion is very well done, and therefore I pray your lordship to read the same. And as for the translation, so far as I have read thereof, I like it better than any other translation heretofore made ; yet not doubt ing but that there may and will be found some fault therein, as you know no man ever did or can do so well, but it may be from time to time amended. And forasmuch as the book is dedicated unto the king's grace and also great pains and labour taken in setting forth of the same ; I pray you my lord, that you will exhibit the book unto the king's highness, and to obtain of his grace, if you can, a licence that the same may be sold and read of every person, without danger of any act, proclamation, or ordinance heretofore granted to the contrary, * Annals of English Bible, p. 398. 1863. " Hist, of Eng. Translations of the Bible, p. 111. 1739. ; « History of Eng. Bible, I., 340. 1876. 182 matthewe's bible. [chap. v. until such time as we the bishops shall set forth a better trans lation, which I think will not be till a day after doomsday." * Cranmer's zeal for the circulation of this Bible appears from another letter to Cromwell written some nine days after the above, in which he sends his commendations and thanks, that " whereas I understand that your lordship, at my request, hath not only exhibited this bible which I sent unto you, to the king's majesty, but also hath obtained of his grace, that the same shall be allowed by his authority to be bought and read within this realm ; my lord for this your pain, taken in this behalf, I give unto you my most hearty thanks : assuring your lordship, for the contentation of my mind, you have shewed me more pleasure herein, than if you had given me a thousand pound ; and I doubt not but that hereby such fruit of good knowledge shall ensue, that it shall well appear hereafter, what high and acceptable ser^vice you have done unto God and the king." ^ In still another letter written fifteen days later, though it is taken up with other matters, Cranmer takes occasion to renew his thanks to Cromwell, " in the name of them all which favoureth God's word, for your diligence at this time in procuring the king's highness to set forth the said God's word and his gospel by his grace's authority. For the which act, not only the king's majesty, but also you shall have a perpetual laud and memory of all them that be now, or hereafter shall be, God's faithful people and the favourers of his word."' These extracts show how intensely Cranmer's mind was occupied in the setting forth of this edition of the Bible. It was therefore through the influence of Cranmer, the in terposition of Cromwell, and the good will of Henry VHL, that the Bible of 1537 was the first to go forth with the royal privilege. Just now the times are favorable to the Eeforma tion ; and Cromwell obtains a license for a second edition of Coverdale's Bible, a thing he could not, or at least, did not do, ' Cranmer's Remains and Letters, p. 344. Parker Soc. Ed., 1846. » Ibid, p. 345. a lbid, p. 346. 1538.] henry viii, and the English bible. 183 two years before. But what is done must be done quickly, for that which is now approved by those in authority will very soon be condemned. The relation of Henry VIII. to the Eng lish Bible will probably never be fully understood. At first, as an enthusiastic friend of the New learning he identified him self with the progressive party ; but afterwards, engrossed by the affairs of State, in which the friends of the Old and New learning, as contending factions, seemed to threaten the public good, he too often gave a willing ear to the wily suggestions of the papists. But now, in sympathy with one party and now with the other, he vacillates, till, with an imperious will and blind rage, he strikes off the heads of representative men of both parties. But the history of the English Bible as a whole, shows that progress in translations depended but little on the active favor of kings. The work went forward though their eyes were closed, and even under their forbidding frown. For a season, however, Tyndale's prayer at the stake seems to have been answered. Henry VIII. authorizes the Bible to be freely sold and read within his realm. Whereupon also a declaration was issued by Cromwell, "to permit and command the Bible, being translated in our Mother tongue, to be sincerely taught by us the Curates, and to be openly laid forth in every parish church : to the intent, that all his good subjects, as wel by reading therof, as by hearing the true explanation of the same, may be able to learn their duties to Almighty God and his Majesty, and every of us to charitably use other : .... his Majesty hath willed and commanded this to be declared unto you, .... that in the reading and hearing therof, first most humbly and reverently using and addressing your selves unto it, you shal have always in your remembrance and memories, that al things contained in this book is the undoubted Wil, Law, and Commandment of Almighty God, the only and streit means to know the goodnes and benefits of God towards us, and the true duty of every christen man to serve him accord ingly And so by your good and vertuous example to encourage your wives, children and servants to live wel and 184 matthewe's bible. [chap, v, christianly accordingly to the rules therof. And if at any time by reading any doubt shal comen to any of you touching the sense or meaning of any part therof .... ye shal have recourse to such learned men, as be, or shalbe authorized to preach and declare the same. So that avoyding all contentions and dispu tations in such ale houses and other places, unmeet for such conferences, and submitting your opinion to the judgments of such learned men, .... his Grace may wel perceive, that you use this most high benefit quietly and charitably ; without failing to use such discrete quietnes, and sober moderation in the premisses, as is aforesaid ; as you tender his Graces pleas ure, and intend to avoyd his high indignation, and the peril and danger that may ensue to you and every of you for the contrary." * Besides the above declaration which was sent forth in 1538, to be read by all curates, there were certain injunctions issued by Cromwell in September of the same year, bearing upon the circulation of the Bible. The first item of which reads : " That ye shall prouide on this side of the feast of N. next comming, one booke of the whole Byble of the largest volume in Eng lishe, and the same set up in some conuenient place within the said Churche that ye have cure of, whereas your parishon- ers may most commodiously resorte to the same and read it." Item second reads : ' ' That ye shall discourage no man priuely nor apartly, from the reading or hearing of the said Bible, but shall expresly prouoke, stirre, and exhorte euery person to read the same, as that whiche is the very liuely word of God, that every christen person is bounden to embrace, beleue, and folow, if he loke to be saued, admonishing them neuerthe- les to auoid all contention and altercation therin, and to use an honest sobriety iu the inquisition of the true sense of the same, and to referre the explication of the obscure places, to men of higher judgement in scripture."^ There is some doubt as to what Bible these injunctions ' Strype's Memorials of Archbishop Cranmer. App., p. 43. ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1349. 1538,] ROMISH OPPOSITION, 185 refer ; whether to that of 1537, as the date seems to indicate, or to that of 1539, as the name seems to imply. If these in junctions were sent forth in 1538, which is not called in ques tion, then the Bible of 1537, it would seem, is the only one to which they could refer. And since it was a much larger folio than that of Coverdale's Bible, it was not inappropriate to designate it as the Bible of the largest volume. Those, who are infiuenced by the name, however, argue that these injunc tions refer to the Bible of 1539, and though the injunctions were issued in 1538, yet "the interruption of the printing could not have been definitely foreseen." * But Coverdale aud Grafton were in continual fear of interruption, and in fact the work was stopped at the close of the year 1538.^ As the date, therefore, favors the Bible of 1537, and the name is not inapplicable ; and, further, since the spirit of the injunctions is so in harmony with the request of Grafton, the mind of Cromwell and the good will of Henry VIIL, it seems reason able that these injunctions should refer to the Bible of 1537. But however favorable the auspices under which this Bible was issued, and however heartily it was welcomed by the friends of the Eeformation, which Strype in describing says : " It was wonderful to see with what joy this Book of God was received, not only among the Learned sort, and those that were noted for Lovers of the Eeformation, but generally all England over among all the Vulgar and common People ; and with what greediness God's Word was read, and what resort to Places where the reading of it was. Every body that could, bought the Book, or busily read it, or got others to read it to them, if they could not themselves,; and divers more elderly People learned to read on purpose ; " ' and yet, for all this, the enemy was not asleep, and his opposition was as great as he dared to offer. The vicars and curates were compelled to read from their pulpits the above declaration and injunctions, but ' Westcott's History of the Eng. Bible, p. 77, ¦note. London, 1873. ' Lewis' Hist, of Eng. Translations, p. 131. London, 1789. ' Memorials of Cranmer, p. 64. London, 1694. 186 matthewe's bible. [chap. v. they read them in such a manner, "humming and banking thereat," that little was understood of what was read. And to counteract the influence of what was understood, " they secretly suborned certain spreaders of Eumors and false Tales in Comers, who interpreted the Injunctions to a false sense And they bad their Parishioners, notwithstanding what they read, being compelled so to do, that they should do as they did in Times past, to live as their Fathers ; and that the old Fashion is the best ; and other crafty and seditious Para bles they gave out among them." * So, likewise, the Bibles were placed in the churches as was commanded, and because commanded, but not in places convenient of approach; the priests and their adherents putting them where " the poor did not presume to come." Besides, the circulation of Tyndale's New Testaments and Coverdale's and Matthewe's Bibles gave rise to disputes and wranglings in places of public resort In deed, since the first publication of Erasmus' Greek and Latin Testament, the ale house and the tavern had been the theatres for the abuse and derision of the Holy Scriptures by the Eomish priests. So that this opposition was not new, either in its spirit or manner of manifestation. As further illustrating the spirit of the times, and that the opposition was not confined to the priests, it is related of William Maldon that when a child he was accustomed every Sunday to assemble with others at the church to listen to the reading of the New Testament. His father observing this, "once angrily fetched him away, and would have him say the Latin Mattins with him." And as often as he returned to the church to hear the reading of the Bible, his father would force him away. The boy then resolved upon learning to read, that he might read for himself, the New Testament; " which when he had by diligence effected, he and his Father's Apprentice bought the New Testament, joining their Stocks together ; and to conceal it, laid it under the Bed-straw, and read it at convenient Times." One night, in conversation ' Memorials of Cranmer, p. 70. 1539.] cranmer's letter to lord lisle. 187 with his mother, he assured her that kneeling to the crucifix, holding up the hands to it and knocking on the breast when it passed by in a procession, that all such adoration was idolatry " and against the Commandment of God, where he saith : Thou shalt not make any graven Image, nor bow down to it, nor loorship it." Whereupon the mother was greatly enraged, and said : " Wilt thou not worship the Cross, which was about thee when thou wert Christned, and must be laid on thee when thou art dead ,? " She went out in anger and related the whole matter to her husband, who "boiling in Fury " went to his son's chamber and " like a mad Zealot, taking him by the Hair of his Head, with both his Hands, pulled him out of the Bed, and whipped him unmercifully. And when the Young Man bore his beating, as he related, with a kind of Joy, considering it was for Christ's Sake, and shed not a tear ; his Father, seeing that, was more inraged, and ran down and fetched an Halter, and put it about his Neck, saying he would hang him." But from this violence of the father he was saved by the entreaties of the mother and brother.* Notwithstanding the spirit of intolerance on the part of the papists, the times are favorable to the Eeformation, and con sequently to the free use of the English Bible. And it is not strange, when this new liberty came in contact with the old bondage, that there. should have been conflict. Hence there was complaint, that the reading of the Bible in the churches, as permitted by the injunctions, was in contempt of the divine services of the church and an hindrance thereto. In reply to such complaints, Cranmer wrote to Lord Lisle in July, 1539: "As concerning such persons as in time of divine service do read the bible, they do much abuse the king's grace's intent and meaning in his grace's injunctions and proclamations ; which permitteth the bible to be read, not to allure great multitudes of people together, nor thereby to interrupt the time of prayer : but that the same be done ' Memorials of Cranmer, pp. 64, 65. 188 matthewe's bible. [chap. v. and read in time convenient, privately, for the condition and amendment of the lives both of the readers and such hearers as cannot themselves read, and not in contempt or hinderance of any divine service or laudable ceremony used in the church ; nor that any such reading should be used, ex pounding and interpreting scriptures, unless it be by such as shall have authority to preach and read ; but that all other readers of the bible do no otherwise read thereupon, than the simple and plain text purporteth and lieth printed in the book." * The favorable reception of Matthewe's Bible was based upon the fact that it was the word of God clothed in the language of the people. So likewise the virulent opposition of the Eomish bishops and clergy was based upon the same fact. Besides, Cromwell in obtaining the king's license could not have perused the volume beyond the dedication, which was quite in the flattering spirit of the age, otherwise he must have discovered to the king, that in licensing this work he would favor that which in times past he had so bitterly opposed. To the bishops of the Eomish party there was much in the prefatory matter to excite their hatred. The notes also were anti-papal, and must have greatly dis pleased them. These notes are described as being not only textual but doctrinal and practical; some of which were original while others were gathered from various sources. As critical notes they did not veil the opinions of Tyndale, but rather presented them in an intensified form; and not unfrequently going far beyond Cranmer's views respecting Catholic doctrines and usages.^ There were prologues also which must have beeu equally distasteful to the Eomish clergy. Among these was Tyndale's prologue to Paul's Epistle to the Eomans. Sir Thomas More had denounced this, and before him. Dr. Eidley had "taken angry notice of it," as teaching " altogether most poisoned and abhorrable ' Remains and Letters of Archbishop Cranmer. Parker Society edition, p. .391. 2 Eadie's Hist, of Eng. Bible, I., 331, 333, 333. 1538-9.] the occasions oe offense. 189 heresies." * And yet this prologue is but a running com mentary on the several chapters of the Epistle, taken up in their order, in which the meaning of the Apostle is set forth in all simplicity, and with much spiritual insight of Gospel tmth. If anywhere the author makes a thrust, it is in the last chapter, where he exhorts to "beware of the traditions and doctrine of men which beguile the simple and draw them from Christ and noosel them in weak and in beg garly ceremonies, for the intent that they would hve in fat pastures, and be in authority and be taken as Christ, yea, and above Christ, and sit in the temple of God, that is to wit, in the consciences of men, where God only, his word and his Christ, ought to sit."^ But the offense of all others, was that the Bible was made up largely from Tyndale's translation, and therefore could not but excite the hafred of the Eomish bishops. Since the denunciations of Sir Thomas More against Tyndale, the minds of the bishops, by force of circumstances, have changed in respect to the right of the people to the Scriptures in their own tongue ; but there has been no change in their hafred of Tyndale's translation. The evil spirit of the Eomish party, though curbed for a season, will by and by show itself in its dire malignity. At the present, however, court authority is on the side of a free Bible. And a variety of editions of the Scripture wiU soon appear, as the epoch of the so-called Great Bibles is at hand. The pre-eminence of Matthewe's Bible consists in the fact that while it was largely based upon Tyndale's translation, it became the basis of subsequent English versions, including at the last our present English Bible. The several links in the chain are fraceable, since Matthewe's Bible (1537), through revision, became the Great Bible of 1539-1540; which in turn, by revision, became the Bishop's Bible of 1568 ; which again in tum, became King James' Bible of 1611, There are other ' Tyndale's Works, I., 483. 2 Ibid, Prologue to the Epistle to Romans, p. 508. 190 MATTHEWE'S BIBLE. [CHAP, V. very important links, but these indicate the hne of authorized succession; although the authority does not always appear, since the revisers from the first manifested great liberality and good sense in the use of the various helps before them, John Eogers was not only a careful editor, but an intelligent reviser, as both his text and notes indicate. In the latter he often suggests readings which he might wisely have introduced into the text. The title reads : " The Bible, which is all the Holy Scripture, in which are contayned the Olde and Newe Tes tament, truelye and purelye translated into Englysh. By Thomas Matthewe. Esaye I. Hearken to, ye Heavens, and thou earth geaue ear ; for the Lorde speaketh. M. D.XXXVH. Set forth with the Kinges most gracyous Lycence." This edition contains an extra amount of prefatory matter. Next to the title-page follows: "A Dedication to the King"; then " A Preface to the Eeader." After which are placed in order: "1, A calender; 2, An exhortation to the study of the Holy Scripture, with the initials J. E. at the end; 3. The Summe and Content of all the holy Scripture, both of the Old and Newe Testament ; 4. A Table of the pryncypal mat ters conteyned in the Byble ; 5. A description of the Kings of Juda, and what Prophets were in each reign; 6. The Names of all the Bokes of the Byble, and the contents of the chapters of every Boke, with the nombre of the Leaffe wherein the. Bokes begynne ; 7. A brief rehersaU of the yeares passed sence the begynnynge of the worlde unto this yeare of our Lorde M.CCCCC.XXXVIL" At the close of the Old Testament are printed W. T., the initials of William Tyndale, " as if," says Lewis, " it was trans lated all by him." At the end of the New Testament is printed : " The ende of the Newe Testament and of the whole Byble. To the honoure and prayse of God was this Byble printed and fyneshed in the yere of our Lorde God a. M.D.XXXVII." Copies of this Bible are preserved in the British Museum, Bodleian, and other Enghsh libraries. A new or rather a revised edition of Matthewe's Bible, by 1539.] TAVERNER'S REVISION. 191 Eichard Taverner, was published in 1539. Bishop Bale re gards it almost as a new translation ; while Lewis pronounces it something between a revision and a translation, and adds that "it is a Correction of what is called Matthews's Bible wherever the Editor thought it needful."* The title reads : " The most sacred Bible, whiche is the Holy Scripture, con teyning the Olde and New Testament, translated intb Eng lish, and newly recognised with great dihgence after most faythful exemplars. By Eichard Taverner. Harken thou heven, and thou earth gyve eare, for the Lord speaketh. Esaie I.— Prynted at London in Fletestrete at the sygne of the Sonne, by John Byddell for Thomas Barthlett, Cum privilegio ad imprimendum solum. M. D. XXXIX. "^ The prefatory matter is similar to that in Matthewe's Bible, and consists of: " 1. A Dedication to the King, by Taverner; 2. An Exhortation to the studye of the holy scripture ; . . . . 3. The summe and content of all the holye scripture ; 4. The names of all the Bokes of the Bible, with the contents of the Chapters ; 5. A briefe rehersaU declarynge how long the worlde hath endured from the creation of Adam unto this present yeare of oure Lorde M. D. XXXIX ; 6. A Table to fynde manye of the chyefe and pryncypal matters conteyned in the Bible."' The title of the New Testament reads : " The Newe Tes tament of our Sauyour Jesu Christ, translated into English ; and newly recognised with great diligence after moost faythful exemplars. By Rycharde Taverner, Pray for us that the worde of God may have fre passage and be gloryfied. II Tessa. iii, Prynted in the yere of oure Lorde God M, D. XXXIX."* In the make up of this volume Taverner left out the most of Eogers' notes; and in the revision of the text he made comparatively but few changes, and even these for the most part were verbal. The following have been noted as specimens : Gen. iii. 5, Ye shall be as Gods ; Eogers has : as God. Gen. ' History of Translations of English Bible, p. 133. London, 1739. " Ibid, p. 130. ' Ibid, p. 130. « Ibid, p. 131. 192 MATTHEWE'S BIBLE. [CHAP. V. xliii. 11, a quantitie of baulme ; Eogers has : a curtesye baulme. ]::ium.xxiy. 19, 22, residue, and never the less; where Eogers has : rmnnant, and never the later. H Kings, xxiii. 5, reUgious persons ; Eogers has : Kemurims. In the New Tes tament, some of Taverner's phrases found their way into King James' version. The following are noted as examples : Matt. xiii. 58, because of their unbelief; xviii. 12, ninety and nine; xxi. 17, lodged; Gal. iv. 20, / stand in doubt of you. As an illustration of Taverner's literal and forcible rendering of the Greek, we have such examples as: Matt. xxii. 6, intreated them foully ; 12, had never a word to say ; 34, stopped the Sadducees' mouths. Taverner undertook the work of revision, according to Lewis, at the instigation of Cromwell, or at least by his encouragement. But from Taverner's own words, in his dedication to the King, it would seem that he was induced to enter upon it by the printers, who desired to put forth a newly corrected edition of the Bible. His own words are : " Foras- moch as the prynters herof were very desirous to have the Bible come forth as faultlesse and emendatly as the shortnes of tyme for the recognysing of the same wold require, they desyred hym, for default of a better learned, diligently to overloke and peruse the hole copy, and in case he should fynd any notable default that neded correction, to amende the same according to the true exemplars, which thing according to his talent he had gladly done."* Taverner, since the days of Wolsey, had been a friend of the New Testament party. He was one of the Cambridge scholars whom Wolsey invited to a professorship in his new College at Oxford. " This ambitious Cardinall," says Foxe, " gathered together into that CoUedge (Fryswide) whatsoeuer excellent thyng there was in the whole realme, either vestimentes, vessels or other ornaments Besides that, he also appointed unto that company all such men as were founde to excell in any kynde of learnyng and knowledge." After giving a list of the names of those who ' History of Translations of English Bible, p. 133. 1551.J RICHARD TAVERNER. 193 were chief among the number from Cambridge, he added: " to these joyne also Tauerner of Boston the good Musician." * Taverner also was among those who were imprisoned for the New Testament's sake, in the fish cellar of that same College building. This was when Tyndale's New Testaments were first distributed at Oxford ; and the charge against Taverner was his " hyding of Clarkes bookes under the boardes in his schole." Taverner was not only a singer, but " in the tyme of his blyndness had made songes to popishe ditties"; and in this way had won upon the regard of Wolsey, who, when he heard that Taverner was suspected and in prison, ordered him to be released, " saying, that he was but a Musician."* Shortly after this Taverner entered upon the study of the law, and was admitted to the Inner- Temple, where, it is said, " hia way was to quote the Law in Greek when he read anything thereof" ' In 1534 he was taken into the service of Crom well, who was then Secretary of State, and by his recommenda tion was made in 1537, one of the Clerks of the Signet. Taverner held this position until the reign of Mary ; though in 1541, and again in 1543, he was committed to the Tower " as a Gospeller, and for publishing the Bible." Yet he acquitted himself so well that in both instances he was soon released and restored to the King's favor.* Eichard Taverner deserves to be held in grateful remem brance not only as a scholar, but as a layman devoting himself to the interests of the Eeformation, by revising the Scripture and preaching the Gospel. In 1552, on the accession of Ed ward VI. , Taverner was especially licensed to preach the Gos pel throughout the king's dominions. When Mary came to the throne he was compelled to desist ; but upon the accession of Queen Elizabeth, "he resumed his preaching at Oxford and elsewhere." He was respected and honored by the queen, who besides offering him knighthood, made him high sheriff of Oxford in 1569, He died July 14, 1575, in the seven- " Acts and Monuments, p. 1174. " Ibid, p. 1174. ^ Lewis' History of English Translations of the Bible, p. 131. * Ibid, p. 133. 9 194 MATTHEWE'S BIBLE, [CHAP. V. tieth year of his age, and was buried in the chancel of the church with great solemnity." * A folio edition of Taverner's New Testament, and possibly the whole Bible, was put forth in 1539.* In 1549, an edition of Taverner's Bible was issued by Daye and Seres, in 5 vols., 12mo, Some of these volumes were not printed till 1550 and 1551. The design of printing the edition " in sundry partes," was professedly " for these pore, — that they which are not able to bie the hole, bie a part,"' There is no complete set of these volumes known.* Becke's revision of Taverner's Bible was printed in 1551 by John Daye, Nearly the whole of the Old Testament is Taverner's, with but a few changes by Becke. The third book of Maccabees appeared in this edition for the first time. There is an imperfect copy of this Bible in the Lane Seminary Library at Cincinnati, It begins with Gen. xxxix., and ends with the Epistle to the Colossians. It contains Tyndale's prologues. The notes are printed at the end of the chapters, but are omitted till you come to the book of Job. The Old Testament is divided into three parts; the first ending with Deuteronomy, the second with Job, and the third with Malachi. Maccabees is divided into three books. Th e title of the New Testament reads : " The Newe Testamente of oure Savioure Jesu Christe diligently translated accordynge to y' Greke, with certayne Notes folowynge the chapters, wherein ' the hardest doutes are declared for y° better understandynge of the unlearned reader." That this is a Becke's Taverner appears from the rendering of Gen. xliii, 11 " take of the frutes of the laud in your vessels, and carry the man a present a quantytye of baivhne ; " which Tyndale and Coverdale had ren dered a curtesy balme. Also in II, (or iiii) Kings, xxiii, 5, ' Chalmers' Biographical Dictionary, Art. Taverner, p. 161. ^ Cotton's list embraces this Bible, but adds in a note that " no edition of the Old Testament has been yet found." Editions of Eng. Bibles, p. 15. Oxford, 1853. ' Anderson's Annals, p. 650. * Parts II. and IV. are in the British Museum Library ; III. in the Libraries of St. Paul's and Trinity College, Dublin; and IV. in tho Bodleian and Lambeth Libraries. 1549,] becke's revision. 195 the word kemurims of Coverdale is translated religious per sons. It also contains the III book of Maccabees. In 1540 an edition of Matthewe's Bible was printed at Lon don by Thomas Petyt and Eobert Eedman, This is called by Cotton, Cranmer's Bible ; but Anderson regards it as an edition of Matthewe's Bible, from the fact that it differs from the Great Bible of Cranmer in wanting the prologue. The read ings also, iu the Psalms and elsewhere, are different. The text of the New Testament is after Erasmus, and is the same ver sion as that printed by Eedman in 1538.* In 1549, another edition of Matthewe's Bible was printed by John Daye and W. Seres. This was Becke's revision. It contain's Matthewe's notes, and with but few changes in the text. The following is transcribed as a specimen of this version : * Ex. XX. A. And God spake all these wordes and sayd ; I am the Lorde thy God, which haue brought the out of the laude of Egipte and out of the house of bondage. Thou shalt haue none other Goddes in my sight. Thou shalt make the no grauen ymage neyther any simili tude that is in heauen aboue either in the earth beneth ; or in the water that is beneth the earth. Se that thou neither bowe thy self vnto them neither serue them ; for I the Lord thy God am a gelouse God. and viset the synne of the fathers vppon the chyldren vnto the thyrd and fourth generacion of them that hate me ; and yet shew mercye vnto thousandes among them that loue me and kepe my Commandmentes. B. Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vayne, for the Lord wil not hold him giltlesse that taketh his name in vayne. Remembre the Sabbath daye that thou sanctifie it. Sixe dayes mayst thou laboure and do all that thou hast to do : but the seuenth day is the Sab bath daye of the Lord thy God, in it thou shalt do no maner worke ; nether thou nor thy sonne, nor thy daughter, neither thy man seruaunte nor thy mayde ser- uaunte, neither thy cattel, neither yet the straunger that is within thy gates. For in sixe dayes the Lord made both ' Annals of the Eng. Bible, p. 361. - Taken from a copy in the Boston Public Library. 196 matthewe's bible. [chap. v. Ex. XX. B. heauen and earth and the sea and all that in them is and rested the seuenth day : wherefore the Lord blessed the Sabbath daye and hallowed it. Honour thy father and thy mother, that thy dayes may be longe in the lande which the Lorde thy God geueth the. C. Thou shalt not kyll. Thou shalt not breake wedlocke. Thou shalt not steale. Thou shalte beare no false witnesse agaynst thy neygboure. Thou shalt not couet thy neighbours house neither shalt couet thy neighbours wyfe, his man seruant, his mayde, his oxe, his asse or oughte that is hys. Another edition of Matthewe's Bible was published in 1549, by Hyll and Eevnolds. This was a reprint of the edition of 1537, " imprinted and fynesshed iu the laste daye of Octohre in the yeare of oure Lorde God M. D. XLIX." But the work was very "faultily done." Eadie pronounces it altogether "a wretched production — the type bad and the arrangement de void of taste and accuracy." * There is still another edition of Matthewe's Bible deserving notice, which was issued in folio by "Nicolas Hyll, VI May, M. D. LI." The colophon at the end of the New Testament reads : " Diligently perused and corrected and imprinted by Nicolas Hyll, dwelling in Saynct Johu Streete, at the coste and charges of certayn honest menne of the occupacion whose names be upon thefr bokes." * Ac cordingly, different copies of this one edition bore severally and singly the names of the pubHshers, eight in all, who united together, doubtless for financial reasons, to put forth this edi tion. Their names were Eobert Toye, Wm. Bonham, Abraham Veale, John Wyghte, Thomas Petyt, T. Eaynalde, J, Walley, Eichard Kele,' The condition of the copartnership seems to have been that a certain number of copies should be assigned to each individual bearing his name as the sole publisher. The following specimens are from a copy " Imprinted at London by Thomas Petyt, dwellinge in Paules churche yarde, at the ' History of EngUsh Bible, I., 346. 2 Cotton's Editions of the English Bible, p. 37. Oxford, 1853. s Anderson's Annals, p. 651, 1551,] SPECIMENS OF THB TRANSLATION. 197 sygne of the Maydens heade. Cum gracia et privilegio ad Im primendum solum, VI day of Maye, M, D, LI," * Ps. XXIII. A. The Lorde is my shepherde, I can want nothynge. He fedeth me in a grene pasture and leadith me to a fresh water. He quickeneth my soule, and bringeth me forthe in the waye of ryghteousness for hys names sake. B. Though I shoulde walcke nowe in the valley of the shadowe of death, yet I feare no euyll, for thou arte with me ; thy staflfe and thy shepehoke comforte me. Thou preparest a table before me agaynste myne ene myes : Thou annoyntest my heade with oyle, and fyl lest my cuppe full. Oh let thy louinge kyndues and mercye folowe me all the dayes of my lyfe, that I may dwell in the house of the Lorde for euer. I. Cor. XIII. A. Though I spake with the tonges of men and angels, and yet had no loue, I were euen as soundinge brasse; or as a tikenlynge cymball. And thoughe I coulde prophesye, and vnderstode all secretes, and al knowledge ; yea, yf I had all faythe, so that I coulde moue mountains oat of their places, and yet had no loue, I were nothynge. And thoughe I be stowed all my goodes to fede the poore, and thoughe I gaue my bodye euen tbat I burned, and yet had no loue, it profyteth me nothynge. B. Loue suffreth longe and is corteous. Loue enuyeth not. Ijoue dothe not frowardly, swelleth not, dealeth not dishonestly, seketh not her owne, is not prouoked to angre, thyncketh not euell, rejoyseth not in iniquite ; But rejoyseth in the trueth, suffreth all thynges, be leueth all thynges, hopeth al thynges, endureth in all thynges. Though that prophesyinge fayle, other tongues shal cease, or knowledge vanyshe awaye, yet loue falleth neuer awaye. For oure knowledge is vnperfecte, and our pro phesyinge is vnperfecte. But when that whiche is perfecte, is come, then that whiche is vnperfecte, shall be done awaye. ¦When I was a chylde, I spake as a chylde, I vnderstode as a chylde, I imagined as D. a chylde. But as soone as I was a man, I put awaye chyldishnes. Nowe we see iu a glasse, euen in a * Taken from a copy in Boston Public Library. 198 matthewe's bible. [chap. v. darcke speakynge ; But then shall we see face to face. Nowe I knowe vnperfectlye ; But then shall I knowe euen as I am knowen. Nowe abydeth faythe, hope, and loue, euen these thre ; But the chiefe of these is loue. The above extract by comparison with Tyndale's revised edition of 1534 will be found to correspond with it word for word;* as we might expect, since the New Testament of Matthewe's Bible is based upon Tyndale's last revision. This edition of 1551, of Matthewe's Bible, bears the nick name of the " Bug Bible," from the reading of Psalm xci. 5, So shalt thou not be afraid of any Bugges by nighte. Though this reading is not peculiar to this edition, as it is found in the edition of 1537; also in Coverdale's Bible, 1535, On account of the opposition of the bishops to the prologues and notes of the Bible of 1537, together with the desire on the part of Cromwell to put forth a Bible of a still greater volume, a new enterprise was projected soon after the first appearance of this Bible of 1537, which resulted in the publi cation of Cromwell's Bible, 1539, which was the beginning of a series of publications known as " Great Bibles " or " Bibles of the Largest Volume," ^o^ ' See above on pages 133, 134 CHAPTER YI. BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME. A, D. 1539, 1540. CEOMWELL'S Bible * is the first of a series of editions known by the comprehensive name of Bibles of the Largest Volume. These great Bibles, though issued at dif ferent times and under different auspices, owe their origin to the enterprise of Lord Cromwell, the first fruit of which was the edition of 1539, The Bible of 1537 met -(vith serious opposition at the hand of Eomish bishops on account of its anti-papal notes and prologues ; and while, as yet, the first edition was unsold, Cromwell resolved to publish a Bible which for size and text, should excel all previous editions,' The work of revising and editing he put into the hands of Myles Coverdale, in whom he found not only a familiar friend, but one in whose scholarly attainments, conscientious spirit, and familiarity with the work of Bible revision, he could confide for the faithful setting forth of the Scriptures in Enghsh. Matthewe's Bible was chosen as the basis of this new Bible. Grafton and Whitechurch, the publishers of the Matthewe's Bible, were induced to lay aside that enterprise and enter upon this. Paris was chosen as the place of publi cation, on account of the facilities offered there for procuring the most skillful printers and the best paper. That Cromwell was the leading spirit in this enterprise we ' Sometimes called Cranmer's Bible, the occasion being that Cran mer's prologue is occasionally found in copies of this edition. But the prologue belongs originally to Cranmer's Bible, 1540, and is distinctly referred to the title-page. See Preface, Bagster's Hexapla, p. 37. London, N. D. ' Coverdale's Bible, 1535, and Matthewe's Bible, 1537, were both in folio. 200 bibles of the largest volume, [chap, VI, have abundant evidence in the letters written to him by Coverdale and Grafton from Paris. In one of these, they write : " We be entred into your worke of the Byble, wherof (accordynge to our moost bounden dutie) we have here sent unto your Lordship 2 ensamples ; one, in parchment, wherein we entende to prynt one for the Kynges Grace, and another for your Lordship ; and the second, in paper, wherof all the rest shalbe made ; trustynge that it shalbe not onlye to the glorye of God, but a synguler pleasure, also, to your good Lordship the causer therof." * After stating something of their manner of proceeding, that they followed not only the Hebrew, " with the interpretacion of the Caldee, and the Greke, but we set, also, in a pryvate table, the dyversite of redinges of aU textes, with such annotacions, in another table, as shall douteles delucidate and clear the same." They further express an assurance, that "the prynt" would please him, also that the paper was of " the best sorte in France," And that they look to him, not only for means to carry on the work, acknowledging at the same time that " the charge certaynly is great," but also for " favourable letters ether to the Bysshop of Wynchester, or to some other, whome your Lordship shall thinke moost expedyent."' In another letter dated August 9, 1538, almost two months after the above, they ¦write : " Pleaseth the same to under stand, that your worke going forward, we thought it oure moost bounden dutie to seude unto your Lordship certain leaves therof, specially seynge we had so good occasyon, by the returaynge of your beloved servaunt Sebastian. And as they are done, so will we sende your Lordship the residue, from tyme to tyme." After explaining the hands and marks introduced into the text, they add : "this (amonge other oure necessarie laboures,) is the waye that we take, in this worke ; trustynge, verely, that as God AUmightie moved youre Lord ship, to set us unto yt, so shall it be to His glorie, and right ' Coverdale's Memorials, LeUer to Cromwell, June 33, 1538. App., pp. 195, 196. 3 Ibid, p. 198. 1538.] CROMWELL, "A GREAT HELPER," 201 welcome to all them that love to serve Him, and their Prince, in true faithf nil obedyence,"* There is still another letter extant from Grafton and Cover- dale to Cromwell bearing date of Sept, 12, of this same year, in which they bespeak the favor of Cromwell in behalf of Francis Eeynold, their host, at whose press the printing was being done. After mentioning some particulars, they add : " Yf your Lordshippe shewe him, this benifyte, we schall not fare the worsse in the readynesse and due expedicion of this your Lordshippes worke of the Bible, which goeth well for- warde, and within few monethes, will draw to an ende," ^ After perusing these letters, or even the above extracts, there can be no doubt of the fact that Cromwell was the chief patron of this enterprise. It is noticeable that the name of Cranmer nowhere appears in this correspondence, and yet it has been very common to designate the Bible of 1539, as Cranmer's Bible. Foxe in setting forth Cromwell's connection with this Bible, says : that he procured of the kyng of Eng land his gracious letters to the Frenche kyng, " to permit and licence a subjecte of his to imprint the Bible in Englishe, within the Universitie of Paris because paper was there more mete .... and more store of good workemen."^ In giving a further account of this edition, he says: "the Printers whereof were the foresayd Eichard Grafton, and Whytchurch whiche bare the charges, A great helper therto was the Lord Cromwell, The chiefest ouerseer was Myles Couerdale." * Grafton and Coverdale must have gone over to Paris early in the spring of 1538, since on the 23d of June they had entered fully upon the work of printing. They were en couraged, not only by Cromwell's support, but by the license ' Coverdale's Memorials, pp. 196, 197. This letter is dated from Paris and signed by " your faithfuU Oratours, Myies Covbbdale, Richard Gkapton and ¦William Gkbt." « Lbid, p. 198. ' Strype's Memor'ials of Archbishop Cranmer. The original document is in the Appendix, pp. 56, 57. * Acts and Monuments, p. 1363. 202 bibles of the largest VOLUME, [chap. VI. of the King of France, and by the special regard of Bishop Bonner, the English Ambassador, who was instructed by Henry VIII. "that hee should ayde aud assiste the doers therof in all their reasonable sutes." * Whereupon the bishop, either from principle or policy, was diligent in his attentions upou the work and workmen, both by visiting the place where the Bibles were being printed, and partaking of the dinners there provided at his own expense ; also insist ing by invitations, that the workmen should dine with him at his own house. In the mean time Bonner is preferred to the bishopric of London. He is still loud in his professions towards Coverdale and Grafton and will aid their enterprise. But very soon after he gained possession of his bishopric his promises were forgotten.' But with all this encouragement Coverdale and Grafton are almost from the first, in daily expectation of trouble from the papal authorities of Paris. "We be dayly threatened, they wrote to Cromwell, "and looke ever to be spoken withall, as this berer can farther enforme your Lordship ; but how they will use us, as yet we knowe not."^ The story of printing this Bible at Paris, as related by Foxe, is substan tially correct and is worthy of being rehearsed. After the French king had given his full consent, the printers went forward with the work, when there was " a quarell picked to the printer, and he was sent for to the Inquisitors of the fayth, and there charged with certeine Articles of heresie. Then were sent for y° Englishmen, that were at y° cost and charge therof, and also such as had the correction of the same, whiche was Myles Couerdall ; but hauing some wamyng what would folowe, the sayd Englishemen posted away as fast as they could to save them selues, leauynge behynde them all their Bibles whiche were to the number of xxv. C, called the Bibles of the great Volume, and never recouered any of them, sauyng that the Lieutenant criminall, hauyng them ' Acts and Monuments, p. 1363. ' Ibid, p. 1363. 2 Coverdale's Memorials, App., p. 190. 1539,] "CERTBN GODLY ANNOTACTONS, " 303 deliuered unto him to burne, in a place of Paris (like Smith- field) called Maulbert place, was somewhat moued with couetousnes, and sold iiii great dry fattes of them to a Haberdasher to lappe in cappes, and those were bought agayn, but the rest were burned, to the great and importunate losse of those that bare the charge of them. But notwithstandyng the sayd losse, after they had recouered some parte of the aforesayd bookes, and were well comforted and encouraged by the Lord Cromwell, the sayd Englishemen went agayne to Paris, and there gotte the presses, letters, and seruantes of the aforesayd Printer, and brought them to London, and there they became Printers them selues, and Printed out the said Bible in London, and after that Printed sundry im pressions of them; but yet not without great trouble and losse, for the hatred of the Bishops, namely Steuen Gardiner and his felowes, who mightly did stomacke and maligne the Printyng therof."* In a letter dated December 13, 1538, Coverdale sought Cromwell's advice as to whether he should proceed to print the annotations which he had prepared. He thought it a pity that "the darck places of y" text (vpon y" which I haue all waye set a hande) shulde so passe vndeclared." He promised to avoid all "contencious words or pryuate opyuions," ' and before printing to submit them to Bishop Bonner for his approval. The markes and handes were in serted in several editions, but the annotations were never printed. By way of explanation Coverdale in his prologue to the Bible of 1539, says : " We have also, as ye may see, added many handes both in the margent of this Volume and also in the Text, upon the which we purposed to have made in the ende of the Byble (in a Table by themselves) certen godly annotacyons; but for so moch as yet there hath not bene suflycient tyme mynystred to the Kynge's moost honourable councell for the ouersyght aud correccyon of the sayde an- ' Acts and Monuments, p. 1363. ' Coverdale's Memorials, App., p 199. 204 BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME, [CHAP. VI, notacions, we wyll therfor omyt them tyU their more con venient leysour, Doynge now no more but beseke the, moost gentle reader, that when thou commest at soch a place where a hande doth stand, and thou canst not attayne to the meanynge and true knowledge of that sentence, then do not rashly presume to make any pryuate interpretacyon therof, but submyt thy self to the judgement of those that are godly learned in Christ Jesu." * The first edition of this Bible was published in Loudon in April, 1539, with the following title : " The Byble in Eng lyshe ; that is to say, the content of all the holy Scripture bothe of the olde and newe testament, truly translated after the' veryte of the Hebrue and Greke textes by the dylygent studye of dyuerse excellent learned men experte in the for- sayde tonges, Prynted by Eichard Grafton & Edward Whit church, Cum priuilegio ad imprimendum solum., 1539." Around this title is the celebrated frontispiece by Hans Holbein, At the top of the page, God the Father is represented in the clouds, with his arms extended in the act of blessing ; and on either side of him, are elaborate scrolls inscribed with appropriate Scripture texts; on his extreme left in the distance, Henry VIIL is represented kneeling, his crown on the ground, and the scroll indicating that he accepts the Bible as the lamp of his feet. In the center, immediately beneath, Henry VIII, sits on his throne, and is in the act of giving the Bible to the bishops on his right, also to the lords temporal on his left. The books thus presented are clasped and marked on the covers Verbum Dei. In the center and on the right of the title stands Archbishop Cranmer in the act of giving a clasped Bible to a kneeling priest ; immedi ately opposite and on the left stands Lord Cromwell with a Bible in his left hand, which he is presenting to a layman, who receives it as a representati've of several others standing near him. At the bottom of the page and on the extreme ' As cited by Lewis' History of Eng. Translations of Bible, p, 136. t!@LlEElNl'S PIOINlTESFIECEo Great Bible, 1539. 1539.] THE BASIS OF THIS REVISION. 205 right, is represented a priest who, from his pulpit, is preaching to a concourse of people, made up of men, women and children, who fill up the foreground ; while on the left, stands a prison, through whose grated windows the prisoners look out aud seem to share in the common joy; the joy of gratitude for the gift of the Bible in their own tongue, which is expressed in a multitude of scrolls beai-ing the inscriptions " ViVAT Eex " and " God save the Kino." The prefatory matter of this Bible comprises: "1. The names of all the books of the Bible; 2. The Calender; 3. An Almanach for xix years; 4. An exhortation to the studye of the holy scripture gathered out of the Byble; 5. Summe aud content of the olde and newe testament; 6. Prologue; 7. Descriptyon of the kynges of Juda and Jerusalem ; 8. With what judgement the bokes of the Olde Testament are to be read." This Bible of 1539 went forth without a dedi cation, which as a prominent feature distinguishes it from the previous editions of 1535 and 1537. Another character istic is that it was without notes ; but its chief peculiarity is the additions from the Vulgate, which are inserted in the text, but in smaller type, indicating that they were not in the original text. These insertions are numerous, and are for the most part made up of single words and phrases, but in a few instances of whole verses. The basis of this revision was the Bible of 1537. The changes made were comparatively few. The claim set up in the title that the translation was made after "the veryte of the Hebrue and Greke textes, by the dylygent studye of dyuerse excellent learned men experte in the forsayde tonges," must be understood as referring not to cotemporary fellow-helpers of Coverdale, but rather to those whose versions he consulted as interpreters. Such learned men as Erasmus, Pagninus, and Munster. The last-named of these published a Latin version of all the books of the Old Testament, which was printed at Basil in 1534, 1546. This, with the version of Pagninus, which was the first modern translation from the Hebrew, and was considered by the Jews more correct than earlier trans- 206 BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME. [CHAP. VI, lations, was used by Coverdale in revising the Old Testament; while the Greek Testament of Erasmus, with its Latin trans lation, was used for the New Testament, The following is a single specimen from the Great Bible of 1539.* Ps. XXIII. The Lorde is my shepherd, therfore can I lacke nothing. He shall feede me in a grene pasture aud leade me forth beside the waters of comfort. Hee shall conuerte my soule, and bryng me forth beside the pathes of righteousnes for his names sake. Te though I walke throughe the valley of the shadow of death. I ¦wyll feare no euyll, for thou arte ¦wyth me, thy rod and thy staffe comforte me. Thou shalt prepare a table before me agaynste theym that trouble mee ; thou haste anointed my heade wyth oyle, and my cup shalbe full. But (thy) louing kindnes and mercy shal folowe me al the dayes of my lyfe. And I will dwell in the house of the Lord for euer. The times just now are most inconsistent. The Bible is printed and freely circulated ; but the friends of the Bible are again persecuted, even at the hands of thefr own friends. The connection of Cromwell and Cranmer with the trial and condemnation of the excellent Lambert is hard to understand. It was none other than Cromwell, "the friend of the Gospel lers," who read the sentence of condemnation against Lam bert. Possibly Foxe is right in attributing this to the " ma licious and crafty subtiltye of the Byshop of Wynchester, which desired rather that the sentence might be read by Crom well, the (than) by any other, so that if he refused to do it, he should likewise haue incurred the lyke daunger." ^ For it is this Bishop Gardiner, and not Cromwell, who now has the ear of the King. The noble stand which Archbishop Cranmer took in the three days' debate in the convocation against the ' From a copy in Harvard College Library. Published by John Cay- wood, London, 1568-9. 2 Pose's Acts and Monuments, pp. 1383, 1384. ' Ibid, p. 1396. 1540.] THE "SIX BLOODY ARTICLES." 207 six bloody articles, reveals not only his learning and sym pathies, but the sad fact that the Gospellers were losing in fluence with the king. These six articles Foxe calls "the whyp with vi strynges " ; and Fuller describes them as : " Laws, lad, as penned, worse, as prosecuted, which by some Bishops extensive interpretations, were made commensurate to the whole body of Popery." * These cruel enactments in the hands of savage bishops became a serious hinderance to the Eeformation. Henry VIIL is jealous of his reputation for orthodoxy. His words against Lambert were : " I will not be a patrone unto heretickes." But he had his supremacy to maintain as well as his orthodoxy. So that, with the Act of Supremacy in one hand, and the enactments of the Six Articles in the other, he made sad havoc in the ranks of both Papists and Protestants. So much so that many wondered "what Religion the King was of, his sword cutting on both sides, Protestants for Hereticks, and Papists for Traytors."^ Ac cording to Fuller, "a motley execution happened, 1540, in Smithfield, three Papists hanged by the Statute for denying ' Church History of Britain, B. V., p. 330. London, 1655. These six articles in a condensed form read as follows : L That in the Sacrament of the Altar, after consecration, there re- maineth no substance of bread or wine, but the substance of Christ, God and man. II. That the communion in both kinds is not necessary ad salutem, by the law of God, to all persons. IIL That Priests may not marry by the Law of God. rv. That vows of chastity ought to be observed. V. That it is meet and necessary, that private Masses be continued aud admitted in this English Church and Congregation. VI. That auricular confession is expedient and necessary and to be frequented in the Church of God as of necessity to Salvation. The penalty of denying the I. article was death by burning ; the same for denying the III. article. In case of denying the other articles, the flrst offense was punishable with imprisonment, the second offense with loss of goods and death. See in full, "Soke's Acts and Monuments, pp. 1396, 1397. ' Fuller's Church Hist, of Britain, B. V., p. 335. 208 BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME, [CHAP. VI. the King's supremacy, and as many Protestants burnt at the same time and place by vertue of the six Articles, dying with more pain and no lesse patience!' * The influence of Cromwell is fast waning, but his work is not yet done. During the year 1539 fifty-seven monasteries were dissolved, thirty-seven of which were abbeys or priories, and twenty were nunneries.^ The King was determined to break up these monastic houses, which were a disgrace to religion and a corrupting blotch on the body politic. His motives have been impugned, but the immoralities and cruel ties brought to light by the investigation of the visitors cer tainly justified his course if not the manner of it, Bui-net, after referring to the dissoluteness of these monks and friars, whose practices were "not fit to be spoken of," says, of a report that he had read of a visitation of a number of these houses, that the account contained " Abominations in it equal to any that were in Sodom." ^ But in respect to them, "it is better," says Cranmer, " to pass over them in silence and let the world judge of that which is well known, than with unchaste words by the expression of thefr unchaste life to offend chaste and godly ears." Henry VIIL, though yielding to the influence of the bishop of Winchester and his party, is at this time not unfavorable to the circulation of the Scriptures in the English tongue. In his letters patent of November 13, 1539, he expresses a desire that the people might attain a knowledge of God's word, and grants them " the free and liberal use of the Bible in our own natural English Tongue." *¦ Farther, he directs that the Lord Cromwell should have the special charge of printing the Bible for the "space of five years." ^ This proclamation was obtained through Cranmer, and is supposed to have been in favor of Grafton, who was then putting forth the Cromwell Bible of 1539, The free use of the Scriptures ' Fuller's Church Hist, of Britain, B. V., p. 335. ' Burnet's HiMory of the Reformation, I., B. IIL, p. 367. » Ibid.Tp. 191. ¦• Ibid, Records, p. 186. ¦> Ibid, Records, p. 186. 1540.] cranmer's bible, 1540, 209 by the people was very distasteful to Bishop Gardiner, who sought to influence the king against it. On a givep occasion Cranmer and Gardiner met together in the presence of the king, when in conversation the bishop magnified the danger of allowing the Scriptures to be read by the people ; and in the course of his harangue, asserted that the Apostohcal canons were of equal authority with the Scriptures, and appealed to Cranmer to disprove it. This the archbishop did, and his argument was so satisfactory to the king that he sharply re proved Gardiner, by telling him that " Cranmer was an old and experienced Captain, and was not to be troubled by Fresh- men and Novices."* In the meantime Archbishop Cranmer has been arranging for a second edition of the Great Bible. In a letter to Crom well dated November 14, 1539, he speaks of an interview with the printers, and after advising with them he had decided that copies of the Bible should be sold for 13s. 4d. ; but since it was the desire of Cromwell that they should be sold for 10s. per copy,^" though Whitechurch aud his fellowes thinketh it a small price, yet they were right well contented to sell them for 10s.," provided that license should be granted to no other printer. Further he inquired concerning the prologue which he had sent for the king's perusal and approval, with the re quest that it be delivered unto the said Whitechurch to be printed, "trusting that it shall both encourage many slow readers, and also stay the rash judgments of them that read therein." 3 There had been unnecessary delay, as Cranmer manifests some anxiety as to the fate of his prologue ; but he must wait five months longer, for the Bible will not appear till April, 1540. This delay is to be attributed to the Eomish bishops, to whom Henry VIII. had referred the whole matter. Directly bearing upon this we have the testimony of Cover- ' Burnet's History of the Reformation, I., B. IIL, p. 370. '' Equal in modern values to about $37.50. ^ Cranmer's Works, Letter cclxiv, p. 396. Parker Soc. ed., 1846. 210 bibles of the largest volume, [chap, VL dale, as recorded by Fulke, who says : " I my selfe and so did many hundreds beside mee, heare that' reuerende Father M, Doctor Coverdale of holy and learned memorie, in a Sermon at Paules Crosse, vpon occasion of some slanderous reports that then were raised against his translation, declare his faithfull purpose in doing the same, which after it was finished and presented to King Heniy the Eight, of famous memorie, and by him committed to diuers Bishops of that time, to peruse, of which (as I remember) Steuen Gardiner was one ; after tbey had kept it long in their hands, and the King was diuers times sued vnto for the publication thereof^- at the last being called for by the King himselfe, they redeliuered the booke : and being demanded by the King, what was their judgement of the translation, they answered, that there were many faults therein. 'Well' (said the King) 'but are there any heresies maintained thereby ? ' They answered, ' there were no heresies, that they could finde, maintained thereby.' ' If there be no heresies ' (said the King) ' then in God's name, let it goe abroad among our people.' " * That this refers to Cranmer's Bible of April, 1540, appears from a statement which Coverdale makes in this immediate connection : " that he did now himselfe espie some faults which if he might reuiew it once ouer againe, as hee had done twice before, hee doubted not but to amend." ^ This twice reviewing has reference doubtless to the editions of 1539 aud 1540. This second edition of the Great Bible is rightly known as Cranmer's Bible. It appeared in April, 1540, with the follow ing title : " The Byble in Englishe, that is to saye, the con tent of al the holy Scripture, both of the Olde and Newe Tes tament, with a prologe thereinto made by the reverende father in God, Thomas, archbishop of Canterbury. — This is the Byble apoynted to the use of the Churches. Prynted by Ed- warde Whytchurche, cum privilegio ad imprimendum solum. MDXL." The colophon reads : "The ende of the Newe Tes- ' Fulke's Defense of Translations of the Scriptures into English,^. 3. London, 1617. 2 lUd, p. 3. 1540.] cranmer's prologue. 211 tament ; and of the whole Byble fynished in Apryll, Anno MCCCCCXL. A dho facta est istud." A fine copy of this Bible printed on vellum is in the British Museum, It has been rebound in three volumes. It was presented to Henry VIII, by Anthony Marler of London. On the first leaf there is the following inscription : " This book is presented unto your most excellent Highness, by your loving faithful and obedient subject and dayly oratour, Anthony Marler of London, haberdasher." * It appears that this Marler was a heavy sharer in the expense of this edition of the Bible. " It was agreed," in the privy council, " that Anthony Marler of London, merchant, might sell the bibles of the Great Bible unbound for x.s. sterling, (equal to £7 10s.) and bound, being trimmed with bullyons, for xii.s. sterling (or equal to £9),"^ The chief characteristic of this edition is that it contains the prologue of Archbishop Cranmer. The object of this pro logue was to influence those who utterly repudiated the Scrip tures in English ; also those who by their wrangling disputa tions abused the reading of the Bible. "As touching the former," he says, " I would marvel much that any man should be so mad as to refuse in darkness, light ; in hunger, food; in cold, fire ; for the word of God is light, food, (and) fire; ....save that I consider how much custom and usage may do Such is the nature of custom, that it causeth us to bear all things well and easily, wherewith we have been ac customed, and to be offended with all things thereunto con trary. And therefore I can well think them worthy pardon, which at the coming abroad of Scripture doubted and drew back. But such as will persist still in their wilfulness, I must needs judge, not only foolish, froward, and obstinate, but also peevish, perverse and indurate."^ In urging at length the ' Anderson's Annals of Eng. Bible, p. 360. London, 1863. 5 Ibid, p. 367. ' Prologue. Cranmer's Works, pp. 118-135. This prologue was re printed as late as 1583, in a folio edition of the Genevan Bible, with the following note at the close : " I have here at the request of diuers learned 212 bibles of the largest volume. [chap. VL value of the Scriptures for the common people, he modestly and perhaps wisely quotes the words of Chrysostom, whose authority the papists could not but accept, " Wherefore let us not stick to buy and provide us the bible And let us think that to be a better jewel in our house than either gold or silver For the Holy Ghost hath so ordered and attem pered the scriptures, that in them as well publicans, fishers, and shepherds may find their edification, as great doctors their erudition." The archbishop concludes the first part of the prologue by saying : " I will here conclude and take it as a conclusion sufficiently determined aud approved, that it is convenient and good the scriptures to be read of all sorts and kinds of people, and in the vulgar tongue," * In the second part of the prologue the archbishop uses the authority of Gregory Nazianzen, who says : " It is not fit for every man to dispute the high questions of divinity, neither is it to be done at all times, neither in every audience must we discuss every doubt ; but we must know when, to whom, and how far we ought to enter into such matters I forbid not to read, but I forbid to reason. Neither forbid I to reason so far as it is good and godly. But I allow not that it is done out of season, and out of measure and good order. . . . The learning of a christian man ought to begin of the fear of God, to end in matters of high speculation ; and not contrarily to begin with speculation and end in fear." ^ Cranmer concludes the prologue by saying: " Every man that cometh to the read ing of this holy book ought to bring with him first and fore most this fear of Almighty God, and then next a firm and stable purpose to reform his own self according thereunto ; and so continue,. . . .shewing himself to be a sober and fruit ful hearer and learner. Which if he do, he shall prove at the length well able to teach, though not with his mouth, men set down this notable preface, as well for the godly exhortations and louing admonitions therin given, as also for the reteyning among us the memory of that excellent aud worthy martyr T. C. sometimes Arch bishop of Canterbury." ' Prologue. Cranmer's Works, pp. 130-133. « Ibid, pp. 133, 134. 1540.] PUBLIC reading of the scriptures. 213 yet with his living and good example, which is sure the most lively aud most effectuous form and manner of teach ing,"* In carrying out the views of Cranmer as expressed in his prologue, Henry VIIL, by proclamation, issued a few weeks after the appearance of the new Bible, required all curates and parishioners of every town and parish to provide themselves with a copy of the Bible under certain penalties, to the end that the people might have free access to the same. The price also of these Bibles was fixed by the king, to prevent extortion on the part of pubhc dealers. Bishop Bonner, in accordance with the king's order, com manded six of these Bibles to be set up in convenient places in the church of St. Paul ; that all who came thither might have access to them.^ But much more in harmony with his feelings, the bishop posted admonition upon the pillars to which these Bibles were chained, warning against loud reading and disputing. But, as Burnet adds : " People came generally to hear the Scriptures read, and such as could and had clear voices, came often thither with great Crowds about them Nor could the People be hiudred from entring into disputes about some places, for who could hear the words of the Insti tution of the Sacrament, Drink ye all of it, or St. Paul's Dis course against worship in an unknown Tongue, and not from thence be led to consider, that the People were deprived of the Cup, which by Christ's express Command was to be drank by all ; and that they were kept in a worship, to which the un learned could not say. Amen, since they understood not what was said, either in the Collects or Hymns." ^ Complaints, how ever, were made to the king, and doubtless by his consent new advertisements were posted up, threatening to remove the Bibles from the church if they continued to abuse so high a favor.* There were indiscretions committed, doubtless, by these Bible readers, and by those who hstened to them ; but ' Prologue. Cranmer's Works, p. 134. ' Burnet's History of the Reformation, L, B. IIL, p. 303. 3 lUd, p. 303. " IKd, p. 303. 214 BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME, [CHAP, VI, they were such as would arise from the provoking opposition of the Eomish party. Cranmer's part in the work of revising this edition was, according to Strype, that he " added the last Hand, mending it iu diuers Places with his own Pen and fixing a very ex cellent Preface before it."* But Myles Coverdale was the chief doer of this edition as he had been of that of 1539, The revision of April, 1540, bears the impress of Coverdale's baud, in that he introduced more changes in those portions originally translated by himself, than in the parts translated by Tyndale, His compromising spirit is also seen in his desire to make the version as acceptable as possible by intro ducing phrases or "supplementary clauses" from the Vulgate, These were put in smaller type, also in brackets, to show that they were not in the original text. The follow ing may be taken as illustrations : Ps. I. 4. . . but they lyke the chaffe whyche the ¦winde scatered away (from the face of the earth) II. 11. Serue the Lorde in feare and rejoyce {unto him) wyth reuerence. 13. Kysse the sonne leste he be angry and so ye peryshe from the iryghte) waye. VII. 11. God is a righteous Judge {strong and pacient) and God is prouoked euery daye. XI. 4 . . . His eyes consyder (i!A« poore.) XIII. 6. . . ( Tea I ¦wyll prayse the name of the Lorde the most hyest) XIV. 3. . • . {theyr throte is an open sepulchre ; wyth theyr tong'ues they haue disceaued, the poyson of aspes is under theyr lyppes. Theyr mouthe is full of cur syng and bitterness ; theyr feete are s'wift to shed bloude. Destruccion and unhappiness is in theyr wayes, and the waye of peace haue they not knowen, there is no feare of God before theyr eyes) Acts II. 33. . . . he hath shed forth this {gifte) 43. . . . and many wonders and signs were shewed by the Apostles, {at Jerusalem. And greats feare came vpon all menne.) ' Memorials of Cranmer, p. 444. London, 1694 1540,] REVISIONS COMPARED, 215 37. V. 15. IV. 35. . . . whiche {in the holy gost) by the mouthe of thy seruauut Dauid {our father) hast sayde. gathered themselues together {in this citie.) {and that they might al he delyuered from their infirmities.) 30. But God raysed hym agayne from death {the thirde daye) 7. . . . {And all the multitude was moved at their doctryne, but Paul and Barnabas taryed still at Listra.) it pleased Silas to abyde there still {b^ut Judas departed alone to Jerusalem) {commaundinge to kepe the preceptes of the Apostles and elders.) XIIL XIV. XV. 34 41. A limited comparison of Cromwell's Bible, 1539, with Cranmer's Bible, 1540, shows evidence of revision, though the changes are not always improvements. Take the follow ing as examples : Rom. I. 6. Of whose nombre you be that are called of Jesu Christ. Cranmer's Bible has : the electe. , 7. . . . beloued of God aud called sayntes. Cranmer's Bible has : sayntes by election. 9. ... I make mencyon of you allwayes in my prayers. Cranmer's Bible has : praying always. 34 , . , wherfore God gaue them vp vnto their hertes lustes to unclennes. Cranmer's Bible has : to unclennes thorow the lustes of their own heartes. 35. . . . which is blessed for euer. Amen. Cran mer's Bible has : to be praised. 30. . . . backbiters, haters of God, (Zo«7-« o/M!rora^«. Cranmer's Bible has : disdayneful. rv. 34. . . . from deeth. Cranmer's Bible has : from the dead. 85. . . . and rose agayne for to justifye vs. Cran mer's Bible has : and was raysed agayne for our justifioacion. V. 9. Moch more then now {seynge we are justifyed by hys blond) shall we be saued from wrath thorow hym. Cran mer's Bible reads : (wee that are justified by his bloud) shal be saued from wrath through hym. 216 BIBLES OF THB LARGEST VOLUME, [CHAP. VI. 13. ... as all men synned. Cranmer's Bible has : as all wee haue synned. 15. . . . whych was geuen by one man Jesus Christ. Cranmer's Bible has : of one man. VI. 14. Let not synne haue power ouer you. Cranmer's Bible reads : For sinne shall ¦not haue power ouer you. 20. . . . ye were not vnder ryghtewesnes. Cran mer's Bible has :. . . .ye were voyde of righteousnes. There were six editions of Cranmer's Bible, including those of April, July and November, 1540, and May, November and December, 1541, making, with Cromwell's Bible of 1539, seven editions of the Great Bible. The prologue of Cranmer appeared in the above named six editions ; and in every re spect there was great similarity between them, as there was no systematic revision after the edition of April, 1540. The edition of July, 1540, is the last which contains the arms of Cromwell, as he was beheaded July 28 of the same year, Thomas Cromwell fell a victim to the envy and jealousy of his enemies. On account of the preferments he received at the hands of the king, he was hated by the nobility, who looked upon his elevation, not so much as honor to him as injury to themselves. The clergy were exasperated at his presumption in accepting the high title and place of vicar general in spiritual matters ; and then his active part in the dissolution of abbeys made his name odious to all classes excepting Protestants,* Cromwell fell, as Burnet well says, '- under the weight of popular Odium rather than Guilt." ^ We are specially interested in the character of Lord Cromwell on account of his agency in furthering the Eeformation, and of his life-long interest in promoting the translation and circulation of the English Scriptures. He was the chief patron of Myles Coverdale in his work of putting forth the Bible of 1535. Cromwell and Cranmer ¦vie with each other in their zeal for an English translation of the Bible, that ' Fuller's Church History of Britain, B. V., p. 231. » Burnet's History of the Ref, L, B. IU., p. 285. 1540.] THE FALL OF CROMWELL, 217 should be acceptable to the people. It was Cromwell who complied with the request of Cranmer to obtain the king's authority for the setting forth of Matthewe's Bible, 1537, which lies at the foundation of the several editions known as the Bible of the Greatest Volume. And as Cromwell was prominent in the issuing the first edition, so Cranmer was prominent in putting forth the second edition of these Great Bibles. Among the able men of the court of Henry VIIL, Lord Cromwell was the ablest. Cranmer was more learned, Bonner more crafty, Tonstal more cunning, and Gardiner more politic, but for recognized statesmanship and native ability Thomas Cromwell surpassed them all. But high places of honor, and distinguished abilities to fill them, as well as the esteem of the king, could not shield him from the poisoned shafts of his enemies. The affectionate regard of Cranmer for Cromwell, even after the king had turned his back upon him, must ever excite admiration. Even after Cromwell had been sent to the tower, Cranmer appealed to the king in his behalf, in which he magnified Cromwell's "diligence in the King's Ser^vice That he thought no king of England had ever such a Servant; upon that ac count, he had loved him But if he was a Traytor, he was glad it was discovered. But he prayed God earnestly, to send the King, such a Chancellor in his stead, who could and would serve him as he had done."* But the appeal was in vain, and Cromwell, after remaining six weeks in prison, was brought forth and beheaded at Tower Hill on the 28th day of July, 1540. ^ The third edition of Cranmer's Bible which appeared in November, 1540, bears evidence on the title-page of the fall of Lord Cromwell, in that, in place of the shield, there is a significant blank. Another peculiarity of this edition is that upon the same page appear the names of Tonstal and Heath, the former of whom had been a very prominent Bible burner, and cruel persecutor of the active friends of the English ' Burnet's History of the Ref, I., B. IIL, p. 377. * Ibid, p. 384. 10 218 BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME. [CHAP. VI. Bible. The explanation of this strange anomaly is that these names appear in conformity to the injunction of 1539, which forbade the printing the English Scriptures, unless examined and admitted by the king, or one of his privy council, or one of the bishops of the realm, whose name must therein be expressed. This edition of November is known as Tonstal and Heath's Bible. The title-page reads : " The Bible iu Englishe, of the largest and greatest volume, auctorysed and apoynted by the commaundemente of our most redoubted Prynce and soueraygne Lorde Kynge Henry the VIIL, supreme head of this his Churche and Realme of England ; to be frequented and used in euery churche within this his sayd realme, accordynge to the tenour of his former injunc tions giuen in that behalfe, Oversene and perused at the commaundmente of the Kynge's Hyghnes, by the ryght reverende fathers in God, Cuthbert (Tonstal) bysshop of Duresme, and Nicolas (Heath) bisshop of Eochester, Printed by Edwarde Whitchurch, Cum priuilegio ad imprimendum solum." The colophon at the close of the New Testament reads : " The ende of the newe Testamente and of the whole Bible, Fynyshed in November, 1540," For the most part the six editions of the Great Bible agree with each other. Yet Westcott points out hitherto an "un observed fact, that in parts the edition of Nov. 1540 goes back from the text of April 1540 to that of 1539," * He furnishes the following examples in confirmation of the same : Is. I. 3. . . .1 haue nourished and brought up children ; 1539 and Nov. 1540. While the editions of April and July, 1540, read : promoted. 4. . . .a frowarde generacion, unnatural chUdren : 1539 and Nov. 1540. The editions of April and July 1540, read : a seed of ungracious peoph corrupting their ways. 7. , . . and it is desolate, as it were with enemies in a battle : 1539, and Nov. 1540 ; While April and July 1540, read ; . . as they were subverted that are alienate from tlie Lord. 8. . . like a besieged city, . . . sacrifices unto me : 1539 ¦ Hist, of Eng. Bible, pp. 300, 301. 1542.] BISHOP GARDINER'S SCHEME. 219 and Nov. 1540. While April and July, 1540, read: a wasted city, . . . sacrifices unto me saith the Lord. 13. When ye appear before me ; 1539 and Nov. 1540. ¦While April and July, 1540, read : When ye come to appear before me. — . . . who requireth you to tread ; 1539 and Nov. 1540. While April and July 1540 read : . . who requireth this of you to tread. 13. . . sabbaths and solemn days ; 1539 and Nov. 1540. While April and July 1540 read : . sabbaths and gathering together at the solemn days. The above examples will suffice to show that the edition of Nov. 1540, agrees with Cromwell's Bible of 1539, and conse quently is not a reprint of the editions of April and July of the same year. And yet there is such a substantial agreement in the several editions of the Great Bible, not only with each other, but with the edition of 1537, that the friends of the Old learning, led on by Bishop Gardiner, were bitterly opposed to thefr circulation. Besides, these Bibles were the result of Cromwell's enterprise, and as such, must share his degradation. "The Bible," they said, "was of a traytor's setting forth, For so they report, that Thomas Crumwel, late Earl of Essex, was the chief doer, and not your highness, but as led by him." * Accordingly there was no more Bible printing during the remaining days of Henry VIIL, the last issue being the edition of the Great Bible of December, 1541. After the death of Cromwell the Eomish party came into power. They hated the Eeformation and the English Bible. But they could not withstand the former, nor could they withdraw the latter from circulation. They determined, how ever, to suppress these heretical Bibles by an authorized edition of their own. This plan was secretly resolved upon, and was ready to be laid before the Convocation of 1542. Their propo sition seemed very fair. It was that the bishops of the realm should put forth a revised edition of the English Bible. For some half dozen years past, the work of publishing revised ' Strype's Ecclesiastical Memorials, I., 635. 1816. 220 BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME. [CHAP. VI, editions of the Holy Scriptures had become so common, that there was nothing in this proposition to excite suspicion. But Cranmer discovered their shrewd and artful intent, which was to so pervert the English of the translation by introducing Latin words and phrases, that it could not be understood excepting by those who were learned. The convocation met in February, An order came through the king, requiring the bishops and clergy to revise the translation of the New Tes tament, On Friday, during the third session, the bishops to the number of fifteen were assigned their several tasks. Bishop Gardiner being confident, and becoming over bold by the success thus far of his plans, could .not rest. He must instruct the revisers. Accordingly, in the sixth session of this convocation, he presented a list of Latin words of his own selection out of the New Testament, and expressed his desire "that for their genuine and native meaning, and for the majesty of the matter in them contained, these words might be retained in their own nature as much as might bee ; or be very fitly Englished with the least alteration!''^ This list numbers about a hundred words, and as a matter of interest is here inserted,^ '¦' Ecclesia, Pcenitentia, Pontifex, Ancilla, Contritus, Olacausta, Justitia, Justificare, Idiota, Elementa, Baptizare, Martyr, Adorare, Dignus, Sandalium, Simplex, Tetrarcha, Sacramentum, Simulachrum, Gloria, Conflicta- tiones, Ceremonia, Mysterium, Religio, Spiritus Sanct, Spi- ritus, Merces, Confiteor tibi. Pater, Panis prcepositionis, Communio, Perseverare, Dilectus, Sapientia, Pietas, Pres byter, Lites, Servus, Opera, Sacrifidum, Benedictio, Humilis, Humilitas, Scientia, Gentilis, Synagoga, Ejicere, Miseri- cordia, Complacui, Increpare, Distribueretur orbis, Inculpa- tus. Senior, Confiictationes,^ Apocalypsis, Satisfactio, Con- tentio, Conscientia, Peccatum, Peccator, Idolum, Prudentia, Prudenter, Parabola, Magnifico, Oriens, Subditus, Didragma, Hospitalitas, Episcopus, Gratia, Charitas, Tyrannus, Concu- ' Fuller's Church History of Britain, B. V., 337. " Ibid, p. 338, ^ Ibid, p. 338. This list is taken from Fuller, repetitions and all. 1542,] GARDINER'S DESIGNS THWARTED, 221 piscentia, Cisera, Apostolus, Apostolatus, Egenus, Stater, Societas, Zizania, mysterium, Christus, Conversari, Profiteer, Impositio manuum, Idololatria, Dominus, Sanctus, Confessio, Imitator, Pascha, Innumerabilis, Inenarrabilis, Infidelis, Paganus, Commilito, Virtutes, Dominationes, Throni, Po- iestates, Hostia." "Wherefore Gardiner's designe," says Fuller, "plainly ap peared in stickling for the preserving of so many LatiTie words to obscure the Scripture ; who, though wanting power to keep the light of the Word from shinifig, sought out of policy to put it into a dark Lanthorn ; contrary to the constant practice of God in Scripture, levelling high hard expressions to the capacity of the meanest. For forraigu terms are alwaies brought iu, hke Joseph with an Interpreter. Emmanuel doth not passe without an Exposition, God tvith us; nor Ephatha escape, but Commented on, be thou opened : Besides, the Popish Bishop multiplied the mixture of Laiine names in the Tes tament, to teach the Laity their distance, who though admitted into the outward Court of common matter, were yet debarred entrance into the Holy of Holies of these mysterious expressions, reserved only for the understanding of the high Priest to pierce into them. Moreover, this made Gardiner not onely tender, but fond to have these words continued in kinde with out Translation; because the profit of the Romish Church was deeply in some of them concerned ; Witnesse the word Penance (which according to the vulgar sound, contrary to the original sense thereof) was a magazin of Will-worship, and brought in much gai7i to the Priests, who were desirous to keep that word, because that word kept them." * At last the unsuspicious eyes of the honest-hearted Cran mer were fully opened to the designs of Gardiner and his friends, and by a masterly stroke completely thwarted them. The archbishop, after obtaining the consent and authority of the king, most unexpectedly to the papists, announced to the convocation : " that it was ihe King's will and jjleasure, that ' Fuller's ChurcA History of Britain, B. V., p. 339. 222 BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME, [CHAP. VI. the Translation both of the Old and Neio Testament should be examined by Both Universities."^ This met with fierce opposition on the part of the papists ; but Cranmer insisted on the King's will and pleasure, which at length prevailed, and thus an end was put to the whole affair. In this effort of Bishop Gardiner to put the Scriptures into a Latin dress, and thus render them meaningless, we recognize the old strife between the hierarchy and the people. From the time of Wychffe, an important element in this conflict has been that of language. Chaucer's Saxon English was the rich inheritance of the people ; and it had been handed down for a century and a half, not only in Chaucer's lines, but in Wyc liffe's English Bible. History bnt in part can relate the oppo sition of the papal authorities to these Wycliffite versions, because they contained the Scriptures in the language of the people. And when William Tyndale, imbued with the love of the Saxon simplicity in our language, embodied this ele ment in his translation of the New Testament, he did for the protestant religion and the common people a service beyond all praise. For which he and his Testament were burned in the fire. In the early part of the reign of Henry VIII. there was a revival both of religion and language. The study of classic Greekwas found to be not ont of harmony with the study of Saxon Enghsh. Sir Thomas Elyot advocated the study of Chaucer for the sake of his English, So also it is related of Dean Colet, a cotemporary, that he labored to improve his Enghsh style by the study of the early poets, particulariy Chaucer, who was then, even as now, regarded as the father of Vernacular literature, Erasmus, though he translated the Greek New Testament into Latin, warmly favored an Enghsh version of the Scriptures. True, the Latin was not only the language of the Eomish Church, but the chief corner-stone of that Church, It was the boast of Bishop Bonner that the " Latiu toung should serue through the whole world, because ' Puller's Church History of Britain, B, V., p. 239. 1547.] LANGUAGE AND RELIGION. 223 that they should pray generally altogether in one toung." * This, according to Bonner, was the order in the Church, and upon the carrying out of this order depended the universality and stability of the Church. We are compelled, therefore, to recognize an inseparable relation between language and religion. The Latin language is one with the Latin Church. " The abrogation of the Latin," says Milman, " as the exclusive language of Christian letters and arts must be ine-vitably and eventually the doom of Latin Christianity." ^ Latin at this period was not only the language of the Church, but of litera ture. Erasmus wrote his " Praise of Folly " in Latin. Though first pubhshed in 1511, it was not translated into English till 1549, when it was done by the hand of Thomas Chaloner. Sir Thomas More's " Utopia " was also composed in Latin. It was published in 1516.^ This was likewise translated by Chaloner, but not till thirty-five years after its first appearance. It was therefore a marked epoch in the history of the English language and of Protestant Christianity, when William Tyndale and Myles Coverdale translated the Bible in the vernacular of the people. So also when revised editions were multiplied and sent forth among the people, since it was a combined aud sus tained attack against the progress and stability ol the Eomish Church. The reign of Henry VIH., therefore, may be regarded as the summer time of the English Bible and English language. But Henry in the closing years of his reign is not the man he was at its beginning. He is now subject to other advisers. Cromwell is gone, and Cranmer, single-handed, cannot always cope with the growing infiuence of the Eomish party. The Parliament is now uuder papal control, and enacts, " that all manner of books of the Old and New Testament in English, should by the authority of this Act, clearly and utterly be abolished and extinguished, and forbidden to be kept and used in this realm, or elsewhere in any of the Kings do- ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1763. ' History of Latin Christianity, VIIL, 334. 3 The earliest edition bearing a date is that of 1518, printed at Basle. See Hallam's Literature of Europe, I., 385. New York, 1874. 224 BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME. [CHAP. VI, minions." * There was a provision, however, which excepted the Great Bibles, since these were published by the king's authority. This act was passed in 1543, and three years after wards was confirmed by "a straight and hard proclamation" of the king to the effect " that from henceforth no man, wo man, or person, of what estate, condition, or degree, so euer hee or they bee, shall after the last day of August nexte ensuyng, receaue, haue, take, or keepe in hys or thefr possession the text of the new Testament of Tyndals or Couerdals translation, nor of any maner of bokes printed or written iu the Englishe tongue, which be or shall be set forth in the names of Frith, Tindall, Wycklefe, Joy, Eoy, Basile, Bale, Barnes, Coverdall, Toumer, Tracy." ^ All such books were to be delivered up to the authorities and to be publicly burnt ; and those who refused to deliver up the books, were to be impris oned and fined, as the council might determine. The malignant spirit of the papacy now breaks forth anew. Heresy is again punished by fire. But this violence shall con tinue but a season. The days of Henry's rule are soon to close. After an eventful reign of almost thirty-eight years Henry VIII. died.* He was a strong man among sfrong men. He was independent of, yet dependent upou, his councilors, and too often led by them. But he never forgot his supremacy either in Church or State. Euthlessly he maintained his own will at the expense of friend and foe. He renounced papal control, but remained Catholic rather than Protestant. His sincere regard for Archbishop Cranmer he retained to the last. On his death-bed, it was Cranmer only that he wished to see. But when the archbishop was summoned, the king was speech less, and to inquiries could only by pressure of the hand give a token of recognition and of his own religious faith. Upon the death of Henry VIII, Edward VL ascended the throne. His reign was in every respect favorable to the ' Anderson's Annals, pp. 378, 379. » Poxes Acts and Monuments, p. 1437. ' January 38, 1547. 1550.] cheke's translation of matthew's gospel, 225 Eeformation and the Enghsh Bible. From the first the changes were sweeping and radical. The statute of the six articles and all other bloody statutes against Protestants were repealed. The communion in both kinds was restored, and the stone altars were replaced by wooden tables. Eomish ceremonies, such as the use of candles in Candlemas, ashes in Lent, and palms on Palm Sunday, were all done away with. Also all laws and canons against the marriage of priests were revoked.* Bibles of the Largest Volume were by public order set up in the churches, and vicars and curates enjoined not to discour age those " authorized and licensed," but rather they were " to comfort and exhort " them to read the same. At the same time sfraightly charging, that in the reading of the Scriptures "no man should reason or contend, but quietly hear the reader." 2 Moreover, the public reading of appropriate Scrip ture was enjoined upon ¦vicars and curates in connection with public worship. There was freedom both to read and print the Bible ; also liberty of choice as to what version should be printed. Left to themselves, publishers would naturally seek to supply the public demand. And the results show that the people desired New Testaments of Tyndale's and Matthewe's versions : since out of fifty editions claimed to have been pub lished during the short reign of Edward VL, fourteen were Bibles and thirty-six were New Testaments.* There were no new translations undertaken during this reign, unless Sir John Cheke's translation of the Gospel of Matthew, and part of the first chapter of the Gospel of Mark shall be so regarded. Cheke's translation was made about the year 1550, and remained in manuscript till 1843, when it was published by James Goodwin.* In translating, Cheke's man ner was the opposite of that proposed by Bishop Gardiner. " In vocabulary," says Marsh, " Cheke was a purist by princi ple ; for in his almost only known original composition, the ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, pp. 1489, 1493. ' Lewis' History of Translations, p. 158. ' Anderson's Annals of the Bible, p. 411. ' The manuscript is in the Library of Bennet's College, Cambridge. 226 bibles of the largest volume, [chap, VI. Hurt of Sedition, he employs none but words which had been for centuries familiar to every intelligent Englishman." Inthe translation of the Gospel of Matthew " he carries his purism still farther, aud introduces many Anglo-Saxon com pounds of his own coinage." * His object was to avoid words derived from the Greek and Latin, on the ground that they were unintelligible to English readers. To do which he was compelled to coin not a few words, of which the following are examples : biwordes, parables ; crossed, crucified ; freschman, proselyte ; forsai, prophesy ; gain birth, regeneration ; hed- priest, chief priest ; helimp, child of the Devil ; hunderder, centurion; moond, '[anatic; orders, traditions; which are in serted below in their several connections.' The verse divisions ai-e here introduced for the sake of reference. Matt. II. 3, 4. ¦When K. Herod herd this, he was trebled and all Jemsalem with him and he gathered togither al y» hedpriests and scribes of y« people and asked of them wheer Christ schold be bom. IV. 34. . . . or moond, or palseid, thej brought vnto him and he heeled ^em. XI. 13. For al y« p'pheets and y° law Sid, forsai ¦vnto Joans tijm. XIII. 3. And he spaak vnto yem much in biwordes and said. XV. 3. whi do y' discipUs break y orders of y elders. XIX. 38. Jesus said vnto yem, Je y' hav folowed me in y« gain birth. XXII. 33. At y' tijm cam y« Saddoucais vnto him, who sai yeer is no gainrising. 30. For in y" vprising noyer schal men mari nor women be maried. XXIII. 15. , . . to maak oon freschman, and y* being doon ie maak him twijs as much an helimp as iourselves. XXVII. 33. . . , let him be crossed sai yei al. Besides Cheke made changes in the mode of spelling sufficiently radical to suit the theories of modem reformers ' English Language and Literature, p. 531. New York, 1863. ' Gospels of Matthew and Mark. Translated by Sir John Cheek. London, 1843. 1550.] cheke's translation of matthew's gospel, 227 in orthography. The following rules have been laid down as comprehending in part his system of reform,* In all cases where the vowel a was long, he used aa and omitted the e final, as : taak, take ; prepaar, prepare ; haat, hate ; maad, made ; spaak, spake. In the same manner he used other long vowels, as : thijn, thine ; mijn, mine ; aloon, alone ; oon, one ; moor, more ; stoon, stone. Again diphthongs were done away with, and double vowels used iu their stead, as : speek, speak ; theer, their; boot, boat; geestes, guests; bijlt, built. The final e was utterly abolished as being useless, as ; giv, give; curs, curse ; cam, came. Another rule was to omit silent letters iu the middle of words, as : dout, doubt ; det, debt ; faut, fault ; loold. would. Another peculiarity was the sub stituting the letter i for y, as : iou, you ; pai, pay ; mighti, mighty ; sometimes, however, at the end of a word the double vowel ee was substituted for y, as : honestee, honesty ; extre-mitee, extremity. Again he gives to ¦y the power of th in the be ginning, middle and end of words, as : oyer, other ; booy, both ; yem, them. Cheke's abbreviations and contractions are not all new, but they are so numerous as to obscure the meaning of the text. As examples we find; pform, perform ; j?°ji;7/ee<, prophet; L, Lord ; K, Kingdom. In a very few instances he makes use of Greek letters for the sake of abbreviation, as in the words : axes, aches ; raxa, raca ; Junas, Joonas ; Juatham, Jooatham.' The following is here transcribed as a specimen of Cheke's manner in his translation : Matt. V. 1-30. And he seing y'^ great resort went vp into y« hii. And when he was set his discipils cam vnto him, and he opened his mouth and taught them ou this ¦ndse. Happi be y= beggars in sprijt, for y kingdom of heeven is theers. Happi be y= m corners, for y*' schal be comforted. ' Gospels of Matthew and Mark. Lntroduction, pp. 18, 19. 2 Ibid, pp. 33, 31. 228 bibles of the largest volume, [chap, vl Happi be y= meek, for y''' schal enherit y» earth. Happi be y" hungri and thursti of rightuousnes for y" schal be filled. Happi be y* pitiful, for y°' schal be pitied. Happi be y® cleen in hart for y*' schal see god. Happi be y peesmakers for y"' schal be called godds children. Happi be y« persequuted for rightuousnes saak, for y° kingdoom of heaven is theers. Happi be yow, when y ' rebuke yow, and persequut yow, and speek al evel £md he against yow for mi cause, be glad and reiois for yo' reward in heaven is great. For so persequuted thej y" p°pheets afoor your tijm. Tow be y* salt of y earth, if y' salt be vnsaverie wheerwith schal thinges be salted. Jt is good for none other thing, but to be throown awai, and to be trooden down bi men. Tow be y= light of y' world. A citee can not be hiden y' is set aloft on an hii, nor men burn not a light, and put it ¦vnder a buschel but in a candelstick, and it giveth light to al y' be in y" house, let yo' light soo schijn befoor men y' y'' mai see your good workes, and give glori to your father which is in heaven. Think not y' J cam to breek y law or y= propheets, J cam not to breek but to fulfil, truli I sai vnto yow, til heaven and erth goo awai, one iot, nor one titil schal not go awai from y law, til al be doon. Whosoever then breeketh oon of y= lest of y" comandments, and techeth men y" saam, he schal be called y® leest in y kingdoom of heaven. But who soever doth and techeth he schal be called greet in y= kingdoom of heaven. For J sai vnto yow except your rightuousnes be moor plentiful y«° y Scribes and Pharisees, yow schal not enter into y* kingdoom of heaven. Sir John Cheke's purism was occasioned in part by a growing tendency at that time to adopt into the language Italianisms, Frenchisms and Latinisms. A few words from Thomas Wilson's Arte of Ehetoricke, which appeared in 1553, doubtless will give a correct impression of this tendency. 1545-71,] ENGLISH LANGUAGE GROWING IN IMPORTANCE. 229 " Among other lessons," he says, " this should first be learned, that we neuer affect any straunge ynkehorne termes, but to speake as is commonly receiued : Some seke so farre for outlandishe Englishe, that they forget altogether their mother's language Some farre journied gentlemen at their returne home, like as they loue to go in forrein apparel, so thei will pouder their talke with ouersea language. He that cometh lately out of Fraunce will talke Frenche Englishe, and neuer blushe at the matter. Another choppes in with Eng lishe Italianated, and applieth the Italian phraise to our Enghshe speakyng The vnlearned or folishe phantasti- call, that smelles but of learnyng .... will so Latine their tongues, that the simple cannot but wonder at their talke, and thinke surely thei speake by some reuelacion."* He gives a practical illustration of this folly, by quoting a letter written about that time, " by a Lincolneshire man for a voide benefice." The letter was addressed to the Lord Chancellor and began as follows: "Ponderyng, expendyng and reuo- lutyng with myself, your ingent affabiUtie, and ingenious capacitie, for mundane affaires, I cannot but celebrate and extoU your magnificaU dexteritie above all other. For how could you have adapted suche illustrate prerogative and dominiall superioritie, if the fecunditie of your ingenie had not been so fertile and wonderfull pregnaunt, &c." ^ In the meanwhile the English language is growing in im portance. As yet it had failed to command the confidence of authors. It was too humble and limited a medium to be intrusted with their reputation. In other words the mass of the people through sheer ignorance made no demand for English books. But times are changing for the better. Eoger Ascham taught his own age the power of the English tongue. His Toxophilus and Schole Master were important contributions to the literature of that period. And they still serve as examples of good English. And yet Ascham shared • Wari;on's History of English Poetry, III., 334, 335. London, 1781. 2 Ibid, note, p. 337. 230 bibles of the largest volume, [chap, VL so much of the prejudice of his age that he offered an apology for not employing in his writings the language of the learned. "If any man would blame me," he says, "eyther for takinge such a matter in hande, or els for wrytinge it in the Englishe tongue, this aunswere I may make him, that when the best of the realme thincke it honest (honorable) for them to use, I, one of the meanest sorte, ought not to suppose it vile for me to wryte ; and thoughe to have written it in another tongue, had bene both more profitable for my study, and also more honest for my name, yet I can thinke my laboure well bestowed, if with a little hindrance of my profite and name, may come any furtherance to the pleasure or commodity of the gentlemen and yomen of Englande, for whose sake I toke this matter in hand." * In noble contrast with this petty strife for reputa tion which Ascham even could not quite banish from his mind, there were those during all these years, who labored for the sake of the people to place the Bible in English in their hands, which has proved from the beginning a powerful agency in elevating and purifying both our language and our religion. The prevailing sentiment during the reign of Edward VI. was, that there was not so much need of new versions as a proper understanding of the Scriptures as already franslated. Hence the Paraphrase of Erasmus, recently translated, was ordered to be placed by the side of the Bible in the churches; and vicars and curates were enjoined to possess themselves of a copy of the same, as well as of a copy of the New Testament. Public lectures or professorships were provided in the Uni versity of Cambridge for expounding the Hebrew aud Greek Scriptures. The design of these lectures was, first, to inter pret the Scriptures according to the " Propriety of the Lan guage," and second, to " Illustrate difficult and obscure Places and reconcile those that seemed repugnant to one another."* Besides this the Gospel was preached to the poor, Latimer, Bradford, and Knox, with all freedom and boldness, spake ' Roger Ascham's Works, p. 56. London, circa, 1763. 2 Strype's Memorials of Cranmer, B. IL, p. 197. 1553-58.] POPISH PERSECUTION. 231 the word in its purity to the people. It is noticeable that in the counties where the doctrines of Wycliffe had been received and retained, there the Gospel was now most welcomed. Even after the accession of Mary the people thronged together to listen to such preachers as Knox, who exhorted them to per severe in the faith they had professed.* But this harvest season was cut short soon after the death of Edward.^ Ee- taliation on the Protestants now became the watchword. Popish ceremonies were again introduced, and auricular con fession re-established. Married priests were deprived of their livings and divorced from their wives, notwithstanding the laws were in force which legalized the marriage.^ The Bible was rudely torn from its place in the churches, trampled under foot, and in some instances burned. Foreigners favoring Protestantism were banished the kingdom. Many leading Protestants fied, not so much from personal fear, as from the entreaties of their friends ; while many, both men and women, rushed into exile to escape the fury of the storm. These cruel years of Mary's reign smell of fire and blood. And " dismal were the fiames that blazed out everywhere, fed with the fuel of the bodies of poor men and women, under a popish legate^ and two bloody bishops."* Among the victims sacrificed during this reign were such men as Thomas Eogers, the editor and reviser of Matthewe's Bible; Hugh Latimer,^ the ad mirable preacher and early advocate of an English translation 1 McCrie's Life of Knox, p. 83. N. D. ' Edward died July 6, 1553. Mary was crowned July 19, 1553, and reigned only five years and four months. " Strype's Ecclesiastical Memorials, IV., 174. London, 1816. * Ibid, p. 416. = " I cannot here omit old Father Latimbe's Habit at this his appear ing before the Commissioners, which was also his Habit while he re mained a Prisoner in Oxford. He held his Hat in his Hand ; he had a Kerchief ou his Head, and upon it a Night-cap or two, and a great Cap such as Townsmen used, vrith two broad Flaps, to button under his chin ; an old thredbare Bristow freez Gown, girded to his Body with a penny lether Girdle, at which hanged, by a long string of Leather, his Tes tament, and his Spectacles without case hanging about his Neck upon his Breast."— Strype's Memorials of Cranmer, B. IIL, ch. x., p. 336. 232 BIBLES OF THE LARGEST VOLUME. [CHAP. VI. of the Scriptures, and a constant upholder of the right of the people to possess and read the Bible in their own tongue ; and last, but first of all. Archbishop Cranmer, whose name is most intimately connected with the Eeformation and the English Bible. There was no special legislation against the English Bible during this reign, neither was there any occasion, since the constitution of Arundle, against the reading of Wycliffe's trans lation or that of any other person after his time, was in full force. There were, however, royal proclamations issued com manding the searching for and delivering up of heretical books that they might be burned. Heresy and the English Bible were supposed to walk hand in hand ; hence, to be a friend of the English Scriptures was, in the estimation of papists, to be an enemy of the queen's laws.* The queen's council was alto gether popish, consequently Protestants were dealt ¦with as the worst sort of m.alef actors. "And things were carried in that severity," says Strype, " as though it were resolved utterly to extinguish the religion for ever in England ; for, besides the exquisite pain of burning to death, which some hundreds underwent, ' some of the professors were thrown into dungeons, ugsome holes, dark, loathsome, and stinking corners; other some lying in fetters and chains, and loaded with so many irons, that they could scarcely stir. Some tyed in the stocks with their heels upwards ; some having their legs in stocks, and their necks chained to the wall with gorgets of iron ; some standing iu Skevington's gives, which were most painful engines of iron, with their bodies doubled ; some whipped and scourged, beaten with rods and buffeted with fists ; some hav ing their hands burned with a caudle to try their patience, or force them to relent ; some hunger-pined, and some miserably famished aud starved. All these torments and many more, even such as cruel Phalaris could not devise worse, were prac tised by papists, the stout, sturdy soldiers of Satan, thus de lighting in variety of tyranny and torments upon the saints ' Foxe's Acts and Monuments, p. 1713. 1553-58.] POPISH PERSECUTION. 233 of God." * From such horrors hundreds took refuge abroad, and formed Christian congregations in various cities on the continent. And so it came to pass that to this Marian per secution we are indebted indirectly for one of the most noted and best English translations of the Bible. A translation made by English exiles at Geneva, and known as the Genevan Bible, an account of which will be given in the next chapter. ' Strype's Eecledast'ical Memorials, IV., 415, 416. London, 1816. CHAPTER YII. THE GENEVAN BIBLE, A. D. 1560. A MONG those who came to Geneva on acconnt of the J!\- Marian persecution was William Whittingham. Having escaped from England, he first took refuge in Frankfort. This was in June, 1554; but on account of the troubles there, he, with other Non-conformists, removed to Geneva, which at that time was the center of Protestantism and the home of Calvin and Beza. When John Knox left Geneva for his own coun try, Whittingham, by the advice of CaMn, took orders in the Genevan form and became Knox's successor. By common consent Whittingham bore the palm for scholarship among his brethren ; and by their counsel he undertook and com pleted the translation of the New Testament of 1557. This work, like that of Tyndale, was by a single hand, and done in exile, but' in circumstances very different, since Whittingham was surrounded by friends ready to extend sympathy and prac tical aid. In the work of re-vision Whittingham availed him self of the leaming of his brethren as well as of the most ap proved Greek helps and of translations in other tongues, " as the learned may easily iudge, both by the faithful rendering of the sentence, and also by the proprietie of the wordes, and perspecuite of the phrase." * The edition was in small octavo or duodecimo size, and printed by Conrad Badius, at Geneva, in Eoman type, with the following title : " The Newe Testa ment of our Lorde Jesus Christ, conferred diligently with the Greke and best approved Translations. With the arguments, as wel before the chapters as for every Boke and Epistle, also diversities of readings and most profitable annotations of all ' Whittingham's Address to the Reader. Eadie's Eng. Bible, IL, 6. 1557.] VERSE DIVISIONS OF N. T. 235 hard places ; Whereunto is added a copious Table, Printed by Conrad Badius. M.D.LVII." The prefatory matter is made up of an " Epistle by John Calvin," and an " Address to the Reader " by William Whittingham. At the end there is a^a.'^ Alphabetical Index to the Neiv Testament," and a " Per fect supputation of the Teres and Time from Adam unto Christ." The revision of 1557 was the first English New Testament that divided the text into verses, with breaks according to our present manner, and marked them with figures. In this division, Whittingham followed Eobert Stephens' Greek Testa ment of 1551, but improved upon it, in that he attached the numbers to each subdivision or verse, while the Greek Testa ment simply placed them in the margin.* The familiar story of Eobert Stephens dividing the Greek text of the New Tes tament into verses, while journeying on horseback from Paris to Lyons, is founded on the statement of his son Henry in the preface to his " Concordance," published in 1594. " His father," he says, " finding the books of the New Testament already divided into chapters, proceeded to a further subdi vision into verses The whole work was accomplished inter equitandum ou his journey from Paris to Lyons." '^ Probably he means not literally while on horseback, but at the several inns where he stopped in making this journey. At first this labor seemed of doubtful success, but soon it met with univer sal acceptance. There are some who attribute the invention of dividing the Scriptures, that is the Latin Bible, into sections and subsec tions, to Stephen Langton, archbishop of Canterbury, about the year 1220. But Prideaux insists that the honor belongs to Cardinal Hugo de St. Cher, who flourished about the year 1240. According to Prideaux, the chapters of our present Bibles correspond to the sections made by Hugo. These sec tions he divided into subsections and marked them by capital 1 Townley's Biblical Literature, IIL, 130. * Smith's Bible Dictionary. Art., Bible. 236 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VII, letters. These divisions were designed for convenient reference ¦by his new " Concordance," which was the first made for the Latin Bible, The verse divisions, however, were not made till about 1438-1445, when they were introduced by a Jewish Eabbi named Isaac Nathan, Eabbi Nathan being familiar with Hugo's " Latin Concordance," determined to prepare one for the Hebrew Bible, He began his work in 1438, and was some seven years in completing it. He followed Hugo in his sectional divisions, but improved upon him in the subsections, by introducing the verse divisions of the oldest Masoretic Hebrew Bibles.* He says in his preface : " As I observed that the Latin translation has each book divided into a certain number of sections and chapters, which are not in our (Hebrew) Bibles, I have therefore marked all the verses, according to their numbers, together with the number of each chapter ; I have also marked the numbers of the verses, as they exist in our (Hebrew) Bibles, for the greater facility of finding each passage referred to." This mode of indicating the verses as well as chapters was followed by Sanctes Pagninus in 1528, when he made his Latin translation of the Bible from the original Hebrew and Greek. Pagninus was followed in turn by Stephens, at least in part, in 1551.' And as Whittingham professedly followed these authorities, it would seem from the above statements, that while the Jews are indebted to Chris tians for the division of the text of their Bibles into chapters. Christians are indebted to the Jews for the subdivision of the chapters into verses. It has been quite common of late years to rail against the verse divisions of the Holy Scriptures. Doubtless the sense of the text has sometimes been interrupted by this artificial ' These sections or verses were called by the Jews Pesuldm. " They are marked out in the Hebrew Bibles by two great points at the end ot them, called from hence Soph-Pasuk, i. e. the end of the verse." Pri deaux' Connection, I., 373. ' Compare Ibid, I., 373, 378. Home's Introduction, II. , Ch, IV , pp. 169-173. Smith's Bible Dictionary, Art. Bible. Kitto's Cyclopedia, Art. Scnpture, Holy. 1557.] -WHITTINGHAM'S ANNOTATIONS. 237 system. It may possibly have given occasion also to the build ing of " doctrinal systems upon isolated texts." And yet too often the practical benefits of easy reference, and help to the memory, and the adaptation for reading in public, have been overlooked. The divisions of chapter and verse have no Biblical authority. Neither has that of the paragraph, neither has that of the comma, semicolon, or period in punctuation. They are all of human invention, and something of the same arguments produced against the former may be urged against the latter. The adoption, however, of the paragraph and at the same time retaining the chapters and the numberings of chapters and verses, is doubtless the most desirable mode of printing the text of the Bible. While this translation of 1557 is based upon the New Tes tament version of Tyndale as contained in Matthewe's Bible, 1537, yet it is independent, and has probably greater claims to originality than any preceding English version. But that which externally characterizes this version next to its verse divisions, and words in italics which indicate that they are not in the original, is its marginal notes. These annotations are very numerous. For the design of Whittingham was to leave " nothing ¦ vnexpounded, wherby he that is anything exercised in the Scriptures of God, might justely complayn of hardenes ; and also in respect of them that haue more profited in the same, I haue explicat all such places by the best learned inter preters, as ether were falsely expounded by some, or els absurdely applyed by others." * Whittingham thus sought to commend his work not only to the learned, but the unlearned. Since the time of William Tynd-ale a great change has taken place in pubhc sentiment, in respect to annotations upon the Scriptures. Annotations were now not only permitted, but were in great demand. As there was little or no preaching or public expounding of the Scriptures, each reader of the Bible must interpret for himself Hence Whittingham sought to meet this demand. His annotations were not controversial, but practical and thoroughly Calvinistic. ' ated by Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, II. , pp. 6, 7. 238 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP, VII. The following specimens of Whittingham's translation are taken from the reprint of his New Testament in Bagster's Hexapla : Matt. VI. 9. . . . Our father which art in heauen, halowed be thy name. 10. Let thy kingdome come. Thy wil be done euen in earth, as it is in heauen. 11. Gene vs thys day our dayly bread. 13. And forgeue our debtes, euen as we forgiue our debtors. 13. And lead vs not into tentation, but deliuer vs from euil. For thyne is the kingdome, and the power, and the glorie for euer. Amen. I. Cor, XIII. 1. Thogh I spake ¦with the tonges of men and Angels, and haue not loue, I am euen as sounding brasse, or as a tynkling cymbal. 2. And thogh I could prophecie, and ¦vnderstand all secretes, and all knowledge ; yea, yf I had all fayth, so that I could moue mountains out of their places, and yet had not loue, I were nothing. S. And thogh I bestowe all my goodes to fede the poore, and thogh I gyue my body that I be burned, and yet haue not loue, it profiteth me nothing. 4. Loue suffreth long, is courteous ; loue enuieth not ; loue doth not boast it selfe, swelleth not. 5. Disdaineth nothing as vnbeseming, seketh not her owne things, is not prouoked to anger, thinketh not euil. 6. Reioyseth not in iniquitie, but reioyseth in the trueth. 7. Suffreth all thinges, beleueth all thinges, hopeth all thinges, endureth all thinges. 8. Loue doth neuer fall away, thogh that both prophe- ciinges shalbe abolished, and tongues shal cease, and learning shal vanishe away. 9. For we learne in parte, and we prophecie in part, 10. But when that which is perfect, is come, then that which is in part shalbe done away. 11. When I was a chylde, I spake as a childe, I under- stode as a chylde, I thoght as a childe, but assone as I was a man, I put away chyldesh things. 13. For now we se in a glassfe, and in a darcke speakyng ; but then shal we se face to face. Now I knowe 1557.] -WHITTINGHAM'S SUPERIOR RENDERINGS. 239 in part ; but then shal I know euen as I am knowen. 13. Now abydeth fayth, hope, and loue, euen these thre, but the chiefest of these is loue. The specific excellencies of this version may be seen in the following passages, which are superior to the renderings of our Authorized version, excepting in one or two examples in which the latter adopts the readings of the former. Matt. XXIIL 34. Te blynde guydes, which strayne out a gnate, and swaiow a cammel. In this reading Whittingham followed Tyndale. Our present version reads : strain at a gnat. This has been regarded as a blunder of the printers of the first edition of the A. v.; but Alford thinks that it is the correct rendering of the translators, and means " strain (out the wine) at (the occurrence of) a gnat." However this may be, the reading in our Bibles gives an incorrect, whUe that of Whittingham gives a correct, impression. XXVIII. 14 And if this come before the Gouuernour, we wyl pacific him, and saue you harmelesse. This is better than the A. V. which reads : And if this come to the Governor's ears, we will persuade him, and secure you. The reference is to a judicial hearing, rather than to a report that might reach the governor.' Whittingham was the first to render this correctly, or at least to re lieve the ambiguity, that is after Wycliffe, who reads : And if this be herde of the justice we schulen councell hym and make you siker (secure). Mark XI. 17. . . . Is it not wrytten. My house shalbe called the house of prayer, vnto all nations? This is after Tyndale, but the A. V. reads ; of all nations. That Tyndale and Whittingham are correct, compare Is. lvi. 7, to which the Saviour refers. Our Lord's indignation was aroused in part, because this profanation was of the court of the Gentiles While the Jews sacredly kept the Jewish parts of the temple, they cared nothing ' Alford, in loco. 240 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VII. for this court, hence Jesus quotes the words of the prophet which ihey had done what they could to defeat.' Acts Xxvii 9. 'When muche tyme was spent, and sayling was now jeoperdeous, because also the tyme of the East was ¦now passed, Paul put them iu remembrance. In this, the version of 1557 is followed by the A. V. Tyndale's version and that of the Great Bible read : because also that we had overlonge fasted. But the argument of the apostles is better sustained by the above rendering, in that, on account of the Fast being passed, it was very late in the season to undertake so long a voyage.* Eph. IV. 18. . . because of the Hardenes of their harte. The A, V. has : the blindness of their heart. I. ThesB. V. 33. Abstayne from all kynde of euil. The A. V. reads : all appearance of evil. Alford translates every form of evil : and thinks the A. V. incorrect ; first, because the Greek word does not signify appearance as used above ; and second, because the two members of the sentence would not logically correspond. The exhortation is : " hold fast that which is good, and reject that which is evil"* James L 13. Let no man say when he is tempted, that he is tempted of God ; for God cannot be tempted with euyl, nether tempteth he any man. Whittingham is the first to seize upon this reading, which is adopted by the A. V. Tyndale (1534) reads : For God tempteth not vnto evyll, nether tempteth he anie man. I. Pet. I. 17. And if so be tliat ye call him Father whych wythout respect of person judgeth accordyng to euery mans worke, ...This is preferable to the A. V. which reads:.... if ye call on the Father; in which it follows Tyndale. This translation of Whittingham is "the only one," says Trench, "which the original ¦will bear." Alford trans lates : And if ye call upon as your Father Him who without respect of persons judgeth, &c.* ' Trench on the Authorized Version, p. 98. ' Ibid, in loco. ' Alford, in loco. < Ibid, in loco. 1560.] DEDICATION. 241 The New Testament of 1557, though excellent in itself, became a stepping-stone to a new revision of the whole Bible. Geneva at this time was not only the centre of Protestantism, but there were gathered here many eminent scholars. John Calvin had resided in Geneva since 1536 : and Theodore Beza, though a recent comer, became a permanent resident for some forty years. There were assembled here also a goodly company of French scholars, who were engaged in revising Olivetan's version of the French Bible. So likewise was gathered here a company of English exiles, made up of such men as: Myles Coverdale, John Knox, Thomas Cole, Anthony Gilby, John PuUain, Christopher Goodman, Thomas Samson, and William Whittingham. And to the associated labors of these brethren, together with the advice and co operation pf Calvin and Beza, we are indebted, for the Genevan Bible. Neither ought we to forget those in the congregation "whose hearts God likewise touched, not to spare any charges for the furtherance of such a benefite and favour.'" The share which these brethren had, as individuals, in the work, can not be determined. The impression prevails that the burden fellupon three or four of them. Knox and Goodman left Geneva for Scotland in 1559 ; Coverdale, Pullain and Cole returned to England in the same year. This would leave Whittingham, Gilby and Samson to complete the work. Heretofore the translating and revising of the English Scriptures has been, for the most part, the work of single individuals ; but in this case we have an association of learned men uniting their wisdom and energies " for the space of two yeeres and more, day and night." ^ And the result is the best version since Tyndale and Coverdale made their translations. And as a translation the Genevan Bible constitutes an im portant link between the earliest English versions and our present Authorized version. This Bible was finished on the 10th of April, 1560, and was dedicated to Queen Elizabeth in respectful but bold language. ' Preface, Genevan Bible, Loadon, 1595. "^ TUd. 11 242 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VII. After congratulating her upon her preservation "from the mouth of lions," they express a hope that she will favor the cause of fruth, and consequently urge upon her " utterly to abolish idolatry ; to root out, cut down, these weeds and im pediments, ... in imitation of the noble Josias who destroyed not only their idols and appurtenances, but also burnt the priests' bones upon their altars, and put to death the false prophets and sorcerers." * In the Address to the Christian Eeader, they claim for their work, " a ripe age and cleare light," also the advantages of being surrounded by " so many godly and learned men, and such diuersities of translations in diuers tongues." * Notwithstanding this, and also the fact, that there were among them noted Hebrew and Greek scholars, they arrogated nothing to themselves "aboue the least of their brethren " in undertaking " this great and wonderful worke." Further they protest from a good con science "that they have in euery point and worde faith fully rendred the text and in all hard places most syncerely expounded the same. For God is our witnes, that we haue by all means endeauoured to set foorth the puritie of the worde and right sense of the holy Ghost." * Here follows an explanation of their manner in the work of translation. " Now as we haue chiefly obserued the sense, and laboured ' As cited by Eadie, English Bible, IL, 13. London, 1876. ' In addition to the sources to which former translators had access, such as the German Zurich Bible, 1534^1539, the Latin translation of the Old Testament by Sanctes Pagninus, 1538, and the Latin version by S. M^iinster, 1534-35, these revisers had Leo Juda's Latin version of the Old Testament, which was completed by BibUander and Pellican ; this with Gaulthers revised Latin New Testament of Erasmus, was published in 1544. They possessed also the Latin version of Castaho, 1551. Though Castalio used great freedom with the text, by intro ducing classic phrases, yet his version had its influence upon later Protestant versions. But Beza's Latin version of the Greek Testa/ment, 1556, exercised a greater influence than any of the other versions. Compare Westcott's Hist, of the Eng. Bible, p. 331. Hallam's lAt. of Euro^pe, L, 383. * Preface, Genevan Bible. London, 1595. 1560.] SPECIMENS OE TRANSLATION. 243 alwayes to restore it to all integritie ; so haue we most reuer- entiy kept the proprietie of the woordes," Further, "diuersitie of speach " they noted in the margin ; and wherever in their judgment words were added to make the sense clear, such words were "put in the text with an other kiude of letter." In respect to the verse divisions, they say : we haue folowed the Ebrew examples, which haue so euen from the beginning distinguished them. Which thing as it is most profitable for meniorie, so doth it agree with the best translations, and is most easie to finde out both by the best Concordances." * This version was not an independent franslation, based as it was upon the Great Bible ; and yet in the Old Testament par ticularly there were marks of originality and scholarship. The chief aim of the revisers seems to have been to make a verbal rendering of the original ; but " even where the changes are greatest," says Westcott, " the original foundation can still be fraced, .... At the same time there is abundant evidence to shew that they were perfectly competent to deal independently with points of Hebrew scholarship ; and minute changes in expression shew that they were not indifferent to style." ' The following excerpts are here inserted as specimens of the trans lation, and are taken from an edition of 1560." ^ Ex. XX. 1. Then God spake all these wordes, saying, 3. I am the Lord thy God, which haue broht thee out of the land of Egypt, out of the house of bondage. 3. Thou shalt haue none other gods before me. 4. Thou shalt make thee no graue image, nether anie simili tude of things that are iu heauen aboue, nether that are in the earth beneth, nor that are in the waters vnder the earth. 5. Thou shalt not bowe downe to them, nether serue them ; for I am the Lord thy God, a ielous God, visiting the iniquitie of the fathers vpon the children, vpon the third generacion and vpon the fourth of them that hate me ; ' Preface, Genevan Bible. London, 1595. ^ History of English Bible, p. 331. London, 1873. 3 From a copy in the Boston Public Library. 244 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VII. 6. And shevring mercie vnto thousands to them that loue me, and kepe my commandments. 7. Shalt not take the Name of the Lord thy God in vaine ; for the Lord wil not holde him giltlesse that taketh his Name in vaine. 8. Remember the Sabbath dale to kepe it holy. 9. Sixe daies shalt thou labour, and doe all thy worke. 10. But the seuenth day is the Sabbath of y^ Lord thy God ; in it thou shalt not do anie worke, thou, nor thy sone, nor thy daughter, thy man-seruant, nor thy maide, nor thy beast, nor thy stranger that is ¦within thy gates. 11. For in sixe daies the Lorde made the heauen and the earth, the sea, and all that in them is, and rested the seuenth dale ; therefore the Lord blessed the Sabbath dale and hallowed it. 18. Honour thy father and thy mother, that thy daies male be prolonged vpon y land, which the Lord thy God giueth thee. 13. Thou shalt not kill. 14. Thou shalt not commit adulterie. 15. Thou shalt not steale. 16. Thou shalt not beare false ¦witnes against thy neigh bour. 17. Thou shalt not couet thy neighbours house, neither shalt thou couet thy neighbours wife ; nor his man ser uant, nor his maid, nor his oxe, nor his asse, nether any thing that is thy neighbours. Ps. XXin. 1. The Lord is my shepheard, I shall not want. 3. He maketh me to rest in grene pasture and leadeth me by the stil waters. 3. He restoreth my soule, and leadeth me in the paths of righteousnes for his Names sake. 4. Tea, thogh I shulde walke through the valley of the shadow of death, I wil feare no euil ; for thou art with me ; thy rod and thy staffe, they comfort me. 5. Thou dost prepare a table before me in the sight of mine aduersaries ; thou doest anoint mine head with oyle, and my cup runneth ouer. 6. Douteles kindnes and mercie shal follow me all the daies of my life, arid I shall remaine a long season in the house of the Lorde. 1560.] EVANGELICAL PIETY. 245 The Genevan Bible was a decided advance upon all former translations. The accuracy of its scholarship and the plain ness of its Saxon English commended it both to the learned and unlearned. It became more popular than any previous version. Though not printed iu England for several years after it was first issued, yet it very soon became the Bible of the household; and for more than three-fourths of a century it maintained its place as the Bible of the people. Born of per- t secution and in exile, it was regarded as the peculiar child of Protestantism. A lively bond of sympathy existed between the brethren at home and those at Geneva during the Marian persecution ; so that whether at home or abroad, they all suf fered iu a common cause. This fruit, therefore, of the labors of the brethren abroad was the more highly prized. For a hundred and fifty years there had been an under current of evangelical piety, which found its purity and life in the old and well-worn manuscripts of the Wycliffite ver sions. These Christians were unknown, yet called themselves known ; they were persecuted, yet not destroyed. In the beginning of the reign of Henry VIIL these Lollards were in hearty sympathy with the New learning and its New opinions, which were old to them, though new to others. These people were the first to welcome and distribute the New Testaments of William Tyndale, which came fresh into England from the printing presses of the continent. They welcomed not only the Scriptures in English in these newly-printed Testaments, but also the preaching of the Gospel by such men as Bilney, Barnes, Coverdale, and Hugh Latimer. Increasing in num bers, they increased in courage and boldness, and frequently met in to^wn-halls and in open fields for public worship. And as they increased in numbers, they became a recognized power by the king and his councilors. In Archbishop Cranmer and Lord Cromwell they found stanch supporters. Especially prospered in the reign of Edward VI. , they were persecuted in the time of Mary ; but are now hopeful iu the beginning of the reign of Elizabeth, and welcome with joy the un- 246 THE GENEVAN BIBLE, [CHAP, VIL episcopal Bible from Geneva. These are they who are now known as Non-conformists and Protestants— an evangelical party, who from the first have had no sympathy with empty forms and sensuous ceremonies, and who, since the trouble in Frankfort, have been known as Puritans." * What the Wycliffite versions therefore were to the LoUards, and the New Testaments of Tyndale to the Broders in Christ or Known men, this Genevan Bible was to these Non-con formists or Puritans. John Knox is said to have used Tyn dale's New Testament until the publication of the Genevan Bible, when he immediately adopted the latter. The con venient size of this Bible was in its favor, both in respect to its price and use. Issued in a small quarto, it was quite in contrast with the folios of the Great Bible, Then it was the first edition of the Bible printed in Eoman characters, the type of former editions having been that of Old English or Black Letter, Another characteristic of this Bible was that it was the first complete English Bible in which the text was separated into verses. The revisers adopted in the New Tes tament the verse divisions of Whittingham's version, and in the Old Testament the "Ebrew examples" were followed. Further, for the help of the reader they added the arguments for the books, also for the chapters ; likewise headings indi cating the particular subjects on each page.^ These improve ments had been introduced, in part, in previous revisions; as in Coverdale's Bible, the arguments for the several chapters were placed at the beginning of each book, while the Great Bible placed them at the head of each chapter. But the headings or catch- words at the top of each page were peculiar to the Genevan Bible. In this it was followed by the Bishops' Bible, 1568, and by the Authorized version, 1611. But that which added most of all to the acceptableness of the Genevan Bible was its marginal notes. There was at this time a spirit of religious inquiry prevailing among the peo- ' Neal's History of the Puritans, L, 68. New Tork, 1863. ^ Compare, Address to the Christian Reader, Preface, Genevan Bible. 1560.] ANNOTATIONS. 247 pie. During the Marian persecution such horrors had been witnessed, perpetrated on account of religious opinion, and suffered for the sake of religious principle, that the questions of the hour were as to the truth of these doctrines, and the mean ing of the Holy Scriptures. And as Queen Elizabeth's pohcy developed, she became more and more opposed to the preach ing of the Gospel, consequently the people were dependent for instruction upon the annotations of the Holy Scriptures, Upon the accession of Queen Elizabeth high expectations were entertained by Protestants of royal favor, and on this account undue license was taken by them ; so that partly on this ac count, and partly on account of her aversion to the plain Gos pel, she required Archbishop Grindal to abridge the number of preachers, and to put down the rehgious exercise of prophe sying,* " urging, that it was good for the church to have few preachers, that three or four might suffice for a county, and that the reading of the Homilies to the people was sufficient." '' But in respect to the annotations, the author of the address to the "Christian Eeader," says : "And considering how hard a thing it is to vnderstand the holy Scriptures, and what errors, sects and heresies grow dayly for lacke of the true knowledge thereof, and how many are discouraged (as they pretend), be cause they cannot attaine to the true and simple meaning of the same, we haue also indeuoured both by the diligent reading of the best comentaries, and also by the conference with the godly and learned brethren, to gather briefe annotations vpon all ' This exercise of Prophesying consisted in explanations of certain por tions of Scripture allotted to a given number of ministers assembled in a church for this purpose. They seem to have been large Bible classes held for mutual improvement in the knowledge of the Holy Scriptures. But the liberty enjoyed was abused by some in advancing heterodox opinions, and openly declaring against the liturgy and the hierarchy ; and by others in using the occasion for arguing and disputing. But notwith standing all this, the archbishop defended these assemblies, and believed it possible to redress the irregularities by certain rules of order. See Chalmer's Biographical Dictionary, Art. Archbishop Grindal. Also Pul ler's Church History of Britain, B. IX., p. 136. ' Chalmers' Dictionary, Art. Grindal, p. 350. 248 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VH, the hard places, aswel for the vnderstanding of such words as are obscure, and for the declaration of the text, as for the application of the same, as may most appertain to God's glory and the edification of his Church." * The notes are for the most part original, yet some were taken from Calvin and others from Beza. And while the charge of theological bias has been brought against them, a cursory examination shows that in the main they are historical and practical. And by a careful noting it has been found, that even in the Epistle to the Eomans not more than ten of the two hundred and fifty notes are " unmis takable Calvinistic utterances." ^ It is worthy of remark also, that the annotations of the Genevan Bible were so highly prized by the revisers of the Bishops' Bible, that they adopted many of them word for word, though they were publishing a rival edition. Annotations at this period were most acceptable, and are always invaluable. But it would seem that we live in an age of Commentaries ; that the labors of good men in this direc tion are carried to an extreme ; so much so, that the text is in danger of being swallowed up by comments. Bible reading is degenerating into Commentary reading. It were better to go to the original source than thus to take the truth at second hand. It may be said of the Bible, as it has been said of the works of Shakespeare, that " notes are often necessary, but they are necessary evils." ^ In the reading of the Holy Scrip tures, if we would "feel the highest pleasure," and attain the greatest spiritual benefit, we onght to read every book, not excepting that of Eevelation, with " utter neghgence " of Com mentaries. When the attention is fixed, the reader ought not to tum aside for critical or even practical expositions, but "read on through brightness and obscurity." In this way the mind may lay hold of the truth and the spirit feed upon it. And all this notwithstanding many obscurities, since these very obscurities may have their use, "There is," says Dr, ' Preface, Genevan Bible. ^ Eadie's History of English Bible, ll., 38. « Dr. Johnson's Preface to Johnson & Stevens' Shakespeare, I., 338. 1560.] CHIEF CHARACTERISTICS. 249 Johnson, " a kind of intellectual remoteness necessary for the comprehension of any great wqrk in its full design and its true proportions ; a close approach shows the smaller niceties, but the beauty of the whole is discerned no longer." * In this Dr, Johnson was treating of Shakespeare, yet how applicable to the Holy Scriptures ; since in their depth, full design, and true proportions, they cannot be comprehended by the in tellect, but must be discerned by the spirit. But whatever may be true respecting the too great use of Bibhcal Commen taries in our day, there was no such abuse in the days of the Genevan Bible. The annotations of this Bible were not only at first, but so long as it was circulated, they continued to be an important element of its popularity aud usefulness. Even iu 1611, when the first edition of King James' Bible was printed, " Some of the Brethren!' says Fuller, "were not well pleased with this Translation, suspecting that it would abate the repute of that of Geneva, with their Annotations made by English Exiles in that City, in the daies of Qu. Mary Yea, some complained. That they could not see into the sense of the Scripture for lack of the spectacles of those Geneva An notations."^ And what is more remarkable, an edition of King James' Bible was printed in the year 1649, " with the Genevan notes, by way of pushing it into favour." This was about forty years after the first edition of King James' Bible was first published, and about the time it took the place that it has occupied ever since.^ Besides annotations they added " Mappes of Cosmographie ....for the perfect vnderstanding and memorie of diuerse places and countrys, partly described and partly by occasion touched both in the old and New Testament." In the edition of 1560, published by Hall, at Geneva, these maps are on a small scale, covering sometimes half, at others scarcely half of the page. The first map indicates the location of the Garden of Eden, Gen. ii. 10 ; the second. The Journey of the Iiraelites ' Dr. Johnson's Preface to Johnson & Stevens' Shakespeare, I., 339. ^ Church History of Britain, 'B. X., p. 53. London, 1655. ' Anderson's Ann/His of Eng. Bible, p. 661. 250 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VII. through the wilderne,HS, Num. xxxiii. ; the third. The Land of Canaan as divided among the several tribes. Josh. xv. There is also a map of The Holy Land, as it was in the time of Christ. This is placed at the beginning of the New Testament. This last map was designed, though rudely, to show the physical elevations of the country. In addition to the above popular characteristics of the Gene van Bible there is one other which deserves mention, and that is the number of its illustrations. The first edition, 1560, con tains the following : The Arke, Gen. vii. 18 ; The Egyptians pursuing the Israelites, Ex. xiv. 9 ; The Arke of the Testimony, xxv. 10-15 ; The Table of Shewe Bread, 23-30 ; The Candle sticke, 31-37 ; The first Covering of the Tabernacle, xxvi, 1-6 ; The Curtaines of Goates Haire, xxvi. 7-13 ; The Taber nacle, -s.-s.y\.. 15-30; Ttie Altar of Burnt Offring, xxvii. 1-8; The High Priest in his Official Robes, xxviii. 3-4; TJie Altai- of Incense, xxx, 1-5 ; The Laver of Brasse, xxx, 18 ; Tlie Taber nacle with the Tents pitched around about i^, Num, i, 51-52; The Temple Uncovered, I, Kings vi. 2 ; The Temple Covered, 21 ; The First Figure of the King's House, vii. 2 ; The Second Figure of the same House, yi\. ^-Q ; The Forme of the Pillar, 15-16; The Great Caldron, 23-26; Tlie Forme of the Caldr one, 28-37 ; The Royal Throne of Solomon, x. 18-20 ; Tlie Vision of Ezekiel, Ezek. i. ; The Description of the Forms of the Tem ple, xl. These cuts are comparatively well executed. They are small, and are placed in the midst of the page opposite the verse or verses to be illustrated. The many excellencies of the Genevan Bible gave it a wide circulation. Though not printed in England till 1575, yet like the New Testament of Tyndale it was printed abroad and scattered broadcast throughout England and Scotland. So universally was this Bible accepted, that it was read from the pulpit, quoted in sermons, cited by authors, and adopted in the family. The bishops aud those who stood at the head of the Universities gave their preference to this version, though many of them from their ecclesiastical connections, might justly be supposed to have been prejudiced against it. 1560.] EDITIONS ISSUED FROM 1580 TO 1603. 251 The marked superiority of the Genevan to the Bishops', as well as to the Great Bible, gave it place independent of its Free Church origin. But while it enjoyed this preeminence, the fact that it was not printed in England until fifteen years after its publication at Geneva, argues that it could not have been altogether acceptable to those in high places. It is true that Queen Elizabeth issued a patent to John Bodleigh " for the term of seven years to imprint the English Bible . . . .finished 'in tlie present year of our Lord God, a thousand, five hundred and three score." '^ Notwithstanding this, the Genevan Bible was not printed in England previous to the death of Archbishop Parker. To this fact join another quite as significant, which is, that it was often printed after his death, and there seems abundant ground for the supposition that the archbishop used his influence against it.' Hence forth, however, the Genevan Bible was more frequently printed than any other version. It became popular, particu larly in Scotland. It was the first Bible printed in Scotland, which was in 1576-1579.' After the issue of the Bishop's Bible in 1568, a version intended by the Episcopal authorities to supersede the Genevan Bible, the latter was by no means set aside. An estimate made by Mr. Anderson shows, that of the one hundred and thirty editions of the Bible and Testa ment published from 1560 to 1603, ninety were of the Genevan version. And if the comparison be limited to Bibles alone, then of the eighty-five editions issued, sixty were of the ' Anderson's Annals of EngUsh Bible, p. 458. ' Bodleigh applied in 1565 for a renewal or extension of his patent ; Parker manifested a willingness to extend it, but on condition that no impression be made except by advice and authority of the bishops, which was a virtual refusal. Neal's Hist, of Puritans, I., 83. Also, Anderson's Annals of the Bible, p. 461. London, 1863. ' " The publication of the Genevan version at Edinburgh without any change in orthography or any assimilation of its style to Scottish usage, shows that at this period, as at earlier times, the English of the south was quite intelligible to all the educated population of Scotland." Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, II. , 48. 252 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VII, Genevan version.* These facts show that there was freedom in the reign of Elizabeth for printing and cfrculating the Scriptures; and especially, that the people were partial to the Genevan version. A partiality which maintained even to the time of Charles L, when the Genevan Bible sank gradu ally into disuse on account of the deservedly growing favor of the Authorized version. Mr. Anderson in referring to the wonderful survival of the Genevan Bible, says : that while the Bishops' Bible was not issued after 1611, the Genevan was printed at London in 1633, at Edinburgh in 1640, and at Amsterdam in 1644.' So that the Genevan version was in use full thirty years or more after the publication of King James' Bible, having enjoyed the preeminence for about three-quarters of a century. This fact at this time, was something remarkable in the history of English versions, finding parallels only in the manuscript version of Wyclifle, and the printed New Testaments of Tyndale. The Wycliffite manuscripts were in use from 1380 to 1525 ; and the printed New Testaments of Tyndale's translation continued in circu lation from 1525 to 1605, the date of the last edition as noted in Cotton's list.* The language of the Genevan version is remarkable for its Saxon simplicity. In style and diction it is one with pre ceding translations. And in cases where the readings differ, the translators studied not only correctness of rendering, but plainness in word and terseness of expression. The dethrone ment of papal supremacy in England by Henry VIII, was the virtual dethronement of the Latin language from its eccle siastical and literary supremacy. It was not so understood at the time by the papists. They fondly hoped and believed that the Latin would be the universal language, because it was the sacred language of the Church. The Church would become . universal, and the language would go with the Church, * Annals of the EngUsh Bible, pp. 469, 470. "^ Ibid, p. 661. ' Editions of the Bible in English, p. 57. Oxford, 1853. 1581.J CONFLICT IN LANGUAGE AND RELIGION, 253 Hence the bitter opposition to the translation of the Bible into English, which they stigmatized as treason against the Church. True, towards the close of the reign of Henry VIIL, on account of circumstances, that is of the extensive circu lation of the English Scriptures, their purposes were some what shaken. Hence the compromise of Gardiner, in which he yields to the necessity of an English version, and yet insists that a certain class of Latin words must be retained. Against this hierarchical theory that affirmed the supremacy of the Latin tongue, the friends of the Bible in English have boldly. and though sometimes at great odds, successfully contended. And though the English language steadily grew in strength and favor from the time of the Conqueror, and that largely through the fact of English versions of the Scriptures, yet even in the age of Elizabeth its foundations were not con sidered abiding. Lord Bacon had no confidence in the vitality of the English tongue. " These modern languages," he said, " will at one time or other play the bankrupts with books." * The Latin had been regarded in all the past as the universal and eternal language, and the wisest among men could not as yet see it otherwise. If Dante had broken from the Latin and trusted his fame to the vulgar Italian, it was not without a struggle with himself, as well as against the advice of his friends. Boccacio, though he followed the example of Dante, questioned " whether the Divine Comedy had not been more sublime, and therefore destined to a more secure eternity in Latin." ' Though the purpose of the Eeformers in translating the Scriptures into English was not to promote the interest of the English language, nor to break down the supremacy of the Latin, yet incidentally these were important elements in the conflict, and also among the important results soon to be reached. For even now in the reign of Elizabeth the conflict both in language and religion is not so much -with the old ' Bacon's Worhs. Preface, I., xvi. Boston, 1861. ' Milman's Latin Christianity, VIIL, 343. New Tork, 1874. 254 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VII. ecclesiastical spirit of Eome, as with the newly revived pagan spirit of Italy. Classic ideals now rule in the court and palace. Greek and Eoman learning was a passion with women as well as men, and was pedantically assumed by all classes. In fashionable life every thing was tinctured by it, " When the queen paraded through a country town," says Warton, "almost every pageant was a Pantheon. When she paid a visit at the house of any of her nobility, at entering the hall she was saluted by the Penates, and conducted to her privy- chamber by Mercury. Even the pastry-cooks were expert mythologists. At dinner, select transformation of Ovid's metamorphoses were exhibited in confectionary; and the splendid iceing of an immense historic plumb-cake, was em bossed with a delicious basso-rehevo of the destruction of Troy. In the afternoon, when she condescended to walk in the garden, the lake was covered with Tritons and Nereids; the pages of the family were converted into Wood-nymphs who peeped from every bower ; and the footmen gamboled over the lawns in the figure of Satyrs." * Queen Elizabeth's reign was characterized by an artificial stateliness in dress, manners, language and religion. In pageants and festivals social life ran high, while in forms and ceremonials religious life ran low. In literature there was also a corresponding sensuousness. The Italian language was fashionable at court, and was studied and afiected by all who made any pretensions to refinement. So fashionable did this rage for modern Italian become, " that it almost rivalled the classical mania of the day." Fresh novels from Italy were sold in every shop. "So popular were the writers ofthis fascinating country that the English language was absolutely inundated with versions of the Italian poets and novelists."' Concerning this Ascham complains when he says: " These be the enchantmentes of Circe brought out of Italic, to marre mens maners in Englande ; much by example of ill life, but ' History of English Poetry, III., 493. London, 1781. ^ Drake's Shakespeare and his Times, I., 451. Loudon, 1817. 1581.] NEW-FANGLED ENGLISH. 255 more by precepts of fond books, of late translated out of Italian into Englishe, sold in every shop in London ; com mended by honest titles, the soner to corrupt honest maners." * With all this efflorescence of display and affectation of man ners there was a corresponding fashion of speech. John Lyly, the author of the Anatomy of Wit,' set the fashionable world in a blaze with his new-fangled Enghsh. "All our ladies," says Blount, "were then his scollers; and that beautie in court who could not parley Euphuesme, was as little re garded as shee which now there speakes not French." ' And as it not unfrequently happens, these scollers outwitted the wit of their teacher, changing what in him was fanciful into the fantastical. They played with words for the sake of wit and brilliancy. A fair estimate of Lyly and his new English is that he was a man of much reading, good memory, and ready wit; but ran into an excess of alliteration, antithesis, tropes, and rhetorical flourishes, playing upou words, and indulging in the use of high-sounding words for the sake of the sound, which altogether constituted a style not only arti ficial, but sentimental, affected, and stilted. But while this pagan spfrit of classic refinement and this affectation of manners and speech appeared to permeate the body politic, yet they were but a part of it, only as an efflorescence. For underlying this gilt and gUtter, there was a substratum of earnestness, soberness, and honest common sense, which formed a grand subsoil for Gospel seed sown by the hands of Eeformed husbandmen. The age of Elizabeth may be justly chargeable with folly, yet it was not destitute of wisdom. It was an age of hope and enterprise ; an age that gave to the world great men, especially in literature. True, it was an age of contradictions, as was also the character of its queen ; so that, while it gave a hearty welcome to the classic spirit of paganism, it likewise gave a hearty welcome to the humble ' Roger Ascham's Works, p. 353. London, N. D. (1761). ' Or Romance of Euphues, which appeared in 1578-9. 2 Drake's Shakespeare and his Times, I., 443. 256 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP, VIL spirit of the Gospel, The Genevan Bible, together with pre vious English versions, was the teacher of this age both in language and religion. Yea, the commandments and precepts of the Bible were not more in opposition to the affected man ners and free morals which prevailed, than was its plain Eng lish to the corrupted and fantastic speech then so prevalent. The Genevan Bible was the book of the household when such men as Bacon, Ealeigh, Herbert, Hooker, Spenser, Sidney, and Shakespeare were growing into manhood. Through its general use this Bible became not only the standard of the language, but a powerful influence iu withstanding the public taste, furnishing, as it did, a noble example in word and phrase of pure English. While, therefore, there was no little conflict of opinion as to the best usage, there was a gro-wing taste for language unaffected by Euphuisms and unadorned by foreign words. This prevailing pedantry was thoroughly ridiculed by Sir Philip Sydney in his character of Master Eombus," and by Shakespeare in his Holofemes, whom he makes to draw out "the thread of his verbosity finer than the staple of his argument." ' Besides there was a growing confidence in the permanence of the English language. Hooker's Ecclesiastical Polity, together with a few other works, says Hallam, " would have been thought to require a learned dress in any other country." * In praise of the English language at this period. Dr. Samuel Johnson says : " If the language of theology were extracted from Hooker and the Translation of the Bible ; the terms of natural knowledge from Bacon ; the phrases of policy, war, and navigation from Ealegh ; the dialect of poetry and fiction from Spencer and Sidney ; and the diction of common life from Shakspeare, few ideas would be lost to mankind for want of English words in which they might be expressed." ^ Sir Philip Sidney showed his appreciation of the ' Miscellaneous Works. Lady of May. A Mas^pie, pp. 368-276. Boston, 1860. ^ Love's Labour Lost, Act IV., Scene II. Also, V., I. 5 Introduction to Lit. of Europe, IL, 55. New York, 1874. Diet., Preface, I., xix. London, 1818. 1560.] OBSOLETE WORDS, 357 English language when he declared that for " uttering sweetly and properly the conceit of the mind, which is the end of speech, that hath it equally with any other tongue in the world, and is particularly happy in compositions of two or three words together, near the Greek, far beyond the Latin ; which is one of the greatest beauties can be in a language." * However great may have been the literary infiuence of the Bible, its social and religious power was still greater. "The whole temper of the nation was changed. A new conception of life and of man superseded the old." ' And this was the Christian conception of social equality based upon the father hood of God and brotherhood of man. A conception, most antagonistic to social distinctions that, in the age of Queen Elizabeth, and in every age, are so fiatteriug to humau nature, which though once denounced as narrow and Puritan, is now regarded as broad and Christian, And now that over three hundred years have passed, in opening the Genevan Bible we find its language rich aud simple, and will be surprised, perhaps, with the comparative fewness of its antiquated and obsolete terms. The following may be taken as examples of words obsolete either in form or sense : cause, accusation ; chapman, merchant ; cratch, man ger ; crime, accusation ; diseasest, troublest ; fardels, goods, or baggage ; frailes, clusters ; grennes, traps ; herberoiis, hos pitable ; iakes, dung-hill ; pight, pitched ; pill, make a gain of ; plant, sole ; trade, path ; which may be found below in their several connections, I Sam. xxv. 18. Then Abigail made haste and toke two hundreth cakes .... and an hundreth frailes of raisins. II Kings XIX 34 . . . and with the plant of my feete haue I dryed all the floods closed in, ' Miscellaneous Works. Defence of Poetry, p. 131. 2 Green's (J. R.) Short Hist, of the English People, p. 457. New York, 1877. ^58 THE GENEVAN BIBLE, [CHAP. VII, Ps. CXL. 5. . . . and set grennes for me. Prov. XXII. 6. Teach a childe in the trade of his way. Is. XXIII. 8. . . . whose merchants are princes, whose chap men (are) the nobles of the worlde. Dan. II. 5. . . .ye shall be drawen in pieces, and your houses shall be made a iakes. Mark V. 35. . . - Thy daughter is dead ; why diseasest thou the master any further ? XV. 36. And the title of his cause was written aboue, The King of the Jevves. Luke II. 7. . . . & ¦wrapped him in swadling clothes, and laid him in a cratch, because there was no rowme for them in the Tnne. Acts XXI. 15. And after those dayes we trussed vp our fardels, and went vp to Jerusalem. XXV. 18. Against whome when the accusers stode -vp, they brought no crime of suche things as I sup- II Cor. XII. 17. Did I pill you by anie of them whome I sent vnto you? Heb. VIII. 3. . . . and of the true Tabernacle which the Lord pight, and not man. I Pet. IV. 9. Be ye herberous one to another, without grudging. Other obsolete words may be found scattered through the Old aud New Testaments, yet their sparseness argues the excellence of this version as to its language. And though this Bible has served its age, yet it deserves still to be prized as a storehouse of pure English. The following, as specimens of the translation, are here inserted from the first edition (1560), the title-page of which reads : " The Bible And Holy Scriptures Conteyned In the Olde and Newe Testament. Translated According to the Ebrue and Greke, and conferred With the best translations in diuerse languages, With Moste Profitable Annotations vpon all the hard places, and other things of great importance as may appeare in the Epistle to the Eeader At Geneva, Printed By Eouland Hall, M.D.LX,"* ' Prom a copy in the Boston Public Library. 1560.] SPECIMENS OF THE TRANSLATION. 259 Matt. VI. 9. After this maner therefore pray ye. Our father which art in heauen, halowed be thy Name. 10. Thy Kingdome come. Thy wil be done euen in earth as (it is) m heauen. 11. Glue vs this day our daily bread. 13. And forgiue vs our dettes, as we also forgiue our det ters. 13. And lead vs not into tentation, but deliuer vs from euil ; for thine is the kingdome, and the power, and the glorie for euer. Amen. I. Cor. XIII. 1. Thogh I speake with the tongues of men and Angels, and haue not loue, I am {as) sounding brasse, or a tinkling cymbal. 3. And thogh I had the (gift) of prophecie, and knewe all secretes and all knowledge, yea, if I had faith, so that I colde remoue mountaines, and had not loue, I were nothing. 3. And thogh I fede the poore with all my goods, and thogh I giue my bodie, that I be burned, and haue not loue, it profiteth me nothing. 4. Loue suflFreth long ; it is bountiful; loue enuith not ; loue doeth not boast it self; it is not puffed vp ; 5. It disdaineth not ; it seketh not her own things ; it is not prouoked to anger ; it thinketh not euil ; 6. It reioyceth not in iniquitie, but reioyceth in the trueth : 7. It sufireth all things ; it beleueth all things ; it hopeth all things ; it endureth all things. 8. Loue doeth neuer fall away, thogh that prophecynge be abolished, or the tongues cease, or knowledge vanish away. 9. For we knowe in parte, and we prophecie in parte. 10. But when that which is perfite, is come, then that which is in parte, shalbe abolished. 11. When I was a childe, I spake as a childe, I vnderstode as a childe, I thoght as a childe ; but when I became a man, I put away childish things. 13. For now we se through a glasse darkely ; but then {shal we se) face to face. Now I knowe in parte ; but then shal I knowe euen as I am knowen. 18. And now abideth faith, hope & loue, {euen) these thre ; but the chiefest of these {is) love. In 1576, Lawrence Tomson published his revision of the New Testament. On account of the high esteem in which 260 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VIL this translation was held, it was often substituted in the Gene van Bible for the New Testament version of 1560. Tomson was a noted linguist, commanding as he did a knowledge of twelve languages. He was not more celebrated for his erudi tion than for his worth of character. The title-page of his New Testament printed in 1595 in connection with the Gene van Old Testament, reads: "The Newe Testament of ovr Lord lesvs Christ, Translated o^vt of Greeke by Theod. Beza. Wherevnto are adioyned briefe svmmaries of Doctrine And also Short Expositions on the Phrases and Hard Places. . . . , Englished by L. Tomson. Imprinted at London, by the Deputies of Christopher Barker Anno 1595. Cum priui legio." This version differs but little from that of 1560, though it claims to be founded upon the Greek Testament of Beza. As a translation it has one marked peculiarity, that of render ing the article as a demonstrative pronoun. To illustrate this a few verses are here given from the first chapter of the Gos pel of John : John I. 1. In the beginning was that ¦Word, and that Word was with God, and that Word was God. 4. . . . and that life was the light of men. 5. And that light shineth in the darknesse. 14. And that Word was made flesh, and dwelt among vs. 30. . . . and said plainly, I am not that Christ. 31. . . , Art thou that Prophet ? And he answered. No. This is followed by the A. V., though the margin reads: a Prophet. 39. . . . Beholde that Lambe of God. 33. . . .1 beheld that Spirite come downe from heauen. 41. . . . We haue found that Messias which is by inter pretation that Christ. 45. . . . Jesus i/jcti Sonne of Joseph, that was of Nazareth. 49. . . . thou art that Sonne of God ; thou art that King of Israel. 51. . . . and the Angels of God ascending, and descend ing, vpon that Sonne of man. This peculiarity runs through the whole New Testament. A remarkable example is that of I. John v. 12. " He that hath 1576,] ENLARGEMENT Oi' THE ENGLISH VOCABULAET. 261 that Sonne, hath that life and he that hath not that Sonne of God, hath not that life." The effect in many instances is harsh, but the peculiarity does not mar the version from its fre quency, as the examples above might seem to indicate, since pages may be read without meeting with a single instance. The Eheims version has enjoyed a preeminence in respect to its supposed influence in the enlargement of the English vocabulary. An extended comparison, however, will show that it must share the credit of such influence with other ver sions, and especially with this version of Lawrence Tomson. Such words as adjure, admonish, blasphemeth, discerned, hymn, parable, ransom, reprobate, and revelation, have been credited as peculiar to the Eheims, but they all appear in this version, also in others much earlier, as the following references will show: Matt. IX. 3. . . . This man blasphemeth. This word is found also in WyclifEe, 1380, Tyndale's N. T., 1534, Great Bible, 1539, and Genevan N. T., 1557. XIII. 31. Another parable he put foorth vnto them. This word is common also to Wycliflfe and Tyndale. It is found likewise in the Great Bible, 1539, and the Genevan N. T., 1557. Acts. XIX. 13. . . . We adiure you by Jesus, whom Paul preacheth. This word is found also in the New Testament versions of Tyndale, Great Bible, and of Geneva, 1557. Rom. I. 38. . . . God deliuered them ¦vp vnto a reprobate minde. This word seems to have been adopted first by this version, which was followed by the Rheims and Authorized versions. XV. 14. . . . and are able to admoniih one another. This word is found also in the Genevan N. T., 1560. Tyndale, 1534, and Whittingham, 1557, read : ex horte. L Cor. n. 14. . . . because they are spiritually discerned. This word is found likewise in Coverdale's Bible, 1535, and in the Genevan N. T., 1557 ; while the Rheims N. T., 1583, reads : spiritually examined, after Tyn dale. The word is found, however, iu the Rheims N. T., chapter xi. 39 ; but after the version of 1576. 262 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VIL I. Cor. XIV. 6. . . . except I speake to you, either by reuelation, or by knowledge. This word is found in all pre vious versions. Eph. V. 19. Speaking vnto your selves in psalmes, and hymnes, and spirituall songs. Special credit has been given to the Rheims version for its agency in introducing this word. But it is common to all previous Eng lish versions. The Vulgate has liymnis, and the Greek has humnois. I. Tim. II. 6, Who gaue himselfe a ransome for all men. This word is found also in Tyndale, 1535, and 1534; Great Bible, 1539; and the Genevan N. T., 1557. The Rheims version reads, in loco : redemption. It will be remembered in this connection that Tomson's revision and the Eheims translation were published within a half dozen years of each other ; so that while the above words are found in pre^vious translations, yet because they enter more generally into the common speech of this age, they occur much more frequently in these than in earlier English versions. For the sake of comparison the following excerpts from Tomson's version are here transcribed : Matt, VI. 9. After this maner therefore pray ye. Our father which art in heauen, halowed be thy name. 10. Thy kingdome come. Thy will bee done euen in earth, as it is in heauea 11. Giue vs this day our dayly bread. 13. And forgiue vs our dettes, as wee also forgiue our detters. 13. And leade vs not into temptation, but deliuer vs from euill ; for thine is the kingdome, and the power, and the glory for euer. Amen. I. Cor, XIII. 1. Though I speake with the tongues of men and Angels, and haue not loue, I am as sounding brasse, or a tinkling cymbal. 3. And though I had the gift of prophesie, and knew all secrets and all knowledge, yea, if I had all faith, so that I could remooue mountaines, and had not loue, I were nothing. 3. And though I feede the poore ¦with all my goods, and though I giue my body, that I be burned, and haue not loue, it profiteth me nothing. 1576.] SPECIMENS OE TOMSON'S VEESION. 263 4. Loue suffereth long ; it is bountifull ; loue enuieth not ; loue doth not boast it selfe ; it is not puffed vp: 5. It doth no vncomely thing ; it seeketh not her owne things ; it is not prouoked to anger ; it thinketh no euill : 6. It reioyceth not in iniquitie, but reioyceth iu the trueth ; 7. It suffreth all things ; it beleeueth all things ; it hopeth all things ; it endureth all things. 8. Loue doth neuer fall away, though that prophesyings be abolished, or the tongues cease, or knowledge vanish away. 9. For we know in part, and we prophesie in part. 10. But when that which is perfect, is come, then that which is in part, shalbe abolished. 11. ¦When I was a childe, I spake as a childe, I vnderstood as a childe, I thought as a childe ; but when I became a man, I put away childish things. 13. For now we see thorow a glasse darkely ; but then shall we see face to face. Now I know in part ; but then shall I know euen as I am knowen. 13. And now abideth faith, hope, and loue, euen these three ; but the chiefest of these is loue. The annotations to this version in the Gospels and Acts of the Apostles, are for the most part confined to the margins, but in the Epistles, particularly to the Eomans and Corin thians, they are quite voluminous, frequently taking up more than half the page, and are in very small type. Mr. Tomson's design was, that every dark sentence and doubtful word "should be made so plain that all might go through with it without wandering or going astray." As seen from the "title-page, he lays no claim to originality, but distinctly asserts that the expositions are taken out of the large annota tions of Beza and others. These notes are found in all the books excepting that of Eevelation, concerning which he says: "I haue not thought good to put forth any such thing ¦vpon the Eeuelation as I haue upon the other books." But in the edition of 1595, there is added to the book of Eevela tion, " A briefe and learned Commentarie, Written by Franc, 264 THE GENEVAN BIBLE. [CHAP. VIL Junius, &c." This translation of 1576 with its annotations was so acceptable, that it was printed and bound up with the Old Testament of the Genevan Bible, and published in Edinburgh by Andrew Hart, 1610. These Bibles were held in such esteem that it was considered a recommendation years after wards, that an edition of the Bible should be conformed to that printed by Andrew Hart. The Genevan Bible, whether made up of the New Testa ment of 1560, 1557, or that of 1576, met with unbounded popularity ; and on this very account was opposed by the bishops of the Church of England. The translation was admired by some of them, on account of its scholarship, but denounced by others as coming from Geneva. Objections were made to the preface, that it touched too severely upon ceremonies retained in the English Church service. Serious objections were raised against the marginal notes, some of which were thought to affect the Queen's prerogative, by allowing the subject under certain circumstances to resist rulers. One of these objectionable notes is upon II. Chron. XV. 16. Aud King Asa deposed Maachah his mother from her regencie, because she had made an idole in a groue ; and Asa brake downe her idole, and stamped it, and burnt it at the brooke Kidron. The objectionable comment upon this reads : " And herein he shewed that he lacked zeale ; for she ought to haue dyed both by the couenant, as vers 13, and by the Law of God ; but he gaue place to foolish pitie, and would also seeme after a sort to satisfie the Lawe." Another exceptionable note was that on Exodus xix. 24. The com ment on which passage reads : " Neither dignitie nor multitude haue auctoritie to passe the bounds, that Gods worde prescribeth." Besides the bishops urged that it was a foreign book, in tbat it was neither translated or printed in England. The Eoman Catholics were especially bitter in their opposition. One John Hamilton, a secular priest and a political intriguer, attacked the Genevan Bible soon after its first appearance. He impugned both the translation and the 1611.] THE GENEVAN AND AUTHOEIZED VERSIONS. 265 * notes, whenever they failed to support Eomish traditions con cerning purgatory, the holy virgin, prayers for the dead, and Christ's "pretious bodie and bluid." His solemn warning was: " Therefore, I beseek you, dissaivet people, to burn your corrupt Scot's Bibles iu the fire, that your sauls be not tor- mentit with the intolerable pains of the fires of hell." * But the shrewdest and most scholarly attack was made by Gregory Martin, who was a thorough linguist, and the first among the translators of the Eheims version. His attack was against English translations in general, and the Genevan version in particular. The main charge, reiterated again and again, was that Protestant translations wilfully and intentionally cor rupted the Holy Scriptures; that such "foule dealing," and such " partiall and false translations " were made on purpose to further heretical opinions.^ These charges were ably con futed by William Fulke, Master of Pembroke Hall, Cam bridge. Fulke's defense has not only outlived the charges, but by its vitality has kept them in existence.^ But the quiet move of the bishops, in which Archbishop Parker led the way, to put forth a new version, was designed to be the most effectual blow against the Genevan Bible. But in fact it proved the least hurtful. The publication of the Bishops' Bible, however, constitutes an epoch in the history of English versions, and will be treated of in the next chapter. While, therefore, the Genevan Bible survived all opposition for more than three-quarters of a century, yet at last it was superseded by the Authorized version. And this was by reason of the fact that the Genevan Bible bequeathed its excellencies to the Authorized version. So that, notwith standing, it still lives in its infiueuce and makes the Au thorized version what it is now and what it has been for two and a half centuries, the accepted Bible of all English speaking people. ' Eadie's History of the English Bible, II. , 56. London, 1876. ' Fulke's Defense of English Translations, pp. 1-24. London, 1617. ' Ibid. In which the charges are set down as well as the answers. CHAPTEE YIII. THE BISHOPS' BIBLE. A.D. 1568. THE reigu of Queen Elizabeth was a transitional period. In ecclesiastical affairs nothing was settled. The short reign of Edward VI. gave an impetus to Protestant principles which bade fair to decide the question of supremacy between the Old and New learning, A serious check, however, was given to this progress by the short but fierce reign of Queen Mary, But now the friends of the Eeformation look upou the accession of Elizabeth with joy and heartfelt relief. Pro testantism, just returned from exile, is stronger in its con'vic- tions and broader in its designs. Abroad it came in contact ¦with men and ideas, and by such contact gained in self-respect; while at home it had been tried in the fire and thereby purified and made stronger. At the first the reformers were over confident in respect to the friendship of Elizabeth, They attempted radical changes, such as "to set up King Edward's Service, to pull down Images, and to affront the Priests."* But in this they met with an effectual check from the queen, who, though slow in developing her pohcy, soon made it evident that not even the English Church, much less the Genevan Party, had anything to expect from her by way of partial favors. Passing between the extremes of Edward and Mary, she followed the eccle siastical policy of her royal father, thinking by a middle course to reconcile opposing parties. She insisted, however, that there should be no persecution for opinion's sake, that the consciences of all should be respected. The two great ideals of Queen ' Burnet's History of the Reformation in England, IL, B. IIL, p. 378. London, 1683. 1559.] ELIZABETH FAVOEED THE ROMISH CHUECH. 267 Elizabeth were, order in the State and uniformity in the Church, And the latter, contrary to her boasted respect for the individual's conscience, was to be enforced for the sake of the former. During the reign of Henry VIIL, the Church was made the child of the State, and political considerations ruled in ecclesiastical affairs. So under Queen Elizabeth, though she refused spiritual supremacy in form and title,* yet held bishops and deans subject to her royal will. She berated them to their faces,^ and in writing to them threatened to unfrock them if they did not comply with her requests.^ Dead to religious convictions, serious controversies in religion had no interest to her. "She was a child of the Italian Eenascence," says Green, "rather than of the New Learning of Colet and Erasmus ; and her attitude towards the enthu siasm of her time, was that of Lorenzo de Medici towards Savonarola."'' The Eeformation in England might have been thorough and evangelical had it not been for Queen Elizabeth. There was, on the part of the leaders of the evangelical party, the requi site spirituality, learning, and ability to have accomplished a grand work, especially since the people, weary of the Marian persecution, were so well prepared for it. But Elizabeth ignored the power of the Gospel, and having a decided distaste to Puritan simplicity, determined to hold to a part at least of the pomp and magnificence of the Eomish Church. Her ' Burnet's History of the Reformation in England, IIL, B. VL, p. 374. "The Queen," says Jewel, "did very Solemnly refuse to be called the Head of the Church. She thought that Title was only due to Christ." * " ' Leave that alone,' she shouted to Dean Nowell from the royal closet, as he denounced the use of images ; ' stick to your text, Master Dean ; leave that alone.' " As cited in Green's Short History of the Eng lish People, p. 384 New Tork, 1877. ^ "Proud prelate," she wrote, "you know what you were before I made you what you are 1 If you do not immediately comply with my request 1 will unfrock you." Cited as above, p. 383, ¦with the shock ing oath here omitted. < lUd, p. 381. 268 THE BISHOPS' BIBLE. [CHAP. VIIL opinion was that images were not confrary to the word of God, and that the use of them in the churches " might be a means to stir up Devotion, and that at least, it would draw all People to frequent them the more ; for the great measure of her Councils was, to unite the whole Nation unto one way of Eeligion," * And for the sake of established order, she deter mined upon a compromise in things indifferent, to which both Papists and Protestants must submit. Elizabeth held to the vain hope that the time would come when Catholic and An glican "could come together on some moderate common ground."^ But this forced unity only begot diversity, and this consfrained order only brought forth discord. So that from the beginning the establishment of Elizabeth pleased neither of the parties. " To the ultra Protestants it was no better than Eomanism ; to the Catholics or partial Catholics it was in schism from the Communion of Christendom ; while the great middle party, the common sense of the country of whom Elizabeth was the representative, were uneasy aud dis satisfied." ^ Ecclesiastical partyism was rife in the time of Elizabeth, The Catholics, though under ban, experienced a secret but powerful revival. Priests disguised in " serving-men's apparel " swarmed in the North. And in other parts of England, though not permitted to preach, they administered mass in private chapels and reopened the iniquities of " the spiritual courts." They maintained "the Pope's authority," and revived the ancient usages of " commu ting penances for money, compound ing for moral enormities, and grinding the widow and the orphan by their fees and extortions."* While popery, thus rerived, maintained its unity, Protestantism was divided, and yet strong notwithstanding its divisions. Non-conformists grew vigorous by confiict. The Puritan was a sturdy defender of his bald and radical principles; and had it not been for ' Burnet's History of the Reformation, IL, B. IIL, p. 397. London, 1863. « Proude's History of England, IX, 338. New Tork, 1889. 3 Ibid, p. 173. « Ibid, X., 111. 1559.] THE EVANGELICAL SPIEIT PEEVAILED. 269 his deep convictions and fierce energy, the English Church party would have been swallowed up by Catholic fanaticism. In the meantime the Presbyterians became a distinct party, setting up a new ecclesiastical polity with its corresponding discipline. They became, as it were, a wheel within a wheel ; all of which gave no little offense to the State establishment. But in the midst of this party strife there existed a pure evangelical spirit among bishops and clergy, and likewise among the people. To those who had the interests of a pure Gospel at heart, the times were at least hopeful. Bishop Jewel, in his letters at the close of the year 1559, wrote : " The People were much better disposed to the Gospel, than it was apprehended they could be.'' At the same time he expressed his fears : " That tho' Things were begun well, they would not end so well." * Again he wrote : " We hope our Bishops shall be Pastors, Labourers, and Watchmen,. . . .That so being de livered from that King-like Pomp, may have more Leisure to take care of Christ's Flock with due Attention." ^ Ee ferring to the exciting debates springing up at that time re specting vestments, which he calls the " Habit of the Stage," he expresses a wish that it may be very soon done away with. Again he writes : " That the Doctrine was everywhere purely preached"; though in many places there was "too much Folly concerning Ceremonies and Masks. The Crucifix con tinued still in the Queen's Chapel. They all spake freely against it, but till then without effect." * He was told " that it was resolved on to have Crucifixes, of Silver or Tin, set up in all Churches ; and that such as would not obey this, would be turned out of their Bishoprics, If that was true, he would be no longer a Bishop."* In the early part of the year 1560 he again wrote : " That a Change appeared now more visably among the People. Nothing promoted it, more than the Inviting the People to Sing Psalms. That was begun in one ' Burnet's History of the Reformation, IIL, P. IIL, B. VL, p. 388. London, 1688. s Ibid, p, 389. ^ VM, p. 289. * lUd, p. 390. 270 THE BISHOPS' BIBLE. [CHAP. VIIL Church in London, and did quickly spread itself not only thro' the City, but in the Neighbouring Places ; Sometimes at Paul's Cross there will be 6000 People Singing together. This was very grievous to the Papists," * In morals and manners the age of Elizabeth is justly characterized by the extremes of a refined barbarism, and an overwrought civilization. Education was confined to the few ; and too often it assumed the form of affectation or pedantry. Magnificence in action, speech and dress, ruled from the queen and cortier, down to the page and most menial servant. Silk, satin and velvet, gaudy in color, and enriched with gold, adorned both gentlemen and ladies. Servants in swords and bucklers, assumed the dignity of gentlemen. It was the artificial that was esteemed. Stateliness in form and appearance was everything. Extravagance was the rule and pride the ruler. The coarse in word and deed, by the au thority of the refined, was made respectable. Language was racked for refined and far-fetched oaths, which in the mouths bf both sexes, were considered elegant. But this mask was sometimes dropped, even by the queen, when "she rated great nobles as if they were school-boys ; . . . she would break, now and then, into the gravest deliberations, to swear at her ministers like a fish wife."^ Bear-bating was among their fashionable amusements ; and the Sabbath was chosen as the fittest time for such exhibitions, to which crowds flocked to witness the savage scene. Fuller refers to a spectacle of this kind, " where multitudes were gathered, when the scaffolding gave way, killing eight persons outright and bruising many others." Besides, it was considered a proper diversion for royal personages, even of the softer sex. "In the year 1554, while the princess Elizabeth resided at Hat- field-house, in Hertfordshire, under the custody of Sir Thomas Pope, she was visited by queen Mary. The next ' Burnet's History of the Reformation, p. 390. ^ Green's Shori Hist, of the Eng. People, p. 376. New Tork, 1877. 1526-68.] SABBATH OBSEEVANCE. 271 morning, after mass, they were entertained with a grand exhibition of bear-bating, with tvhich their highnesses ivere right well content."'^ Besides bear-bating, "frayes and fights" between sword and buckler men were of common occurrence on Sundays and holidays. These quarrels were by appointment as well as by chance. " Sometimes, twenty, thirty and forty swords and bucklers, halfe against halfe," would be engaged ; and although " they made great shew of much furie, and fought often, yet seldome any man was hurt In the winter season all the high streets were much annoyed and troubled with hourly frayes."^ These "brag ging fights " were common " untill the 20th year of Queen Elizabeth." » For the most part the manners of Elizabeth's court were adopted by that of James I. Yet in many particulars there was an advance in public sentiment towards the close of her reign as to the character of the amusements and the time for indulging in them. The reform in Sabbath ob servance was most remarkable. " The Lords Day, especially in Corporations began to be precisely kept, people becoming a Law to themselves, forbearing such sports, as yet by statute permitted On this day the stoutest fencer laid down the buckler, the most skillful Archer unbent his bow ; . . . . some of them were ashamed of their former pleasures, like children, which grown bigger, blushing themselves out of their rattles and luhistles. Others forbear them for fear of their Superiors, and many left them off out of a Politick Compliance, least otherwise they should be accounted licentious."* Public opinion, however, was much at variance upon the question pf Sabbath observance, some embracing it as an ancient truth in accordance with Scripture and vital piety, while others straitly opposed it " as galling men's necks with a Jewish yoak, ' Warton's History of English Poetry, IL, 391. London, 1778. " Johnson and Steevens' (SAa/vespeare, IX., note, p. 133. London, 1793. 3 Ibid, p. 123. * Fuller's Church History of Britain, B. IX., p. 237. London, 1655. 273 THE BISHOPS* BIBLE. [CHAP. VIII. against the liberty of Christians." * About the year 1595 an able defense of the Christian Sabbath was put forth by Dr. Bound, who maintained that the commandment as found in the Decalogue was a moral commandment, and therefore perpetually binding.^ The progress of this and of other moral reforms during the time of Elizabeth, are traceable directly to the influence of the English Bible. Since 1526 the New Testament has been scattered broadcast among the people. And since 1535 and 1537, there has been no lack of the Holy Scriptures in the mother tongue. To the praise of Queen Elizabeth be it said, that during her reign the people were free to print, circulate and read the Bible as their consciences dictated. There was an edition of Cranmer's Bible, 1540, published during this reign, but the Genevan Bible was in the greatest demand. Numerous editions of the New Testament of the Genevan version, also of Tyndale's translation, were printed and put into circulation. In all this the people were satisfied, but the bishops were ill at ease. Very soon after the accession of Elizabeth they set themselves about the publishing a new version of the Bible. The result of this undertaking was the Bishops' Bible of 1568. Matthew Parker, bishop of Canterbury, was the leader in this enterprise. Among his reasons for setting', forth a new version was, that "the copies of the former Trans lation were so wasted that very many churches wanted Bibles." ^ Another reason was that these Bibles were very faultily printed."* He might have added still another to the effect that he hoped by putting forth a new version, to supersede the Genevan Bible, which was becoming more and more popular with the people, and which was most distasteful to the archbishop on account of its being the representative 1 Puller's Church History of Britain, B. IX., p. 338. » Ihid, p. 337. ^ Lewis' History of Eng. Translations of ihe Bible, p. 3. * lbid, p. 236. 1563-68,] EULES POE THE EEVISION, 273 of Puritanism and Nonconformity. Though the archbishop was a scholar, a liberal patron of learning, and a man of un questioned piety, yet he was so thoroughly attached to the queen's pohcy of reducing the under clergy to one way of thinking and acting, that he had little sympathy with any thing that stood in the way of conformity to the new ec clesiastical regulations. Parker's plan for revising the Bible was the same as that attempted by Archbishop Cranmer, in which Parker was more successful, since the clergy are now in sympathy with the English Scriptures, as they were not in Cranmer's time. The initials of the several bishops to whom the different portions or books were allotted, were printed at the close of the dis tinctive portions assigned to each of them. These differ somewhat, and yet they agree substantially with the list in closed in the archbishop's letter to Secretary Cecil, dated October 5, 1668. Besides these a Mr. Lawrence is often quoted as having to do with the revision of the New Testament of this Bible. He was an eminent Greek scholar, and doubtless was often consulted. Lawrence's strictures were upou the New Testament translation of the Great Bible. These he presented to the archbishop,* Many of his emendations were adopted in the second edition of the Bishops' Bible, published in 1572. Westcott places Lawrence among the New Testament revisers. "An examination," he says, "of a difficult passage of an Epistle will prove that the reviser who corrected it was not deficient in originality and vig orous scholarship."^ In Parker's letter to Cecil, which con tained the list of revisers, there were inclosed also the rules or directions to be followed by them, which were as follows : " First, to follow the common English translation used in the churches, and not to recede from it, but where it varieth manifestly from the Hebrew or Greek original." ' Townley's Biblical Literature, IIL, 180 London, 1831. 2 Westcott's History of the Eng. Bible, p. 340. 274 THE BISHOPS' BIBLE, [CHAP, VIIL ' Item— To use sections and divisions in the text as Pagnine in his trans lation useth, and for the verity of the Hebrew to follow the said Pagnine and Munster specially, and generally others learned in the tongues." " Item — To make no bitter notes upon any text, or yet to set down any determination in places of controversy." " Item — To note such chapters and places as contain matter of genealo gies, or other such places, not edifying with some strike or note, that the reader may eschew them in his public reading." " Item — That all such words as sound in the old translation, to any ofience of lightness or obscenity, be expressed with more convenient terms and phrases." ' In this work the Archbishop had the sympathy and co-opera tion of his bishops, Sandys wrote : " Your Grace should much benefit the Church, in hastening forward the Bible which you have in hand ; those that we have be not only false printed but also give great offence to many by reason of the depravity in reading," Again he says: "According to your Grace's let ter of instruction I have perused the book you sent me and with good diligence ; having also in conference with some other considered of the same, in such sort, I trust, as your Grace will not mislike of, In mine opinion your Grace shall do well to make the whole Bible to be diligently surveyed by some well learned before it be put to print," ' In May, 1566, Bishop Cox wrote : " I trust your Grace is well forward with the Bible by this time, I perceive the greatest burden will lie upon your neck, touching care and travail. I would -wish that such usual words as we English people be acquainted with might still remain in their form and sound, so far forth as the Hebrew will weU bear ; ink-born terms to be avoided. The translation of the verbs in the Psalms to be used uniformly in one tense."* Letters written by the other bishops were in the same spirit. They promised to use diligence in re^vising the parts assigned to them. In November, 1566, Parker intimated his design to Cecil. He wrote : "I have distributed the Bible to divers men. I am desirous, if you could spare so much leisure either ' Parker's Corre-ipondenee, p. 336. As cited by Eadie's Hist. Bible, IL, 70. 5 Westcott's Hist. Eng. Bible, p. 100. ^ Ibid, p. 101. 1568.] THE " GEACIOUS FAVOUE " NOT GEANTED. 275 in morning or evening, we had one Epistle of St. Paul, St. Peter, or St. James perused by you, that ye may be one of the builders of this good work in Christ's Church." * So far as Archbishop Parker was the prime mover in this work, the Bible is rightly designated as " Parker's Bible." Sometimes it is called " Queen Elizabeth's Bible," not from any part taken by her in furthering the enterprise, but simply on account of its being the only newly revised edition of the Bible done in England and issued during her reign. But the most significant name is that of " Bishops' Bible," so called from the active co-operation of the bishops in the work of revision. The work was begun in 1563-4, and was not completed till 1568, In presenting a bound copy to the queen, the arch bishop wrote to Secretary Cecil, that his purpose was to offer the same in person, but ill health preventing, he begged the secretary to present the copy with his letter, in which he ¦wrote: "Pleaseth it your highness to accept in good part the endeavour and diligence of some of us your chaplains, my brethren the bishops, with other certain learned men, in this new edition of the Bible. I trust by comparison of divers translations put forth in your realm, will appear as well the workmanship of the printer, as the circumspection of all such as have travailed in the recognition."^ He calls attention to the fewness of the changes, also to the general faithfulness in the work of revision, and beseeches the queen that it may have her " gracious favour, licence and protection." * In the same letter to Cecil he urges him to see "that this edition might be licensed and only commended in public reading in churches, to draw to one uniformity, it were no great cost to the most parishes, and a relief to him for his great charges sustained." * The queen did not accede to the request of the archbishop. She gave no sort of sanction or hcense for the special issue of the Bishops' Bible. John Bodleigh had received a special license for printing the Genevan Bible, but such " gracious ' Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, II. , 70. ^ Eadie's Eng, Bible, IL, 73, 74 "^ In the sense of revision. ^ Ibid, p. 74. 276 THE BISHOPS' BIBLE. [CHAP, VIIL favour" was refused Archbishop Parker. " Not till 1577 was an edition printed ' set forth by authoritie ' — that is, not royal, only episcopal authority." * This royal refusal is all the more remarkable when we consider the motive of the archbishop in putting forth a version of the Bible that should commend itself as the one Bible to be exclusively used in the churches, and thus to draw "to one uniformity," which was the cher ished idol of Queen Elizabeth. The title-pages of this Bible are noticeable for their sim plicity. A copy of the edition of 1575, before me, wants the title-page to the Old Testament, but has separate titles attached to the books of Joshua, the Psalms, and the Apocrypha, as well as to the New Testament, The title-page prefixed to the book of Joshua consists of an engraved architectural device or border, in the centre of which are the words : " The seconde part of the Bible conteining these bookes following," The list comprises the books from Joshua to Job, inclusive. At the top of the page stands the date " 1575," and at the bottom the words " God saue the Queen." The title-page to the Psalms has the same engraved border, the words in the center of which read: " The thfrde parte of the Bible conteining these Bookes." This list comprises all the books of the Bible from the book of Psalms to that of Malachi, inclusive. The title to the Apocrypha reads : " The volume of the bookes called the Apocrypha, conteyning these bookes following." This list comprises all the books from the third of Esdras to the second of Maccabees, inclusive. The title to the New Testament has the same border as to the design, with these words in the cen ter: "The newe Testament of our sauiour lesus Christe, Eom. I, I am not ashamed of the Gospell of Christe, bycause it is the power of God vnto saluation to all that beleeue," The Bishops' Bible went forth without a dedication ; but it contained the prologue of Archbishop Cranmer aud a preface by Archbishop Parker. In his preface Parker insists that the command, Search the Scriptures, "applies to every man, ' Eadie's Eng. Bible, II., 78. 1568.] BASED UPON CEANMEE'S BIBLE. 277 woman, or child." And to rightly obey the command, "the Scriptures must be read with an humble spirit (and) con tinual prayer"; also with "purity of hfe," and with "per petual perseverance." He also defends the Scriptures against " hatred of either any Porphyrian Philosopher or Ehetorician "; and specially against the "envy of the Eomanists," who say "under subtil Pretences," that it is "a perilous matter to translate the Text of the Holy Scripture, and therefore it cannot be wel translated." * Eemarking on his own version, he urges not to be " offended with the diversitie of Translators, nor with the ambiguity of Translations. Since of congruence, no Offence can justly be taken for this new labour, nothing prejudicing any other Man's Judgment by this doing ; nor yet hereby pro fessing this to be so absolute a Translation as that hereafter might follow no other that might see that which as yet was not understood." 2 He concludes with an exhortation : "Oft to call upon the Holy Spirit of God, our Heavenly Father, by the Mediation of our Lord and Saviour, with the words of the octo- nary Psalm of David,^ .... and to pray to Almighty God with that wise King Solomon in his very words Sapient, IX." * Cranmer's Bible, 1540, was chosen as the basis of this revi sion. While it was the accepted version of the English Church, yet it was so inferior to the Genevan Bible that it was unac ceptable to many who were prominent in the episcopal party. Complaints were made even before the issue of the Genevan Bible against Cranmer's version, although at the same time it was admitted that as a version it was "nearer the Hebrew than the translation usually ascribed to Jerome." = Parker's first ' Preface, as cited by Lewis' Hist. Eng. Bible, p. 343. ' Ibid, p. 345. ' 3 Psalm CXIX. Called the " octonary Psalm " from the fact that each of its twenty-two paragraphs which correspond to the letters of the Hebrew alphabet, is made up of eight verses. It is noticeable also that the eight verses of each paragraph begin with the same Hebrew letter. * Ecclesiastes, chap. ix. ^ The words of Bishop Hooper written in 1554, as cited by Eadie's Eng. Bible, IL, 68. 278 THE BISHOPS' BIBLE. [CHAP. VIIL rule for the guidance of the revisers was: "To follow the common English translation used in the churches." This rule was specially carried out in revising the Old Testament. The following is inserted as an example in which the changes are slight, confining themselves to words and phrases : Gen. XLV. 1. Joseph could no longer refrayne before all the that stoode by him, wherfore he oryed. Cause euery man to auoyde, Cranmer's Bible reads ; brynge furth aU the men fro me. 3. And he wept aloude, and the Egyptians, and the house of Pharao hearde. Cranmer's Bible reads: so that the Egyptians, and the house of Pharao heard it. 4. And Joseph sayde vnto his brethren. Come neare to me, I praye you. These words are not in Cranmer's Bible, 1540. 5. Now therefore be not greened herewith, . . . for God dyd sende me before you, to preserue life. Cranmer's Bible has : therewith, and to saue life. 7. Wherfore God sent me before you, to preserue you a pos- teritie in the earthe. Cranmer's Bible reads : to make prouision that ye might continue in y« earth. 8. So nowe it was not ye that sente me hyther, but God, which hath made me a father to Pharao, and Lord of all his house. Cranmer's Bible has : you, and unto. 10. And thou shalte dwell in the lande of Gosen, " and be a neygHboure vnto me." Cranmer's Bible has : and be by me. 11. And there will I prouide thee sustenance. Cranmer's Bible has : Aud there wyll I moMe prouision for thee. 13. Therefore tell my father of all my glory in Egypt. Cran mer's Bible has : honoure. 16. And the fame {therof) was heard in Pharaos' house. Cranmer's Bible reads : And the tydynges came vnto Pharao's house. 'II.... This doe yee, lade youre beastes, and goe {and) retourne vnto the land of Chanaan. Cran- mer's Bible reads : get you hence vnto the lande of Canaan. 18. . . . and ye shall eate the fat of the lande, Cranmer has : o/the fat of the laude. 19- • • ¦ Thus do yee. Cranmer has : this do yee. 1568.] SPECIMENS FEOM THE OLD TESTAMENT. 279 30. Also " regard not your stuffe, for the good of the land of Egypt is yours. Cranmer reads : all the land of Egypte is yours. 33, . . . laden with come, and bread, and meate. Cranmer has : come, breade and meete. 24. So sente he his brethren away, and they departed ; and he sayde vnto them. See that ye fall to no strife on the way. Cranmer's Bible reads : So sente he his breth ren away, to departe ; . . . . fall not out by the waye. The follo^wing extracts are here inserted as specimens of the translation of the Bishops' Bible, from a copy of the edition, 1575, which is a reprint of the second edition of 1572. Gen. XXII. 1. After these sayings, God did tempt Abraham, and sayde vnto him, Abraham ? Which aunswered, Here I am. 3. And he sayd. Take thy sonne, thine only Sonne Isahac, whome thou louest, and get thee vnto the land Moriah, and offer him there for a burnt offering, vppon one of the mountaynes whiche I will shewe thee. 3. Then Abraham rose vp early in the morning, and sadled his Asse, and tooke two of his yong menne ¦with him, and Isahac hys sonne, and cloue wood for the burnt offering, and rose vp, and got him to the place, which God had appointed him. 4. The third day Abraha lift vp his eyes, and sawe the place a farre of ; 5. And sayd vnto his yong men. Bide heere with the Asse, I and the ladde will goe yonder and woor- ship, and come agayne to you. 6. And Abraham tooke the wood of the burnt offering, and layde it vppon Isahac hys sonne ; but he him selfe tooke fire in his hand, and a knife, and they wente both of them togyther. 7. Then spake Isahac vnto Abraham hys father, and sayde. My father. And he answered. Here am I, my Sonne. He sayde. See, here is fire and wood ; but where is the beast for burnt sacrifice ? 8. Abraham answered. My God vril prouide a beast for burnt sacrifice ; and so they went both togyther. 280 THE BISHOPS' BIBLE. [CHAP, VIII. 9. And when they came to the place whyche God had shewed him, Abraham builte an altare ther, and dressed the wood, and bound Isahac his sonne, and layde him on the altare aboue vpon the wood. 10. And Abraham stretching foorthe hys hande, tooke the knife to haue killed hys sonne. 11. And the Angell of the Lorde called vnto him from heauen, saying, Abraham, Abraham. And he sayd. Here {am) I. 13. And he sayde. Lay not thy hand vpon the childe, ney ther doe any thing vnto hym, for now I know that thou fearest God, and hast for my sake not spared {yea) thyne only sonne. 18. And Abraham lifting vp his eyes, looked ; and beholde, behinde {hym) there was a Ramme caught by the homes In a thicket ; and Abraham wet and tooke the Ramme, and offered him ¦vp for a burnt offering in the steede of his sonne. 14. And Abraham called the name of the place. The Lord wil see. As it is sayde thys daye. In the Mount will the Lorde be scene. 15. And the Angell of the Lorde cried vnto Abraham from heauen the second tyme, 16. And sayde. By my selfe haue I sworne, sayth the Lorde, bycause thou hast done this thing, and hast not spared {yea) thine only sonne. 17. That in blessing, I will blesse thee, and in multiply. ing, I will multiplye thy seede as the starres of heauen, and as the sande whiche is vppon the sea side, and thy seede shall possesse the gates of his enimies. 18. And in thy seede shall all the nations of the earth be blessed, bycause thou hast heard my voyce. 19. So tourued Abraham againe vnto hys young men ; and they rose vp, and went together to Beer-seba, and Abraham dwelt at Beer-seba. Psalm XXIII. 1. The Lorde is my sheepehearde ; therefore can I lacke nothing. 3. He shall feed me in a greene pasture ; and lead me forth besides the waters of comfort. 3. Hee shall conuert my soule ; and bring mee foorth iu thu pathes of righteousnesse, for hys names sake. 1568.] IMPOETANT VEEBAL CHANGES. 281 4. Tea thoughe I walke through the valley of the shadow of death, I will feare no euill ; for thou art with me, thy rodde and thy stafle comfort me. 5. Thou shalte prepare a Table before mee, agaynst tbem that trouble mee ; thou hast annoynted my heade with Oyle, and my cuppe shall be full. 6. But thy louing kindnesse and mercie shall follow me all the dayes of my life ; and I will dwell in the house of the Lorde foreuer. The New Testament of the Bishops' Bible shows better scholarship and more careful work. But like the New Tes tament of the Great Bible and all previous revisions, it is largely a reproduction of Tyndale's translation. A careful comparison will show, however, that this revision made im portant verbal' changes, some of whicli found their way into the Authorized version. In some instances the influence of the Genevan version is perceptible; while in other cases, where marked improvements had been introduced in the Genevan, they were ignored by this version. For the sake of illustrations take a portion of the eighth chapter of Eomans. Rom. VIII. 15. For yee haue not receyued the spirite of bondage agayne to feare ; but ye haue receyued the spirite of adoption, whereby we crye, Abba, father. The Great Bible after Tyndale has : to feare eny moare. 16. The spirite it selfe beareth witnesse to our spirite, that we are the sonnes of God. This happy phrase is after the Genevan and was adopted by the Au thorized version. Tyndale and the Great Bible read : certifieth. 17, If we be sonnes, then are we also heires, the heyres of God, and ioint heyres wyth Christ ; so that we suffer togeather, that wee may be also glorifyed togeather. Joint heirs is peculiar to the Bishops' and is followed by the Authorized version. Tyn dale has : anexed with Christ ; and is followed by the Great Bible, also by the Genevan version. In the second clause however Tyndale reads : If so be that we suffer togedder ; and is followed by the Great Bible, also by tho A. V. 282 THE BISHOPS' BIBLE. [CHAP. VIIL 18. For I am certainely persuaded, that the afiiictions of this time, are not worthy of the glory which shall be shewed vpon vs. Tyndale reads : For I sup pose that the afflictions of thys lyfe ; and is fol lowed by the Great Bible. 19. For the earnest expectation of the creature abydeth, looking when the sonnes of God shall appeare. This is followed by the A. V. Tyndale has : fervent desyre ; and is followed by the Great Bible. 20. Bycause the creature is sulyect to vanitie not wyUing, but for hym whiche hathe subdued the same iu hope. The Great Bible has : is subdued to vanitie against ye will therof but for his will which hath subdued y* same in hope. 21. For tlie creature it selfe shall be made free from the bondage of corruption. The Great Bible has : For the same creature shalbe deliuered from the bondage of corrupcion. 33. . . . and we our selues mourne in our selues, wayting for the adoption (euen) the deliuer- ance of our body. The Great Bible reads , mourne in our selues also, and waite for the adop- cion (of the children of God) euen for the deliuer- aunce of our bodye. 36. Likevrise the spirite also helpeth our infirmities. For we knowe not what to desire as we ought ; but the spirite it selfe maketh great intercession for vs, with gronings whiche can not be expressed. The Great Bible has : maketh intercession for vs. 39. For those whiche he knewe before, he also dyd pre destinate, that they shoulde be lyke fashioned vnto the shape of his sonne. The Great Bible reads after Tyndale : ordeined befm-e. 30. Moreover, whom he did predestinate, them also he called. The Great Bible has : whom he appointed before, them also he liath called. 33. Whiche spared not hys owne sonne, but gaue hym for vs all ; howe shall he not with hym also gyue vs al things? This is after Tyndale, and is followed by the A. V. The Great Bible reads : how can It be, y* ¦with him he shoulde not geue us all thinges also. 84 . . . yea rather which is raysed again. The Great Bible has :. . . .is risen againe. 1567.] SPECIMENS FEOM THE NEW TESTAMENT. 283 35. Who shall seperate vs from the loue of Christe f The Great Bible has : the loue of God f 36- (. . . . and are counted as sheepe /or tt« slaughter.) This is followed by the A. V.; but the Great Bible reads : appointed to be slayne. 37. Neuerthelesse, in all these thynges we ouercome, through him that loued vs. This agrees with the Great Bible, and overlooks the Genevan N. T., 1557, which reads : we are more than conquerors. 39. Neyther heighth, nor deapth, neyther any other creature, shal be able to seperate vs from the loue of God, which is in Christe Jesus our Lorde. The Great Bible has : neither lowth ; to departe. In the above collation from only a single chapter we have a number of happy renderings for which we are indebted in part to the Bishops' Bible, and in part to the versions of Ge neva aud of Tyndale. Several of these are worthy of being noted, since they were adopted by King James' revisers and have come down to us as an invaluable inheritance. For ex ample the happy phrase : beareth witness, for which we are indebted to the Genevan Bible, and which is far better than the certifieth, of Tyndale. Again in the seventeenth verse we have; joint hey ers, which is better than Tyndale's heyres anexed ; and for which we are indebted to the Bishops' Bible, In verse nineteenth we have ; earnest expectation, which is an improvement upon the fervent desyre of Tyndale, and for which we are indebted to the Bishops' Bible. In verse twenty-first, we have : the glorious libertie of the sonnes of God ; for which we are indebted to Tyndale. For the phrase, more than conquerors ; we are indebted to the Genevan N. T, 1557, For the sake of comparison with previous versions, the fol lowing specimens from the New Testament of the Bishops' version are here inserted. Matt. VI. 9. After this maner therfore pray ye ; 0 our father which art in heauen halowed be thy name. 10. Let thy kingdome come. Thy wyll be done, as well in earth, as it is in heauen. 284 THE BISHOPS' BIBLE. [CHAP. VIII. 11. Giue vs this day our dayly breade. 13. And forgyue vs our dettes, as we forgyue our detters. 13. And leade vs not into temptation, but deliuer vs from euill ; for thine is the kingdome, and the power, and the glorie, for euer. Amen. I. Cor. XIII. 1. Though 1 speake with the tongs of men and of angels, and haue not charitie, I am (as) sounding brasse, or {as) a tinckling CymbalL 3. And though I haue prophesie, and vnderstand all secrets, and all knowledge ; Tea, if I haue all fayth, so that I can remoue mountaynes, and haue not charitie, I am nothing. 3. And though I bestowe all my goodes to feede the poore, and though I giue my body that I should be burned, and haue not charitie, it profiteth me nothing. 4. Charitie suffereth long, and is curteous ; Charitie enuieth not, charitie doth not frowardly, swelleth not, 5. Dealeth not dishonestly, seeketh not hir owne, is not ' ' ' ' bitter, thinketh not euill, 6. Reioyceth not in iniquitie, but reioyceth in the truth ; 7. Suffereth al things, beleeueth al things, hopeth all things, endureth all things. 8. Though that prophesying fayle, eyther tongs ceasse, or knowledge vanish away, {yet) charitie falleth neuer away. 9. For our knowledge is vnperfecte, and our prophesying is vnperf ect ; 10. But when that which is perfect is come, then that which is vnperfect shall be doone away. 11. When I was a child, I spake as a child, I ¦vnderstoode as a childe, I imagined as a childe ; but as soone as I was a man, I put away childishnesse. 13. Nowe we see in a glasse, euen in a darke speaking ; but then (shall we see) face to face. Now I know ¦vnperfectly ; but the shall I know, euen as I am knowne. 13. Now abydeth fayth, hope, and charitie, these three, but the chief of these is charitie. The Bishops' Bible, like all other early English versions, did not adopt the fashionable speech of the time. The rule laid down by the archbishop, was that the plain words of the 1568.] THE LANGUAGE OF THIS PEEIOD. 285 Great Bible should be retained, excepting in cases where the original Hebrew or Greek demanded a change. This wise re striction was much needed in that age, for scarcely ever before in the history of the Euglish tongue, was it so threatened with such an overwhelming tide of affectation and pedantry, Italy and Spain were corrupting the language as well as the manners of the English nation. Elegance and refinement were studied at the expense of sense and clearness. Language was used for the sake of sound and appearance, appealing to the fancy rather than to the understanding. " They played with words," says Taine, " twisted, put them out of shape, rejoiced in sudden views, strong contrasts, which they pro duced in quick succession. They cast flower on flower, tinsel on tinsel;.. ..and plumed their language like their garments. They cared nothing for clearness, order, common sense ; it was a festival and a folly ; absurdity pleased them," * This new-fangled English was not a little infiuential. But to the credit of the revisers of the Bishops' Bible, they put into it not a shred of this fashion either in cut or color. In avoid ing this over refinement, they sometimes went to the opposite extreme of too great familiarity in the choice of words and phrases, which detract from the elevated tone befitting the language of the Holy Scriptures, As an illustration take the following examples collated from the book of Psabns, Ps. III. 7. Up Lord, and help me, O my God. This is after the Great Bible, 1540 ; and ignores the Genevan Bible, 1560, which reads : 0 Lord, arise ; helpe me, my God. IX. 19. Up Lorde, and lette not man haue the upper hande. The Genevan version reads : . . .let not man preuaile. X. 6. For he hath sayde in his harte, tushe, I shall neuer be cast downe. This is after the Great Bible of 1540. XXVIIL 8. . . . therefore my heart d(jM7ic« Rheims If. T. Preface, p. 5. Fulke's ed. London, 1617. 0 Ibid, p. 6. ' Fulke calls this in question. See Tbid, p. 80, Answer 86. * Ibid, p. 83. See Answers 89 and 30. 300 eheims N, T, and DOUAT BIBLE. [CHAP, IX, most sincere, as becometh a Catholike translation, and haue endeauoured so. to make it; we are very precise and religious in following our copie, the old vulgar approued Latine ; not onely iu sense, which we hope wee alwaies do, but sometime in the very words also and phrases, which may seeme to the vulgar Reader, and to common English eares notyet acquainted therewith, rudenes or ignorance ; but to the discret Eeader, wee doubt not but our consideration and doing therein shall seeme reasonable and necessarie : yea, and that all sorts of Catholike Eeaders will in short time thinke that familiar, which at the first may seeme strange, and will esteeme it more, when they shall otherwise be taught to vnderstand it, then if it were the common knowne English."* They say further: "We presume not in hard places, to moUifie the speeches or phrases, but religiously keepe them word for word, and point for point, for feare of missing, or restrayning the sense of the Holy Ghost to our fantasie And why should we be squamish at new words or phrases in the Scripture, which are necessarie ; when we doe easily admit and follow new words coyned in court and in courtly and other secular writinges," ^ A single glance into an early copy of the Eheims version will show that they were not squamish in the use of new words and Latinized phrases. This method of rendering, or rather of obscuring, the Scriptures in English, was not alto gether new, since it had been the favorite scheme of Bishop Gardiner in the reign of Henry VIII, When the bishop found that he could not prevent the publication of the Bible in English, he sought to have it put forth in a Latin dress, Aud doubtless he would have succeeded had it not been for the presence and power of Archbishop Cranmer. Gardiner expressed the same religious regard for the sacredness of the Latin language, and submitted a list of over a hundred Latin words, which " for the majesty of the matter in them con- > Rheims N. T. Preface, p. 37. Fulke's ed. London, 1617. « Ibid, p. 39. 1582.] LATINIZED ENGLISH. 301 tained," he strongly desired to have retained in their original form.* In the same spirit, Martin and his colaborers intro duced a large number of untranslated words from the Vul gate, which sadly mar their translation. Take the following as examples, some of which are as curious as they are remark able.^ Matt. X. 8. . . . gratis you haue receiued, gratis giue yee. XXVL 17. And the first day of the Azymes the Disciples came to Ibsvs, saying, where wilt thou that wee prepare for thee to eate the Pasche. XXVH. 63, And the next day, which is after the Parasccue. John V. 3. And there is at Hierusalem vpon Probatica a pond which in Hebrew is surnamed Bethsaida hauing fiue porches. XIV. 16. And I wil aske the Father, and he wil giue you another Paraclete. Rom. II. 33. That doest glorie in the law, thou by preuarication of the law, doest dishonor God. vm. 18. For I thinke that the passions of this time are not condigne to the glorie to come, that shall be re- uealed in vs. I Cor. IL 10. . . . For the Spirit searcheth all things, yea the profundities of Qod. II Cor. VL 6. In chastitie, in knowledge, in longanimitie. VIII. 19. . . . but also he vras ordeined of the Churches fellow of oui peregrination. GaL V. 31. Enuies, murders, ebrieties, commessations. Eph. III. 16. Of whom all paternitie in the heauens and in earth is named. rv. 30. And contristrate not the holy Spirit of God. Phil. IL 7. But he exinanited himselfe, taking the forme of a seruant. L Tim. HL 6. Not a JVeopAy^e.- lest puffed into pride, he fall into the judgement of the deuill. Phile. 6. That the communication of thy faith may be made euident in the agnition of all good that is in you in Christ Jbsvs. ' Compare above pages, 319-830. ' This collation is made from the first edition of Rheims N. T. Fulke's Reprint. London, 1617. 302 EHEIMS N. T, AND DOUAY BIBLE. [CHAP. IX, Heb. IV. 9. Therefore there is left a sabbatisme for the people of God. IX. 3. But after the second veie, the Tabemacle, which is called Sancta Sanctorum. II. Pet. II. 30. For if fleeing from the coinguinations of the world in the knowledge of our Lord and Sauiour Jesvs Christ. The introduction of such words justifies the remark of Fuller that the Eheims version was " a Translation, which needeth to be translated, neither good Greek, Latine, or Enghsh, as every where bespeckled with hard words (pretended not renderable in English without abatement of some ex pressiveness) which transcend common capacities."* The force of this remark will further appear from the following collation of dark phrases which are profusely scattered throughout the whole version,^ Rom. XIV. 1. And him that is weake in faith, take vnto you ; not in disputations of cogitations. I. Cor. X. 16. The chalice of benediction, which we do blesse. Eph. II. 19. . . . but you are the citizens of the saints and the domesticals of God. III. 6. The Gentiles to be coheires and concorporat and corn- participant of his promise in Christ Jbsvs by the Gospell. 9. And to illitminate al men what is the dispensatio of the sacrament hidden from the worldes in God, who created al things ; 10. That the manifold wisedome of God may bee notified to the Princes and Potestats in the celestials of the Church. 11. According to the prefinitio of worldes, which he made in Christ Jesvs onr Lord. VI. 13. . . . against the rectors of the world of this darkenes, against the spirituals uf 'unekednes in the celestials. ' Church History of Britain, IX., 171. " This collation is made from the first edition of the Rheims N. T. Published by John Fogny, 1583. See copy in Boston Public Library. 1562.] SPECIMENS OF TEANSLATION OF N. T, 303 PhiL III. 14 I pursue to the marke, to the price of the supernal . vocation of God in Christ Jesvs. 31. Who will reforme the bodie of our humUitie, con figured to the bodie of his glorie. I. Tim. IIL 16. And manifestly it is a great sacrament of pietie. VL 30. O Timothee, keepe the depositum, auoiding the prophane nouelties of voices, and oppositions of falsely called knowledge. Heb. IIL 13. . . . that none of you be obdurate with the faUaeie of sinne, 15. . . . doe not obdurate your hearts as in that exacerbation. 19. . . . because of incredulitie. IX. 33. It is necessarie therefore that the examplers of the ecelestials, be cleansed with these, but the codestials also themselves with better hostes then these. XIII. 16. And beneficence and communication do not forget, for with su,ch hostes God is promerited. The following specimens from the Eheims New Testament are here inserted • for the sake of comparison with early English versions.* Matt. VI. 9. Thus therefore shal you pray. Otm Fatheb which art in hea^uen, sanctified be thy name. 10. Let thy kingdom come, Thy wil be done, as in heauen, in earth also. 11. Giue vs to day, our supersubstantialt bread. 13. And forgiue vs our dettes, as we also forgiue our detters. 13. And leade vs not into tentation. But deliuer vs from euil. Amen. I. Cor. XIII. 1. If I speake with the tonges of men and of Angels, and haue not charitie ; I am become as sounding brasse, or a tinkling cymball. 2. And if I should haue prophecie, and knew al mysteries, and al knowledge ; and if I should haue al faith, so that I could remoue mountaines, and haue not charitie, I am nothing. 3. And if I should distribute al my goods to be meate for the poore, and if I should deliuer my body so • The Rheims Lfew Testament. See copy in Boston Public Library. The italics of the Lord's prayer belong to the original translation. 304 EHEIMS N. T. AND DOUAT BIBLE. [CHAP. IX. that I burne, and haue not charitie, it doth profit me nothing. 4. Charitie is patient, is benigne ; Charitie enuieth not, dealeth not peruersly ; is not puffed up, 6. Is not ambitious, seeketh not her owne, is not pro uoked to anger, thinketh not euU : 6, Reioyceth not vpon iniquitie, but reioyceth with the truth ; 7, SufTereth al things, beleeueth al things, hopeth al things, beareth al things. 8. Charitie neuer falleth away : whether prophecies shal be made voide or tonges shal cease, or knowledge shal be destroied. 9. For in part wee know, and in part wee prophecie. 10. But when that shal come that is perfect, that shal be made voide that is in part. 11. When I was a litle one, I spake as a litle one, I under stood as a litle one, I thought as a htle one. But when I was made a man, I did away the things that belonged to a litle one. 13. We see now by a glasse in a darke sort ; but then face to face. Now I know in part ; but then I shal know as also I am knowen. 13. And now there remaine faith, hope, charitie, these three, but the greater of these is charitie. In the choice of words, the pages of the Eheims version bear the impress of the fashion of the times, in its rage for fantastic terms and strange words with thefr hidden mean ings. In this it differs widely from preceding English versions, which sought to retain words that were understood by the people, and thereby gave prominence to the Saxon element in Bible English. But these translators claimed the same right to invent and employ new words for the Scrip tures, as others who coined and introduced them "in courtly and other secular writings." In the Eheims version, therefore, we have not only untranslated words. Latinized terms, and dark phrases, but a large class of Latin derivatives, which were already a substantial addition to the English tongue. A class of words that were in place in the diction of Bacon or even Shakespeare and Spenser, but out of place in the 1582.] INFLUENCE UPON THE ENGLISH LANGUAGE. 305 phraseology of the Holy Scriptures, To this class belong such words as: accessible, benigne, congratulate, consummate, cogitations, contemn, co-operate, detriment, invocate, im- maculat, immolated, palpable, participate, pension, replenished, reprehension, which are given below in their several con nections. Matt. XV. 19. For from the hart come forth euil cogitations. John XVII. 33. I in them, and thou in mee ; that they may bee con summate in one. Rom. VIII. 28. And we know that to them that loue God, al things co-operate vnto good to such as according to pur pose are called to bee saints. I. Cor. I. 3. To the Church of God that is at Corinth with all that inuocate the name of our Lord Jbsvs Christ. III. 15. If any mans worke burne, he shal suffer detriment. IX. 13. . . . and they that serue the altar, par ticipate with the altar t XI. 83. Why, haue you not houses to eate and drinke in ? or contemne ye the Church of God. XIII. 4. Charitie is patient is benigne. Eph. I. 4. . . . that we should be holy and im- maculat in his sight in charitie. Phil. I. 11. Replenished with the fruite of justice by Jbsvs Christ, vnto the glory and praise of God. H. 15. . . . without reprehension in the middes of a crooked and peruerse generation. 17, But and if I be immolated vpon the sacrifice and ser- uice of your faith, I reioyce and congratulate with you al. 36. . . . aud was pensiue, for that you had heard that he was sicke. Heb. XIL 18. For you are not come to a. palpable mount, and an ac cessible fire. The Eheims version enjoys the reputation of having fixed a desirable class of words in the English language. Many of these were adopted by King James' revisers, and thus not only the vocabulary of the accepted English Scriptures was influenced, but also the speech of the common people. Possibly this influence has been overrated, but there is evidence 306 EHEIMS N, T, AND DOUAT BIBLE, [CHAP, IX, enough to show that in the matter of words, this version has claims, as well as previous English versions, which ought to be recognized. The following list comprises a few of the words claimed to have been introduced first, into the Eheims version : advent, advocate, approvest, charges, discerning, divine, impenitent, remission, revealed, seperated, unction. This list might be greatly enlarged, but even some of these instead of being peculiar to the Eheims, upon examination, are found to have been used in some previous version, as indicated below, Rom. I. 1. Paul . . . called to be an Apostle, seperated into the Gospel of God. This word is peculiar to the Rheims, which is followed by the Authorized ver sion. II. 5. But according to thy hardnes and impenitent heart. This word was used by Coverdale in loco, fifty years before the Rheuns translation was made. Wycliffe reads : unrepentaunte. 18. And knowest his wil, and approuest the more profltable things. And yet Wycliffe has preuest, in loco, and Tyndale, together with the Genevan version, 1557, has approved in Acts ii. 83. But the Rheims ought to have the credit for introducing this word, since, for the want of it, previous versions used in its stead such words as : triest, aUow, accept, discern, and laudable. III. 35. . . - totheshewingof his justice for the rejreissiora of former sinnes. This word is found in Wycliffe, in loco. Tyndale reads : forgeveth the synnes that are passed, and is followed by the Genevan version. "VIII. 18. . . . that shal be reuealed in vs. This word is found in two instances at least in the Genevan N. T. 1557 ; but earlier versions use in its stead such words as : opened, declared, disclosed, shewed, uttered, an answer was given, and revelation. I. Cor. IX. 7. Who euer plaieth the souldiar at his owne charges. This word is peculiar to the Rheims, and occurs but twice in the N. T. of the A. V. XL 39. . . . not discerning the body of our Lord. Previous versions read : making no difference ; but Tomson's version, 1576, has : discerneth. 1582.] S4.X0NISMS, 307 I. Thess. IV. 15. . . . that we which Hue, which are remaining in the aduent of our Lord. This word is peculiar to the Rheims version. Previous versions read : comminge of the Lord. The word is not found in the A. V. n. Pet. I. 3. As al things of his diuine power. This word has been specially claimed as peculiar to the Eheims ; but it is found at least iu Tomson's Genevan ver sion, 1576. Other previous versions, however, read : godly nature. I. John II. 1. . . .we haue an aduocate with the Father Jbsvs Christ the iust. This word is common to all pre vious versions, including Wycliffe's translation. 30. But you haue the vnttion from the Holy one, and know al things. This word is peculiar to the Eheims, and is followed by the Authorized version. In striking contrast with the general reputation of the Eheims version, it deals in Saxonisms as well as Latinisms; showing that its translators were not altogether out of sym pathy with their mother tongue. Some of these phrases were adopted by King James' translators, such as : puffed up, seeketh such, put out, if by any means, not bridling, upbraideth not; while others equally expressive, were passed over, such as: workmen, stagger not, keeping a sturre, thralled him, headlong, as found below. . and saw minstrels and the multitude keep ing a sturre. . and laying hands vpon him thratled him. . to hire workmen into his vineyard. The A. V. has: labourers. . if you shal haue faith and stagger not. The A. V. has : doubt not. . The heard with violence went 7i«a£?fo«gr into the lake, and was stifled. The Genevan version, 1557, also reads : headlong. . for the Father also seeketh such to adore him. So the A. V. and both after the Wycliffe version. IX. 33. . . he should be put out of the Synagogue. This is followed by the A. V. Previous versions Matt. IX. 33. xvni. 38. XX. 1. XXL 31. Luke VHL 33. John IV. 33. 308 EHEIMS N. T, AND DOUAT BIBLE, [CHAP, IX, John IV. 83. read : excommunicate out. The Wyclifflte versions, however, read: be don out, which is an obsolete phrase for put out. I. Cor. IV. 6. . . . one not to be puffed vp against another. This is not peculiar to the Rheims version, since it is found in Coverdale's translation, in loco. James I. 5. . . . let him ask of Qod who giveth to al men aboundantly, and uph-aidethnot. This happy phrase is not original with the Rheims, since it is found in the Wycliffite versions. Tyndale reads : casteth no man in the teth, and is followed by Coverdale's, Cranmer's, Genevan and the Bishops' version. Tomson's version, 1567, reads : reproacheth. 26. . . . not bridling his tong. Preceding versions read : refrayne not his tonge. The A. V. improves upon the Eheims by reading : bridleth not his tongue. Dr. Fulke, in his confutations, no where brings the charge of intentional falsification against the translators of this ver sion ; though he does charge upon them an untruthful trans lation through obscure words and phrases. The translators themselves disclaim any attempt to falsify for the sake of their own cause. They cite Acts xiii, 2, as an example in which with some fafrness, they might have translated instead of " ministring, sacrificing, for so the Greeke doeth signifie, and so Erasmus translated. Tea, ive might haue translated Saying Masse, for so they did." * Notwithstanding this disclaimer, the rendering of Matt, xi. 21 they had done penaunce in hearecloth and ashes long agoe : looks very much like a special wording for the advantage of their own cause. Tre gelles finds serious objections to this version in all passages ' ' which speak of the finished sacrifice of Christ," (in that) they "receive a colouring wholly different. Thus, in the Eoman Catholic English version we find, in Heb. x. 12, ' But this man offering one sacrifice for sins, for ever sitteth on the right hand of God : ' and in ch. i. 3, ' making purgation of sins, sitteth, etc' What perversions !"^ The word repentance • Fulke's Rheims N. T. Annotations, in loco, with Fulke's Answer. ' Historic Evidence, dc, iV. T., p. 88, note. London, 1853. 1582.] ANNOTATIONS. 309 almost always appears as penance, with its Eomish significa tion. The name of ]M!ary, the mother of Jesus, is invariably printed in capitals, indicating a papistical exaltation. So the word church is put in capitals, indicating by way of eminence, the Eoman Cathohc Church. The name oi Jesus also is printed in capitals, which is objectionable only as it points to the cross ing and bowing and other superstitious ceremonies. The ten dency of all this is unmistakable. But the intention of the translators fully appears in their annotations, where without stint or cover, they plead their cause, and in every possible instance, interpret the Scriptures in favor of the doctrines and doings of Eome. These notes are controversial as well as ex pository. In their preface the translators declare that they " set forth large Annotations, thereby to shew the studious Eeader in most places pertaining to the controuersies of this time ; but the hereticall corruptions and false deductions, aud also the Apostolike tradition, the exposition of the holy Fathers, the decrees of the Catholike Church and the most ancient Councels ; which meanes whosouer trusteth not, for the sense of the holy Scriptures, but had rather follow his priuate judgement, or the arrogant spirit of these Sectaries, he shall worthily through his own wilfulnesse be deceiued." * Since these annotations form so important a part of the Eheims version the following collation is subjoined : ^ Matt. II. 3. Com,e to adore. " This comming so farre of deuotion to visite and adore Christ in the place of his birth, was properly a Pilgrimage to his person ; and war- ranteth the faithfull in the like kinde of externall worship done to holy persons, places, and things." Verse 11. Adored him. " This bodie, (saith Chrysos- tome,) the Sages adored in the cribbe. Let vs at the least imitate them ; thou seest him not now in the cribbe, but on the altar ; not a woman holding him, but the Priest present, and the holy Ghost powred out aboundantly vpon the sacrifice." Verse 16. Murdred. "By this example we learne how great ' Preface to Rheims Version, p. 18. Fulke's edition, 1617. ' Lbid, in loco. 310 EHEIMS N. T. AND DOUAT BIBLE. [CHAP. IX. credit we owe to the Church in canonizing Saints, and celebrating their holy daies ; by whose onely warrant, without any word of Scripture, these holy Innocents have bene honoured for Martyrs, and their holy day kepte euer since the Apostles time, although they died not voluntarily." III. 8. Fruit worthy. "He preacheth satisfaction by doing worthy fruits or works of penance, which are, (as S. Hierome saith in 3. Joel) fasting, praying, almes, and the like." In refuting this, Fulke affirms : " that Hierome does not say that fasting, praying and almes, are satisfactions for ginne, but tokens of repentance." IV. 1. Desert. " As John the Baptist, so our Saviour by going into the desert, and there Uuing in contemplation euen among bruit beasts, and subject to the assaults of the Deuill for our sinnes, giueth a warrant and example to such holy men as haue lined in wilder- nesse for penance and contemplation, called Ere mites." VI. 34. Two Masters. " Two religions, God and Baal, Christ and Caluin, Masse and Communion, the Catholike Church and Hereticall Conuenticles. Let them marke this lesson of our Saviour that thinke they may serue all masters, all times, all religions. Againe these two masters doe signifie God and the world, the flesh and the spirit, iustice and sinne." XII. 33. Ifor in the world to come. " S. Augustine and other holy Doctors gather hereupon, that some sinnes may be remitted in the next life, and consequently proue Purgatorie thereby." XXL 8. Garments in the way. " These offices of honour done to our Sauior extraordinarily, were very acceptable ; and for a memorie hereof, the holy Church maketh a solemne Procession euery yeare vpon this day, specially in our Countrey when it was Catholike, with the B. Sacrament reuerently caried, as it were Christ vpon the asse, and strawing of rushes and flowers, bearing of palmes, setting vp boughes, spreading and hanging vp the richest clothes, the quire and queristers singing, as here the children and the people ; all done in a very goodly ceremonie, to the honour of Christ, and the memorie of his tri umph vpon this day. The like seruice and the like 1583-1589.] ANNOTATIONS. 311 duties done to him in all other solemne Processions of the B. Sacrament, and otherwise be undoubtedly no lesse gratefuU.'' XXIV. 80. 27(6 signe of. " The signe of the Sonne of man, is the holy Crosse which then shall appeare to the lewes to their confusion. ... It shalbe no lesse confusion to heretikes that cannot abide the signe thereof." XXVL 86. My body. " He said not. This bread is a figure of my body ; or. This wine is a figure of my bloud ; but. This is my body, and. This is my bloud ; . . . when some Fathers call it a figure or signe, they meane the outward formes of bread and wine." In confuting this, Fulke quotes several of the Church Fathers whose combined testimony is against the doctrine of transubstantiation. Luke X. 35. Supererogate. " 8. Augustine saith, that the Apostle (I. Cor. 9) according to this place did supererogate, that is, did more then he needed, or was bound to doe, when he might haue required all duties for preach ing the Gospel, but would not, . . . whereof it com- meth, that the workes which we doe more then pre cept, be called workes of supererogation ; and where by it is also euident against the Protestants, that there be such workes. " XVII. 14 To the Priests. " This leprosie signifieth sinne, which though God may and can heale without any mans means, yet he doth it not ordinarily but by the Priests ministrie ; therfore let no man despise Gods ordi nance, nor say that it is ynough to confesse to God, though he neuer come at the Priest." Here auricular confession is assumed. For as Fulke suggests, it remains to be proven that it is an ordinance of God. XXn. 19, This is my body. " Although sense tell thee it is bread, yet it is the body, according to his wordes. Let faith confirme thee, iudge not by sense, after the wordes of our Lord let no doubt rise in thy mind, ... Of . the verite of flesh and bloud there is left no place to doubt ; by the profession of our Lord himselfe, and by oure faith, it is flesh and bloud indeed. Is not this truth? To them be it vntrue, which denie Iesus Christ to be true God." — Which is giuen. " As the former words make and proue his body present, so these words plainly signifie, that it is 312 EHEIMS N, T. AND DOUAT BIBLE. [CHAP. IX. present, as giuen, offered, or sacrificed for vs : and being uttered in the Present tense, it signifieth not onely that it should afterward be giuen or offered on the Crosse, but that it was then also in the Sacrament giuen and offered for vs. Whereby it is inuincibly proued, that this body is present as a host or sacri fice ; and that the making or consecrating thereof must needs be sacrificing." The publication of the Eheims New Testament with its outspoken papistical notes created quite a sensation. The question among Protestant divines was. Who shall refute these bold assumptions and popish slanders ? It is said that Queen Elizabeth applied to Beza to review both the text and notes of this version, but that he declined and suggested Thomas Cartwright as the man most capable for such a ser vice. In 1583, after having been urged by his friends, and specially encouraged by the Earl of Leicester and Sir Francis Walsingham, Cartwright began the work under the title of " A Confutation of the Ehemish Translation, Glosses, and Annotations on the New Testament." By a mandate from Archbishop Whitgift he was prohibited from prosecuting it. Though somewhat discouraged by this, he went forward and nearly completed the work. But it was not published as a whole till 1618, some years after his death.* Thomas Cart wright was not only a learned man, but a stanch Puritan and a famous preacher, "He was," says Fuller, "most pious and strict in his conversation, a pure Latinist, an accurate Gre cian, an exact Hebrean, and in short an excellent scholar." And so eloquent was he, that when his tum came (to preach) at St. Mary's, " the Clerk thereof was fain to take down the windows of the Church."' For his principles concerning ' ChalmeTs' Biographical Dictionary. Art. Cartwright (Thos). VIIL, 337. London, 1813. ' Fuller's History of the University of Cambridge, p. 140. 1655. " Dugdale calls him the standard-bearer of the Puritans, and says he was the first in the Church of England who began to pray extempore before sermons." — Neal's Hist, of the Puritans, I., 334, note. New Tork, 1863. 1583-1589.] DELAT IN FEINTING THE 0. T. 318 Church discipline he suffered deprivation and imprisonment. But so eminent and worthy was he, that among Conformists even he had many friends and admirers. Archbishop Whit gift frequently befriended him, and hoped to gain him over to Conformity. When Cartwright's Confutation was published, it added fuel to the controversy. Previous to this, -however, an Answer to the Eheimists Annotations was published by George Withers. Also in the same year (1588) Bulkeley put forth An Answer to the Ehemists Preface. But chief among the opposers of this version was Dr. William Fulke, who, besides his Defense of English Translations, wrote his An swers to the Ehemish Annotations, which were published in 1589. The plan of this work embraced a reprint of the Eheims New Testament, also that of the Bishops' Bible — that is, the revised edition of 1572. These are printed in parallel columns. The Eheims preface is taken up paragraph by paragraph and answered. So, likewise, the annotations are refuted verse by verse. This book became very popular, and gave to the Eheims version a much wider circulation than it otherwise would have attained. The work was reissued in 1601. It was revised and repubhshed in 1617, and issued again in 1633.* There were new editions of the Eheims New Testament published in 1600, 1621, and 1633.2 'pjie contro versy on both sides raged during this period. Whitaker wrote in opposition to Bellarmine in 1610 ; Kellison published in 1615 A Gagg for the Eeformed Gospel, which was answered by Dr. Eichard Montagu. Bernard, the author of Thesaurus Bib- ' licus, published in 1626 Ehemes against Eome.^ It was during this period also that the Eomish version of the Old Testament was published at Douay. The Old Testament of the Douay Bible, published in 1609-10, lay in Manuscript about thirty years before it was printed. For this delay the revisers give the "one general ' Compare Westcott's Hist. Eng. Bible, p. 109, note. ' Ibid, p. 109. 3 Eadie's Eng. Bible, IL, 149. 14 314 EHEIMS N. T, AND DOUAT BIBLE. [CHAP, IX, cause, our poor estate in banishment," * The translation of the Old as well as New Testament was from the Latin Vul gate, which the Ehemists claimed was superior, not only to other Latin versions, but to the Greek and Hebrew originals, "since the Latin (of the Vulgate) was translated out of them while they were more pure ; and that the same Latin hath been far better conserved from corruptions," ^ But the fre quent revisions of the Latin Vulgate, and the papal conflict over rival editions about this time, are strongly opposed to so bold a claim for the edition from which they translated, what ever might be said for the text of the Vulgate as it came from the hands of Jerome, In 1546 the Council of Trent decreed that the Latin Vul gate was authentic, and yet failed to designate the edition containing the true text ; but at the same time, singularly enough, appointed a committee of six persons to set forth this authentic edition. The pope, however, prevented them,' This was the beginning of the pope's war over the Latiu text of the Vulgate. Pius IV, undertook to put forth a corrected and an authoritative edition of the Vulgate, His design was taken up by Pins V. and completed by Sixtus V. This last pope not only gathered around him scholarly men, but en gaged in the work himself, personally revising and correcting the pages for the press. To add to the authority of this edition, he issued a bull in 1589, in which he declares : " Of our certain knowledge and plenitude of apostolical power, we ordain and declare that this edition only, which has now been corrected in the best possible manner, and printed at our Vatican press, is without any doubt or controversy to be regarded by the Christian public, as the Vulgate Latin edition of the Old and New Testament, received as authentic by the council of Trent. Aud we order it to be read through the whole Christian world, in all churches, remarking, that first by the general consent of the holy church, and of the holy 1 Preface, 0. T. Douay Bible. » jud. 8 Kitto's Cyclopcedia. Art. Vulgate. II. 933, 934. New York, 1853. 1609-35.] r.EvisiONS of latin vulgate. 315 Fathers, then by the decree of the general council of Trent, and now also, by that apostohcal authority which God hath committed unto us, it was, and is enjoined to be received and accounted, as a true, lawful, authentic, aud undoubted copy, in all public and private disputations, lectures, sermons, or ex positions." * This Bible of Sixtus V. was published in 1590, in three volumes folio, and is said to be " one of the grandest works which ever issued from the Vatican press, under the super intendence of Aldus. "2 But it was soon discovered to be full of errors, and on the accession of Gregory XIV. all the copies were called in aud a new edition resolved upon. The work of revision was committed to a select number of cardinals and other learned men. Little progress was made under Gregory, as he died in 1591 ; but it was taken up and completed by his successor, Clement VIII. This Clementine edition was pub lished in 1592, and put forth with the same claims as those of the Sixtine edition — that is, as the veritable and authentic edition of the council of Trent. There existed numerous variations iu the readings of these two versions, some of which amounted to contradictions, which argued very unfavorably respecting papal infallibility. Clement and his revisers con fined themselves largely to correcting the corrections made by Sixtus.* The Douay translators wisely followed the Clementine edition of 1592. Their preface intimates only one thing they had done touching the text, whereof they would especially give notice: "That whereas heretofore, in the best Latin editions, there remained manie places differing in wordes, some also in sense, as in long processe of time the writers erred in their copies ; now lately by the care and diligence of the Church, those diuerse readings were maturely and judi ciously examined and conferred with sundrie the best written aud printed bookes, and so resolved upon, that all which ' Townley's Biblical Literature, IL, 493. ' lUd, p. 493. 3 Ibid, pp. 493-4. 316 EHEIMS N, T. AND DOUAT BIBLE, [CHAP, IX. before were left in the margent are either restored into the Text, or else omitted ; so that now none such remain in the margent. For which cause they had again conferred this English Translation, and conformed it to the most perfect Latin Edition." The title-page reads: "The Holie Bible, faithfully translated into English out of the authentical Latin, diligently conferred with the Hebrew, Greeke, and other editions in divers languages, with Arguments of the Books and Chapters ; Annotations ; Tables ; and other helpes, for better understanding of the Text; and for discoverie of Cor ruptions in some late translations; and for clearing Contro versies in Eeligion. By the English College of Doway, Printed at Doway by Laurence Kellam at the signe of the holie Lamb. M. DC. IX." The publication of the Old Testament attracted but little attention, the controversy having confined itself for the most part to the New Testament translation. The reasons for this, as assigned by Fuller, were : " Partly, because no great emi nence therein to entitle it to their (i. e. Protestants) perusall ; Partly, because that moiety of the Bible is of least concern ment in the controversies betwixt us and the Church of Rome. " ' There were various hindrances which limited the circulation of the Douay Bible, such as: possibly, the price of the book, which put it beyond the reach of the poor; the opposition of the papal hierarchy to the free use of the Bible ; and espe cially the obscurities of the translation, which rendered it unacceptable to English Catholics. So that we are not sur prised to learn that there were but two editions of the Douay Bible published, the first of which was in 1609-10 ; the sec ond in 1635. The annotations on the Old Testament were prepared by Thomas Worthington, who was president of the College at Eheims. Afterward he retured to Douay, where " he reviewed and published the English translation of the Old Testament," ** ' Church History of Britain, B. IX., p. 173. London, 1655. ' Lewis' History of Eng. Translations, p. 391. 1609-1881.] IMPOETANCE OE THE LATIN VULGATE. 317 which had been made at Eheims many years before. The anxiety of the translators to secure a wide circulation for the Douay Bible is manifested in the closing words of their pre face, in which they make a special presentation of their work to both Catholics and heretics : " With this then we wil con clude, most deare (we speake to you al, that vnderstand our tongue, whether you be of contrarie opinions in faith, or mun dane feare participate with another Congregation, or professe with vs the same Catholike Eeligion) to you al we present this worke." The imperfections of the Douay Bible, and its failure to meet the expectations of its friends, did not necessarily arise from its being a translation from the Latin, The Latin vul gate waits to be properly appreciated by the Protestant Church. Whatever of human imperfection may have been entaUedupon it from its original translation, or through the revision and translation of Jerome ; or whatever of faults may have crept into the text, in the course of years, through the neghgence of transcribers ; or whatever of popish confiict there may have been over rival editions ; there is no means of estimating the obligation of true religion for centuries to this Latin text of the Holy Scriptures. At the first this text was the vernacular of the people. And then, for ages afterward, in a revised and unrevised state, this Latin text was the source from which the unlearned as well as the learned of Western Christendom drew the water of life. Even up to the time of the Eeformation, especially on the continent, the Vulgate was the principal source of religious knowledge. Martin Luther first learned the principles of the Reformation from a Latin Bible. Be sides, the Vulgate became the honored basis of Vernacular versions in Western Europe. Particularly was it the ground work of the Wycliffite versions, which for a hundred and fifty years proved a well-spring of spiritual blessing to the Enghsh nation. And this Latin Vulgate to-day is not without its importance, since it stands as an " early witness to the text and interpretation of the whole Bible." * > Smith's Dictionary of the Bible. Art. Vulgate. IV., 3451. New Tork, 1878. 318 EHEIMS N. T. AND DOUAT BIBLE. [CHAP, IX. In addition to the above the Latin Vulgate has exercised an important influence upon the English language. In the earliest Latin translations there were many Latin words taken from a common and consecrated to a sacred use — that is, as to their meaning. Man}' of these, in an Anglicized form, found their way into English theological speech, and into English versions of parts of the Bible, long before the time of Wycliffe. So that, while we are indebted to the Wycliffite versions, Tyn dale's translation, and other early English versions, as me diums for many theological terms, yet for these words we are primarily indebted to the Latin Vulgate. Many famiUar and significant words thus have been bequeathed to us, and we scarcely have stopped long enough to inquire whence they came. Such words, for example, as adoption, advocate, charity, confession, conversion, election, glory, grace, immortality, jus tified, mediator, parable, reconciling , redemption, regeneration, remission, resurrection, revelation, sacrifice, sanctified, scrip ture, and spirit. While these words find a place in the Eheims New Testament, yet not a single one is peculiar to that ver sion. For the most part they were used first in the Wycliffite versions, and derived directly from the Vulgate, as will appear in the following collation : Matt. XIII. 33. An other parable Ihesus spac to hem. Wycliffe, after pardbolam of the V. Mark XII. 18. And Saducees, that seyen no resurecioun. Wyclifle, after resurrectionem of the V. John II. 83. . . . and thei bileueden to the scripture. Wyc liffe, after scripturm of the V. Acts XV. 3. . . . declarynge the conuersion of the gentyles. Tyndale, after conuersionem of the V. Rom. I. 9. . . .to whom I seme in my spirit, in the gospel of his sone. Wycliffe, after in spiritu meo of the V. III. 84. Thei justified freely bi his grace, by the redemcioun, ''or the agenbiyng that is purposid in Jhesu Crist. Wycliffe, after justifleati and redemptionem of theV. 35. . . . for remiscioun of bifore goynge synnes, Wycliffe, after remissionem of the V. 1380.] INELUENOE OF THE LATIN VULGATE. 319 IV. 30. . . . gyuyuge glorie to God. Wycliffe, after gloriam of the V. ^- ^^- • • ¦ moche more the ^rrcice of God. Wycliflfe, after gratia of the V. VIH. 15. . . . but ye han taken the spirit of adopcioun. Wycliffe, after spiritum adoptionis of the V. ¦^^- ^- ¦ • ¦ '^ remnaunt lefte thorow the eleccion of grace. Tyndale, after electionem of the V. Or rather, this word was common and had been in use since the time of Wycliffe, whose translation of the seventh verse of this chapter reads : . . Israel hath not getyn that that he soughte, forsothe eleccioun hath getyn. XV. 16. . . . sanctyfied by the holy goost. This word seems flrst to have been employed by Tyndale. Wycliffe uses the word hulewid. The Vulgate has in this connection, sanetificata. ^yi, 35. . . . the revelacioun of mysterie holden stille, . . . Wycliffe, after revelationem of the V. I. Cor. XIII. 1. . . . sothli I haue not cliarite. Wycliffe, after charitam of the V. II. Cor. V. 19. Sothli for God was in Crist reconcUynge to him the world. Wycliffe, after reconcilians of the V. PhiL II. 17. . . . vpon the sacrifice and seruyce of youre feith. Wycliffe, after sacrifi.cium of the V. I. Tim. VL 16. The which aloone hath immortalite. Wycliffe, after immortalitem of the V. Heb. XII. 34. And to Jhesu mediatour of the newe testament. Wy cliffe, after mediatorum of the V. I. John II. 1. . . . But and if ony man shal synne, we han auoket anentis the fadir Ihesu Crist iust. So tho ' earlier version of Wycliffe, while the later version has : aduocat, and both after advocatiam of the V.' These examples might be greatly increased showing the influence of the Latin Vulgate upon our English Scriptures ; and so also upon the theological language of English speaking people. This with other influences, entitles the Vulgate to a more honorable place in the esteem of Protestants, who have ' The above examples from Wycliffe are from Forshall and Madden's 'Wyclifflte 'Ver sioris. Oxford, 1850. The readings from the Latin Vulgate are from Stier and Theile's Polyglotten-Bibel. 1854. 320 EHEIMS N, T, AND DOUAT BIBLE, [CHAP. IX. been inclined to regard it as the peculiar treasure of the Eomish Church, Further the above collation shows, and a still larger one would confirm the fact, that we are most of all indebted to the Wycliffite versions and not to the Ehemish ver sion, for appropriating, Anglicizing, and spiritualizing words derived directly from the Latin Vulgate, Dr. Cornelius Nary, an eminent Catholic divine, published in 1718-19 the New Testament in English, translated from the Vulgate, diligently compared with the Greek and with divers translations in other languages, together with annota tions and marginal notes. This was not, strictly speaking, a revision of the Eheims New Testament, but it was the first attempt to give to English Catholics the Scriptures in their own tongue since 1635,* a period of almost a hundred years. In his preface. Dr. Nary says : that he translated from the Latin Vulgate, since it had been declared " authentick by the Council of Trent." In the same connection he speaks of the difficulty of the undertaking, and excuses himself for entering upon it on the ground of his " Knowledge of oriental Lan guages "; also that his " Countrymen had great need of such a Translation." In showing up this need, he says : " We have no Catholick Translation of the Scriptures in the English Tongue but the Doway Bible and the Rhemish Testament, which have been done now more than an hundred Years since; the Lan guage whereof is so old, the Words in many Places so obsolete, the Orthography so bad, and the Translation so very literal, that in a Number of Places it is unintelligible, and all over so grating to the Ears of such as are accustomed to speak, in a manner, another Language, that most People will not be at the pains of reading them."^ Dr. Nary therefore sought to make his translation speak the English tongue. In doing this he kept " as close to the Letter as the English would permit "; and where the words were implied, though not expressed in ' The date of the issue of the second and last edition of the Douay Bible proper. ^ Lewis' Hist, of Eng. Translations, pp. 357, 358. 1749-50.] challonee's eevision. 321 the Latin, he put them in italics, sometimes in the text and sometimes iu the margin. He concludes his preface with an account of the annotations, the design of which was "to recon cile some apparent Contradictions in the Gospels, and to illus trate the literal Sense of the Text In a word, his chief Aim was to encourage his Countrymen to read and to meditate upon the Will and Testament of their heavenly Lord and Master, by giving it to them in a Stile and Dress less obscure, and somewhat more engaging than it has been many Years past."* Another Eoman Catholic translation of the New Testament was published in 1730-33, by Dr. E. Wetham, a professor at Douay. He commends the translators of the Eheims New Testament for their endeavors to give a true and hteral trans lation, though he confesses that they followed the Latin too scrupulously. Wetham criticises Dr. Nary for his too great freedom with the text, and charges him with making a para phrase rather than a literal translation. He congratulates himself that his translation was from the Latin rather than the Greek text. In putting forth his work, he did not believe " that every one though never so ignorant, might read aud put his own Constructions on the Sense of these sacred Writ ings, but, that they might be read with humility and an entire submission to the Judgment of the Church, and of the Head of the Church the Successor of Saint Peter, to those Pastors and Bishops whom Christ left to govern the Church." ^ A revised edition of the Douay Bible was published in 1749-50, by Dr. Eichard Challoner, one of the vicars apostolic of the Eoman Catholic Church in England. This version is rather a new translation than a revision, though in later edi tions it claims to be both. The changes for the better intro duced by Dr, Challoner are so numerous that it is largely conformed to the text of King James' version. True, after the manner of the Eheims version, he retains such untrans lated words as : Azymes, Matt. xxvi. 17 ; though in Luke xxii. 1, ' Lewis' Hist, of Eng. Translations, pp. 361, 363. '' Ibid, 363, 364. 322 eheims n. t, and douat bible, [chap, IX, it is translated the feast of unleavened bread ; Pasch, Matt. xxvi, 17 ; Parasceve, Mark xv. 42 ; Paraclete, John xiv, 16. Also such words as penance, justice, chalice, are retained. Taken as a whole, however, it is very readable, since it leaves out that whole class of obscure and senseless words found in the Eheimish version, such as exinanited, contristate, aud prefinition. Take the following as specimens of this trans lation : * Ex. XX. And the Lord spoke all these words : 3. I am the Lord thy God, who brought thee out of the land of Egypt, out of the house of bondage. 3. Tbou shalt not have strange Gods before me. 4 Thou shall not make to thyself a graven thing, nor the likeness of anything, that is in heaven above, or in the earth beneath, nor of those things that are in the waters under the earth . 5. Thou shalt not adore them, nor serve them : I am the Lord thy Qod, mighty, jealous, visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children, upon the third and fourth generation of them that hate me ; 6. And shewing mercy unto thousands to them that love me, and keep my commandments. 7. Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vain ; for the Lord will not hold him guiltless that shall take the name of the Lord his God in vain. 8. Eemember that thou keep holy the sabbath day. 9. Six days shalt thou labour, and shalt do all thy works. 10. But on the seventh day is the sabbath of the Lord thy God : thou shalt do no work on it, thou nor thy son, nor thy daughter, nor thy man servant, nor thy maid servant, nor thy beast, nor the stranger that is within thy gates. 11. For in six days the Lord made heaven, and earth, and the sea, and all things that are in them, and rested on the seventh day, therefore the Lord blessed the sabbath day, and sanctified it. 18. Honour thy father and thy mother, that thou mayst be long lived upon the land, which the Lord thy Qod will give thee. 13. Thou shalt not kilL ' Challoner's Revision of the Bible. New Tork and Montreal, 1876. 1749-1836.] libeealitt among catholic eevisees, 323 14. Thou shalt not commit adultery. 15. Thou shalt not steal. 16. Thou shalt not bear false witness against thy neighbour. 17. Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor's house, neither shalt thou desire his wife, nor his servant, nor his handmaid, nor his ox, nor his ass, nor any thing that is his. Matt. VI. 9. Thus therefore shall you pray • Our Father who art in heaven, hallowed be thy name. 10. Thy kingdom come. Thy will be done on earth as it is in heaven. 11. Give us this day our supersubstantial bread. 18. And forgive us our debts, as we also forgive our debtors. 13. And lead us not into temptation. But deliver us from evil. Amen. Challoner's annotations are not extensive, and in many instances are not objectionable, especially upon the Epistle to the Eomans. But those ou the Gospels are decidedly papisti cal. It ought to be a matter, however, of sincere gratification among the lovers of the English Scriptures that there has been such a growing tendency to liberality among Catholic revisers of the Douay Bible, Dr, Murray's edition of 1825 was largely conformed to the Authorized version. So also Dr. Lingard's translation of the Four Gospels, 1836, was made in the same liberal spirit.* Those in high authority suffer these improved editions of the Scriptures to go forth, but with a constrained and faint approval. From the above it appears that the Cathohc Bible of to-day is not the Douay Bible of 1609 and 1635. And if such versions or revisions as that of Dr. Chal loner could go forth without note or comment, Protestants might rejoice, and even aid in circulating them among Amer ican Catholics. • It was published anonymously by Dolman, London, CHAPTEE X. THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. A. D. 1611. QUEEN ELIZABETH died March 24, 1603, and was suc ceeded by James VI. of Scotland. The Puritans, so long under ban, now expected speedy relief. James, though born of Eoman Catholic parents, was a Presbyterian by profession. He had publicly pledged himself against the extremes of Eoman ism, Geuevanism, and the Episcopacy of Elizabeth, In the Gen eral Assembly at Edinburgh, 1590, with uplifted hands, " He praised God that he was born in the time of the light of the Gospel, and in such a place as to be king of such a church, the sincerest (purest) kirk in the world. ' The Church of Geneva,' said he, ' keep Pasche and Yule (Easter and Christmas), what have they for them ? They have no institution. As for our neighbour Kirk of England, their service is an evil-said mass in English : they want nothing of the mass but the liftings. I charge you my good ministers, doctors, elders, nobles, gen tlemen, and barons, to stand to your purity, and to exhort the people to do the same ; and I, forsooth, as long as I brook my life, shall maintain the same. ' " * After his accession, there fore, one of the first acts of the Puritans was to draw up a petition for the reformation of certain abuses in the Church. This was the noted Millenary petition, so called because it was said to have been signed by a thousand names, though in fact the number was limited to seven hundred fifty or eight hun- dred,^ In response, the king issued a proclamation calling for a conference to meet at Hampton Court, to hear complaints concerning abuses in the Church, and to reform the same, "if he should find them apparently proved," The meeting was ' Neal's History of the Puritans, I., 337. = Ibid, p. 338. 1604.] HAMPTOK COUET COITFBKBKCE. 325 accordingly held in the drawing-room within the privy cham ber of Hampton Court Palace, on the 14th, 16th and 18th of January, 1604. The discussion soon revealed to the Puritan party, that they had little to expect from the king, who from the first sided with the bishops and nobles. He seriously inter rupted the Puritans in their speeches, and indulged with his nobles " in mirth and raillery " at the expense of the " unhappy Puritans." Further he gave the conference to understand that he had learned a lesson in Scotland that he would not soon forget, and that was, that a Scots' presbytery meant no king, since it "agrees with monarchy as well as God and the devil." Turning to his bishops, he said : " My lords, I may thank you that these Puritans plead for my supremacy, for, if once you are out and they in place, I know what would become cf my supremacy, for. No bishop, no king."* King James had not forgotten his ineffectual attempt to play pope iu Scotland, when at the hands of his own nobility, who favored freedom in Church and State, he "Avas seized and restrained for a time to Euthven castle." ^ The importance of this conference, however, is that we are indebted to it for the first suggestion looking towards a new translation of the Scriptures. A sug gestion which finally resulted in King James' version, which has come down to us through more than two and a half cen turies, and is to-day our accepted English Bible. On the second day of the conference. Dr. Eeynolds, the ac knowledged leader of the Puritan party, addressed the assem bly in behalf of his brethren. He was frequently interrupted, and grossly treated by the king and his bishops. On one occasion it is related, that Bishop Bancroft dropped upon his kuees and begged the king, "to stop the Doctor's mouth," alleging, " that schismatics are not to be heard against their bishops." But Eeynolds was permitted to go on, and in the course of his remarks on the subject of a new catechism, he " moved his Majesty, that there might be a new Translation ' Neal's History of the Puritans, I., 833. 5 Hetherington's History of the Church of Scotland, pp. 85, 86, 87. New York, 1870. 326 THE AUTHOKIZED VEKSION. [CHAP. X. of tlie Bible, because," he said, " that those which were allowed in the Eeigns of Henry VIII. and Edward VI. were corrupt, and not answerable to the Truth of the Original," * Bancroft objected that if every man's humor were followed, there would be no end to translations of the Scriptures. But the king accepted the motion and entered heartily into the suggestion. He affirmed that '- he had never yet seen a Bible well trans lated in English, tho' he thought the Geneva the worst, and therefore wished, that some special Pains should be taken in the Matter for one uniform Translation, and this to be done by the best learned in both the Universities." ^ . . . . The king added, on a hint from the bishop of London, " that no marginal Notes should be added, he having found in those annexed to the Geneva Translation some Notes very partial, untrue, sedi tious, and favouring too much of dangerous and traiterous Conceits."^ The account given by the translators in their preface is substantially the same with the above, aud is as fol lows : " But besides all this, they (the Puritans) were the principall motiues of it, and therefore ought least to quarreU it ; for the very Historicall trueth is, that vpon the importunate petitions of the Puritanes, at his Majesties comming to this Crowne, the Conference at Hampton Court hauing been appointed for hearing their complaints ; when by force of rea son they were put from all other grounds, they had recourse at the last, to this shift, that they could not with good con science subscribe to the Communion booke, since it maintained the Bible as it was there translated, which was as they said, a most corrupted translation. And although this was judged to be but a very poore and emptie shift ; yet euen hereupon did his Maiestie beginne to bethinke himselfe of the good that might ensue by a new translation, and presently after gaue order for this Translation which is now presented vnto thee." ^ ' Dr. Barlowe's Summe & Substance of the Hampton Court Conference, p. 45. As cited by Lewis' History of English Translations, p. 307. Lon don, 1739. « Ibid, p. 308. 3 jjjy_ p, 308. * Preface, folio ed., 1613. 1604.] A NEW TRANSLATION DETERMINED UPON, 327 In fact the subject at the time seems to have attracted but little attention. It came up incidentally in the discussion on subscribing to the Communion book, and must have been regarded by all as a secondary matter. The Episcopal party had their Bishops' Bible; and the Puritans were satisfied with their Genevan version, rightly regarding it as the best translation as yet produced. Neither was there any outside demand for a new English version. But among the articles laid down as the result of this conference, the second, accord ing to Galloway's account, reads : "That a translation be made of the whole Bible, as consonant as can be to the original Hebreiu and Greek; and this to be set out and printed, with out any marginal notes, and only to be used in all Churches of England in time of divine service."* But this created no expectation. At the meeting of parliament which occurred soon after this conference^ the matter was not mentioned. Besides at the convocation which met at this time, action was taken to the effect that, " If any Parishes be yet unfurnished of the Bible, of the largest Volume the said Cliurch- wardens shall within convenient time provide the same at the Charge of the Parish." As Lewis remarks in this connection, from this action and fi-om the king's letters patent in ratify ing it, "one would have thought that the Eesolution, just now mentioned, of having a new translation of the Bible, had been dropped and wholly laid aside. But it seems it was not. For almost presently after, the King commissioned several learned Persons of both the Universities and other Places, to meet, confer and consult together in order to make a new and more correct Translation of the Bible." ^ By whose advice or counsel these men were appointed, and by whose plans their work was decided upon, we have no means of determining. Anderson, in his zeal to detract from the king's participation in the origin of the work, says : " Before the end ' Anderson's Annals of Eng. Bible, p. 477. ' Lewis' History of Eng. Translations of the Bible, p. 809. 328 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION, [CHAP. X, of June, a list of scholars suitable for the work was presented to James for his acceptance. They were selected /or him and he of course approved," * But King James' letter, July 22, 1604, says: "he had appointed certain learned Men to the number oi Four and Fifty, for the Translation of the Bible,"' If this movement was a wise one, and these appointments were wisely made, then let honor be given to whom honor is due. Though James I. may be regarded unworthy in charac ter, yet there is no question as to his active agency in origi nating the enterprise that resulted in the Bible that still bears his name. Though neither from the royal treasury nor his own private purse, did the king provide means for defraying the expenses, yet he did the next best thing, which was to secure preferments for those whom he called to take part in the work of translation.^ The number originally appointed was fifty-four, but for reasons unknown only forty-seven engaged in the work. These were divided into six companies, two of which sat in London, two in Oxford, and two in Cambridge. The follow ing table shows the names of the several committees, the por tion of Scripture assigned to each, and the places where they met: I, Westminster Com. on 0. T. — Deans, Andrews and Overal ; Doc tors Saravia, Clarlie, Layfield, and Teigh ; Messrs. Burleigh, Kinge, Thompson, and Beadwell. Pentateuch. Joslvua to the first book of Chron. exclusive. II. Cambridge Com. on 0. T. — Prof. Livelye, Dr. Richardson ; Messrs. Chaderton, Dillingham, Harrison, Andrews, Spaldinge, and Binge. Eirst Chron. to the end of Ece. incluMve. III. Oxford Com. on O. T. — Doctors Hardinge, Reynolds, Holland, and Kilby ; Messrs. Smith, Brett, and Fareclowe. The four Greater Prophets, Lamentations, and tlie twelve Lesser Prophets. IV. Westminster Com. on N. T. — Dean Barlow ; Doctors Hutchinson and Spencer ; Messrs. Penton, Rabbett, Sanderson, and Dakins. Epistles of Paul, and tlie Canonical Epistles. V. Oxford Com. on N. T. — Deans Ravis, Abbot, Montague, and Thompson (Giles) ; Messrs. Savile and Harmer; Doctors Perne ' Annals of the Bible, p. 477. ^ Lewis, p. 318. » lbid, p. 313. 1604-ll.J THE REVISERS EMINENT FOR SCHOLARSHIP. 329 and Ravens. The four Gospels, Acts of the Apostles, and book of Revelation. VI. Cambridge Com. on Apocrypha — Doctors Duport, Branthwaite, Radcliffe ; Messrs. Ward, Downes, Boyse, aud Warde. Prayer of Manasses, and the rest of the Apocrypha. ' These men were all noted for piety and learning. Dean Andrews was especially eminent as a linguist, and is said to have understood fifteen languages. " The world wanted learning to know how learned he was." Dean Overal bad the reputation ofbeing "a prodigious learned man." Dr. Teigh was " an excellent textuary aud profound linguist." William Beadwell was " the best Arabic scholar of his time." Professor Livelye was an eminent linguist, excelling in the knowledge of Hebrew. Dr. Chaderton was distinguished for his knowledge of Hebrew and Eabbinical learning. Francis Dillingham was an eminent Grecian. Thomas Harrison was " skilled in the Latin, Greek, and Hebrew tongues." Dr. Eeynolds stood first among the scholars of his time in Europe. He was the prime mover in this enterprise, but did not live to see it completed. " During his long illness his associates met in his room once a week to compare their notes." He long sustained the repu tation of being "the pillar of Puritanism and the grand favourer of non-conformity." Dr. Holland "was another Apollos and mighty in the Scriptures." Dr. Kilby excelled in the knowledge of Hebrew. Dr. Smith was highly esteemed as " a Hebrew and Chaldee, Syriac and Arabic scholar." Dr. Brett was "eminent as a linguist in Latin, Greek, and He brew." Harmer was " a noted Latinist and Grecian." Andrew Downes is described " as one composed of Greek and indus try"; and Savile was regarded as "the most learned layman of the day." Taken together they were representative men, not only in piety and leaming, but in liberality of sentiment. Their liberality was especially manifested in the work of re vision, for though required for the most part to confine them- ' The names of the several companies are from Lewis' Hist, of Trans lations, p. 310 : compare also Burnet's list. Hist. Ref. Records, IL, P. IL, B. IIL, p. 366. London, 1683. 330 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X, selves to the Bishops' Bible, they did not refuse to draw upon the Genevan and Eheims versions, when learning and good sense so required,* The following rules were laid down by the king for their guidance, copies of which were sent to each company. There is some discrepancy in the different accounts as to the number of these rules. In the report to the synod of Dort in 1618, only seven rules are enumerated. But for the most part the number recorded is fourteen. The transcript given below is from Burnet : ' I. The ordinary Bible read in the Church, commonly called the Bishops Bible, to be followed, and as little altered, as the Truth of the Original will permit. IL The Names of the Prophets, and the Holy Writers, with the other Names of the Text, to be retained, as nigh as may be, accord ingly as they were vulgarly used. III. The old Ecclesiastical Words to be kept, tiiz. the word Church not to be translated Congregation, &c. IV. When a Word hath divers significations, that to be kept which hath been most commonly used by the most of the Ancient Fathers, being agreeable to the Propriety of the Place, and the Analogy of the Faith. V. The division of the Chapters to be altered, either not at all, or as little as may be, if necessity so require. VI. No Marginal Notes at all to be affixed, but only for the explanation of the Hebrew or Greek words, which cannot, without some circumlocution, so briefly and fitly be exprest in the Text. VII. Such Quotations of Places to be marginally set down, as shall serve for the fit reference of one Scripture to another. VIIL Every particular Man of each Company, to take the same Chapter or Chapters, and having translated, or amended them sever ally by himself, where he thinketh good, all to meet together, confer what they have done, and agree tor their parts what shall stand. IX. As any one Company hath dispatched any one Book in this man ner, they shall send it to the rest, to be considered of seriously and judiciously, for his Majesty is very careful in this Point. ' They were permitted so to do by the XIV. rule laid down for their guidance with exception of the Rheims version. " Hist. Bef. Church of Eng. IL, Records, P. H., B. Ill , p. 36,8. 1683. 1557.] PREPARATIONS COMPLETED. 331 X. If any Company, upon the review of the Book so sent, doubt or differ upon any Place, to send them word thereof ; note the Place, and withal send the Reasons ; to which if they consent not, the difference to be compounded at the General Meeting, which is to be of the chief Persons of each Company at the end of the Work. XL When any Place of special obscurity is douted of. Letters to be directed, by Authority, to send to any Learned Man in the Land, for his j udgment of such a Place. XII. Letters to be sent from every Bishop, to the rest of his Clergy, admonishing them of this Translation iu hand ; and to move and charge, as many as being skilful iu the Tongues ; aud having taken pains in that kind, to send his particular Obser vations to the Company, either at Westminster, Cambridg, oi Oxford. XIII. The Directors in each Company, to be the Deans of Westminster, and Chester for that Place ; and the King!s Professors in the Hebrew or Greek in either University. XIV. These Translations to be used when they agree better with the Text than the Bishops Bible, viz. : Tyndoll's, Matthews, Cover- dale's, Whitchurch's, (and) Geneva. XV. Besides the said Directors before mentioned, three or four of the most Ancient aud Grave Divines, in either of the Univer sities, not employed in Translating, to be assigned by the Vice-Chancellor upon conference with rest of the Heads, to be Overseers of the Translations, as well Hebrew as Greek; for the better observation of the 4th Rule above specified. ' The needful preparations were completed at the close of the year 1604 ; but it is not known when the different companies entered upon their work. According to the preface the com mittees sat about three years. The labor of revising " cost the workemen, as light as it seemeth, the paines of twise seuen times seuentie two daies and more," ^ The work of the com mittees finished, two were chosen from each company to meet in Stationers Hall, London, to overlook and prepare one copy ' This last was rather a by-law, as it seems to have been added after wards, when the difficulty in the working of this IV. rule began to be felt. See Westcott's History of Bible, p. 119. * Preface to folio ed., 1613. 332 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP, X, for the press,* This company was engaged some nine months. Dr. Miles Smith and Thomas Bilson were appointed to super intend the work through the press, which occupied them two years. In 1611, King James' Bible appeared from the press of Eobert Barker, with the following title : " The Holy Bible Conteyning the Old Testament, and the New, Newly Trans lated out of the Originall Tongues : and with the former Translations diligently compared and reuised by his Majesty's Speciali Commandement, Appointed to be read in Churches. Imprinted at London by Eobert Barker, Printer tb the King's Most Excellent Majesty, Anno Dom. 1611." This title in the early folio editions, is surrounded by an elaborate device, which fills the entire page. The design is architectural and is made up of scroll-work, which gives to the whole an appearance of lightness combined with strength. At the top of the page is represented a high altar, over which hang heavy clouds ; but light breaks through them, revealing the name nhnj, which symbolizes God the Father ; in the cen tral part of the altar, in a halo of clouds, stands a living lamb, with a cross on its shoulder, representing Jesus on the earth ; and immediately below this, surrounded by clouds, is a dove with outstretched wings, symbolizing the Holy Ghost. On either side of the altar at the top of the page, are repre sented the sun, moon and twelve stars, which symbolize the fact of revelation through Christ, his Church and his Apostles. At the foot of the altar, on either side, sit the evangelists, Matthew and Mark, each attended by his apocalyptic symbol, viz. : Matthew by an eagle with the face of a man, and Mark by a Kon. Each of the evangelists has an ¦ open book before him and a pen in his hand, as if in the act of writing. At the bottom of the page is another altar, upon which lies a bound and bleeding lamb, symbolizing the sacrifice of Christ. On either side of the altar sit the evangelists Luke and John, ' The report made at the Synod of Dort in 1618, gives twelve as the number of this Select Committee. See Lewis' History of English Trans lations, pp. 883, 384. 1611. J PREFACE. 333 like those above, in the act of writing, attended also by their symbols, the one an ox, the other an eagle. On the right of the page, forming a handsome border, are twelve small medallion pictures, with tents in the foreground, representing the sons of Jacob; the tents bearing the insignia of the several tribes. On the opposite side of the page, and corresponding to these, are twelve other medallions representing the twelve disciples in half-length pictures. These doubtless symbolize the New Testament, and those on the opposite side the Old Testament Church. The minuteness of detail which enters into every part of this design, makes it a pleasant subject of study. The " erejfrave^Z title or frontispiece ".... says Cotton, " has been much admired. It is not often found in good con dition,"* The dedication to the king is fulsome in the extreme. Writ ten in the flattering spirit of the age, it is unworthy of a place in the sacred volume. But the preface, as a whole, is worthy of the revisers and their work. The design of the preface was first to answer objections to a new Enghsh translation. "Many mens mouthes haue been open a good while (and yet are not stopped) with speaches about the Translation .... or rather perusals of Translations made before ; and aske, .... what the necessitie of the employment: Hath the Church been deceiued, say they, all this while ? . . . . Hath the bread been deliuered by the fathers of the Church, and the same prooued to be lapidosus, as Seneca speaketh ? . . . . Was their Translation good before ,? Why doe they now mend it ? " In reply they say : " We are so fai-re off from condemning any of their labours that traueiled before vs iu this kiude, either iu this land or beyond sea, that wee acknowledge them to haue been raised vp of God, for the building and furnishing of his Church, and that they deserue to be had of vs and of pos- teritie iu euerlasting remembrance Yet for all that, as nothing is begun and perfected at the same time, and the lat ter thoughts are thought to be the wiser; so, if we building ' Editions of the Bible in English, p. 60. Oxford, 1853, 334 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION, [CHAP, X. vpon their foundation that went before vs, and being holpen by their labours, doe we endeuour to make that better which they left so good ; no man, we are sure, hath cause to mislike vs Thus much to satisfie our scrupulous brethren." Among these were the Puritans, to whom they specially replied : "And what can the King command to be done, that will bring him more true honour then this But besides all this, they were the principall motiues of it,'and therefore ought least to quarrell it." * In reply to the Eomish party they said : " We doe not deny, nay, wee afiSrme and auowe, that the verie meanest translation of the Bible in English, set foorth by men of our profession (for wee haue scene none of theirs of the whole Bible as yet) containeth the worde of God, nay, is the worde of God,- . . , .The translation of the Seuenty dissenteth from the Originall in many places, neyther doeth it come neere it, for perspecuitie, grauitie, majestie ; yet which of the Apostles did condemne it ? Nay, they vsed it, (as it is apparent, and as Saint Hierome and most learned men doe ' confesse) which they would not haue done, nor by their example of vsing it, so grace and commend it to the Church, if it had beene vnworthy the appellation and name of the word of God Yet before we end, we must answere a third cauill and objection of theirs against vs, for altering and amending our Translations so oft; wherein truely they deale hardly, and strangely with vs. For to whom euer was it imputed for a fault (by such as were wise) to goe ouer that which hee had done, and to amend it where he saw cause ? Then, .wee say, that of all men they ought to be most silent in this case. For what varieties haue they, and what alterations haue they made, not ouely of their Seruice bookes, .... but also of their Latine Translation ? But what will they say to this, that Pope Leo the tenth allowed Eras mus Translation of the New Testament, so much different from the vulgar, by his Apostolike Letter & Bull ; that the same Leo exhorted Pagnin to translate the whole Bible and ' Preface, King James' Bible, 1613. 1<311.] PREFACE. 335 bare whatsoeuer charges was necessary for the worke ? Surely, if the old vulgar had been at all points allowable, to small purpose had labour and charges bene vndergone, about framing of a new. If they say, it was one Popes priuate opinion, then we are able to goe further with them, and to auerre, that more of their chiefe men of all sorts, euen their owne Trent-chamyiiojis, and their owne Inquisitors doe either make new Translations themselues, or follow new ones of other mens making."* Further in their re tort they say : " Nay, we will yet come neerrer the quicke ; doth not their Paris-eiition differ from the Louaine, and Hentenius his from them both, and yet all of them allowed by authority ? " They conclude their reply to the papists by a pointed reference to the edition of Sextus V. and his high claim for it as authoritative ; also to Clement's edition which followed soon after ; which, though it differed widely from the edition of Sixtus yet, claimed the same authority. While therefore "our aduersaries," they said, "doe make so many aud so various editions themselues, and do jarre so much about the worth and authoritie of them, they can with no show of equitie challenge us for changing and correcting." ^ But the design of the preface, in the second place, was to show what they proposed to themselves iu the " perusall and suruay of the Bible." They say frankly that they did not think " to make a new Translation, not yet to make of a bad one a good one, but to make a good one better, or out of many good ones, one principal good one, not justly to be excepted against; that hath bene our endeauor, that our marke They trusted in him that hath the key of Dauid In this confidence, and with this deuotion did they assemble together; not too many, lest one should trouble another ; and yet many, lest many things haply might escape them. If you aske what they had before them, truely it was the Hebreiv text of the Olde Testament, the Greeke of the New Neither did wee thinke much to consult the ' Preface, King James' Bible, 1613. * Ibid. 33G THE AUTHOKIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. Translators or Commentators, Chaldee, Hebrew, Syrian, Greeke or Latine, no nor the Spanish, French, Italian, or Dutch; neither did we disdaine to reuise that which we had done, and to bring backe to the anuill that which wee had hammered." * Further, they rightly justify themselves in placing words of difierent sense in the margin, inasmuch as there are many words in the Scriptures "which be neuer found there but once, (hauing neither brother or neighbour, as the Hebrewes speake) so that we cannot be holpen by conference of places." They also justify themselves in using a variety of renderings for the same Greek word. They sought thus to avoid " vni- formitie of phrasing" — that is, the expressing the "same notion in the same particular word, as, for example, if we translate the Hebrew or Greeke word once by Purpose, neuer to call it Intent ; if one where Tourneying, neuer Traueiling ; if one where Tliinke, neuer Suppose; if one where Paine, jiewev Ache ; if one where Joy, neuer Gladnesse, &c. Thus to minse the matter, we thought to favour more of curiositie then wisedome, For is the kingdome of God become words or syllables ? why should wee be in bondage to them if we may be free, vse one precisely when wee may vse another no lesse fit, as commodiously ? We might also be charged (by scoffers) with some vnequaU dealing towards a great number of good Enghsh words,, . . .if we should say, as it were vnto certaine words. Stand vp higher, haue a place in the Bible alwayes, and to others of like qualitie. Get ye hence, be banished for euer. Lastly, wee haue on the one side auoided the scrupulositie of the Puritanes, . . . .also, .shunned the obscuritie of the Papists. . . .But we desire tbat the Scrip ture may speake like it selfe, as in the language of Canaan, that it may bee vnderstood euen of the very vulgar." * When this Bible first appeared there was evidently a demand for it, as two editions in folio were printed during the first year; also a 1 2mo ed i tion of the New Testament. In respect to the ques- 1 Preface, Ilin^ James' Bible, 1613. s ^iji. 1611.] OPPOSITION TO THE NEW BIBLE, 337 tion of two editions issued in 1611, Dr. Cotton says: " I cannot but believe that two editions were actually issued in 1011 ; and to this conclusion I am led by the following fact^. Dr. Daly . . possesses two Bibles dated 1611. . , , Apparently these two copies agree perfectiy with each other. But on close examination it will be found, 1st, that the wood-cut initial letters are frequently dif ferent iu the two : 2nd, that iu Genesis x. 16, one copy reads, 'the Emorite;' and the other, 'the Amorite! 3rd, iu the copy, which has the misprint Emorite, Exodus xiv. 10, , , , the verse occupies nine lines of text ; and the catchword at the bottom of the page is the word ' For,' occurring in the middle of ver. 12. Whereas, in the other copy, the verse fills only six lines ; and the whole of ver. 12, is included in that page."* Other variations might be noted, such as Euth iii. 15, where one copy reads, " he went " and the other, " she went into the citie." Altogether these differences settle the question in favor of two issues.' But whatever of demand there may have been for the new Bible, it met from the first with no little disfavor. The Eomish party, as might be expected, were outspoken in their opposition. The High Church Episcopal party were content, as a whole, with the Bishops' Bible ; while the Low Church party, made up of moderate Puritans, though Conformists, together with the radical Puritans, were satisfied with the Genevan Bible. Among individual opposers, Hugh Brough ton was the most violent. He ranked first among Hebrew and Greek scholars of his time ; but in disposition he was self-conceited, arrogant, aud heady. When, therefore. King James was in the act of appointing his revisers, by special request of the Bishop of London, Broughton, was left out. Notwithstanding this, he presumed to tender his services to the king, and to give directions for proceeding in the matter.' But when the revision was completed, he professed to be pro- 1 Editions of the Bible in English, p. 60, note. Oxford, 1853. 2 Compare Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, p. 303, Vol. II. London, 1876. ' Lewis' Llist. of Eng. Translations of the Bible, p. 805. 338 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. foundly grieved, and his censures upon it were bitter and extravagant, " It is so ill done. Tell his Majesty that I had rather be rent in pieces with wild horses than any such trans lation, by my consent, should be urged on ' poor churches." * Dr. Eobert Gell was another violent opposer. He attacked it from the pulpit in a series of discourses, in which he criticised the translation and charged the translators with taking undue liberty with the text, especially when they made the translation to serve their private opinions.^ That this opposition was not confined to London, or to the minds of learned critics, appears from the following story told by Izaak Walton. Dr. Kilby, one of the revisers, was journeying with Mr. Sanderson, They stopped over the Sabbath with a friend of the Doctor. At the parish church, which they attended, the young preacher devoted "a great part of the hour allotted for his sermon in exceptions against the late translation,. . . .and showed three reasons why a particular word should have been otherwise translated." When the evening services were ended, the preacher was invited to meet the Doctor, who, in the course of the conversation, assured him : "for that word, for which he offered to that poor congregation three reasons why it ought to have been translated as he said, he and others had considered all of them, and found thirteen more considerable reasons why it was translated as now printed." ^ So general was the opposition to King James' Bible that it was slow in gaining public favor. As late as 1621, Dr. An drews, in preaching before the king, took his text from the Bishops' Bible.* But the Genevan Bible was its most serious rival, since it continued to be published as late as 1644, when two editions were printed at Amsterdam.^ In 1649, King James' Bible was printed with the Genevan annotations, as ' As cited by Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, IL, 865. ' Compare Lewis' Hist. Eng. T'ratulations, p. 334 8 Eadie's Hist of Eng. Bible, II. , 188. • Smith's Bible DictiorMry. Art. Version, Authorized. IV., 3437. New York, 1873. ' Anderson's Annals, p. 661. 1604-11.] AUTHORITIES ACCESSIBLE TO THE REVISERS. 339 these stood high in public favor, " But about this period it prevailed, and took the place it has ever since occupied."* Thus gradually King James' Bible overcame all opposition ; and finally, iu the midst of the unsettied condition of affairs, both in Church and State, by general consent it was accepted as the English Bible. The title-page of the volume reads: "Appointed to be read in Churches." And the question naturally arises by whose authority, since by common consent " no cannon, proclamation, or Act of Parliament," can be shown enforcing the use of it.^ The name, therefore, of "Authorized Version," has no real foundation and carries with it a false impression, and can be justified only by its long use and the lack of something better. The name "King James' Bible," at first was by no means inappropriate as a local name, and as a just acknowledgment of the active efforts of the king in originating the enterprise. But now it has lost its significance, since the Bible has out grown the narrowness of the name, both by over two and a half centuries as to time, and by a world-wide circulation as to place. This version was a revision and not a new translation. The revisers wisely adhered to their purpose — "to make a good one better; or, out of many good ones, one principal good one." ^ And in doing this they followed the spirit, if not the letter, of rules first and fourteenth prescribed for their direc tion, which were that the Bishops' Bible was to be taken as the basis and followed, excepting when some one of the other English versions agreed better with the original text.* Be sides English versions, there was extant the Latin translation of the Hebrew by Sanctes Pagninus. He was engaged in this work nearly thirty years. It was published in 1527. The chief aim of Pagninus was to translate the Hebrew words by the same number of Latin ones. " ^ By this hteral method he " Anderson's Annals, p. 661. ^ lUd, pp. 484, 485. ' See Preface, as cited above, p. 335. * See pp. 330, 331, above. 5 Watson's Theological Tracts. Dissertation on Ancient Versions, pp. 39, 40. 340 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X, brought out the idioms of the Hebrew tongue. His trans lation was revised in the same literal manner by Arias Mon tanus in 1572, which became the text of the Antwerp Poly glott, In 1534-5 was pubhshed Miinster's Latin translation of the Old Testament. " Truly this translation," says Dupin, "is the most literal, but at the same time the most faithful of any done by Protestants." Another important version ac cessible to our translators was that of Leo Juda, printed at Zurich in 1544. He sought to make a free translation, giving the sense rather than the literal meaning of the words. There was also the version of Castaho (1551), which had some in fiuence with our revisers, but which deserves to be classed under the head of perversions of the text. Castalio's fancy was to give to the world an elegant version in classical Latin. In doing this, he " mixed expressions borrowed from Profane authors with the text of Holy Writ." * In addition to the above, there was accessible the Latin version of the Old Tes tament by Tremellius, published in 1579. He was by birth a Jew, and in his translation "the chief Hebraisms are pre served, and the whole exactly conformable to the Hebrew text." 2 The above works were critical somewhat, and so far adapted to the work of the revisers. They had other helps also in recent Vernacular versions, such as the authoritative revision of the French Bible, 1587-8. This was the Genevan revision of the French Bible, based upon a scholarly examiuation of the original text. There was also the very recent Italian version of the whole Bible, made by Diodati and published in 1607. This Protestant version has maintained its place to the present time.^ To the above add two Spanish versions, the ' Watson's Theological Tracts. Dissertations on AruAent Versions, p. 41. "^ Ibid, p. 43. Compare Westcott's Hist, of Bible, pp. 133, 831, 868. ' A new Italian version of the New Testament is just now (1881) being published by Father Curci, a prominent Roman Catholic priest, and formerly a Jesuit, but expelled from the order on account of his liberal principles. Diodati's version is Protestant ; this of Curd's is Roman 1604-11.] AUTHORITIES ACCESSIBLE TO THE REVISERS, 341 later one appearing in 1602, and we have a series of independ ent helps accessible to the revisers of King James' Bible, which they undoubtedly used, since they did not hesitate, as they declare in their preface, to consult the Spanish, French, Italian, or Dutch versions,* But further, " if you aske what they had before them, truely it was the Hebrew text of the Olde Testament, the Greeke of the New, these tongues therefore wer set before vs to translate, being the tongues wherein God was pleased to speake to his Church by his Prophets and Apostles." ^ The first printed Hebrew Bible was published in folio, with points, at Soncino in 1488. An octavo edition of the Hebrew Bible was printed at Brescia in 1494 ; Bomberg's Great Hebrew Bible, the first edition, was published in 1518. An improved edition of the same was issued in four volumes, folio, by Bomberg in 1525-26. A still more complete edition was put forth by Bomberg in 1547-49, in four vols, folio. This was character ized by Dr. Adam Clarke, "as the most correct, and the most valuable Hebrew Bible ever published." ^ There was also the celebrated Complutensian Polyglott. It was begun in 1502 under the auspices of Cardinal Ximeues, who spared no pains or expense in furthering the enterprise. Seven Hebrew MSS. alone are said to have cos,t four thousand crowns of gold. The whole cost of the work has been estimated at fifty thousand crowns. " The Old Testament of the Polyglott is made up of the Hebrew text, the Vulgate Latin, the Greek of the Septuagint version with a Latin translation, and the Chaldee Paraphrase with a similar Latin interpretation."* The New Testament of this Polyglott is made up of the Greek text, and the Latin text of the Vulgate. A volume was added explaining the meaning of Hebrew words aud idioms. The whole was pub lished in four vols, folio. The New Testament was finished Catholic, yet it is from the Greek as well as Vulgate ; and in his com mentary he draws largely from Protestant sources. I Preface. A. V. See pages 335, 336, above. ' Ibid. 3 Townley's Biblical Literature, IL, 467. London, 1831. * /6i£i, pp. 301,303. 342 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION, [CHAP. X, in 1514, and the Old Testament in 1517, But the work did not appear till 1522.* Besides the Complutensian, there was the celebrated Antwerp Polyglott. This "was executed at different periods between 1568 and 1573, by Christopher Plantin of Antwerp, under the superintendence of Arias Montanus," and was published in eight vols, folio. "The first four volumes contain the Old Testament and Apocryphal Books." The fifth volume contains the New Testament. The remaining volumes are taken up with Grammars and Lexicons of the Hebrew, Syriac, and Greek languages, also Biblical dissertations on such themes as Geography and Chronology.^ The Greek text accessible to the revisers of King James' Bible was the New Testament Greek of the Complutensian Polyglott, also the Greek text of Erasmus ; the first edition of whose New Testament was published by Froben at Basle, in 1516. "Erasmus had used as the basis of his edition 2 Basel MSS., one for the Gospels, the other for Acts and the Epistles, with a collation of two other Basel MSS., and a third called after Eeuchlin for the Apoc, the last verses of which he had to supply from the Vulgate." ^ The second edition of Erasmus' Greek Testament, 1519, contained several hundred alterations. In his fourth edition, 1537, he changed a few passages in the Apocalypse after the Complutensian text. The fifth edition of Erasmus, published in 1535, differs only in four places from the fourth. This fifth edition was followed by Stephens in his celebrated third edition of the Greek Testa ment, 1550, with but a few exceptions. Stephens added in the margin the readings of sixteen different manuscripts. This third edition of Stephens was that which was used by the revis ers of King James' Bible; and ¦^^•as also the edition followed by Beza, with slight alterations, in the formation of his Greek text, which was published in 1565. The edition of Beza, pub lished in 1589, together with the third edition of Stephens, may 1 Tos\rA&y's Biblical Literature, II. , p. 303. London, 1831. 2 Ibid, III., p. 31. ' Herzog's Encyclopedia. k.xi. Bible Text,!., '^'^X. Philadelphia, 1818. 1525-1611.J INFLUENCE OF TYNDALE'S TRANSLATION. 343 be regarded as comprising " the fundamental Greek text of the Authorized Version." * These likewise lay at the founda tion of the so-called Textus Receptus, which was published at Leyden by Elzevir, iu 1624-1633. The preface of the edition of 1633 contains the following: " Textum ergo habes nunc ab omnibus receptum, hence the title Textus Receptus.^ Of course our translators had not this text, yet they had the ele ments out of which it was formed. Modern textual criticism, with its invaluable accumulation of Ancient MSS. and other important sources of authority, together with its settled canons of judgment as to correct read ings, has outgrown in a critical sense, particularly iu the field of the New Testament, the limited materials within reach of Eras mus, Stephens, Beza, and the editors of the Great Polyglotts. And yet one of the important results of textual criticism is its favorable testimony to the authority, honesty, and integ rity, as a whole, of the original texts of the Old and New Testaments accessible to the revisers of King James' Bible, But while these translators were able linguists, and were dili gent in comparing their translation with the Hebrew and Greek, yet they adopted by approving, as well as by improv ing, the results of the labors of those who had gone before them. For the Authorized version is the work of no one man or body of men, nor of any given age, but in language and interpretation it is the resultant of the best labors of the best men during a period of more than two hundred years. The relation of the Authorized version to previous English versions is most intimate, though we go back even to the Wycliffite versions. But in Tyndale's translation of the New Testa ment particularly, we find the base line to which our revisers worked. In its Saxon words, English idioms, Scriptural style, and general faithfulness to the Greek text, Tyndale's version was the standard followed by succeeding revisers, including ' Smith's Bible Dictionary. Art. New Testament, p. 8133, note. ' Herzog's Encyclopedia. Art. Bible Text, p. 433. 344 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP, X, those of 1611. After a careful comparison, it has been esti mated that nine-tenths of the First Epistle of John, and five- sixths of the Epistle to the Ephesians, of the Authorized version, have been retained from Tyndale.* These may be favorable examples, but a very cursory comparison will show that Tyndale's readings abound in our present New Testa ment. By authority, the Bishops' Bible was made the basis of tJie revision of King James' Bible. It was so used, and its in fluence can be traced. And yet the revisers manifested a liberality of spirit, and a fidelity to truth in varying from it. And by far the greatest number of these variations, especially in the Old Testament, are traceable to the infiuence of the Genevan version.^ The scholarly excellencies of this version were recognized and frequently approved, though it was the representative of the extreme reformed party in theology and Church polity. So likewise in the use of the Eheims version, the revisers manifested the same liberality in the opposite direction, since from this version they not only enlarged their vocabulary, but drew from it many happy and terse expressions and homely phrases.^ Though it is somewhat surprising how many of these words and phrases are found to have been first used by Wychffe. In estimating the influence of jjrcvious English translations upon the Authorized version, the claims of the Wycliffite versions have been almost wholly overlooked. Yet there are so many words and phrases common to each of them that they detract from the supposition that they are simply " happy coincidences." A few of these may bo here noted, such as mote, beame, strait is the gate and narrow 'is the way, spirit of adoption, living sacrifice, deape things of Ood; instead of this last Tyndale reads : the bottome ' Westcott's History of Eng. Bible, p. 165, note. " A collation by Westcott of twelve verses from the liii. chap, of Isaiah, shows that " seven-eighths of the renderings are due to the Genevan version." A similar collation from Mark's Gospel reveals that nearly one-half agrees with the Genevan Bible or with Beza. See Eng. Bible, pp. 374, 386. 3 Compare pages £07-8, above. 1611.] CHANGES FOR THE BETTER. 345 of God's secretes ; while the Ehemists read : the profundities of God. Further, we find such phrases in Wycliffe and in the Authorized version, as the cuppe of blessing which we blesse, despise yee the Church of God, a good confession, whited sepul chres, revelation of the mysterie, be it far from thee. Some of these, it would seem, must have been adopted directly from the Wycliffite versions, while others may have descended through other translations. But the true work of the revisers of King James' Bible is seen, not only in adopting felicitous renderings from previous versions, but in the delicate changes introduced by way of amendments. And so not unfrequently they were the first to seize upon the correct rendering of the original. The follow ing may be taken as examples of changes for the better.* Rom. I. 38. . . . God gaue them oiier to a reprobate minde. This is an improvement on the Rheims ver sion, which reads: God deliuered them vp into a reprobate sense. IL 18. . . . andapprouestthethirgsiAof are more excellent. The Rheims version reads : . . . and ap prouest the more profitable things. V. 30. . . . grace did much more abound. This is a slight improvement on the Rheims version, which reads : . . . grace did more abound. VIIL 19. For the earnest expectation of the creature, waiteth for the manifestation of the sonnes of God. Tyndale reads : fervent desyre, abydeth lokynge when the sonnes of God shall appere. The Rhemists read: For the expectation of the creature expecteth the reuelation of the sonnes of God. 38. . . . all things worke together for goode to them that loue God, to them who are the called ac cording to (his) purpose. Wycliffe has : . . . worchen togidre in to good, to hem that aftir purpos ben clepii seyntis. Tyadsdehaa: -^yovke for the best, . . which also are called r/ purpose. > Trench on the A. V, p. 103. The readings which follow are from a first edition of A. V. in the Boston Public Library. 346 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [OHAP. X, 39. For whom he did foreknow, hee also did predestinate to be conformed to the image of his sonne. This im proves upon the Rhemists, who translate : For whom he hath forknowen, he hath also predestinated to be made conformable to the image of his sonne. Tyn dale reads : For those which he knewe before, he also ordeyned before that they should be like fassioned vnto the shape of his sonne. But there were changes for the worse. The revisers of King James' Bible sometimes passed over correct readings of earlier versions, or placed them iu the margin when it would have been better to have put them in the text.* Take the following as examples : Matt. V. 31. Yee haue heard, that it was saide by them of old time. The Genevan and Tyndale's versions read : unto them. The Rhemists have : to them. XXVIII. 14. And if this come to the gouernours eares. The Gene van reads : And if this come before the Gouver- nour. Our version gives the impression, that if it come as a matter of hearsay to the gover nor ; while the Genevan version asserts more cor rectly, that if it come before him as a matter of legal complaint they would pacify him.^ Mark XI. 17. . . . My house shal be called of all na tions the house of prayer? Tyndale, followed by the Genevan version, renders this : . . . my housse shal be called the housse of prayer vnto all nacions? The Jews were willing that the court of the Gentiles should be profaned, and this excited the indignation of Jesus, and was the occasion of his uttering the above, which is quoted from Isaiah lvi. 7. Acts XIV. 15. . . . We also are men of like passions with you. "This fact,'' says Trench, "would not have disproved in the eyes of the Lycaonians the right of Paul and Silas to be considered gods. The heathen were only too ready to ascribe to their gods like passions, revenge, lust, envy, with their ' Trench on the A. V, p. 104. ' See page 339, above. 1611.] THE GREEK PREPOSITION. 347 own." ' Tyndale's version is better, which reads : We are mortall men lyke vnto you. This is fol lowed by the Genevan versiou. Eph. IV. 18. . . . because of the blindnesse of their heart. The Genevan has : ha.rdenes ; so the mar gin of the A. V. I. Thess. V. 33. Abstaine from all appearance of euill. The Genevan reads : all kinde of euil. I. Tim. VI. 5. . . . supposing that gaine is godlinesse, Coverdale's Bible reads : who thynke that godly nesse is lucre. That is, that godliness is a means of gain. I. Pet, I. 17. And if ye call on the Father. The Genevan is better, which reads : And if ... ye call him Father. II. Pet. IIL 13. Looking for and hasting vnto the comming of the day of God. After the versions of Tyndale and Gene va, and placing the better rendering in the margin, which reads : hasting the comming. The scholarship of the revisers of King James' Bible can not be called in question, and yet an examination, not over critical, of their work, reveals incorrect renderings of tenses ^ and of prepositions, also neglect of the Greek article. In respect to Greek prepositions, however, iu many instances the translators were right, and the incoi-rectness now is trace able to archaisms. The following examples, however, fall under the head of mistranslations, and show the importance of the smallest words in the original text : Matt. XXVIII. 19. . . . baptizing them in the Name. Better, into, as in Gal. iii. 37. For as many of you as have heen baptized into Christ, have put on Christ. Luke XXIII. 15. No, nor yet Herod ; for I sent you to him, and loe, nothing worthy of death is done vnto him. Better to translate : is done by him. The meaning is, that in Herod's judgment Jesus had done nothing worthy of death. ' Trench on the A. V., p. 153. ' For illustrations of incorrect use of tenses, see Trench on the A. V., pp. 134r-133. Also for a thorough discussion of the same subject by Canon Lightfoot. See Revision of J^. T., pp. 81-91. Schaff's ed. New Tork, 1873. 348 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION, [CHAP. X. 43. . . . Lord, remember me when thou commest into thy kingdome. Alford, in loco, re gards this as a sad mistake, " as it destroys the force of the expression." It should read : in thy kingdom, that is, at thy coming in thy kingdom. II. Thess. II. 1. Now we beseech you, brethren, by the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ. The objection to by in this counection is, that it introduces a formula of ad juration, a construction not found in the New Testament. Compare Lange and Alford in loco. The former suggests : ore account of, in regard to, II. Tim. II. 3. And the things that thou hast heard of mee among many witnesses. The margin has : by. Bengel prefers : before. If the witnesses are the presby ters present at Timothy's ordination, Bengel is doubtless right. Heb. VI. 7. . . . and bringeth foorth herbes meete for them by whom it is dressed. Better in the margin, which reads : for whom it is dressed. VII. 9. . . payed Tithes in Abraham. Better to read : through Abraham. II. Pet. I. 3. , . . through the knowledge of him that hath called vs to glory and vertue. Alford, Bengel, and Lange prefer : by his own glory and virtue. In the treatment of the Greek article our translators com mitted a double error, that of omission when it was present, and of insertion when it had no place in the Greek text. Such treatment affected, more or less, important truths. Take the following as illustrations : Matt. II. 4. . . . hee demanded of them where Christ should be borne. This should read : the Christ. After the resurrection the name of Christ became a proper name. In the Gospel narratives, therefore, in the Greek, we have the Christ, meaning the Messiah. But in our English version the article is almost always omitted.' Mark XIV. 69. And a mayde saw him againe. Leaving it indefinite, or ' This fact is enlarged upon by Lightfoot on Revision of the N. T., Schaff's ed., pp. 94, 95. New Tork, 1873. 1611,] THE GREEK ARTICLE. 349 indicating another servant in distinction from the one mentioned in verses 66 and 67. This is cor rected by giving place to the definite article and reading : the maid saw him again. Luke II. 7. , . , and laid him in a manger. Better to read : in the manger. Eom. V. 15-19. . . . forif through the offence of »«e many be dead. So through the whole passage, the definite article is omitted before one, and before many. But the contrast is brought out, when we learn that it is between ihe one, and the many, that the com parison is made. Lightfoot cites this passage after Bentley, as having an important bearing upon the extent of the benefits of Christ's obedience. And hence the correct rendering avoids " some hurtful mistakes about partial redemption." ' Col. L 19. For it pleased (the Father) that in him should all ful- nesse dwell. By rendering the omitted article and reading: all tlie fulnesse, we get a more correct view of the passage. Eev. VIL 14 . . . These are they which came out of great tribulation. It ought to read: out of the great tribulation; thus connecting it with Matt. xxiv. 28, 39, and Dan. xii. 1. The following selected examples show the opposite, but less frequent, error of our English version, of introducing the article when it had no place in the original text : Rom, IL 14 For when the Gentiles which haue not the Law, doe by nature the things contained in the Law. The true reading is : when Gentiles, " meaning some, not all." I. Thess. rv. 17. , . . shalbe caught vp together with them in the clouds. The definite article, the, is wanting in the Greek text. 1 Tim. VI. 10. For the loue of money is the roote of all euill. The article here is .wanting in the Greek, so that the more correct reading is ; For the love of money is a root of all eviL ' Lightfoot on Revision qf the N. T., Schaff's ed., p. 93. New Tork, 1873, 350 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. II. Tim. IV. 7, 8. I haue fought a good fight. . . . Hencefoorth there is layde vp for me a crowne of righteousnesse. The Greek reads : the good fight, and the crown of righteousness. There is one other example of incorrect rendering that may be here noted, and for which possibly our translators have been too much blamed, and that is the liberty they took in rendering the same Greek word by different English words. In this they followed earlier versions, particularly that of Tyn dale. In their preface they justify themselves as having an eye to style, and singularly enough, to the claims of individual English words.* There is no doubt but that the genius of our language demands something of this variety. Neither is there any doubt but that in yielding to this demand and introducing a variety of synonymous words, our English Bible has exercised a happy influence upon our language, by thus adding to the stock of words in common use, Aud yet it is equally certain, that the force of expression which comes from repetition, has been too often sacrificed for the sake of this variety in style. " Thus, it will sometimes happen," says Trench, "that when St. Paul is pursuing a close train of reasoning, and one which demands severest attention, the dif ficulties of his argument, not small in themselves, are aggra vated by the use of different words where he has used the same ; the word being sometimes the very key of the whole." ^ So that, while no plea for variety can justify seventeen difierent renderings of the same Greek word, (as seen below,) yet our translators did well in avoiding a mechanical monotony. And even Dean Trench closes his interesting chapter on this subject by saying : " I would not for an instant imply that in all these places (referring to an extended collation of passages), one and the same English word could have been employed, but only that the variety might have been much smaller than it is." * The fol lowing examples were for the most part suggested by Trench : * ' See page 336, above. « Trench <;» Revision of N. T., p. 73. N. T., 1858. ' Ibid, p. 83. * The citations are from a Black-Letter copy of the A. V., 1613. 1611.] SAME GREEK WOED BY DIFFERENT ENG. WOEDS. 351 Matt. IX. 35. . . he went in, and tooke her by the hand. The Greek word rendered here tooke is translated in Matt. xii. 11, lay hold on; xviii. 88, laid hands on ; xxvi. 48, hold fast, xxviii. 9, held ; Mark ix. 10, kept. John xx. 33, retained ; and in Acts xxvii. 13, obtained. Luke XIIL 7. . . . cut it downe, why cumbreth it the ground. The Greek term here translated cumbreth, is ren dered in other connections by sixteen other English words, as follows : Rom. iii. 3, make without effect , 31, make void ; iv. 14, made of none effect ; vi. 6,6« destroyed; vii. 3, is loosed; 6, deliuered; I. Cor. i. 38, to bring to nought ; xiii. 10, be done away ; 11. put away ; xv. 34, put down; II. Cor. iii. 13, is abolished. Also I. Cor. ii. 6, come to nought ; xiii. 8, shall fail ; and, shall vanish away ; Gal. v. 4, is become of no effect ; 11, ceased. John XX. 85. . . . and put my finger into the print of the nailes,' and thrust my hand into his side. The Greek word here translated put, and thrust, is one, and is so translated in the Genevan version. Acts XVII. 18, 33. . . . He seemeth to be a setter foorth of strange gods. In verse 33, the Apostle uses the same word, and his retort would have been more forcible if our translators had rendered it : him set I forth ; instead of, him declare I unto you. Again in verse 33, there is an etymological connection between the Greek words translated unknown, and ignorantly, which might have been preserved. Eom. V. 11. . . . by whom wee haue now receiued the atone ment. In chapter xi. 15, and in II. Cor. v. 18, this same word in the original, is rendered, reconciling, and reconciliation. In so important a doctrinal word, it would seem that uniformity in rendering ought to have been preserved. I. Cor. XV. 34,88. This passage, which indicates the coming of the end of Christ's mediatorial kingdom, and "affords a glimpse," as Eadie happily expresses it, "of what may be called Christian pantheism as the ultimate result that God may be all in all," furnishes also an example of emphatic repetition, the force of ' This first clause is omitted in the second edition of A. V., 1613, from which this collation is made. 352 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. which is in part lost in our version. In verses 24 and 36, the same Greek word appears, which ia translated in one case, put downe, and in the other, destroyed. In verses 37, and 38, we find another Greek word occurring six times. In four instances it is translated, put under; in the other two in stances it appears as be subdued, aud, be subject. If nniformity had been preserved in these cases, it would have added strength and solemnity to the whole passage. II. Cor. V. 10. For wee must all appeare before the judgement seat of Christ. Inthe next verse, the word here translated appear, is repeated twice, and in both instances is translated : made manifest. I. Pet. II. 4, 5. To whom comming as unto a lining Stone. . Te also as liuely stones, are built up a spirituall house. The words living and Uvely, translate the same Greek word.' An opposite error to the above, though not of so frequent occurreuce, finds a place in our English version. It consists in rendering several Greek words by a single English word. This fault may arise sometimes from the poverty of our lan guage compared with the Greek, though not always, by any means. A few familiar examples are here inserted : Matt. XXII. 1-14. In this passage of the marriage of the king's son, the word seruants, is used to indicate those who invite the guests, as in verses 3, 4, 6 and 8 ; also to indicate those who put out such as have not on a wedding garment, as in verse 13. But in the Greek text the words are different. The Genevan version rightly preserves the distinction by ren dering the Greek words respectively servants and ministers, XXVI. 10. . . . he said vnto them. Why trouble ye the woman? Dean Trench calls attention to the fact, that " there are no less than ten Greek words ' Compare Trench on Glossary of English Words, p. 113. For an ex tended illustration of this subject, see Lightfoot on Revision of N. T., pp. 46-65. N. T.,1873. Also Eadie's .E/ifiriisA jBiMe, IL, 388-416. 1611,] SEVERAL GREEK WOEDS BT ONE ENG. WORD. S53 or phrases which it (the word trouble) is employed by them (our translators) to render." And he significantly adds in the same connection that though " the English language may not be so rich in synonyms as the Greek ; but with ' vex,' 'harass,' 'disturb,' 'distress,' 'afflict,' 'disquiet,' ' unsettle,' ' burden,' ' terrify ' ; almost every one of which would in one of the above places or other seem to be more appropriate than the word actually employed, I cannot admit that the pov erty or limited rescources of our language left no choice here." ' Luke XII. 5. . . . Feare him, which after hee hath killed, hath power to cast into heU. Here the Greek word is yeewav, that is, Gehenna, "the place of punishment in Hades or the world of the dead." In Acts ii. 31, we read : that his soule was not left in liell. Here the Greek word is 4iov, that is. Hades, the under world or place of the dead without reference to happiness or misery. The rendering of these two distinct Greek words by the same English word creates in this example serious confusion. John XXI, 15-17. In this passage we have a familiar example of two Greek words translated by one English word, and consequently a nice distinction is lost. When Jesus said ; Simon sonne of Jonas, louest thou mee more then these ? he used a term expressive of respectful love. But Peter in his reply, Tea, Lord, thou knowest that I loue thee, used a term ex pressing personal affection; so in the second ad dress of the Savior and the reply of Peter. But when Jesus said the third time ;' louest thou rae't he used Peters word expressive of personal affec tion. Again in this same passage one English word is made to do service for two Greek words. In the first and in the third charge given to Peter, the word in the original is the same, and is trans lated feed. But in the second charge the Greek word is different and means to care for as a shep herd, to tend, but it is here translated as before, ¦ Trench on Bible Revision, p. 96. New Tork, 1858. 354 THE AUTHORIZED VEESION, [CHAP, X. Rev. IV. 6. . . . aud round about the Throne, were foure beasts ful of eyes before and behinde. These living creatures, as the Greek signifies, which are represented as giving glory and honor and thanks to him that sat on the Throne, are very different from the beasts spoken of in chap ter xiii. 1 and 11, which are described as speak ing like dragons and deceiving those who dwell upon the earth by false miracles. This impor tant distinction is unfortunately effaced in our translation. Punctuation being the work of revisers and printers, it Is natural to suppose that it might become a fruitful source of error. But such care has been taken that serious errors are comparatively few. Our translators followed the Masoretic pointing, and in some cases unwittingly adopted their errors, A remarkable example of this is found in Dan. ix. 25, in which a semicolon in the hands of these Jewish editors changed the meaning of a Messianic prophecy. By inserting the semicolon after the words, seven weeks, they cut off the three score and two weeks, thus making "the prophecy wholly unserviceable to the Christian." * Our modem Bibles uniformly follow the punctuation of the earliest editions. But the following ex amples are exceptions : Dan. IX. 85. Know therefore and vnderstand, ifhat) from the going forth of the commandement to restore and to build Jerusalem, vnto the Messiah the Prince, (shall bee) seuen weekes ; and threescore and two weekes, the streete shall be built againe, and the wall, euen in troublous times. So pointed in the earliest editions of King James' Bible, also in some of the earlier versions, as Coverdale's and Cranmer's Bibles. But in the editions of the Genevan and Bishops' versions, commas only are used. And in our modern Bibles the semicolon is placed, as doubt less it ought to be, at the end of the phrase, three score and two weeks ; as this pointing agrees with " Watson's Theological Tracts, IIL, 14. 1611.] PUNCTUATION. 355 the context, aud the fulfilment of the prophecy as referring to the Messiah. Luke XXIII. 38. And there were also two other malefactors led with him, to be put to death. So pointed in the editions of the Authorized version of 1611 and 1618, by which unintentionally Jesus is dassed with the malefactors. Our modern Bibles follow some later edition which placed commas after the words other and malefactors, which pointing changes the mean ing materially. Whittingham's version of N. T. 1557, reads : And there were two others which were euil doers led with him to be slayne. Eev. rv. 11. . . . for thou hast created all things, and for thy pleasure they are, and were created. So pointed in the earliest editions oi the Authorized version. But in our modern Bibles the change is for the worse, which read : . . . . and for thy pleasure they are and were created. This lack of punctuation fails to bring out the two distinct propositions. Xni. 8. And all that dwell vpon the earth, shall worship him, whose names are not written in the booke of life of the Lambe, slaine from the foundation of the world. This pointing connects, from the foundation of the world, with, the Lambe slaine. Our modern Bibles for the most part have no pointing at all, leaving it an open question whether the phrase, from the foundation of the world, is to be connected with, slaine, or written. The former is the most obvious, and is sustained by reference to I. Peter i. 19-80.' Though King James' Bible as a translation was by no means perfect, yet it surpassed all other preceding English versions. By its inherent worth it attained a pre-eminence and conse quent protracted influence which places it as a version along side of Jerome's Vulgate and Luther's Bible. For if "the translation of the Bible into Latin created au epoch altogether new in that language, constituting a late, and in some in- ¦ Compare Alford's Commentary, in loco. 356 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP, X, stances, a rich aftercrop of Latin literature";* and if Luther in translating the Bible into German, "created the modern German language as an instrument of literature";^ somewhat so our early English versions influenced our literature and our language. And it is eminently true of the revisers of King James' Bible that, in the midst of a Latin period, they reaf&rmed the Saxon element of the language, and re-estab lished the standard set up by William Tyndale, which has stood for two aud a half centuries, and bids fair to stand for centuries to come, whatever of minor changes may come to the translation by way of revision, or to its language by way of natural growth and decay. In the bold front presented by English versions of the Bible against the influx of Latin words during the long period be ginning in the reign of Henry VIII., culminating in that of Elizabeth, and extending to the restoration of Charles II., we have an illustration of their inherent power and conservating force. Dean Swift, in a letter to the Earl of Oxford, 1711, wrote : " The period wherein the English tongue received most im provement I take to commence with the beginning of queen Elizabeth's reign, and to conclude withthe great Eebellion in forty-two."^ And this was the period of Bible ascendancy in England; the period when the Genevan version became the Bible of the people. For fifty years this version stood com paratively alone, and when King James' version was pat into circulation, for almost forty years these two Bibles stood to gether and exerted a power iu common for the preservation of the Saxon element of our English tongue. " During the usurpation," says Swift, "such an infusion of enthusiastic jargon prevailed in every writing, as was not shaken off in many years after. To this succeeded that licentiousness which entered with the Restoration, and, from infecting our religion and morals, fell to corrupt our language."^ Single- ' Schlegel's History_of Ancient and Modern Literature, p. 148. ^ FrovLde'B Short Studies, etc. Series IIL, 131. 1877. New Tork, 1877. ' Works, p. 491. Edinburgh, 1878. " Ibid, p. 491. 1525-1881.] INFLUENCE UPON ENGLISH LANGUAGE. 357 handed King James' Bible, with its Saxon element in lan guage, withstood this new "species of barbarism" which sought to overwhelm the English tongue, in the form of " a French ascendancy of the very worst description."* This struggle in its violence continued for a hundred and fifty years, even to the close of the seventeenth century. Again during the first half of the eighteenth century, so far as our language had become affected by this " Latinized or Gallicized style," King James' Bible with its Saxon element firmly with stood it. In the same letter quoted above, the Dean says : " It is your lordship's observation, that if it were not for the Bible aud Common Prayer Book in the vulgar tongue, we should hardly be able to understand any thing that was writ ten among us a hundred years ago ; which is certainly true : for those books, being perpetually read in churches, have proved a kind of standard for language, especially to the com mon people." ^ Only in the light of history can we under stand this infiuence of English versions of the Bible, and intelligently recognize the fact, that through their conserving power, we are to-day in language nearer the age of Chaucer than those who lived and wrote a hundred years ago. "I am fully persuaded," says Trench, "that so far as intelli gibility is concerned, Chaucer is not merely as near but nearer to us than he was felt by Dryden and his cotempo raries to be to them." The importance to be attached to this influence is, that our English Bible, in its various versions, has not only furnished a standard of language for the purpose of literature, but it has done its share in preserving that element of our language which is of the people, and for the people. The Latin lan guage, in its nature and relations, is the representative of Empire, and lives in the interests of aristocracy; while our Saxon tongue, in its nature and relations, is the representative of true democracy, and lives iu the interests of the family and ' Schlegel's History of Literature, p. 378. Bohn's ed. ^ Swift's Works, p. 493. 358 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X, the people. If this is true politically, it is much more so religiously. The Papal hierarcliy understood this, and hence its persecution of the poor Lollards for reading the Manuscript Bible of Wycliffe. William Tyndale understood this when, inspired with a desire to preach the Gospel to the people, he learned that nothing could be done effectually so long as the Scriptures were locked up in the Latin tongue ; and hence his resolution to translate the New Testament into the vernacular of the people. The burning of these printed New Testaments by the hierarchy shows that it fully understood the tendency of the Saxon tongue. And so the history of the Eomish Church in adopting and insisting upon the Latin as the lan guage of Church worship, as well as of the Scriptures, shows that she regarded the Latin language as one with the interests of the papacy. So dependent is Rome upon the Latin tongue that Milman declares, that " the abrogation of the Latin as the exclusive language of Christian letters and arts must be inevitably and eventually the doom of Latin Christianity." * Happily for the vrork of the revisers, King James' Bible became, as the Genevan version had been before it, the Bible of the people. And as it is to-day, so it has been dur ing all these years, the Book of the nursery, an ever-fruitful source of stories to mothers for their children ; the Book of maturer childhood and still riper years; the Book of orators and poets, who, with no personal interest in its religious teach- /ing, have admired and read it for the sake of its forcible English. Our English Bible brings to us neither the style or English of the age of James I., but the English spoken a huu- dredjearsbefore his_time ; when as yet tEe~language was written as it was^spbfcen in its cdmpafafive^implicity. It is trufrthafnot^a'few words tjT Latin derivatibn~beloiiged to the English of Tyndale's time, and were introduced by him into his translation and have come down to us in our English ' History of Latin Christianity, VIIL, 334. New Tork, 1874. 1881.] RELATION TO ENGLISH LANGUAGE. 359 Bible, but these were already naturalized, apd were a part of the Enghsh tongue, and in many instances dated their adop tion to a period before the time of Chaucer and Wycliffe. Some of these words were received from the Latin through the Vulgate, while others were from the Latin through the Nor man French. Few pure Latinisms were adopted along the line of revision fi-om Tyndale, 1525, or even from Wycliffe, 1380, to James I., 1611.* Very many words ending in ation, in form the most objectionable, and it would seem the last to be adopted, are traceable to Wycliffe, and some to Tyn dale, leaving about a third that appeared for the first time in the Rheims and Authorized versions. The words abomi nation, Luke xvi, 15; desolation, xxi, 20; generation, Acts ii. 40 ; dissension, xv. 2 ; divination, xvi. 16 ; temptation, I. Cor. X. 13 ; and ministration, II. Cor. iii. 7, are found in Wycliffe. The words lamentation. Acts viii. 2 ; exhortation, Rom. xii. 8 ; foundation, xv. 20 ; redemption, I. Cor. i. 30 ; administrations, xii. 5 ; inteipretation, — . 10 ; resurrectio7i, XV. 13 ; and imagination, II. Cor. x. 5, belong to Tyndale. While the words consultation, Mark xv. 1 ; expectation, Eom. viii. 19 ; demonstration, I. Cor. ii. 4; communication, xy. 33; manifestation, II. Cor. iv. 2 ; aud reconciliation, v. 18, were first introduced either in the Eheims or the Authorized ver sion. The above examples are made up largely of theological terms, and were with a few exceptions adopted from the Vulgate. Instead of adopting Latinisms, the design of the revisers of the English Bible has been from the first to replace such terms by words more easily understood by the people. If, therefore, Coverdale translated the phrase in Isaiah liii. 1: But who giueth credence vnto our preaching ; though this rendering held its place in the Great Bible, of which Cover- dale was the chief reviser, yet the Genevan version reads : Who will beleeve our report ; which is followed by the Author ized version. Again, if Tyndale translated Matt. ix. 18, . . . my ' The Rheims version excepted. 360 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X, doghter is euen now deceased ; the reading was changed in the Authorized version to, is euen now dead. Again, if Tyndale very commonly used the -^ovdi fortuned, as in Luke vi, 6, the Genevan version, 1557, changed it to came to passe ; and was followed by the Authorized version. So the word recompence, of Tyndale, in Luke x, 35, is changed to repay, in the Authorized version. As an ever-present standard, therefore, of pure English, it is almost impossible to estimate aright the silent and continued influence of the English Bible i upon the English language in the past as well as in the pres- jent, since to-day it furnishes as no other book, the result of 'three and a half centuries, or rather five centuries, of growth of the English tongue. Besides our English Bible sustains an intimate relation to English literature as a stimulator of thought, as well as a standard of pure English, A large proportion of books pub lished are occasioned by the presence of the Bible ; a book ancient in its writings, but modern in-its influence. We live in an age in which science claims the leadership, and theology and the Bible are regarded as things of the past. Yet current hterature, outside of that which is professedly religious, boldly unfurls its sails on the broad sea of theology. The platform and the daily press deal continually with religious questions, either as friends or enemies of the Bible. And one reason is, that these- questions lie at the foundation of human destiny and duty, and find their solution only in the Sacred Scrip tures. Not only in the present, but in all the past of English literature, the infiuence of the Bible is easily traced. The arts of painting and music are not more indebted to the Bible for their inspiration than is English literature for its range and expression. This is true of Milton, but is it true of Shakespeare ? He was the poet of nature rather than of the Bible. He drew his inspiration from the pagan spirit of the Elizabethan age rather than the religious spirit of the Holy Scriptures. And yet had not the profound thoughts of the Bible been grafted into the public sentiment and morals of that age, the poetry of Shakespeare would have been impos- 1881.] RELATION TO PROTESTANT RELIGION. 361 sible. Shakespeare's poetry neither dogmatizes nor skeptically doubts concerning the teachings of the Scriptures. Among the prominent errors of the Puritans was their hatred of Shakespeare's poetry. In their ideals they limited not only government but literature. But poetry as an art finds a broad field in nature, and though it is z(«religious, that is, purely natural, yet it is not necessarily irreligious. Shakes peare entered into the bidden depths of this field, and his profound sympathy with nature forms the grand element of his poetry. " This peculiar element of Shakspere's poetry," says Schlegel, " still remains as a characteristic of modern art, and will yet obtain a fuller development when a higher poetry shall uo longer represent the superficial aspects of every day life, but the secret life of the soul, in man as well as iu Na ture."* The greatest charge, if charge must be brought against Shakespeare, is, that he places before us the profound questions of human destiny, and leaves them unsolved, as doubtless nature's interpreter ought to have done. Wycliffe, Tyndale, and Coverdale, and those who followed them as translators or revisers of the English Bible, wrought better than they knew, not only for the English language, but for evangelical religion. The theory of the Eomish Church has been that the Bible should be preached, hence their opposition to the Scriptures in the vernacular of the people ; while the theory and practice of the Protestant Church has been that the Bible should be both read and preached, and hence the multiplication of Vernacular versions. Protestantism and an open Bible go hand in hand. We have already seen how the spirit of true religion was kept alive for a century and a half by the reading of the Manuscript Bible of Wycliffe. Also how this same spirit was fanned into a new fiame by the printed New Testaments of Tyndale, And so with our eye upon the page of history, it is possible to trace the underlying influence of the English Scriptures from that day to this, 1 History of Literature, p. 373. London, 1873. 16 362 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION, [CHAP. X. If during the sixteenth century political and ecclesiastical authority were united under Queen Elizabeth, in seeking to make religion the handmaid of the State, and if there fol lowed closely upon this such a change, that a religious en thusiasm, guided by a false ideal, sought to make the State but the handmaid of religion, as did the Puritans, the occa sion of the but partial success of the former, and the signal failure of the latter attempt, may be found, in part at least, in the fact of a free and open Bible. It was the English Bible in the hands of the people during this period, that permeated society with the purity of Puritanism, and established the Christian sabbath with its civilizing influences, and gave large growth to the spirit of freedom, which withstood the encroach ments of both Church and State. And though from first to last Puritanism abused its birthright, by seeking temporal rather than spiritual authority, and though society experi enced a sad reaction from the excesses of Puritanism, and though the liberal part of the Church suffered sad reverses under the Eomish rule of Laud; yet the open Bible remained, all that was worthy in Puritanism remained, and the under current of spirituality remained.* It is the living waters of this spiritual stream, which fiowed down the centuries, and arose afresh in the times of the Reformation, growing wider aud deeper, now concealing itself and now coming to the surface, as in the eighteenth century in the times of the Wes- leys and Whitfields, that refreshes us in these latter days, and all because the English Bible during these years has been open to the people, 1 " The Puritans gained credit as the King (James I.) and the Bishops lost it, They took more pains in their parishes, than those who adhered to the Bishops, and were often preaching against the vices of the Court ; for which they were sometimes punished, tho' very gently, . . . They begun some particular methods of getting their people to meet privately with them ; And in these meetings they gave great vent to extemporary prayer, v/hich was looked on as a sort of inspiration ; And by these means they grew very popular." — Burnet's Hist, of his Own Time, I., 17. 1734. 1653.] TYPOGRAPHIC ERRORS IN EARLIEST EDITIONS. 363 While special care was taken by the publishers of English Bibles to prevent errors, and they were so careful in reprinting that typographical errors descended from edition to edition,* yet for half a century or more the text of the Authorized version suffered at the hands of the printers. The typograph ical errors of the first edition (1611) were neither few nor unimportant. The following may be taken as examples : Ex. XXXVIII. 11. . , . the hoopes of the pillars; for, hooks. Lev. XVII. 14. . . . Tee shall not eate the blood ; for, Te shall eat. Ezek. VI. 8. . . . that he may haue ; for, ye may have. XXIV. 7. . . . she powred it vpon the ground ; for, poured it not. Matt. VI. 3. . . . let not thy left hand know what thy right doeth ; for, right hand doeth. I. Cor. XFV. 83, , . . the whole church be come together into some place ; for, into one place. The above examples of errors in typography, with the excep tion of the last, were corrected in the edition of 1613 ; and yet the edition of 1613 was singularly fruitful in the same kind of eiTors, of which the following are examples : Lev. VII. 35. For whosoeuer eateth the fast of the beast ; for, the fat of the beast. XIX 10. And thou shalt gleane thy vineyard ; for, thou shalt not. XXVI. 34. Then will I also wake contrary vnto you ; for, walk contrary unto you, Deut. XIX. 5. . . . helme ; for, h,elve. Neh. X. 31. . . . and (that) wee would not leaue ; for, would leave. Job XXIX. 3. When his candle shined vpon my head, and (when) by his light I shined through darknesse ; for, I walked IfhrougK) darkness. I. Cor. rv. 9. . . . as it were approued to death ; for, appointed to death. ' Matt, xxiii. 34, . . . strain at a gnat. Also I. Cor. xii. 88, . . helpes in governments. 364 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. XI. 17. Now in this that I declare (vnto you) I praise you that you come together not for the better, but for the worse ; for, I praise you not. Heb. XII. 1. . . . and let vs runne with patience vnto the race; for, the race that is set before us. On account of such inaccuracies, the earliest were by no means standard editions of the Authorized version. In 1629 a praiseworthy effort was made towards a needful revision of the Authorized version, and many corrections were made ; but in subsequent editions typographical errors were continu ally occurring. In 1 632 an edition of a thousand copies was printed by Barker and Lucas, in which the word not was left out of the seventh commandment. This fact soon became known, the printers were fined, and the whole impression called in.* In 1638 there was a loud call for a corrected edition of the English Bible, which was responded to by Buck and Daniel. Their edition is said to have been put forth by th© king's command, and that several of the most learned men of Cambridge were engaged in its preparation. This was the edition, probably, that Buck and Daniel challenged the public at Cambridge by a bill placed over the door of St, Mary's Church, " that if any scholar could find any literal fault in it, he should have a Bible for his pains." ^ While many correc tions were made by this edition, and consequently it was held in the highest estimation as the "authentique corrected Bible," yet it introduced a notable en-or in Acts vi. 3, . . whom ye, instead of, , . whom we may appoint. This error appeared in several subsequent editions of the Bible, and was not cor rected till about the year 1685, As this change from we to ye favored the Independents, sanctioning the right of the people to appoint their pastors, the charge was made openly against ' The king required that the fine lately imposed for base and corrupt printing of the Bible, " being the sum of three hundred pounds," should be used for purchasing Greek type for the printing of Greek Works for the Royal Library. — Townley's Biblical Literature, IIL, 318, 319. 2 Cotton's Editions of the Bible in English, p. 69, note. Oxford, 1853. 1653.] GROSS ERRORS IN PRINTED BIBLES. 365' Field, the editor of the Pearl Bible (1653), that he received a present of fifteen hundred pounds to corrupt this one text. But the probability is that it was originally a blunder of the printer; for, as Lewis remarks, the first Bible in which it appeared was that of Buck and Daniel, which was revised by the divines of the Church of England, and consequently years before the Pearl Bible was printed.* The printing of Bibles during these years was a matter of com-] petition among publishers. " The secret bibliographical history j of these times," says D'lsraeli, " would show the extraordinary ! state of the press in this new trade of Bibles."' How much a corrupt age had to do with this mode of corrupting the text of the Scriptures, it is impossible to determine ; but the impiety that existed was gross, and it is known to have made use of these corruptions for its base purposes. The notorious Pearl Bible was printed in 1653. The name was derived from its diminutive type, as "it could not derive it from its worth." ^ As an illustration of the gross errors of this edition of the Bible take the following passages as famihar examples : Eom. VI. 13. Neither yield ye your members as instruments of right eousness unto sin. I. Cor. VL 9. Know ye not that the unrighteous shall inherit the King dom of God ? Passages such as these were quoted by libertines as an excuse for the baseness of their hves. * This is a sad commentary on the morality of that period. But these shameful abuses were not left to pass unnoticed. In 1656, the Grand Committee for Eeligion succeeded in suppressing the circulation of thousands of copies of these corrupted Bibles.^ New editions of the Bible continued to follow each other, containing more or less of typographical errors, with here and there a corrected edition. ' History of Eng, Translations, p. 341. s Curiosities of Literature, IV., 350. New Tork, 1864. 3 Ibid, p. 353. * Ibid, p. 358. « Compare Eadie's Mst. of Eng. Bible, II. , 397. 366 THE AUTHORIZED VEESION. [CHAP. X. It is asserted that in 1665 Bill aud Barker got possession of the manuscript copy of King James' Bible ; and having "thus secured themselves from instant detection, they published editions filled with egregious blasphemies and damnable errata."* Thus during the closing years of the seventeenth century errors in the text of printed Bibles originated pos sibly through evil intent, but doubtless for the most part through carelessness. There was such competition in the trade of printing English Bibles, that publishers paid insufficient salaries for correcting proof ; hence incompetent persons were employed. This growing evil at last attracted such public attention that in April, 1724, a royal order was issued, stipu lating among other things, that correctors of the press should be employed and regulated salaries allowed them.' In the way of a corrected Bible, the most successful edition hitherto was that of Dr. Benj. Blayney, published in 1769. This for many years was regarded as the standard edition. Since so many errors in previous editions bad been corrected, he claimed " that the text is reformed to such a standard of purity as is presumed is not to be met with in any other edition hitherto ex tant. " ^ Blayney's Bible, though excellent, compared with pre vious editions, was surpassed by Eyre and Strahan's Bible of 1806. This edition was regarded " as approaching as near as possible to what bibliographers term an immaculate text." * Complaints were made, however, as late as 1830, as to the unsatisfactory state of the text of English Bibles ; but such complaints were based largely on questions about words printed in italics,' In these latter years, therefore, it is a matter of sincere congratula tion that public and private enterprise have vied with each other in printing comparatively a correct text of the Bible, ' Cotton's Editions of the Bible in English, p. 73, note. So far as is known, this MS. is now lost. McClintoch & Strong's Encyclopedia, Art, Authorized Version. ' Lewis' Hist. Eng. Translations, p. 351. 3 Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, II. , 304. < Home's Introduction, IL, Eng. Versions, p. 75. <¦ Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, II. , 306, 307. 1611.J HEBRAIC ELEMENT IN BIBLE ENGLISH. 367 The intrinsic worth of our modern English Bibles con sists in their substantial oneness with the first edition of 1611. And the excellence of that translation consists in the fact that it was the inheritor of the excellencies of a series of Vernacular versions, especially from the time of Tyndale. With the exception of spelling, which has been from time to time modernized, and a few archaic forms, which have been changed, the text of the Authorized version remains the same. And this fact makes our English Bible of to-day invaluable as an English classic. One of the elements of power and beauty of our English Scriptures is the Hebraic element which has been transfused into its language iu the translation. As a matter of fact, the Bible has been trans lated as no other book. " If I translate," says the learned Selden, " a French Book into English, I turn it into Eng lish Phrase, not into French-English, (II fait froid) I say *tis cold, not, it makes cold; but the Bible is rather translated into English words than into English Phrase. The Hebraisms are kept, and the Phrase of that language is kept." * Many original metaphors were too high wrought to be transferred. But so much of Hebrew phraseology has been stamped upon our Bible language that a certain charm in its style is traceable to this fact. To such an extent is this true, that some of the Hebrew idioms have become so incorporated in our English tongue that they are regarded as a part of it: while others remain peculiar to the Bible and tend to give to its phraseology an archaic tinge which is by no means displeasing. For exam ple Vi^e find such phrases as: kingdom and glory, for,glorious kingdom ; bond of perfectness, for, a perfect bond ; mouth and tvisdom,fov, wise utterance; glory of his power, for, glorious power; with desire I have desired, for, I have greatiy desired; lam the way, the truth and the life, ior, I am the true and Hving way. Such phrases as : no good thing will he withhold ; being not weak in the faith ; I will not leave you comfortless, are examples of the negative used for the sake of strong affirma- I Table Talk, p. 106. London, 1860. 368 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. tion. The pecnliar privileges belonging to the first bom among the Jews gave rise to the phrase, first born, as meaning that which was chief or highest of its kind, as : the first born of the poor shall feed; that is, the poorest and the most miserable shall feed. Tlie first born of death shall devour his strength ; that is, his strength shall be devoured by the most cruel death. That he might be the first born among many brethren ; that is, "The Son of God, pre-eminent among those who are by adoption through Him, the sons of God." Again such phrases as: that believe on the name of Christ ; and thou hast a feio ¦names in Sardis; are examples in which the word, name, is used in the sense ot person. In like manner the word, soul, is used for the personal pronoun I, in the following examples : in ivhom my soul is tvell pleased; and my soul shall live because of thee ; my soul shall have no pleasure in him. In the highly figurative language of the Hebrews the edge of the sword was called its mouth ; but the metaphor was too oriental to be trans ferred, so that our translators rendered it edge, in such exam ples as : they shall fall by the edge of the sword; sharper than any two-edged sword ; escaped the edge of the sword. In their lack of adjectives, the Hebrews, when they wished to express the superlative of beauty or power, used the phrases, of God, and, of the Lord. As illustrations we have : even as the garden of the Lord, for, beautiful garden; in II. Chron. xiv, 14, /ear of the Lord, is used for, very great fear ; in Psalm xxix, the voice of the Lord, means, very loud thunder, as : ihe voice of the Lord is upon the wafers ; the voice of ihe Lord is powerful ; the voice of the Lord is full of majesty. The whole Psalm is a subhme description of a thunder-storm. In Psalm xxxvi, 6, the Hebraism, the mountaines of God, is placed iu the margin ; while the text reads: the great mountaines.^ Besides these Hebraisms there are old English idioms which add quaintness, if not beauty and richness to the tone of our Bible language. Prominent among these is that which was introduced by Tyndale in his translation, 1525, in which the ' Compare Home's Introduction, II., P. I., pp. 33-36. London, 1838. 1611.] OBSOLETE WORDS. 369 personal pronoun as a nominative was made to follow the verb.* Among other antiquated forms there are found archa isms, both in word and phrase, which have become obsolete, and more or less obscure the text. Take the following examples : Matt. IX. 3. . . . Son, be of good cheere, thy sinnes be forgiuen thee. The be forgiven is here an old idiom for, are forgiven ; and contains a simple statement of a fact, and not a command. Luke XXI. 9. . . . for these things must first come to passe ; but the end is not by and by. That is, not im mediately. In accounting for this change in meaning. Trench says, "the inveterate procrastination of men has put 'by and by' farther and farther off." Acts II. 33. . . . yee haue taken, and by wicked hands, haue crucified, and slaine. The preposition by, here is used in the sense of through, and the meaning is : not by their own, but through the wicked ham,ds of others, they have crucified and slain. I. Cor. rv. 4. For I know nothing by my selfe, yet am I not hereby justified. The by is here used in the sense of against, and is evidently an old idiomatic use of the word. Some of the less important archaic forms are : his and her for its, as in Gen. i, 11, after his kinde ; Lev, i, 6, . . , , and cut into his pieces ; Mark ix. 50, if the salt haue lost his saltuesse ; I, Cor, xiii, 5, seeketh not her owne. Another common archaism is the use of that for that lohicli, or what, as iu Luke xix, 21, thou takest vp that thou layedst not downe ; John iii, 11, , , , , We speake that we do know, and testifie that we haue seene. Still another form consists in the use of which for who, as in Rom. i. 3, which was made of the seede of Dauid ; according to the flesh. Obsolete words occur in our modern Bibles, though not as frequently as might be supposed. But as they retain their form and uot their meaning, they obscure the text more seriously than Bible readers are generally aware. This is not ' See examples above, p. 131. 370 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [chap, X, strange since a majority of these words, in the sense in which they were used, come to us from the age of Tyndale, and are consequently three and a half centuries old. As examples, we have such words as health, prevent, quick, occupy, instantly, possess, superstitious, approved, allege, damnation, do, to wit, conversation, honest, letteth, nephews, peculiar, as indicated below, together with other words that have changed their meaning since the time of Tyndale : Gen. XLV. 6. . . . in the which there shall neither be earing nor haruest. Earing means ploughing. II. Chron. XXI. 30. . . . and departed without being de sired. This word is used in the sense of re gretted. Ps. LXVII. 8. . . . thy sauing health among all Na tions. This phrase means salvation. CXIX. 147. ... I preuented the dawning of the morning, and cryed. This word retains its derivative signification, and means anticipated or went before. CXXIV. 3. Then they had swallowed vs vp quicke. Quick in the sense of alive, not suddenly. Ezek. XXVII. 16. . . . they occupied in thy faires. This word is used in the sense of traded. Joel III. 14 Multitudes, multitudes in the valley of decision. That is cutting, or as the margin reads : concis- sion, or threshing. Matt. VI. 34. Take therefore no thought for the morrow. Thought in the sense of over anxiety. XIV. 8. . . . Giue mee here John Baptists head in a charger ; that is, a large dish or platter. Mark VI. 30. For Herod feared John, knowing that he was a just man, and au holy, and obserued him. The margin reads : k^t him or saued him. Luke IV. 80. And he closed the booke, and he gaue it againe to the minister. That is, to the keeper of the rolls, not to the teacher of the synagogue. VII. 4. . . . they besought him instantly ; in the sense of urgently. So in Rom. xii. 13, . . . continuing instant in prayer ; that is, urgent or steadfast in prayer. XVIII. 13. . .1 giue tithes of all that I possesse ; 1311.] OBSOLETE WOEDS. 371 in the sense of all that I acquire, which gives to the passage quite a different meaning. Acts II. 33. ... a man approued of God among you ; that is, proved or shown to be, . . . by miracles, wonders, and signes. XVIL 3. Opening and alleadging, that Christ must needes have suffered and risen againe from the dead. Alleadging iu the sense of proving, not simply declaring. 83. . . . Te men of Athens, I perceiue that in all things ye are too superstitious; that is, too religious. XXI. 15. . . . we tooke vp our cartages, aud went vp to Hierusalem. This word means lug gage or baggage. XXVIII. 15. . . . they came to meete vs as farre as Appii forum, and the three Tauernes ; that is, stores or shops, or rather the name of the station on the Appian way. I. Cor. X. 34. . . . but euery man anothers wealth; that is, well-being. XI. 39. . . . eateth and drinketh damnation to himselfe. That ia, judgment to himeelf. "The judgment meant, as is evident from w. 80-33, is not ' damnation,' as rendered in our A. V., a mis-translation, which has done infinite mis chief." ' IL Cor. VIIL 1. Moreouer brethren, wee doe you to wit of the grace of God ; that is, we make you to know. Phil. III. 30. For our conuersation is in heauen. Conversation is here used in the sense of citizenship. Lord Bacon nses the word in this sense in the following sen tence : " A love and desire to sequester a man's selfe, for a higher conversation." In Gal. i. 13, the word conversation is used in the sense of personal conduct, or tenor of life. IV, 8. . . . whatsoeuer things (are) honest. This word is here used in the sense of honorable. The margin reads : venerable. 15. . . . when I departed from Macedonia, no Church communicated with me, as concern ing gluing and receiuing ; that is, shared with me. i ' Alford's New Testament for English Readers, in loco. 372 THE AUTHOEIZED VEESION. [CHAP. X. II. Thess. II. 7. For the mystery of iniquity doth already worke : onely he who now letteth, (will let). Letteth is here used in the sense of hinder eth. So in Rom. i. 13 . . . (but was let hitherto). I. Tim. V. 4. But if any widow haue children or nephewes; that is, grandchildren. Titus II. 14. . . . and purifie vnto himselfe a pecu.- lier people, zealous of good workes. The word peculiar carries with it the idea of purchased. Luther rendered it, a people /or possession ; Al ford reads : a people peculiarly His.^ James I. 87. Pure religion aud vndefiled ... is this, to visit the fatherlesse and widowes in their affiction, (and) to keepe himselfe vnspotted from the- world. The word religion here means the outward manifestation rather than the inward principle of godliness. " How little," says Trench, " ' re ligion ' once meant godliness, how predominantly it was used for the outward service of Qod, is plain from many passages in our Homilies, and from other cotemporary literature." '^ The relation of our New Testament text to modei-n criticism deserves-a passing notice. It is known to the general reader that most valuable manuscripts have been discovered since the revision of 1611. There can be no question as to the impor tance of these manuscripts in the formation of a pure Greek text. We cannot, therefore, place too high an estimate upon the labors of such scholars as Lachmann, Tischendorf, Alford, Tregelles and others, whose conscientious efforts in the study of ancient manuscripts have been, not to criticise the word of God, in the sense of adding to or taking from the text a single word, but to determine what rightly belongs to the original text. In other words, their aim has been, by a dihgent com parison of the oldest manuscripts,* as well as other authorities, * Alford's New Testament for English Readers, in loco. = English Past and Present, p. 143. New Tork, 1855. ' The manuscripts of the Greek New Testament number some fifteen hundred. Those written earlier than the tenth century are in uncial or capital letters; and those written later are in the cursive or running 350-450.] EARLY GREEK MANUSCRIPTS. 373 to reproduce a Greek text as near as possible to the original autograph copies of the several books of the New Testament. This is uo new enterprise on the part of Bibhcal scholars. The Jews exercised a scrupulous care over the very words of hand, a letter resembling the type of ordinary Greek books. Less than a hundred of these manuscripts were written before the year 800. The following five are among the oldest, and consequently in textual criticism are esteemed of the greatest importance : (A.) The Codex Alexandmnds. — To this codex tradition assigns the year 350 as the date ; but probably the true date is nearer 450. It is an uncial manuscript of " the entire Greek Bible with the Epistle of Clement added, and is written in a firm square hand. It was presented by Cyril Lucaris, the patriarch of Alexandria, to Charles I. of England in 1638 ; and is now in the British Museum. The manuscript is on parchment and in quarto form. The New Testament portion was pubUshed iu fac simile by Dr. Woide in 1786. A reprint in Greek type was published by Mr. Cowper in 1860. (B.) The Codex Vaticanijs. — This manuscript is supposed to date back to the year 350, and .is therefore a hundred years older than the Alexandrine Codex. The letters resemble those of the MSS. rolls found at Herculaneuni, and are capitals or uncials without initial letters. Little is known of the early history of this manuscript. It seems to have had - a place in the archives of the Vatican Library from .its first founding, which was about the year 1450. At least it appears in the first catalogue of that collection, which dates from the year 1475. The policy of the papacy has been to deny to Biblical scholars the free use of this manuscript. In 1810 it was carried off by Napoleon to Paris, but was returned again by Wellington after the battle of Waterloo. Im perfect collations of this manuscript were made to meet the demands of Biblical scholars, but were of no critical value until 1868, when an excel lent edition of the New Testament was published by Vercellone and Cozza, by the consent and authority of the pope, and printed with type " cast from the same font that was made for the Codex Sinaiticus, and in the style of Tischendorf's edition of that MS." (C.) The Codex Ephr2Bmt. — This manuscript is what is called a rescript or palimsest — that is, the original writing was defaced and the sermons of Ephraim Syrus written upon it. The manuscript was brought, early in the sixteenth century, from Italy to France by Cathe rine de Medici, as a volume of Ephraim's sermons. In 1650 the discovery was made that the parchment originally contained the text of the Holy Scriptures. After several unsuccessful attempts, Tischendorf in 1841-43 succeeded by the application of chemicals in bringing out the original 374 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION, [CHAP, X, the Old Testament Scriptures, Aud since the middle of the third century something of this same care has been exercised by Christian scholars over both the Old and New Testament, Origen's motive in editing the Hexapla in the third century writing. In 1843 he made an accurate reprint of the original text. Authorities are divided as to its age, but its probable date is A. D. 450. It is preserved in the archives of the Royal Library at Paris. (D.) The Codex Bez.*;. — This manuscript was presented to the Library of Cambridge University by Theodore Beza in 1581. Beza dis covered it at the sack of Lyons in 1563, in the monastery of St. Irenaeus. It contains only the, historical books of the New Testament. It is said to abound in interpolations, especially in the book of Acts. The manu script belongs to the latter part of the fifth, or the beginning of the sixth century. It was reprinted by Dr. Kipling in two volumes in 1793 ; also by Dr. Scrivener in 1864. (n.) The Codex Sinaiticus. — Because of the interest attached to the discovery of this manuscript by Tischendorf, an extended account is here given, abridged from his " Narrative of the Discovery," as trans lated and published by the London Religious Tract Society and repub lished by the American Tract Society, New Tork. Tischendorf says : "It was at the foot of Mount Sinai, in the convent of St. Catherine, that I discovered the pearl of all my researches. In visiting the library of the monastery, in the month of May, 1844, I perceived in the middle of the great hall a large and wide basket full of old parchments What was my surprise to find among this heap of papers a considerable number of sheets of a copy of the Old Testament in Greek, which seemed to me to be one of the most ancient that I had ever seen. The authorities of the convent allowed me to possess myself of a third of these parchments, or about forty-five sheets, all the more readily as they were destined for the fire. But I could not get them to yield up pos session of the remainder. The too lively satisfaction which I had dis played, had aroused their suspicions as to the value of this manuscript." In a second \'isit made by Tischendorf in 1853 he could discover no fur ther traces of the treasure of 1844, excepting " a little fragment which, written over on both sides, contained eleven short lines of the first book of Moses," which convinced him that the manuscript originally con tained the whole of the Old Testament. In January, 1859, he made a third visit to this convent of St. Cathe rine. After spending some days in a comparatively fruitless search, he gave orders on the 4th of February to his Bedouins to hold themselves in readiness to set out for Cairo on the 7th, " when an entirely unexpected 1654-57.] CRITICAL TEXTS OE 0. AND N. TESTAMENTS. 375 was for the sake of a correct text. Jerome's purpose in the latter part of the fourth century in revising the Vulgate, or rather in making a new version from the Hebrew, was to reproduce a cor rect Latin text. The motives of Jerome were at the time called in question, but after ages have learned to appreciate his motives and his wisdom, and now stand ready to do him honor. In latter times (1554-1657) Bryan Wai ton was moved by the same purpose in publishing his Polyglott, which proved the occasion of an ex" circumstance," he says, " carried me at once to the goal of all my desires. On the afternoon of this day, I was taking a walk with the steward of the convent in the neighborhood, and as we returned towards sunset, he begged me to take some refreshment with him in his cell. Scarcely had he entered the room when, resuming our former subject of conversation, he said, ' And I too have read a Septuagint, i. e. a copy of the Greek translation made by the Seventy ' ; and so saying, he took down from the corner of the room a bulky kind of volume wrapped up in a red cloth, and laid it before me. I unrolled the cover, and discovered, to my great surprise, not only those very fragments which, fifteen years before, I had taken out of the basket, but also other parts of the Old Testament, the New Testament complete, and in addition, the Epistle of Barnabas and a part of the Pastor of Hermas." After many unsuccessful attempts during several months, to get possession of this invaluable treasure, he says ; " On the 37th of September, I returned to Cairo. The monks and archbishops then warmly expressed their thanks for my zealous efforts in their cause ; and the following day I received from them, under the form of a loan, the Sinaitic Bible, to carry it to St. Petersburg, and there to have it copied as accurately as possible." However, it was at Leipzig, at the end of three years, that he completed the task of " producing a fac-simile copy of this codex in four folio volumes." The edition was limited to three hundred copies, five of which are in this country. Single copies may be found in the Union Theological Seminary and Astor Libraries, New York ; Congressional Library, Washington ; and Lane Theological Seminary Library, Cincinnati ; and the Library of Yale University. The types were cast for this special work and in imitation of the form of the letters of the manuscript. This printed fac-simile of the Sinaitio manuscript "represents the original, line for line, with the greatest attainable accuracy." The Codex Sinaiticus is probably the oldest of the known manuscripts of the New Testament; or possibly it may be of the same age with the Codex Vaticanus, and date back to the middle of the fourth century. 376 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. tended and bitter controversy. So, likewise, when Mill in 1 707, and Bengel, in 1734, published their Greek texts of the New Tes tament, they were misunderstood and their motives impugned. While, therefore, a false jealousy has existed respecting the labors of critical editors of the Greek text, it is comforting to know that the day of false alarm has passed, since one of the results of textual criticism is the confirming of our faith in the general integrity of the Greek text from which our Eng lish version was taken, and so far our confidence in it as a Vernacular version. At the same time we are led to accept of the Holy Scriptures as being human as well as Divine, They proceed from Deity, and hence are of Divine authority. Too much stress cannot be laid upon this point, and yet they touch humanity. This human side of the Bible consists in the fact that its revelation is to man and through man, involving not only the imperfect medium of the humau mind, but written language, and its transmission by copyists of dif ferent countries and different centuries, involving likewise the unavoidable imperfections of Vernacular versions. Now a comprehensive view of all that is implied in this human side of the Holy Scriptures will welcome with joy every honest effort towards purity of the original text, and consequent cor rectness of Vernacular versions. Especially when we are assured that after the widest comparison of Greek manuscripts, though various readings abound, yet many of these are about as important to the sense of the Greek and Hebrew Scriptures " as the question in English orthography is, whether the word honour shaW be spelled with a m or without it"; while the remainder are so unimportant that " not one doctrine of re ligion is changed, not one precept is taken away, not one important fact is altered by the whole of the various readings collectively taken." " It is difficult," says Tregelles, " to explain the subject of the text of the New Testament in such a manner as not to be misunderstood If, then, it be said, that transcribers have so altered the books of the New Testament that they are wholly different from what they once were, — if it be alleged 1881.] THE IMPOETANCE OF TEXTUAL CRITICISM. 377 that the doctrines laid down in it have been changed by design or by ignorance, — the assertion may be met with a direct nega tive. We may point to the ancient MSS. of different countries in proof that the substantial texture of the books has not been tampered with by any fraud ; we may turn to the ancient ver sions as witnesses of the same facts. And, as to the observed various readings, we may show that they commonly relate to the order of words, to synonymous expressions, and the like. When greater variations, such as the insertion or non-insertion of sentences, are objected, then we must say, ' Well, it is a ques tion to be determined, not by previously formed opinions, but by evidence.' If, then, we find that the words are not found in the oldest MSS., if they are equally excluded from the versions, and if the early writers do not cite them, then of course we must know that this is not a debatable point, but that we possess that certainty which clear lines of distinct evi dence can give. An objector cannot say that he has thus ex truded a doctrine from the New Testament, for there is not a single point of dogmatic teaching which rests merely on any one passage of doubtful authenticity, or such as is infirm as to evidence, " * These are the calm words of one who devoted his life to the cause of textual criticism. But with all due respect for the conscientious and almost herculean labors of eminent scholars in this department of Bible study, and with true gratitude for their unquestionable service to the cause of truth, it seems ungenerous to say that their enthusiasm in the study of ancient manuscripts so swayed their judgments, as to lead them to give undue weight to this one source of evidence ; and yet something of this feeling is springing up among Biblical scholars aud thinking men, I'he following is a brief summary of some of the facts, and second thoughts of scholars, respecting the importance of textual criticism, and the relative authority of the oldest manu scripts : 1 Historic Eddences of the Books of the N. T„ App,, pp. 100, 101. London, 1853. 378 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION, [CHAP. X. (a.) Biblical Archaeology affords no trace of the autographic copies of the New Testament writings of the Apostles. Our earliest manu scripts date back only to about the middle of the fourth century. (b.) There existed imperfections in the Greek text before the most ancient manuscripts, now known, were transcribed. So that after all these earliest manuscripts may represent only a version of the text as it then existed, formed possibly under peculiar circumstances, and limited in circulation as to locality. (c.) Though some of the later manuscripts, on paleographic grounds, may be assigned to a very late period, yet they may have been copied from the most correct manuscripts ofa very early period. Though this may be mere conjecture, yet iu forming an unbiased judg ment it is deserving of consideration. Besides, one of the lead ing principles of textual criticism is that, " The ancient text is often preserved substantially in recent copies. " The importance of the later manuscripts " has been most strangely neglected, and it is but recently that their true claims to authority have been known." (d.) Some of our ancient versions are centuries older than our oldest manuscripts, hence their importance as a source of textual criti cism. (e.) There are strong evidences in favor of doubtful texts deducible from quotations and written testimony of the Church Fathers, that ought not to be overlooked. (f.) Tischendorf, in the seventh edition of his Greek Testament, was less influenced by ancient manuscripts ; though, it is said, in the eighth edition he attached the highest importance to them as authority. (g.) Tischendorf's exaggerated preference for a single manuscript, which he had the good fortune to discover, " betrayed him into an almost childlike infirmity of critical judgment." To illustrate the fascination this Sinaitic manuscript had upon this noble scholar, Eadie says : " It may be added that he excludes the last verse of St. John's Gospel (xxi. 35,) solely because in that manu script it appeared to be written with fresher or darker ink. Other eyes than his could not appreciate the difference ' eoloris discrimen,' and when he showed the page to Tregelles, the English scholar at once exclaimed, ' O yes, I see ; the scribe took a new dip of ink after writing verse 34th.' " ' (h.) Lachmann's materials were imperfect. His text is based on little more than four manuscripts, and is a critical recension rather than an authoritative text. ' History of ths English Bible, II., 364. 350-1881.] Till! IMPORTANCE OF TEXTUAL CRITICISM. 379 (i.) Alford adopted improbable readings, against his former decisions, because favored by the authority of aneient manuscripts. (j.) "Though it seems an ungracious criticism," says Ellicott, "yet it must, in all frankness, be said that the text of Tregelles is not in all respects satisfactory. It is rigid and mechanical, and some times fails to disclose that critical instinct and peculiar scholarly sagacity which is so much needed in the great and responsible • work of constructing a critical text of the Greek Testament." ' (k.) These critically constructed texts often fail to give a correct under standing of the case, since a certain reading is introduced into the text when in the j udgment of the critic another reading has quite as good right to the place and yet no note is made of the fact. (1.) The Textus Receptum is as yet the standard text. This statement is true, though it is made in the face of the fact of real progress made in textual criticism. For out of all these invaluable ma terials, a second textus receptus could not be framed " free from one great disturbing element in all critical labors, individual bias and personal predilections. " (m.) In this same connection Ellicott further suggests, that while the Received Text must remain the standard, there may be depar tures from it in cases " where critical evidence and the consent of the best editors point out the necessity of a change." Such a text would not deserve to be called " strictly critical," but if made " by a body of competent scholars, it would be a critical revision of a very high, and, probably, very popular character." ' (n.) The Textus Receptus, ou account of its substantial accuracy, calls forth our admiration, considering the time in which it was made and the scant materials from which it was formed.' (o.) The most ancient manuscripts iu their various readings are so many independent witnesses, — first, to the fact that the text of the New Testament already had a history ; second, that there was no collusion between the earliest writers ; and third, these manuscripts coming from different countries testify to the wide difEusion of the Gospel. ' Ellicott on Revision of N. T, p. 48. Schaff's ed. New York, 1873. « Ibid, p. 48. ' "The Textus Receptus is the Elzevir text. The text of Erasmus, fourth edition, was closely followed by the third edition of Stephens, 1550 ; which, in turn, was followed, with a few slight alterations, by Beza, 1565 ; and all these by the celebrated Leyden publisher, Elzevir, in his editions of 1634-1633. 380 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. (p.) Various readings of Greek manuscripts of a subordinate kind are numerous, and may be found in every chapter ; but the number of really important doubtful passages is very small, and grows still smaller when passages are taken out concerning which critical opinion is about equally divided. (q.) The critical texts of Lachmann, Tischendorf, and Tregelles, as well as others, were not formed as something 'final, but as an expres sion of their individual judgments from tlie sources before them. At least such are the results. (r.) Notwithstanding the changes in doctrine and practice in the Church during the past fifteen centuries, yet there is no trace in these MSS. of intentional changes by copyists to support any such current practice or opinion. (s.) In regard to a revision of the A. V. in many debatable passages, "prudence would seem to suggest the maintenance of the present version, though the alternative rendering might most properly be placed in the margin." ' The above summary is conservative in its tendency, yet in its disconnection it must not be understood as disparaging the labors of textual critics, nor undervaluing the oldest manu scripts as one of the chief sources of critical evidence. For, as Dr, Tischendorf well remarks, " it would be indeed a mis understanding of the dealing of Providence if after these documents had been preserved through all the dangers of fourteen or fifteen centuries, and delivered safe into our hands, we were not to receive them with thankfulness as most valuable instruments for the elucidation of truth," But the practical question still remains as to the effect of textual criticism in its application to our English Bible, This question is answered most satisfactorily for the general reader by the Critical English New Testament, edited by Bagster and Son, London, 1871, This work gives the results of textual criticism in its application to the English text. Every change that has been proposed on mannscript authority is noted, and the authority cited. First, the critical texts of Lachmann, Tischendorf, Green, Tregelles, and Alford, then ' Ellicott on Revision of H. T., p. 100. Schaff's ed. New York, 1873. 350-1881.] CHANGES PROPOSED BT TEXTUAL CRITICS. 381 manuscripts, and lastly ancient versions, are given in notes at the bottom of the page. In other words, it is simply an English New Testament of the Authorized version, with notes indicating proposed critical changes, with the authorities for the same. There is also a useful work edited by Dr, Tischen dorf, and known as the Tauchnitz edition of the Authorized version of the New Testament, volume 1000. Leipzig, 1869, This is somewhat similar to the above, though in the changes proposed it confines itself to the readings of three most cele brated manuscripts of the Greek text, — namely, the Sinaitic, the Vatican, and the Alexandrine, This work is very satisfac tory, excepting that the foot-notes are too much condensed. In these two volumes the results of textual criticism, in its specific application, are most happily brought within the reach of every English reader.* A diligent perusal of either of these volumes will prove most satisfactory. For though they indicate alterations in words and sentences, yet we see for ourselves that for the most part they are unimportant. And even in cases of proposed important changes, if allowed, the text as a whole would not be seriously injured. For, as above suggested, no important teaching of the Scriptures rests upon any single doubtful pas sage. As an illustration of the changes suggested, take two or three chapters in the Gospel of John, as appears in Bag ster's Critical New Testament. Thirteen changes are indi cated in the first chapter, as follows : JohnL 16. 4m(i of his fulness. . . . Read: Because of his fulness. 26. . . . but there standeth one among you. Omit : but. 37. He it is, who coming after me is preferred before me. Omit: il is, and the clause is preferred before me, and read : He that comes after me, 38. These things were done in Bethabara, Bead : Bethany. ' The Anglo-American Revision of the A. V. of the N. T, which is to appear from the English press. May, 1881. will furnish another im portant answer to this question. 382 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. 39. The next day John seeth Jesus coming nnto him. Omit : John. 39. . . . and abode with him that day ; for it was about the tenth hour. Omit : fdr. 43. And he brought him to Jesus. And when Jesus beheld him. Omit : the And in both clauses. 43. The day following Jesus would go forth. Here Jesus is omitted, but it is added in the next clause, which reads : and Jem» saith unto him. Follow me. 49. Nathanael answered and saith unto him, Eabbi, thou art the Son of God. Omit : and saith unto him. 51. Hereafter ye shall see heaven open. Omit : Hereafter. In chapter second only three changes are proposed, which are follows : II. 17. And his disciples remembered. Omit : And. In the next clause read : . . . will eat me up ; instead of, hath eaten me up. 33. , . . that he had said this unto them. Omit : unto them. In chapter third four changes are indicated, as follows : III. 15. That whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have eternal life. Omit : not perish, but. This is upon the authority of Tischendorf, Green, Alford, and 'Tre gelles, based upon the Sinaitic and Vatican MSS., and several ancient versions. 35. . . . between some of John's disciples and the Jews. Read : a Jew. 33. And what he hath seen and heard. Omit : And. 34. . . . for ffod giveth not. Read: for fi« giveth not. In the fourth chapter nine changes are proposed, as follows : IV. 3. . . . and departed again into Galilee. Omit : again. 16. Jesus saith unto her. Read : He saith unto her. 30. Then they went out of the city. Omit : Then. 36. And he that reapeth receiveth wages. Omit : And. 350-1881.] PROPOSED CHANGES BY TEXTUAL CRITICS. 383 43. . . . that this is indeed the Christ the Saviour of the world. Omit : the Christ. So Lachmann, Tisch endorf, Green, Alford, and Tregelles on the authority of the oldest MSS. and versions. 43. ... he departed thence and went into Galilee. Omit : and went. 46. So Jesus came again. Omit : Jesus. 47. ... he went unto him, and besought him. Omit : him. 50. . . And the man believed. Omit : And. The above examples will suffice to illustrate the general character of the alterations proposed, which are made up almost entirely of omissions of words and phrases, affecting the style rather than the meaning of the English text. It should be noted also that these words and phrases are based upon the Greek of the received text. There are a few critical changes, however, of greater moment, which most unjustly have been made the occasion of casting discredit upon the integrity of our English Scriptures. The following are the chief examples : Matt. VI. 13 For thine is the kingdom, and the power, and the glory, for ever. Amen. This doxology is regarded by many as an interpolation. It must be confessed that the weight of testimony from the oldest manuscripts and the writings of the Church fathers, is against it. But the spiritually-minded Stier says: "For ourselves we rest calmly iu the hope, that one day when all that fs lost is found again, and the patch work of history is a completed whole, it wUl be made clear, how it has come to pass that this doxology early fell away, and was omitted from the manuscripts and the fathers." * The dox ology finds a place in the Peschito version, which is of the second century ; also in other ancient versions. Chrysostom in the fourth century, comments on it without the least intimation that it was of doubtful authority. Finally its genuineness is finding modern ' Words of Jesus, in loco. Vol. L New York. N. D. 384 THE AUTHORIZED VEESION. [CHAP, X. defenders.' Notwithstanding therefore the combined testimony of ancient manuscripts and of the Church fathers, there is room for a reasonable doubt, con sequently there are many who will be slow to adopt the extreme conclusion of critical editors in respect to this passage. Mark XVI. 9-20. In regard to the genuineness of these twelve con cluding verses, critical opinion is about equally divided. The passage is wanting in the Sinaitic and Vatican, but is found in the Alexandrine, Ephraim, and Beza manuscripts ; also in a large number of still later manuscripts. Irenaeus in the second century quotes it. It is found also in ancient versions. Eusebius did not admit the authenticity of this pass age, but "considering how much older and more important the testimony of Irenaeus is than that of Eusebius, we are naturally led to suppose it more likely that our present conclusion of the Gospel was originally found in all manuscripts, but was after wards left out from ecclesiastical prejudices (because the Apostles were reproved in it, etc.), than that it was afterwards added." * John V. 3, 4 . . . waiting for the moving of the water. For an angel went down at a certain season into the pool, and troubled the water r whosoever then first after the troubling of the water stepped in was made whole of whatsoever disease he had. Four ancient MSS. are against this passage. Yet it is favored by TertuUian, whose writings are earlier than the earliest manu scripts. It is found in the Peschito version of the New Testament, which belongs to the second cen tury. Notwithstanding the majority of critical edi tors pronounce it spurious. vn. 53.-VIII. 11. This passage, which relates the case of the woman taken in adultery, is disallowed by Lachmann, Tischendorf, Green, Alford and Tregelles; their judgment being based npon its omission in the Si naitic and Vatican MSS. But Augustine tells us, ' Dr. Scrivener's Supplement to the Authorized Version of N. T. I., 155. ' Introduction to Mark's Gospd. Lange. Third ed., p. 11. New York, 1867. 350-1881.] DEBATABLE PASSAGES. 385 that this passage was omitted from the Gospel of John before his day, lest it should seem to grant a license to sin.' The passage is found in more than three hundred cursive or late MSS., and is defended by such authorities as Bengel, Stier and Lange. The truthfulness of the narrative is not so much doubted by those who oppose it, as its right to a place in John's Gospel. The peculiar features of the passage, such as Jesus writing on the ground, and his words spoken at the time, place it above fabrica tion. In fact " the narrative uot only fills a place of its own," but seems to "meet a want iu the Gospel history." ^ Acts VIII. 37. And PhiUp said. If thou believest mth all thine heart, thou mayest. And he answered and said, I beliece that Jesus Christ is the Son of God. This verse is omitted by the most ancient manuscripts ; also by some of the oldest versions, and consequently from the critical texts of modern editors. And while its insertion may not be defended, yet its omission detracts nothing from the original narrative. Some such liturgical confession was early used by appli cants for baptism ; and by being first transcribed upon the margin, through copyist it may have crept into the text. I. John V. 7, 8. For there are three that bear record in heaven, the Father, the Word, and the Holy Ghost : and these three are one. And there are three that bear witness in earth, the spirit, and the water and the blood : and these three agree in one. The middle clauses of these verses, which read : in heaven in earth, are not found in a single manuscript before the six teenth century. They are wanting also in all the ancient versions. They have no place in the first or the second edition of Erasmus' Greek Testament. But when a great clamor was raised against Erasmus, he promised to insert these clauses if they could be found in a single Greek manuscript. Finally such a manuscript was found,^ and he fulfilled his promise • British Quarterly Review, p. 76. Jan., 1870. ^ hange on John, in loco., New York, 1871. » Codex Montfortianus, or the Dublin MS., which belongs probably to the sixteenth century. 17 386 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X. by inserting them in his next edition. The evidences are all against these clauses, and without doubt they ought to be left out of the text. This is the notable passage of the Three Witnesses, concerning which volumes of controversy have been written and pub lished. ' Besides the above there are other so-called doubtful passages, but these are the most important that have been indiscrimi nately branded as interpolations. Aud while against some of these critical opinion is united, yet iu respect to others it is so equally divided that many Christian scholars are not willing to give them up. For further illustration of the application of textual criticism to the text of the Authorized version, take the following, which are the most important alterations pro posed in the Epistle to the Romans. And even if these were allowed, the sense in a single instance would not be injured. Rom. VIII. 1. . . . who walk not after the flesh but after the Spirit. This clause may be a gloss from verse 4, and if left out would not injure the text. IX. 38. This is a diflncult passage, and possibly the reading, suggested by Tischendorf, as founded upon the three oldest MSS., is an improvement, which is : For the Lord unU perform (his) word upon the earth, finishing (it) and cutting (it) short. XL 6. . . . But if it be of works, then it is no more grace : other'wise work is no more work. Doubt has been cast upon this last clause on account of its omission from most of the oldest manuscripts. It is found, however, in the Vatican MS., which is one of the most ancient ; also in the Syriac, which is the oldest among ancient versions.^ ' One of Prof. Person's conclusions is that this MS. was written about the year 1580, and interpolated in this place for the sake of deceiving Erasmus. See Letters to Archdeacon Travis, by R. Person, p. 117. Lon don, 1790. While Dr. Adam Clarke, though he thought the MS. com paratively modern, yet believed that it was never written with an in tention to deceive. See Clarke's Succession of Sacred Literature, I., 73. London, N. D. , : ^ Compare Alford's Commentary, in loco. Boston and New York, 1878. 1881.] NECESSITT EOR A NEW REVISION. 387 XIIL 9.. . . Thou shalt not bear false witness. This clause is not found in a majority of the oldest authorities, and is consequently rightly omitted by modern textual editors. XIV. 6. . . . and he that regardeth not the day, to the Lord he doth not regard it. This clause is wanting in many of the best authorities ; yet critical opinion is about equally divided in respect to it. Tischendorf varies in his judgment in the different editions of his Greek Testament.' XV. 34. . . . I will come to you. These words are omitted by Lachmann, Green, Alford, and Tregelles, on the authority of the most ancient MSS. and versions.^ The more we become acquainted with the evidences from all sources of sacred criticism, the less apprehensive we are in respect to the general integrity of the Greek text, from which our English version was taken. So, likewise, the greater our familiarity with the results of textual criticism, in its applica^ tion to our Euglish text, the less our anxiety and fear in regard to the integrity of our English Bible. At the same time this familiarity with the results of sacred criticism leads to the con viction of an imperious necessity for a revision of our so called Authorized version. While thousands of the changes sug gested are quite insignificant, yet a pure text in the minutest particulars and a correct rendering are matters not to be lightly esteemed, when the Sacred Scriptures are the subject of consideration. The preceding pages of this chapter were writ ten without the least reference to the subject of a new revision, but simply to set forth facts for the better understanding of the external and internal history of our English Bible. Biit every imperfection brought to light, however small, is au argu ment for such an undertaking. And when we call to mind the fact, that our present English Bible is the grand resultant of successive revisions, and that its chief excellencies were in herited through this channel, all objections to a new revision 1 Lange's Textual Notes, in loco. New York, 1870. ' All the above examples are from Bagster's Critical Eng. N. T. London, 1871 388 THE AUTHORIZED VERSION. [CHAP. X, must vanish. Especially now that more than two and a half centuries have elapsed since it was first issued, a period in volving changes iu language and important progress in sacred criticism. But the efforts that have been made by way of translations or revisions since 1611, and the effort towards a new revision that is now being made by the English and American companies will be treated in the next chapter. CHAPTER XI. REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE A.D. 1611. WHEN King James' Bible first appeared, there was no special demand for it. More than a generation passed before it won its way into public favor. But as soon as it became established there arose a demand for a revised edition. Among the earliest attempts towards such revision was that of Henry Jessey, about the year 1653. He was skilled in the Hebrew, Syriac and Chaldee languages. Moreover he was "a great scripturist." So exact was his knowledge of the Bible that he obtained the name of the "Living Concordance." Mr. Jessey, in connection with Professor Eow who was also a celebrated linguist, proposed " to make a new and more crit ical translation."^ In 1655 Prof. Row published his pro posal, " For y° bettering of y° Inglish translation of y' Bible." He proposed such emendations as unmeet divisions of chap ters and verses, needless transposition of words, and useless additions, such as apocryphal writings, popish plates and pictures, and spurious subscriptions to the Epistles. Also changes were to be made in the text when " the margin is righter than the hne"; when "particles are confounded"; when "a word plurall is translated as singular"; when "the active is rendered as if a passive " ; and when " genders are con founded."^ But these efforts, whether put forth together or separately, never went beyond proposals, or at least never found their way into print. Another early attempt towards a new revision was made in the Long parliament on the llth of January, 1653, when ' Townley's Illustrations of Biblical Literature, IIL, 337. 3 Eadie's History of the Eng. Bible, IL, 333, 333. 390 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL an order was introduced for " a new translation of the Bible out of the original tongues." Ou account of the dissolution of this parliament in the following April nothing was doue. The question was revived again in Cromwell's parliament in 1656, and referred to a committee with instructions to advise with such Biblical scholars as Doctors Walton and Cudworth, and after consultation to offer their opinions therein. The committee carried out their instructions in part, but on account of the dissolution of this parliament in the spring of 1658, no public report was made. They agreed among them selves, however, to call attention to the incorrectness of cer tain printed editions, and to some mistakes in the translation, but at the same time to pronounce the Authorized version as " the best of any translation in the world," With the restoration in 1660 au era of darkness settled down upon England, Fashionable society, weary of Puritan re straints, revelled in its new freedom. Puritans were hated and persecuted. The Bible was discarded, and its principles of morality as well as religion were trampled under foot. While all this was lamentably true of royalty and its abettors, yet back of this glittering pomp and social corruption there remained an undercurrent of Christian principle. The visible result of Puritanism in its reachings after political power, was its mistake, and so far its failure ; so the visible result of the Restoration, iu its political and social corruption, was its mis take and failure. But the grand underlying principles of the one as well as of the other, still live and tell upon the best in terests of all English speaking peoples. The prophets in litera ture and science of that age are the teachers of this age. The era of the Restoration was the era of Newton. It was in 1665 he gave to the world his theory of Fluxions, and in 1687 his " Principia." This was the era of Milton also, who in 1667 published his "Paradise Lost," and in four years afterwards his " Paradise Regained." So likewise the prophets in religion of that age are the teachers of this, since it was the age of Baxter, Barrow and Bunyan. It was an age, notwithstanding 1739.] mace's TRANSLATION OF THE N. T. 391 its corruptions, that could appreciate the " Pilgrim's Proo-ress," suice before the death of its author, in 1688, during a period of some eighteen years, ten editions of the book were sold.i During the latter years of the seventeenth century, notwith standing the unsettled state of pohtics and rehgion. King James' Bible grew in favor with the people. And in the be ginning of the eighteenth century "the tide of glowing panegeric set in"; and not without good reasons, for by its spiritual influences it permeated society with the leaven of the Gospel, and thus withstood the rage of skepticism and immo rality, and by the purity of its language it exerted a happy infiuence in opposition to the tide of (gallicisms which threat ened to overwhelm the English language. On account of the prevailing estimate of the excellencies of King James' ver sion, no efforts were made during these years towards a new translation. But iu a few years afterwards individual attempts were made, which proved so unsuccessful that they only con firmed the judgment of those who regarded King James' Bible almost as a finality. Among these attempts one most notable was made by W. Mace in 1729. It is described by Lewis as a translation of the New Testament by "one or more, who seem to have set themselves down in the Seat of the Scorner, and to make it their Business to render the Authority of this Holy Book doubtful, and the Book it self as contemptible and ridiculous as they could to the English Reader." ^ It was published in two volumes, and contained a Greek text " cor rected from the Authority of the most authentic MSS," The title further states it to be, "a New Version formed agreeably to the Illustrations of the most learned Commenta tors and Critics ; "With Notes and various Readings, and a copious Alphabetical Index." "The vulgar and ludicrous Expressions," says Lewis, "used in this Translation, the ridiculous Notes and Observations of the various Readings of the Original, the boyish and Weak Reflections made on the ' Green's Short Hist, of Eng. People, p. 013. New York, 1877. = History of English Translations of tlie Bible, p. 365. London, 1739. 393 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP, XI, Canon of Scripture, &c,, do all justify the general Character I before gave of this doughty Translation," ^ The following are a few selected specimens taken from those given by Mr, Lewis : Matt. VI. 16. When ye fast, don't put on a dismal air as the Hypo crites do. XII. 34. . . . 'tis the overflowing of the heart that the mouth dischargeth. XX. 31. . . the people reprimanded them to make them hold their tongue, but they bawl'd out the more. Have mercy on us. XXII. 34. . . . the Pharisees hearing that he had dumb-founded the Sadduces. Luke XVII. 37. . . . eating and drinking, marriages and matches was the business. John I. 83. I am, said he, the voice of one crying in the wilder ness, Clear the way of the Lord. I. Cor. VII. 1. If any man thinks it would be a reflection upou his manhood to be a stale batchelor. James II. 3. If you should respectfully say to the suit of flne deaths, Sit you there, that's for quality. John I. 14 We contemplated his Glory, such Glory as the Mono- genes derived from the Father. 16. Of his Plenitude have we all received. VI. 63. It is the action of the mind that vivifies. I. Thess. V. 13. Don't form any brigues against them. 14. Comfort the pusillanimous. James III. 5, 6. The tongue is but a small part of the body, yet how grand are its pretensions ? A spark of fire ! what quantities of timber will it blow into a flame? The tongue is a brand that sets the World in a combustion : it is but one of the numerous organs , of the body, yet it can blast whole assemblies : tipp'd with infernal sulpher, it sets the whole train of life in a blaze. A very different attempt from the above was made by An tony Purver, a quaker, in 1764. His design was to translate the Scriptures for his own denomination. But while it was ' History of English Translations of the Bible, p. 366. London, 1739. 17G4.] PURVER'S TRANSLATION OF THE BIBLE. 393 approved by individuals, it was never adopted by the Church. Further, his design was to make a Hteral translation, free from what he regarded as " obsolete, uncouth, and clownish expres sions " of King James' Bible, And yet his own judgment in the selection of words was by no meaus perfect. He con demned the use of such words as : bereaved, bondmen, beguile, boisterous, damsel, dayspring, marvels, remit, perseverance, and many others. For, moved upon the face of the waters, he renders, hovered a top of the waters. For, Let there be light ; and there ivas light ; he reads. Let there be light which there was accordingly. Purver beheved in an immediate revelation, and in translating difficult passages he is said to have been in the habit of retiring into a room alone to pray for guidance, and to remain there for whole days and nights together. One of the excellencies of his translation rests upon the fact of his diligent study of the original languages. He was a firm be liever in the purity of the Hebrew text ; and claimed not only a high antiquity, but a divine authority for the vowel points. Purver was engaged in this work about thirty years ; since, as early as 1736, he pubhshed a specimen of his translation, and invited the criticism of Biblical scholars. He first thought to publish it in numbers, but in this he was unsuccessful. And failing to find a publisher, at length Dr. Fothergill paid him a thousand pounds for his manuscript, and published it at his own expense.! rpjjg translation contains many improved ren derings, yet it is marked with much less of simplicity than the habits of the man and the character of the denomination to which he belonged would naturally lead us to expect. The following are here inserted as specimens of the transla tion : ^ Gen. XLIII. 1 1. Whereupon Israel their father says to them ; if it be so now, do this : take of the applauded things of the country in your vehicles, and have down a ' Chalmers' Biographical Diet., Art. Purver (Antony). Smith's Bible Diet, Art. Version, Authorized. Also, Cotton's Editions of the Bible. ' From Cotton's Editions of the Bible, pp. 338, 259. 394 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL present to the man ; a little Balsam, and a little Honey, Spice and Myrrh, Nuts and Almonds. 18. Take also double money with you ; even that which was brought back in the mouths of your bags, carry again with you ; perhaps it was a mistake. 13. As likewise take your brother ; and getting ready, re turn to the man. 14. And Qod Almighty give you compassion before him, that he may send with you your other brother, and Benjamin ; and according as I am deprived of my children, I must be. Mark XIV. 1. Now there was the Passover, and unleavened bread, two days after ; and the chief Priests and Scribes sought, how they might take hold of him by de ceit, and kill. 8. However they said, not at the Feast, lest at any time there should be a tumult of the people. 3. And he being in Bethany, in the house of Simon the leper, as he sate down, there came a woman who had an Alabaster-box of ointment, of costly Uquid spikenard ; which box she broke open, and poured tliat on his head. 4 But there were some enraged with themselves, and saying : What is this waste of the ointment made for? 5. Since that could have been sold for above three hun dred pence, and this given to the poor ; thus they grumbled at her. In 1768 appeared a translation ef the New Testament by Edward Harwood. He was a man of no inconsiderable learn ing, and the author of several works. The most important of which were : A View of the Various Editions of the Greek and Roman Classics ; and An Introduction to the New Testament. But we are chiefiy interested in his translation of the New Tes tament "into modern Enghsh," which was published in Lon don with the following title : " A Liberal Translation of the New Testament; Being an attempt to translate the Sacred Writings with the same freedom, spirit, and elegance, with which other English Translations from the Greek Classics have lately been executed. By E. Harwood, London, 1768." 1768.] harwood's translation of the n. t. 395 It was a strange attempt, for which the author deserved the rebuke which he received from his cotemporaries. The follies of the translation are justly characterized by Dean Trench as " not far from blasphemous." i To illustrate something of the " freedom, spirit, and elegance," which he sought to introduce into his translation, take the following examples: Matt. XXI. 33. Attend to the recital of another fable — A gentleman laid out a large plot of ground — Planted it with vines — drew a stony fence round it — established a large apparatus for preparing the juice — and erected a tower for its defence. Mark V. 39. When he came into the room he said to them — Why do you indulge all these excesses of sorrow and mourn ing ? — the young lady is not dead — she is only sunk into a profound sleep. 40. For these words, the mourners could not forbear express ing by their looks, the contemptible opinion they had of him as a prophet. X. 17. Ashe was travelling in the public road towards Jerusalem, a person of distinction advanced up to him, and pros trating himself at his feet said — Good instructor ! condescend to acquaint me, what course of prac tice I must pursue in order to attain future felicity. 18. Jesus said to him — What induces you to call me good — that venerable title can essentially belong only to the supreme God. XII. 33. The clergyman said — You have given him the only right and proper answer. Luke XI. 40. Absurd and preposterous conduct ! Did not the great Being, who made the external, create the internal intellectual powers — and will he not be more solicit ous for the purity of tha mind, than for the showy elegance of the body ? XII. 16. It happenbd that the immense estates of an opulent gentleman one year proved uncommonly fertile, and yielded him an exceeding rich and plentiful crop. 17. His heart exulted when he viewed the waving golden ' For further particulars respecting Harwood, compare Chalmers' Biographical Dictionary, Cotton's Edition of Eng. Bible, and Smith's BMe Dictionary, Art. Version, Authorized. 396 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611, [CHAP, XL harvest .... he said to himself . . . where shall I reposit it. 18. After some time spent in anxious deliberations, he cried out in a sudden transport — I am determined im mediately to pull down my barns — and I will erect grand and magnificent storehouses, where I will amass all this copious and amazing produce of my field. 19. . . .1 will then say to my soul — ^Happy soul! Distinguished is thy felicity! . . . Come in dulge thy soft envied repose — feast on the most delicious viands — ^taste the most exquisite liquors — and traverse a circle of every amusement and joy. XV. 11. A gentleman of splendid family and opulent fortune had two sons. John III. 33. But though this exalted personage freely publishes and solemnly attests those heavenly doctrines. I. Cor. XV. 51. . . . We shall not pay the common debt of nature, but by a soft transition. Such examples as the above show not only the folly of all such attempts, but the wisdom also of those from whom we have received our English Bible. Such examples may well serve likewise as a warning against any future effort to dignify the Holy Scriptures by any such " freedom, spirit, and ele gance " iu style. The revised edition of the Bible by Dr. Benj. Blayney, pub lished in 1769, was made in the interest of a correct English text. Prom the first printing of King James' Bible typo graphical errors crept into the text, Nothwithstanding the care that was exercised, such errors were continually occurring, which in a few instances proved quite serious,^ This work was prepared under the direction of the vice-chancellor and delegates of the Clarendon press of Oxford, and was published in a quarto, also in a folio edition. The work was to be a stan dard edition, aud is still so regarded by the Oxford press, with a few slight modifications. The work of revision included such items as punctuation, words in italics, proper names, headings ' See pages 363-335, above. 1769,] DR. blanet's edition of the bible. 397 of chapters, running titles at the top of the page, chronology, and marginal references. Notwithstanding the care and labor put upon this edition, it was not entirely free from errors, which were discovered to the number of one hundred sixteen, when it was collated for Eyre and Strahan's edition of the Bible in 1806, As an illustration of the character of these errors the following examples will suffice :i Judges XL 7. And Jepthah said unto the children of Gilead ; for : dders of Gilead. L Chron. XXIX. 6. . . . with the rulers oven- the king's works ; for : of the king's works. L Cor. IV. 13. . . . we are made as the filth of the earth; for : of the world. II. Cor. XII. 3, I knew a man iu Chriat about fourteen years ago ; for : above fourteen years ago. I. John I. 4 . . . that our joy may be full ; for : your joy may be full. I. Tim. II. 9. . . . that women adorn themselves in modest apparel with shamefacedness and sobriety ; for : vidth shamefastness and sobriety, which means, " firmly established in honourable shame." But shamefacedness carries with it the idea of dishonorable shame, the very oppo site of shamefastness. This error has descended to our present Bibles. Rev. XVIII. 38. In this verse the following clause is omitted : at aU in thee; and no craftsmen of whatever craft (he be) shall be found any more. In 1778 Bishop Lowth translated the Prophecy of Isaiah, which attracted a good deal of attention at the time. It was an age of revival of the study of the Hebrew language, and Dr. Lowth was foremost among Hebrew scholars. He advo cated the collation of the Hebrew text with ancient manu scripts, and it was upon this work that Dr. Kennicott, urged by his friends, entered. In 1776 Kennicott published the first volume of the Hebrew Bible, with various readings ; and in ' Home's Introduction, IL, 75. Cotton's Editions of the Bible, p. 98. Eadie's Hist. Eng. Bible, IL, 304, 305. McClintock and Strong's Cyclo pedia, Art, Authorized Version, I., 563, 398 revisions and TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL 1780 he put forth the second volume, with a general disserta tion. There was at this time a growing desire for an improved English version based upon a corrected Greek and Hebrew text. The design of Dr. Lowth, in translating the book of Isaiah, was to give a "faithful representation of the words and sense of the prophet, to express the form and fashion of the composition, and to give the English reader some notion of the peculiar turn and cast of the original," The transla tion was made from a corrected text, and on this and other accounts it met with severe criticism at the hands of his ene mies, and an able defense at the hands of his friends. Though as a translation it was " admirably executed," yet in the judg ment of his friends and of Dr, Lowth himself, it was not so well adapted to the general reader as the version contained in King James' Bible,^ In the translation of the Bible by Dr. Alexander Geddes, we have a singular illustration of a Roman Catholic favoring a Vernacular version of the Scriptures. As early as 1780 he published his "Idea of a New Version of the Holy Bible for the use of Euglish Catholics," and in 1785 he issued his prospectus. Dr. Geddes was severe in his criticisms upon the Douay Bible, particularly the annotations, which he denounced as "calculated to support a system not of genuine Catholicity, but of transalpine Popery." If severe npon the Catholic ver sion, he was lenient upon the version of King James' trans lators. He praised its excellencies, many of which he thought traceable back to Tyndale. He was encouraged by Doctors Lowth and Kennicott to enter upon the work of translation. In 1793 the first volume of his translation appeared, profess ing to have been " faithfully translated from corrected texts of the originals, with various readings, explanatory notes, and crit ical remarks," The second volume was published in 1797. But even before its appearance he began to fall under the cen sure of his brethren, and when he put forth his " Critical ' Chalmers' Biographical Dictionary, Articles Lowth and Kennicott. 1818.] CAMPBELL'S FOUR GOSPELS. 399 Remarks on the Hebrew Scriptures," Protestants joined with Catholics in censuring him. One of the complaints against him was that he attempted the translation of the Bible " with a view to destroy its credibility." He gave the greatest offense, however, by the publication of his " Critical Remarks," in which he anticipated much of modern skepticism. He at tacked " the credit of Moses m every part of his character as an historian, a legislator, and a moralist." His translation, which comprised two volumes, extended no further than II. Chronicles.^ The following is a single specimen from Cotton: 2 Qen. XLIII. 11. Their father Israel, at length, said to them, " Since it must then be, do this. Take of the most prized fruits of the land in your vessels ; and carry down, "as a present to the man, some balsam, palm-honey, storax, laudanum, pistaches and almonds. 13. And take double money in your hands, carrying back with you the money, which was returned in the mouth of your sacks : perhaps it was an oversight. 13. Take also your brother, and arise and return to the man. 14. And may God the omnipotent, give you favour before the man ; that he may send back your other brother, with Benjamin ! But, if I be bereaved of my children, bereaved I must be 1 " The Four Gospels of the New Testament, translated by Dr, George Campbell, were published with notes in two volumes, London, 1789. This was followed by other editions, the last of which was pubhshed in 1831. Dr. Campbell stood high among the learned men of Scotland. He was president of Marischal College, Aberdeen. His reputation as a scholar was increased by the publication of his Philosophy of Rhetoric, which appeared in 1776. The translation of the Gospels ' Chalmers' Biographical Diet., Art. Geddes, A. Also Smith's Bible Diet., Art. Version Authorized. IV.. 3438. '^ Editions of the Bible, p. 3K8. Oxford, 1853. 400 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINGE 1611. [CHAP. XL added to his reputation as a Biblical critic. In 1818 this translation was published in connection with Macknight's translation of the Epistles of the New Testament and Dod dridge's translation of the Acts and book of Revelation. But the importance to be attached at this time to Dr. Camp bell's version, as well as Macknight's and Doddridge's trans lations, is that they were chosen by Alexander Campbell, the founder in this country of the denomination called Camp- bellites, or Disciples of Christ, as the basis of his version of the New Testament, or " Sacred Writings," which he published in 1836. The following may serve as an illustration of some of the unfortunate renderings of Dr, George Campbell's trans lation I Matt. V. 1. Jesus seeing so great a confluence repaired to a moun tain. 3. Happy the poor who repine not. Luke XVIIL 5. . . . lest she come perpetually and plagae me. John I. 38. . . . They answered : Rabbi, which sig nifieth Doctor. VIL 6. Jesus answered : my time is not yet come, but any time will suit you. XXI. 5. Jesus said to them : my lads, have ye any victuals. '' Gilbert Wakefield was noted as a classical scholar and theo logical critic. " By the light borrowed from the philology of Greece and Rome," he proposed to interpret the language of the New Testament. He became quite a controversialist, opposing the received opinions of both churchmen and dis senters. He rejected the doctrine of the trinity, and pub lished the first volume of An Enquiry into the Opinions of the Christian Writers of the three firet Centuries concerning the Person of Christ. In the year 1789, Wakefield published a uew translation of those parts of the Authorized version which he thought to have been wrongly translated. In the preface he urged the necessity of a new translation of the New Testament, and expressed his willingness, if encouraged, to 1818.] WAKEFIELD'S NEW TESTAMENT. 401 undertake the same. Subsequently he entered upon the work, which was published in three volumes in 1791. The Unitarians desired to adopt this version, and proposed to pub lish it at their own expense. This he acceded to, but the original contract with his publisher prevented the arrange ment. Whatever may have been his theological bias, Wakefield had a coiTect idea of the style best adapted to a translation of the New Testament. " I cannot admire," he says in his preface, "the prevailing practice of banishing significant and native phrases from our compositions, to make room for a pompous verbosity from the vocabulary of Rome."^ In the work of translation "the chief rule," he says, "which I have pre scribed to myself. . . . was : ' To adopt the received version upon all possible occasions, and never to supersede it unless some low, obsolete, or obscure word, some vulgar idiom or some misrepresentation of the sense, demanded an alteration. Use has so far sanctified, if I may employ the term, our received version, that no translation, I am persuaded, essen tially different from it, can ever be cordially relished, I do not say by the generality, but by readers of an exact taste and polished understandings.'"^ This rule and the judgment upon which it was based were alike excellent; but he himself too often varied from them. Take the following as examples : Matt. IV. 10. Then saith Jesus unto him : Be gone Satan ! . . . and pay religious service to him alone.^ X. 10. . . . for the workman is worthy of his sustenance. XIII. 36-39. . . . Explain us the parable of the weeds in the farm. Then he answered and said unto them : The sower of the good seed is the son of man : the farm is the world : the good seed are the sons of the kingdom, and the weeds are the sons of the evil one : the enemy, who sowed the weeds, ' Wakefield's (Gilbert) Translation of N. T. I., p. vi. London, Second ed., 1795. 2 Ibid, p. iv. ' The italics belong to the translator. 402 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611, [CHAP, XI, is the devil : the harvest is the conclusion of this age : and the reapers are the messengers. XIX. 14 . . Suff'er these little children to come unto me, and hinder them not ; for of those who re semble them, is the kingdom of heaven. XXIII. 13. Alass for you, Scribes and Pharisees ! hypocrites ! for ye devour widows' houses, though ye pray at the same time with a long preamble. 37, 38. 0 ! Jerusalem ! Jerusalem ! who killest the prophets . . . often was I desirous of gathering thy children together, as a bird gathereth her young together under her wings ! but ye refused. XXVI. 85. Then Judas, who delivered him up, answered : Master, is it I ? He saith unto him : It is. Mark VI. 58. For they were not brought to a right understanding of him by the mirade of the loaves ; because their heart was blinded.' John III. 8-14 The breath breathes, in whom it listeth, and thou hear est its voice ; but knowest not whence it cometh and whither it goeth ; so is every one, that is born of the spirit, And, as Moses set on high the serpent in the wilderness, so must the son of man be set on high. But that which marks this translation as its chief charac teristic is its Unitarian tendency, which vrill appear in the following examples : Matt. I. 1. . . . Jesus the Christ, a son of David, a son of Abraham. XIV. 33. . . . Truly thou art a son of God. John I. 1-5. In the beginning was Wisdom, and Wisdom was with God, and Wisdom was God. The same was in the beginning with God. All things were made by it, and without it was nothing made. What was made, had life in it; and this life was the light of men ; and this light shineth in darkness, and the darkness hindered it not. Archbishop Newcome's translation of the New Testament, though printed in 1796, was not published till the year 1800, ' Here also the italics belong to the translator. 1796.] ARCHBISHOP NEWCOME'S TRANSLATION OF N, T, 403 The translation was made from Griesbach's Greek text, with but a few exceptions. The importance to be attached to this version is the fact that it was selected by the Unitarian So ciety i as the basis of their Improved Version. This London Society resolved to adopt Gilbert Wakefield's translation of the New Testament, but failing in this nothing was done till in 1806, when, at the annual meeting, a committee was ap pointed to carry out the purpose of the society in procuring a Unitarian versiou of the New Testament. This committee decided upon the translation of Dr. William Newcome, on account of "its general accuracy, simplicity and fidelity but principally because he professes to have followed the text of Griesbach's edition." This action on the part of the Uni tarians was the occasion of no little annoyance to the friends of the archbishop. Dr. Newcome was an excellent scholar, and well qualified as a Biblical critic ; but his great zeal for a new version, and his great liberality, led him " to give too much encouragement to those who seem to consider every deviation from what the majority hold sacred as an improvement."^ About this time much anxiety was felt by the friends of the Authorized version, from the fact that critical inquiry was being abused by those who favored Unitarianism and Uni versalism. An example of this we have in 1798. The New Testament was translated by Nathaniel Scarlett and others, for the expressed purpose of conforming it to the tenets of the Universalists. The whole plan of the work is curious, in that the historical and all the other parts, as far as practicable, are printed in the form of a dramatic piece, or that of a simple dialogue. The preface contains " observations on some terms used in the translation, such as: Immersion, Restore, Ages, and JEonian." The following are here transcribed as speci mens of the translation and of the form in which it is printed :2 ' ASociety for the Promotion of Eeligious Knowledge, &c. Organized in London in 1791. 2 Home's Intro., IL, App., 347. Introduction, Improved Version of N. T. London, 1819. 2 Taken from a copy in the Boston Athenaeum Library. 404 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL Matt. XV. 31-37. Hist.— Then Jesus going from thence, retired to the coasts of Tyre and Sidon. And behold, a woman of Canaan coming out of these parts, cried, saying to him, Canaanitish Woman.— B.a.ve pity on me, 0 Lord, thou son of David ; my daughter is grievously possessed by a demon : fliis*.— But he answered her not a word. And his dis ciples coming, entreated him, saying. Disciples.— Bismiss her, because she crieth after us. Hist. — But he answering, said, Jesds. — I am not sent, save to the lost sheep of the house of Israel. Hist.— Then she came and fell prostrate before him, saying, Canaanitish Woman. — Lord, help me I Hist. — But he answering, said, Jebus.— It is not fit to take the children's bread, and throw it to the dogs. Hist. — And she said, Canaanitish Wo-nian. — True Lord; yet the dogs eat of the crumbs which fall from their master's table. Hist. — Then Jesus answering said, to her, Jesus.— 0 woman, thy faith is great ! be it to thee according to thy desire. Hist.— AjiA her daughter was healed from that hour. Eev, XXI. 1-6. John. — And 1 saw a new heaven and a new earth: Loud Voice.— Behold, the tabernacle of God is with men John. — And he who sat upon the throne said, Jesus Christ.— Qeho\A, I will make all things new. John. — And he saith to me, Jesus Christ.— VI rite : these sayings are true and credible. John. — And he said to me, Jesus Christ.— IT IS DONE. In 1799 David Macrae (McRay) published at Glasgow his revised "Translation and Interpretation of the Sacred Scrip tures, after the Eastern manner, from concurrent authorities of the critics, interpreters, and commentators, copies and ver- 1799.] MACRAE'S TRANSLATION OF THE BIBLE. 405 sions ; shewing that the inspired writings contain the seeds of the valuable sciences, being the scource whence the ancient philosophers derived them, also most ancient histories and greatest antiquities, and are the most entertaining as well as instructing to both the curious and serious."' After such pretensions in the title we are led to expect something unworthy in the translation. Dr. Eadie describes the author as "a man of some scholarship and of no small vanity and loquacity." In his translation Macrae introduced some improved render ings ; but his manner of introducing explanatory passages in the text is very objectionable. Take the following example as a specimen of his work : Eccles. XIL 1. Eemember thy Creator in the days of youth, before the days of afiliction come, and the years (of old age) approach, when thou shalt say, I have no pleasure in them. 3. Before the sun, and the light, and the moon, and the stars become dark (to thee) and the clouds return after rain, (or one trouble eome upon another). 3. When (the arms) the keepers of the (corporeal) house shall shake and the strong ones (the limbs) be feeble, and (the teeth) the grinders sball cease, as being few (and unfit for use) ; and they that look out of the win dows {the optic nerve of the eyes) become dim ; 4. And the doors be shut in the streets (the lips fall in, the teeth being gone), and the sounding of the grinding (iw eating) be low ; and they shall rise up at the sound of the bird (sleep being diminished and easily broken) ; and all the daughters of music (the accents of the voice, and acuteness of the ear) fail. 5. They shall also be afraid of (ascending) the place which is high, (being weak and breathless; and fears (of stum bling) shall be in the way ; and (gray hairs like) the almond tree's leaves shall flourish ; and the grasshop per shall be a burden, (small matters being trouble some, as being crooked and fretful); and the desire of enjoyment shall fail ; for man goeth to his long home, and the mourners go about the streets. ' From a copy in the Bo.ston Athenaeum Library. 406 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL 6. Before the silver cord {the marrow of the backbone, ¦with its root and branches) be contracted; or the golden vial (the brain's membranes) be cracked ; or the pitcher be broken at the fountain, (the cavities and conveyers of the blood from the liea/rf), or the wheel be broken at the cistern, (the returners of it from the the lungs, liver, head, hands, and feet) ; the double, yea, quad ruple, circulation, (galal and ruts) being repeated, be interrupted and cease, 3 Kings iv. 35). 7. Then shall the dust return to thfe earth as it was ; and the spirit shall return to God who gave it. " The New Testament in an Improved Version, upon the basis of Archbishop Newcome's new translatiou ; with a cor rected text, and notes critical and explanatory," ' was published iu 1808 by the Unitarian Society of London. In the introduc tion the committee set forth their design as being, "to sup ply the English reader with a more correct text of the New Testament than has yet appeared in the Enghsh language, aud to give him an opportunity of comparing it with the text iu common use ; also by divesting the sacred volume of the technical phrases of a systematic theology which has no foun dation in the Scriptures themselves, to render the New Testa ment more generally intelligible, or at least to preclude many scources of error," ^ In other words their object was to con form the teaching of the New Testament, either by the text or by the notes, to support " the Unitarian scheme." They state further in their preface that, " having selected Archbishop Newcome's Translation as their basis, to guard as much as possible against giving their Improved Version a motley appearance ; . . , they assumed it as a principle, that no altera tion should be made in the Primate's Translation but where it appeared to be necessary to the correction of error or inaccuracy iu the text, the language, the construction, or the sense Iu justice to the Archbishop, they have placed the words of his Translation at the bottom of the page wherever ' Improved Version. Title page, fifth edition. London, 1819. ' Ibid. Preface, p. v. 1808.] UNITARIAN VERSION OF NEW TESTAMENT. 407 they have deviated from it in the Improved Version ; . . . . Also, in every instance in which either the Primate's Version or their own differs from the Received Text, they have placed the words of the Received Text at the foot of the page ; and iu all important cases they have cited the authorities by which the variation is supported." ' The way in which this version is made to support Unitarian views is seen in the very first chapter of Matthew, in which the closing paragraph, beginning at the seventeenth verse, together with the whole of the second chapter, is printed in italics, intimating thereby that this portion of Scripture relating to the birth of Christ, is of doubtful authority. And all this in the face of their own acknowledgment that these passages "are indeed to be found in all the manuscripts and versions which are now extant."^ The slender testimony upou which they found their argument for the doubtfulness ofthis account, is that of Epiphanius, and iudirectiy that of Jerome, who says, " that it is wanting in the copies used by the Nazarenes aud Bbionites." They add, further, "that the account of the miraculous conception of Jesus was probably the fiction of some early gentile convert, who hoped, by elevating the dignity of the Founder, to abate the popular prejudice against the sect." ^ Again, in chapter xxviii., in the latter clause of the nineteenth verse, which reads: "baptizing them into the name of the Father, and of the Son and of the holy spirit," is explained in their notes thus : "As a symbolical profession of that holy religion which originated with the Father, was taught by Christ, the son, that is, the servant and messenger of God, and confirmed by the gifts of the holy spirit That the holy spirit is here named in connexion with the Father and the Son, is no proof that the spirit has a distinct personal existence. See Acts xx. 32 ; Eph. vi. 10. Much less can this phraseology be alleged as an argument that the three names ' Improved Version. Preface, p. iv. These extended citations were in the earlier editions, but were omitted in the fifth edition for the sake of reducing the expense of the volume. 2 Ibid, in loco, note. ' Ibid, in loco, note. 408 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL express three divine and equal persons." ^ The following extract from the first chapter of John's Gospel will further show the purpose of this volume : ^ John I. 1. The Word" was in the beginning,'' and the Word was with God," and the Word was a god.'' 3. This Word was in the beginning with God.» 3. All things were done by hipi;' and without him was not any thing done that hath been done. 4. By him was life s: and the life was the light of men. 5. And the light shone in darkness ; and the darkness over spread it not.'' 6. There was a man sent from God,' whose name (was) John. 7. This man came for a testimony, to testify of the Light; so that through him all might believe. 9. That was the true Light, which having come into the world is enhghtening every man.J 10. He was in the world,'' and the world was enlightened by him,' and yet the world knew him not. 11. He came to his own'"; and yet those who were his own received him not. 13. But as many as received him, to them he gave authority to be the chUdren of God," even to them who believe in his name " : 13. Who were born not of blood,P nor of the will of the fiesh, (nor of the will of man,) but of God. 14. And the Word was fiesh,'! and full of kindness and truth he dwelt among us : and we beheld his glory,' the glory as of the only son • who came from the Father.^ The notes on this passage are outspoken, as will be seen from the following selection : (a.) The Word. "Jesus is so called because God revealed himself or his word by him." Newcome (b.) in the beginning. " Or, from the first, i. «., from the commencement of the gospel dispensation, or of the ministry of Christ." ' Improved Version, in loco, ¦note. ' The text and notes which follow are from Ibid, in loco. ' The italics in the text belong to the translator excepting in the first verse. 1808.] UNITARIAN VERSION OF NEW TESTAMENT, 409 (s.) the Word was with God. " He withdrew from the world to commune with God, and to receive divine instructions and qualifications previously to his public ministry." (A.) and the Word was a god. "'was God.' Newcome. Jesus received a commission as a prophet of the Most High, and was invested with extraordinary miraculous powers. But in Jewish phrase ology they were called gods to whom the word of God came. John X. 35. So Moses is declared to be a god to Pharaoh. Exod. vii. 1." (e.) was in the beginning with God. Before he entered upon his ministry he was fully instructed, by intercourse with God, in the nature and extent of his commission. (f.) All things were done by him. " ' All things were made by him, and without him was not any thing made, that was made.' New- come : who explains it of the creation of the visible material world by Christ, as the agent and instrument of God But this is a sense which the word syev^To will not admit. Ttvo/iai occurs upwards of seven hundred times in the New Testament, but never in the sense of create." (g.) By him was life. " ' In him was life.' Newcome. Christ was the revealer of life. . . . Jesus, who is now called the Life, as he was before called the Word, ' was the light of men,' the great instructor of mankind." (h.) the darkness overspread it not "Or, the darkness admitted it not." (i.) a man sent from God. " This illustrates ver. 1, 3. To be sent from God implies that he had been first uith God. " (j.) which coming into the world is enlightening every man. . . . "not every individual, but every one who is willing to hnprove it." (k.) He was in the world. " He appeared in public as the prophet and messenger of God." (1.) and the world was enlightened by him " The common version adopted by Abp. Newcome is, 'the world was made by him,' meaning that ' the visible material world was created by him.' But this, as observed before in the note on ver. 3, is inadmissable, as the word Ejevero never bears that sense. . . . Mr. Cappe translates the words, 'the world was made for him,' understand ing by the world the Jevidsh dispensation. Gal. iv. 3 ; . . . . The reader will judge which of these interpretations is to be pre ferred." (m.) He came to his own, &c. " Mr. Cappe's version is, ' He came into his own country, and his countrymen received him not' " 18 410 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL (n.) gave authority to be tlie children of God. " to participate of spiritual gifts, ... to be partakers of a divine nature." (o.) believe in his name, "received him, believed in him and honoured him as the word of God. A person's name is a Hebraism to express a person himself, Jer. xxxiii. 9 ; Eev. xi. 13 ; Ps. xx. 1. Cappe." (p.) who were born, &c. " to which privileges they were bom, not by natural descent nor by proselytism, . . , but the pure good-will of God. Cappe. The clause, ' nor of the will of man,' is omitted in the text of the Vatican manuscript, and has the appearance of a marginal gloss. Newcome. Griesbach." ' (q.) Or, Nevertheless, the Word was flesh, or, a man. ..." Though tliis first preacher of the gospel was honoured vrith such signal tokens of divine confidence and favour, though he was invested with so high au office, he was nevertheless a morial man. Cappe.". . . . (r.) we beheld his glory. " we were vritnesses to his miracles, his resur rection, the descent of the holy, spirit, &c." (s.) as of the only son. " ' only begotten son,' N. This expression does not refer to any peculiar mode of derivation of existence, but is used to express merely a. higher degree of affection. . . . Mr. Lindsey observes, that ' only begotten ' is most gross and im proper language to be used in English, especially with respect to Deity.'' Dr, John Bellamy's New Translation of the Bible was pub lished in London in 1818-21, under the patronage of the Prince Regent. The work was highly pretentious and un satisfactory, and called forth severe criticisms, which appeared at the time in the Quarterly Review, In defense, a pamphlet was issued, entitled. Reasons for a New Translation, by Sir James B, Burges, in which the author rashly asserted that the Authorized version had been made almost entirely from the Vulgate, and that it was very deficient in scholarship. This controversy was the occasion of two excellent works. One of these was published by J. W. Whittaker in 1819, which was a Historical and Critical Inquiry into the Interpretation of the Hebrew Scriptures; to which were added. Remarks on Mr, Bellamy's Translation, The other work was a Vindication of ¦ There is no note of this omission in Tischendorf's Tauchnitz edition ofN. T. Leipzig, 1869, 1826.] ALEXANDER CAMPBELL'S NEW TESTAMENT. 411 our Authorized Translation and of Preceding English Ver sions, by Rev. H. J. Todd, which also appeared in 1819. The whole tendency of this controversy, and of the many unfor tunate attempts toward new translations, was favorable to the Authorized version. The demerits of Dr, Bellamy's trans lation will appear even from the following specimen : i Gen. II. 31-35. Now Jehovah God caused an inactive state to fall upon the man and he slept ; then he brought one to his side ; whose flesh he had enclosed in her place. Thus Jehovah God built the substance of the other, which he took for the man, even a woman ; and he brought her, to the man. And the man said ; Thus this time, bone after my bone ; also flesh after my flesh ; for this he will call woman ; because she was received by the man. Therefore a man will leave, even his father and his mother ; for he will unite with his wife ; and they shall be, for one flesh. Now they were both of them pru dent ; the man and his wife, for they had not shamed themselves. The Sacred Writings of the Apostles and Evangelists of Jesus Christ, commonly styled the New Testament, were edited by Alexander Campbell, after the translations by Doc tors George Campbell, James Macknight, and Philip Dod dridge, in January, 1826. Alexander Campbell came to this country in 1809. Being dissatisfied with all Christian sects and human creeds, he set about founding a new denomination, known as Campbellites, Disciples, or Christians, with the Bible as their only rule of faith. As he was dissatisfied with all received creeds, so he was with the received version of the Bible upon which they were founded. Hence he determined to put forth a new translation. For this purpose he selected Dr. George Campbell's Version of the Gospels, Macknight's Translation of the Epistles, and Doddridge's Translation of ' Copy in Harvard College Library. Home's Intro., IL, App., 313. Smith's Bible Diet. Art. Version Authorized. IV., 3439. 412 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611, [CHAP, XL the Acts and Revelation, In the preface to the third edition which appeared in 1832, Mr, Campbell says: in the first edition " we attempted little or nothing on our own responsi bility. The emendations substituted, except in a few in stances, were from other translators of note, or from one of the three authors of the work." But for the changes made in the third edition he holds himself responsible, and plumes himself upon his qualifications as a reviser, claiming that: " We stand on the shoulders of giants, and, though of less stature, we can see as far as they ; or like the wren on the back of the eagle, we have as large a horizon as the eagle, which has carried us above the clouds." After this we ought to be prepared for the claim set up in the appendix to the fourth edition, which is : " This edition being the ultimatum of our critical labors, in comparing, reviewing, and reconsider ing our own disquisitions, as well as those of many others, living and dead; exhibits as we humbly conceive, a cor rect and perspicuous translation of the Sacred Writings of the New Institution, in a style so modernized, and yet so simple, exact, and faithful to the original, as to render it more intel ligible than any version in our language." Instead of chap ters and verses, the text is divided into sections and paragraphs ; yet for the sake of reference, the numbering of chapter and of verse of the Authorized version is retained in the margin. As examples of the translation, take single extracts from Sections II. and III. of the Gospel of Matthew, or as the heading reads: The Testimony of Matthew Levi, The Apostle. [^First Published in Judea, A. D. 38.] ' Matt. IIL 1-11. In those days appeared John the Immerser, who pro claimed in the wilderness of Judea, saying, Eeforra, for the Eeign of Heaven approaches. For this is he of whom the Prophet Isaiah speaks in these ' These extracts are from " The Sacred Whitings of the Apostles and Evangelists, . . . Commonly styled thk New Testament. . . Prefaces, Various Emendations, And An Appendix By Alexander Campbell. 4th edition. Cincinnati, 1860." 1833.J DR. NOAH WEBSTER'S REVISION, 413 words. " The voice of one proclaiming in the wil derness, prepare a way for the Lord, make for him a straight passage." But he seeing many Pharisees and Sadducees coming to him to receive immersion, said to them, Offspring of vipers, who has prompted you to flee from the im pending vengeance ? Produce then, the proper fruit of reformation ; and presume not to say within your selves. We have Abraham for our father, for I assure you, that of these stones God can raise children to Abraham. .... I, indeed, immerse you in water, into reformation, but he who comes after me is mightier than I, whose shoes I am not worthy to carry. He will immerse you in the Holy Spirit, and in fire. V, 3-33. Happy the poor who repine not ; for the kingdom of Heaven is theirs ! . Happy they who mourn ; for they shall receive consolation ! You are the salt of the earth. If the salt become insipid, how shall its saltness be restored ? . . . You are the light of the world. A city situate on a mountain must be conspicuous . , . . You have heard that it was said to the ancients, " You shall not commit murder ; for who soever commits murder shall be obnoxious to the judges." But I say to you, whosoever is angry with his brother unjustly, shall be obnoxious to the judges ; whosoever shall call him fool, shall be obnoxious to the council ; but whosoever shall call him miscreant, shall be obnoxious to hell fire. It is a relief to turn from such efforts, as many of the above, to the modest labors of Dr. Noah Webster, whose edition of the Bible, iu the " Common Version with Amendments of the Language," was printed by Durrie and Peck, New Haven, 1833, The design of Dr. Webster in this edition of the Bible, was to correct grammatical inaccuracies; to substitute modern for obsolete words; to change indelicate words and phrases into language less offensive ; to correct a few obvious errors in the translation, and to illustrate a few obscure passages. In performing this task, he says : " I have been careful to avoid 414 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL unnecessary innovations, and to retain the general character •of the style." In his introduction he gives an extended list of the changes introduced, with full explanations for the same. The following are a few selected examples : " Who is substituted for which, when it refers to persons." "Its is substituted for his, when it refers to plants and things without hfe." "To is used for unto. This latter word is not found in the Saxon books, and as it is never used in our present popular language, it is evi dently a modern compound It has been rejected by almost every writer for more than a century." "Why is substituted for ioherefore,'when inquiry is made : aa,why do the vricked live ? Job 31 : 7." "Number for tell, when used in the sense of count. Gen. 15, 5, &c." "Border or limit for coast. In present usage, coast is never used to express the border, frontier, or the extremity of a kingdom, or dis trict of inland territory. Its application is wholly or chiefly to land contiguous to the sea. Its application in the scriptures is, in most cases, to a border of inland territory. ... Its use in most passages of scripture is as improper now, as the coast of Worcester, in Massachusetts, or the coast of Lancaster, in Pennsylvania." " Would God ; would to God. These phrases occur hi several passages in which they are not authorized by the original language, in which the name of the Supreme Being is not used ; but the insertion of them in the version, has given countenance to the practice of intro ducing them into discourses and pubhc speeches, with a levity , that is incompatible with a due veneration for the name of God. In Job 14 . 13, the same Hebrew words are rendered 0 that, the common mode of expressing an ardent wish ; and I have used the same words in other passages. See Ex. 16 : 3 ; Deut. 38 : 67." "God forbid, is a phrase which may be viewed in the same light as the foregoing. It is several times used in the version, and without any authority from the original languages, for the use of the name of God. The Greek phrase thus rendered in the New Testament, signifies only, 'Let it not be' or 'I wish it not to be.' . . . . I have followed Macknight in using for these words, ' By no ¦ Noah Webster's attainments as a lexicographer eminently fitted him for his task, in which he spared no pains in con- 183.3,] DICKINSON'S CORRECTED VERSION OF THE N, T, 415 suiting the original languages and other helps. And " though his labors were not appreciated, yet we are glad to know that the work, so far as undertaken, was well done and that it will ever be a guide in this part of Biblical Revision." The fol lowing collation will further illustrate the character of the changes made by Dr, Webster : Matt. V. 31. Ye have heard that it was said to them of old time ; for : by them of old time. VII. 13. , . . and many there are who go in by it ; for: and many there be which go in thereat. VIIL 34. . . . insomuch that the boat ; for : . . that the ship was covered with the waves. XVI. 13. . . . who do men say ; for : whom do men say that I the Son of man am ? ¦^ XXV. 35. I was hungry, and ye gave me food; for : I was an hun gered, and ye gave me meat. XXVII. 66. So they went, and hamng sealed the stone, made the sepulcher secure ¦with a watch ; for : So they went, and made the sepulchre sure, sealing the stone, and setting a watch. Luke VIL 4. . . . they'oesonghthimearnestly; for: instantly. XV. 37. . . . because he hath received him in health; for : . . safe and sound. XVI. 30. . . . but if one shall go to them from the dead ; for : . . but if one went unto them from the dead, they will repent. XXI. 6. . ' . .in which there shall not be left one stone upon another, that will not be thrown down ; for : . . in the which there shall not be left one stone npon another that shaU not be thrown down. I. Cor. IV. 13. . . . We are made as the filth of the world, the off"scouring of all things to this day ; for : . . we are made as the filth of the world, and are the offscouring of all things mito this day. In this same year, but with very different results, was pub lished a minute revision and professed translation ot the New Testament, by Rodolphus Dickinson, with the following title : "A New and Corrected Version of the New Testament; or, a Minute Revision, and Professed Translation of the Original 416 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XI. Histories, Memoirs, Letters, Prophecies, and Other Produc tions of the Evangelists and Apostles; To which are subjoined a Few, Generally Brief, Critical, Explanatory, and Practical Notes. By Rodolphus Dickinson Boston, . . 1833." The design of Mr. D. seems to have been to translate the Bible into fashionable language, to put it into a modern dress, and thus make it acceptable to those whom he pleases to call " accom plished and refined persons." This not only appears in the translation, but is implied in his own significant questions introduced in the preface, which taken as a whole, is a most remarkable production. In seeking to magnify his own trans lation, he says with an air of triumph : " And when it is con sidered what an antiquated, and in other particulars forbid ding aspect, the inspired writings, in their usual style and conformation, present to the view of many intelhgent, refined and amiable persons, who might be induced to peruse them in a less interrupted and more inviting form, in connexion with the typographical execution here displayed, which, it is pre sumed, will be regarded by' such, as no small improvement; can any valid objection be urged to the prevalent spirit and character of this undertaking ? Why should the inestimable gift of God to man, be proffered in a mode that is unnecessarily repulsive ? Why should the received translation be permitted to perpetuate, to legalize, and almost to sanctify, many and unquestionable defects ? While various other works, and especially those of the most trivial attainment, are diligently adorned with a splendid and sweetly flowing diction, why should the mere, uninteresting identity and paucity of lan guage be so exclusively employed, in rendering the word of God ? Why should the Christian scriptures be divested even of decent ornament ? Why should not an edition of the heavenly institutes be furnished for the reading-room, saloon, and toilet, as well as for the church, school, and nursery ? for the literary and accomplished gentleman, as well as for the plain and unlettered citizen ? Why should the Bible be stationary, amid the progress of refinement and let ters ? Why, in antique fashion, should it remain sohtary. 1833,] DICKINSON'S CORRECTED VERSION OF THE N. T, 417 in the enchanting and illimitable field of modern improve ments? "^ The above is enough and more than enough, unless we suffer this poor man to speak a word in respect to himself and his translation, in which he declares that "It is a source of self-gratulation, that a happy concurrence of events has, for a considerable period, placed me in a situation, which by with drawing me from the contentions on theological topics, that have long distracted so great a portion of our country, has conduced to cherish a dispassionate spirit, and enabled me, in coincidence with my course of reading and reflection, to approach this undertaking, with views propitious to the cause of ingenuousness, truth, integrity, and impartial observation ; and with a mind unperverted by disgusting, sectarian sin gularities I have also disdained the obsequious aud servile predicament, of floating, at random, in the wake of others. The original has been my compass, the commentaries, my explanatory chart; and the principles of the highest authorities, my general guide ; and ever reserving to my self, in its most unshackled exercise, the invaluable privilege of private judgment." ' In his plan he discarded all divisions, either of chapters or verses, and all numberings as well. This translation was severely criticised at the time of its first appearance; and though it was not, as might seem from the preface, an irrev erent undertaking, yet it was deserving of all the severity it provoked, as will appear from the few following specimens. For the sake of reference the chapters and verses are here noted. Matt. I. 1. A Eegistbe of the lineage of Jesus Christ. V. 31, 33. You have heard that it was announced to the ancients. Thou shalt do no murder, and he who commits it, will be amenable to the judges. But I affirm to you, that • Dickinson's Corrected Version of N. T, Preface, pp. xiii., xiv. Boston, 1833. * Ibid, p. XV. 418 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP, XI. every one, mahgnantly incensed with his brother, will be liable to the judges ; and he who shall denounce his brother as a miscreant, wiU be subject to the sanhedrin ; but he who shall denounce him as an abandoned apos tate, wiU be exposed to the gehenna of fire. XIIL 34-36. He proposed to them another parable, saying. The kingdom of heaven may be compared to a field, in which the proprietor had sown good grain ; And when the blade germinated and put forth the ear, then the darnel also appeared. XXV. 14r-31. [My arrival] may, therefore, be illustrated by a man, who intending to take a distant journey, called his own ser vants, and delivered to them his effects And his master said to him. Well-done, good and provident : servant ! yfiu^was faithful in a limited sphere. I will give you a more extensive superintendence ; participate in the happiness of your master. Luke I. 41 . And it happened, that when Elizabeth heard the salutation of Mary, the embryo was joyfully agitated. II. 47. And all who heard him, were in a transport of admiration at his intelligence and replies. IV. 31, 33. . . . And he proceeded to say to them, To day this Scripture is fulfilled in your hearing. And the approbation of all was awarded him ; and they ad mired the elegance of language that flowed from his lips. VIII. 1. And it afterwards occurred, that Jesus travelled through every city and village [of Galilee], proclaiming and elucidating the joyful inteUigence of the kingdom of God. John III. 3-5. He came to Jesus by night, and said to him. Teacher, we know that thou art an instructor emanated from God ; for no one can achieve these miracles which thou per- formest, unless God be with him. Jesus answered and said to him. Indeed, I assure you, that except a man be reproduced, he cannot realize the reign of Qod. Nico- demus says to him. How can a man be produced when he is mature ? Can he again pass into a state of em bryo, and be produced 1 Jesus replied, I most assuredly declare to you, that unless a man be produced of water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter the kingdom of God. The notes are placed at the close of the volume under the 1823-35,] ALEXANDER'S REVISION OF THE PENTATEUCH. 419 head of appendix. The translator, as Mr, D, styles himself, speaks of these notes as "few and generally brief"; and yet, though in much smaller type, they comprise about one-fifth of the whole volume. As notes they are less objectionable than the text, since they are taken almost wholly from Clarke, Doddridge, Macknight, and others. In a list of Bibles which were first printed in 1835,i Mr. Cotton gives a dateless copy of the Pentateuch, which he describes as a volume possessing "a considerable degree of interest, as exhibiting one attempt on the part of individual members of the Society of Friends to obtain an edition of the Bible fully adapted for audible reading in mixed family circles," The title reads : " The Pentateuch, or the five Books of Moses ; principally designed to facilitate the audible or social reading of the Sacred Scriptures; illustrated with notes &c. By William Alexander." The plan adopted to secure this end was as the preface states : " When the difficulty has arisen from a single word or expression, the sense of the original is conveyed iu terms adapted to the present design. But when a whole narrative or passage occurs unsuitable for a mixed audience, the verse or verses containing it will be in Italic characters, placed under the text and quite separated from it." ^ For lack of encouragement this work did not go beyond the Pentateuch. This effort may or may not have originated in a false deli cacy. To the pure all things are pure, and yet there is a true delicacy which ought to be recognized and respected. The examples of really offensive language in the Authorized ver sion may be few, yet they ought to be changed in the interest of good taste at least.^ It is sometimes said that language ' Editions of English Bibles. 1853, p. 134 Mr. C. expresses a doubt as to whether this volume belongs to 1835, 1838, or 1833. In his appen dix he gives the preference to the year 1838. = Ibid, p. 134 ^ The reference here is to such texts in the A. V. as : Gen. xxxiv. 30 ; I. Kings xiv. 10 ; xvi. 11 ; II. Kings ix. 8 ; xviii. 37 ; Isaiah xxxvi. 13. 420 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CKAP.XL conceals as well as reveals. This is eminently tme of the French, but scarcely so of the Anglo-Saxon. The Saxon tongue is honest in its utterances, speaking out even to bald ness the thing it means. Then words degenerate ; abused by the low aud vulgar they become tainted. Besides, the imagina tion of mankind is sadly corrupted, seeing evil where none is intended. Too great care, therefore, cannot be used in select ing words and phrases for translating the Scriptures. And yet the squeamish taste of single individuals, or that of a prudish age, is an unsafe criterion of judgment. It was a youthful Presbyterian minister, who in reading from the pulpit the thir teenth chapter of Luke's Gospel, changed the last clause of the eighth verse, so that it read: " till I shall dig about it,and manure it." Thus far have been noticed a few examples of individual efforts towards a revision of the Authorized version. None of these was undertaken with the design of supplanting the received version, excepting in limited circles. But in 1851 a public attempt was made by the American Bible Society to introduce a corrected edition of the Authorized version, which they printed and continued to circulate for some six years. Though undertaken as a public duty and with the praise worthy desire of having " a standard Bible, free from typo graphical errors, discrepancies, and other blemishes," yet the society had no thought of revising the Authorized version of the Bible. They proposed simply minor corrections, and for this work they supposed, and not without reason, that they possessed the requisite authority. So that as early as 1847, when the superintendent of printing pointed out discrepan cies in editions of the Bibles published in this country ; also in American, compared with English editions: the Board of Managers resolved upon the work of collation for the sake of a standard copy. The corrections to be made were to in clude, orthography, capital letters, words in italics, and punc tuation. After nineteen months of careful labor the sub-com mittee reported, "that in connection with the collator they 1851-58.] AM, BIBLE SOCIETY'S CORRECTED EDITION, 421 had gone through the text of the entire Bible, and that new plates were in the process of preparation iu conformity with the corrected copy," In illustrating the necessity of their labors they reported, "that the number of variations recorded by the collator, solely in the text and punctuation of the six copies compared, falls littie short of twenty-four thousand. Yet of all this great number there is not one which mars the integrity of the text, or affects any doctrine or precept of the Bible," The Octavo Reference Bible, thus corrected, was adopted by the Committee on Versions as the standard copy of the society. In 1851 they began to print and publish Bibles after this revised standard. The work went on quietiy for some six years, when in 1857 a pamphlet was published by an episcopal clergyman of Baltimore, in which, though no specific charges were brought against the Bible Society, yet it reflected severely upon them for their "half-way adventure" towards a new version. The alarm spread from pamphlets to newspapers, and from newspapers to monthly periodicals, finding its way at length into ecclesiastical bodies and auxiliary societies. The first protest came from an auxiliary society in Maryland in 1857, in the form of a " Memorial by the hands of a special deputation strongly urging the Board, if they could not give the positive assurance that no alterations whatever of the kind alleged had been made, at least to recede promptly from any and every such instance." Other auxiliaries sent up similar remonstrances ; and Bible Society agents in different states testified to the growing dissatisfaction in their several fields of labor. In compliance with this wide-spread public sentiment, the Bible Society through its Board of Managers, in February, 1858, revoked this revised standard; not, however, till the question had been freely discussed between the Board and the Committee on Versions, and finally referred to a select com mittee of nine persons for their consideration and final decision. The report of this committee was adopted, which, while it recommended "going back" so far as rectifying unconstitu tional changes were concerned, at the same time allowed 422 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP, XL necessary changes for the sake of "intrinsic correctness," on the ground of the " unanimous consent of Ohristian scholars." This action, which took a middle ground, was accepted, and became the occasion of peace. As an illustration of the changes made, take the following selected examples from the standard edition of 1851 : Eom. IV. 1. What shall we say then that Abraham, our Father, as pertaining' to the flesh hath found. The pointing here difi'ers from former editions by leaving off" the comma after fiesh and connecting it with hath found, and thus giving a very different meaning, which may be understood as, what (of justiflcation) hath Abraham our father found (or gained) through the flesh (or through efforts of his own independent of grace). But as this punctuation involved a radical exegetical change, the society gave it up for the old pointing after _^es^, thus referring to Abraham as their natural father. I. Cor. XVI. 33. If any man love not the Lord Jesus Christ, let him be Anathema. Maran atha. Here the period after Anathema takes the place of the comma in for mer editions. And doubtless this is the correct pointing, since Maran atha is a distinct phrase, signifying the Lord cometh. In this case the society unwisely went hack to the old punctuation. Eev. XIII, 8. And all that dwell upon the earth shall worship him, whose names are not written in the book of life of the Lamb slain, from the foundation of the world. This is another example of the exegetical impor tance of punctuation. The above pointing is in accordance with the society's new standard, and connects the clause,/ro»i the foundation of tlie world, with written, not, slain. But they receded from this by dropping the comma after slain, thus leaving the reader to interpret as he may think best. Rev. rv. 5. . . . and (there were) seven lamps of fire burn ing before the throne, which are the seven spirits of God. This is an example of the use of the small initial letter in printing the word spirit. The rule adopted by the society was, that when the word spirit referred " to the Spirit of God, a divine agent," it must be printed with a capital initial ; but when 1857.] REVISION OF ST. JOHN'S GOSPEL. 423 it referred " to other spiritual beings, or the spirit of man," it must be printed with a small initial letter. But as this rule involved in this case an important exegetical decision, they receded from it, and now print the passage : — which are the seven Spirits of God. Matt. II. 6. And thou Bethlehem, (in) the land of Judah. A correc tion in the spelling of a proper name, which ought to have been retained, instead of the old form Juda, to which they returned. So also they changed the orthography of the words, Sion, Noe, Core, to Zion, Noah, Korah, together with other proper names ; but these corrections were given up. I. Tim. II. 9. . . . Not with braided hair, or gold, or pearls, or costly array. In this change from the obsolete form broidered, the society persevered and now print braided hair. Similar examples to the above might be multiplied, but these are sufficient to show the kind of sacrifices made by the Committee on Versions; sufficient also to occasion a regret that the work could not have been entered upon with such consent as to have insured results acceptable to all concerned, in this country at least. But if this failure in instituting a few corrections, leaves the way open for a revision more thorough and satisfactory, it may be well,^ In 1857 appeared A Critical Revision of the Gospel of St. John, and several of St. Paul's Epistles, by Five Clergymen of the English Church." The revisers disclaimed any pur pose on their part to revise the New Testament for general use, but rather to give an example of the way in which an accept able revision might be made. In this their work commends I Compare the New Englander, Feb., 1859, Art. Revision of Eng, Bible; also for May, 1859, Art. Common Version and Biblical Revision ; Bibli- otheca Saera, Oct., 1868, Art. Exegetical Pu-netaation of the New Tes tament; McClintock and Strong's Cyclopedia, Art. Authorized Version; Statements and Documents, published by the late Committee on Versions, New York, 1858, 424 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611, [CHAP. XI, itself, illustrating as it does that a critical revision is possible without injuring the general character of the Authorized ver sion. In their work the revisers followed the Authorized ver sion, excepting in cases where in their judgment it was inac- curate.i The following is a specimen from the Gospel of John:John XXI. 15-17. So when they had dined, Jesus said to Simon Peter, Simon son of Jonas, lovest thou me more than these ? He saith unto him. Yea, Lord ; thou knowest that I love thee. He saith to him : Feed my lambs. He saith to him the second time, Simon, son of Jonas, lovest thou me ? He saith unto him. Yea, Lord, thou knowest that I love thee. He saith unto him. Keep my sheep. He saith unto him the third time, Simon, son of Jonas, lovest thou me ? . . . . And he said unto him. Lord, thou knowest all things ; thou know est that I love thee. Jesus said unto him. Peed my sheep. The translation of the New Testament by Rev. L. A. Saw yer was published in Boston in 1858. Mr. Sawyer claims for his work that it is a strict and literal rendering of the Greek, and that " it adopts, however, except in the prayers, a thor oughly modern style, and makes freely whatever changes are necessary for this purpose."^ In his claims he manifests a very different spirit from the scholarly modesty of such men as Alford and Ellicott, who were among those mentioned above who revised the Gospel of John and several Epistles of Paul. The Greek text followed by Mr, Sawyer was that of Tischen dorf, published at Leipsic in 1850 ; consequently the variations in many instances are attributable to the text and not to the translator. In the preface, however, Mr. Sawyer notes some cases in which he has not followed Tischendorf's text; as "in omitting Jesus as the proper name of Barabbas, in two ' Introduction to St, John's Gospel, New Englander, Feb., 1859, p. 163. ' Preface, Sawyer's Translation of N, T., p. 1. Boston, 1858. 1858.] SAWYER'S TRANSLATION OF NEW TESTAMENT. 425 instances in Matt. xxv. 4, and occasionally in punctuation, and have retained two important interpolations in the text, duly noted as such, Mark xvii. and John x. 8."^ The first of these makes a separate chapter in his system of dividing the text, with the following heading : An addition by an Un known Writer. The second reference comprises the account of tlie woman taken in adultery, and is introduced by these words in brackets : [An early interpolation but probably true] ; which are in the text. Another peculiarity of this volume is its divisions of chap ters and verses, which ignores entirely the numbering in the Authorized version, and thereby renders comparison of par ticular passages very inconvenient. Mr. Sawyer's attempt toward a modernized style, though open to objections, is by no means so offensive as some other similar efforts. The follow ing examples are given as an illustration of the style of the work. The numbers of chapters and verses, or of paragraphs rather, refer to his own divisions. Matt. III. 1. And in those days came John the Baptist preaching in the wilderness of Judea, saying, Change your minds, for the kingdom of Heaven is at hand. V. 8. . . . A city situated on a mountain cannot be hid. Neither do men light a candle, and put it under a modius [1,916 gallon measure], but on a candle stick, and it shines to all in the house. 3. ... I tell you truly, you shall not go out thence till you have paid the last quadrans [4 mills]. 7. . . . give us to-day our essential bread. XL 4. . . . and while the men slept, his enemy came and sowed poisonous darnel in the midst of the wheat, and went away. But when the stalk grew up and bore fruit, then the poisonous darnel ap peared. XXIIL 3. . • • And they gave him thirty [shekels] of silver [$16.80]. Luke IV, 1. . . • -And he went into all the region about the Jordan, preaching the baptism of a change of mind for the forgiveness of sins. ' Preface, Sawyer's Translation of N. T., p. ix. 426 revisions and translations since 1611. [chap. XL John I. 1. . . . This [Word] was in the beginning with God.' All things existed through him, and without him not one thing existed, which existed. VII. 1. , . . And there was a certain man there who had been sick thirty -eight years. Jesus seeing him lying, and knowing that he had now been sick a long time, said to him. Do you wish to become well ? VIII. 3 Philip answered him. Two hun dred denarii [$38] worth of bread is not sufficient for them, that each may take a little. 4 Then having gone about twenty- flve or thirty stadiums [3 or 3 1-3 miles], they saw Jesus walking on the lake and coming near the ship, and they were afraid. XXII. 4 But Thomas, one of the twelve, called the Twin, was not with them when Jesus came. . . . but he said to them. Unless I see in his hands the impression of the nails, and put my finger in the impression of the nails, and put my hand in his side, I will not believe. The American Bible Union was organized by seceders from the Baptist American and Foreign Bible Society. The object of this organization was " to procure and circulate the most faithful versions of the Sacred Scriptures in all languages throughout the world." Accordingly the Union provided for a revision of the New Testament by a number of scholars working independently of each other. The preliminary work was done between the years 1850 and 1860. This tentative work was printed on a large page, in three columns, with the Greek text in the center, the Common version on the left, and the New revision on the right, for the sake of convenient com parison, and sent forth inviting suggestions and criticisms. In 1866 the second revision of the New Testament was pub lished in New York. The work of revision was extended to the Old Testament also. The revision of the book of Genesis was published in 1868, the Psalms in 1869, and Proverbs in 1871 ; Joshua, Judges and Ruth were issued in 1878, and the prophecy of Isaiah is in process of being stereotyped. In a statement of the Board made in May, 1878, they say that "on the whole Pentateuch exhaustive labor has been bestowed, as. 1850-60.] R];v:si0N by American bible union. 427 indeed upon the whole Sacred Canon, the lack of funds alone holds them back." In printing, the paragraph form is adopted, though for the sake of reference the numbering of chapters and verses of the Authorized version is retained, excepting iu cases where such numbering breaks the connection. Another peculiarity in the printing is that poetical passages are put in the form of poetry. The following important rules were prescribed for the revisers as guides in their work : I. The Greek text, critically edited, with known errors corrected, must be followed. II. The Common English version must be the basis of revision, and only such alterations must be made as the exact meaning of the text and the existing state of the language may require. III. The exact meaning of the inspired text, as that text expressed it to those who understood the original Scriptures at the time they were first written, must be given in corresponding words and phrases, so far as they can be found iu the English language, with the least possible obscurity or indefiniteness.' The names of such Biblical scholars as Doctors Conant, Hackett and Kendrick, connected with the revision, give assurance of great excellence in the work. And yet by the one peculiarity, in the use of immerse, the translation limits itself to the Baptist denomination. As a specimen of the translation take the following examples, some of which are im provements : ^ Matt. III. 1, 3. In those days comes John the Immerser, preaching in the wilderness of Judsea, and saying : Repent, for the kingdom of heaven is at hand. 13, 14. Then Jesus comes from Galilee to the Jordan, to John, to be immersed by him. But John sought to hinder him, saying : I have need to be immersed by thee, and dost thou come to me ? ' Reports and Documents, American Bible Union, 1868, 1878. New Englander, for Feb. 1859, p. 157. Smith's BibU Diet., Art. Version, Authorized. ^ New Testament, American Bible Union, Second Revision, 1873. New York and London. 428 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL V. 3. Happy the poor in spirit; .... 4 Happy they that mourn ; . . . . 13. Rejoice and exult; because great is your reward in heaven. VI. 13. And forgive us our debts, as also we forgave our debtors. 13. And bring ns not into temptation, but deliver us from evil. 32. The lamp of the body is the eye. 35. . . . Is not the life more than food, and the body than raiment ? XI. 33. And thou, Capernaum, that was exalted to heaven, shalt go down to the underworld. XII 17. That it might be fulfilled which was spoken through Isaiah the prophet, saying : 18. Behold my servant, whom I chose. My beloved, in whom my soul is well pleased. I will put my spirit upon him. And he will declare judgment to the Gentiles. 19. He will not strive, nor cry ; Nor will any one hear his voice in the streets. 30. A bruised reed he will not break. And smoking flax he will not quench. Till he send forth judgment unto victory. 31. And in his name will Gentiles hope. Rom. VIII. 1. There is therefore now no condemnation to those who are in Christ Jesus.' I, Cor. XIII. 1. Though I speak with the tongues of men and of angels, and have not love II. Cor. V. 20. We are then ambassadors on behalf of Christ, as though God were beseeching by us ; on behalf of Christ we pray ; Be reconciled to God.' Bev. XXII. 14. Happy are they who wash their robes,' that they may have right to the tree of life, and may enter by the gates into the city. ' The last clause which reads: "who walk not after the flesh, but after the Spirit," is omitted by the authority of Lachmann, Tischendorf, Green, Alford, and Tregelles ; but no intimation of the omission is given in this version. ' A nice distinction is here made by leaving out the you of the A. V. ' This change is in accordance with the critical texts of Lachmann, ' Tischendorf, Green, and Alford ; but no note is made of it. 1870.] REVISION OF THE AUTHORIZED VERSION, 429 By far the most important of recent attempts towards a revision of the Authorized version, is that which is now being made by the combined labors of English and American scholars. This work began to take shape in the year 1870, when the convocation of Canterbury appointed a committee " to report on the desirableness of a revision of the Authorized Versiou of the Old and New Testaments." The report of this committee was made on May 3rd, 1870, and embodied the following resolutions : ^ 1. ' That it is desirable that a revision of the Authorized Version of the ' Holy Scriptures be undertaken. 3. ' That the revision be so conducted as to comprise both marginal ren- * derings and such emendations as it may be found necessary to ' insert in the text of the Authorized Version. 3. 'That in the above resolutions we do not contemplate any new trans- ' lation of the Bible, or any alteration of the language, except ¦when in the judgment of the most competent scholars such ' change is necessary. 4. ' That in such necessary changes, the style of the language employed ' in the existing version be closely followed. 5. ' That it is desirable that Convocation should nominate a body of its ' own members to undertake the work of revision, who shall be ' at liberty to invite the cooperation of any eminent for scholar- ' ship, to whatever nation or religious body they may belong.' These resolutions passed both the Upper and Lower Houses, and a joint committee was appointed " to consider and report to Convocation a scheme of revision on the principles of the above resolutions." At their first meeting. May 25th, 1870, the following resolutions were adopted : ' ' I. That the Committee, appointed by the Convocation of Canterbury at its last Session, separate itself into two Companies, the one for the revision of the Authorized Version of the Old Testament, the other for the revision of the Authorized Version of the New Testament. ' II. That the Company for the revision of the Authorized Version of the Old Testament consist of the Bishops of St. Davids, Llandaff; ' Westcott's ffisf. of the Eng. Bible, p. 340. London, 1873. = Ibid, p. 343. 430 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XI. Ely, Lincoln, and Baih and Wells, and of the following Mem bers from the Lower House, Archdeacon Rose, Canon Selwyn, Dr. Jebb, and Dr. Kay. ' III. That the Company for the revision of the Authorized Version of the New Testament consist of the Bishops of Winchester, Gloucester and Bristol, and Salisbury, and of the following Members from the Lower House, the Prolocutor, the Deans of Canterbury and Westminster, and Canon Blakesley. ' IV. That the first portion of the work to be undertaken by the Old Tes tament Company, be the revision of the Authorized Version of the Pentateuch. ' V. That the first portion of the work to be undertaken by the New Testament Company, be the revision of the Authorized Version of the Synoptical Gospels. ' VI. That the following Scholars and Divines be invited to join the Old Testament Company : De. W. L. Alexandbe, Professor of Theology, Congregational Church Hall, Edinburgh. Mb. T. Chenekt, Professor of Arabic, Oxford. Rev. F. C. Cook, Canon of Exeter. De. a. B. Davidson, Prof, of Hebrew, Free Church College, Edinburgh. Dh. B. Davies. Prof, of Hebrew, Baptist College, Regent Park, London. De. p. Paikbaihn, Principal of the Free Church College, Glasgow. De. F. Field, (Editor of the Septuagint, Origen's Hexapla, &c.) De. Ginsbdeg, (Editor of Canticles, Ecclesiastes, &c.) De. F. W. Gotch, Principal of the Baptist College, Bristol. Rev. B. Haeeison, Archdeacon of Maidstone. Rev. S. Leathes, Professor of Hebrew, King's College, London. Rev. j. McGill, Professor of Oriental Languages, St. Andrews. De. R. Payne Smith, Regius Professor of Divinity, Oxford, (now Dean of Canterbury). Db. j. j. S. Peeownb, Canon of Llandafi; (now Hulsean Professor of Divinity, Cambridge). De. E. H. Pltjmptee, Prof, of the Exegesis of N . T. , King's College, London. De. E. B. Ptjsbt, Regius Professor of Hebrew, Oxford. De. W. Weioht, Professor of Arabic, Cambridge. Me. W. a. Weight, Bursar of Trinity College, Cambridge. ' VII. That the following Scholars and Divines be invited to join the New Testament Company : ' ' The names of this as well as of the preceding company are after Dr. Moulton's list. See Hist, of the Eng. Bible, pp. 317, 318. 1870.] RULES for the ENGLISH COMPANIES. 431 Db. R. C. Tbench, Archbishop of Dublin. Db. j. Angus, President of the Baptist College, Regent Park, London. De. j. Eadie, Professor of Biblical Literature and Exegesis of the United Presbyterian Church, Glasgow. De. p. j. a. Hoet, Fellow of Emmanuel College, Cambridge. Rev. W. G. Humphey, Prebendary of St. Paul's. De. B. H. Kennedy, Canon of Ely, and Regius Professor of Greek, Cam bridge. De. W. Lee, Archdeacon of Dublin, and Lecturer in Divinity. De. j. B. Lightfoot, Professor of Divinity, Cambridge, and Canon of St. Paul's. Db. W. Milligan, Professor of Divinity, Aberdeen. De. W. F. Moulton, Professor of Classics, Wesleyan College, Rich mond. De. j. H. Newman, formerly Rector of the Roman Catholic University, Dublin. De. S. Newth, Principal, New College, London. Db. a Eobbbts, Professor of Humanity, St. Andrews. De. G. Vance Smith, (joint author of a, Revised Translation of the Scriptures). De. R. Scott, Master of Balliol College, Oxford, now Dean of Rochester. Dh. F. H. Scbivenee, (editor of the Cambridge Paragraph Bible, &c.). De. S. p. Teegellbs, (editor of the Greek Testament). De. C. j. Vaughan, Master of the Temple. De. B. F. Westcott, Regius Professor of Divinity, Cambridge. ' VIII. That the General Principles to be followed by both Companies be as follows : 1. To introduce as few alterations as possible into the Text of the Author ized Version consistently with faithfulness. 3. To limit, as far as possible, the expressions of such alterations to the language of the Authorized and earlier Enghsh versions. 3. Each Company to go twice over the portion to be revised, once pro visionally, the second time finally, and on principles of voting as hereinafter is provided. 4. That the Text to be adopted be that for which the evidence is de cidedly preponderating ; and that when the Text so adopted difi'ers from that from which the Authorized Version was made, the alteration be indicated in the margin. 5. To make or retain no change in the Text on the second final revision by each Company, except two-thirds of those present approve the same, but on the first revision to decide by simple majorities. 432 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XI. 6. In cyeiy case of proposed alteration that may have given rise to dis cussion, to defer the voting thereupon till the next Meeting, when soever the same shall be required by one-third of those present at the Meeting, such intended vote to be announced in the notice for the next Meeting. 7. To revise the headings of chapters, pages, paragraphs, italics, and punctuation. 8. To refer, on the part of each Company, when considered desirable, to Divines, Scholars, and Literary Men, whether at home or abroad, for their opinions. IX. That the work of each Company be communicated to the other as it is completed, in order that there may be as little deviation from uniformity in language as possible. ' X. That the Special or Bye-rules for each Company be as follovra 1. To make all corrections in writing previous to the Meeting. 3. To place all the corrections due to textual considerations on the left hand margin, and all other corrections on the right hand mar gin. 3. To transmit to the Chairman, in case of being unable to attend, the corrections proposed in the portion agreed upon for consider ation." ' Among those mentioned above who were invited to take part in the work. Canon Cook, Dr. Newman, and Dr. Pusey declined the invitation. Among the changes that have taken place in the Old Testanient company. Bishop Thirlwall, Arch deacon Eose, Canon Selwyn, Prof. McGill, Prof, Fairbairn, Prof Davies, and Dr. Weir have been removed by death; while the Bishop of Lincoln, Prof Plumptre, and Canon Jebb offered their resignations, which were accepted. The follow ing new members have been added: Mr. R. N. Bensly, Rev. J. Birrell, Dr. P. Chance, Rev. T. K. Cheyne, Mr. S. R. Dri ver, Dr. 0. Douglas, Rev. C. J. Elliott, Rev. J. D. Geden, Rev. J. R. Lumby, Rev. A. H. Sayce, Rev. W. R. Smith, and Dr. D, H, Weir, ¦ Westcott's History of Eng. Bible, pp. 342-345. London, 1873. 1870.] AMERICAN 0. AND N. TESTAMENT COMMITTEES. 433 In the New Testament company the following changes have taken place : Dr. Alford and Prof McGill died in 1871 ; Dr. S. P. Tregelles, who on account of ill health was not able to take his seat, died in 1875 ; Dr. John Eadie was also removed by death. To this company were added Dr. Merivale, who resigned in 1871, Dr. David Brown, Dr. C. Wordsworth, and Rev. E. Palmer.i The scholarship of the above companies is evident from such names as Alexander, Brown, Eadie, Ellicott, Fairbairn, Lightfoot, Milligan, Stanley, Scrivener, Tregelles, and Trench. Their cathohcity cannot be called in question, since they are representative men " not only from all schools and parties of the Church of England, but from Presbyterians, Independents, Baptists, Wesleyans, and other Christian denominations." The New Testament committee entered upon their work June 22nd, 1870, inthe Jerusalem Chamber, Westminster Abbey. A few days after this the Old Testament committee held its first meeting. Soon after the work began arrangements were agreed upon with the Universities of Oxford and Cambridge, by which the two University Presses would, in return for the copyright of the revised edition of the Bible, defray the cost of printing and other necessary expenses of the two com panies. The revisers, however, were to give their time and labor free for the sake of the enterprise.^ In carrying out the original provision for inviting co-opera tion from abroad. Dr. J. Angus came to New York iu August, 1870, with letters from Bishop Ellicott, chairman of the New Testament company, authorizing him to arrange for the forma tion of American companies to co-operate in the work of revision with the British companies. Dr. Angus conferred with Dr. Philip Schaff, of New York City, and the result was ' For the above changes compare Dr. Moulton's Hist. Eng. Bible, pp. 330, 331. London, 1878. "¦ During the progress of these negotiations it was decided to include the Apocrypha in the work of revision, each company agreeing to bear its share in the work. 434 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP, XI, the appointment of two American, to act in concert with the two British companies. The following hst comprises the American Old Testament company as originally formed : Peof. T. j. Conant, D.D., Baptist, Brooklyn, N. T. " Geoegb E. Day, D.D., Congregationalist, New Haven, Conn. " John Db Witt, D.D., Reformed, New Brunswick, N. J. Wm. Henet Gbebn, D.D., Presbyterian, Princeton, N. J. Geoegb E. Haeb, D.D., Episcopalian, Philadelphia, Pa. Chaeles P. Keauth, D.D., Lutheran, Philadelphia, Pa. " Joseph Packaed, D.D., Episcopahan, Fairfax, Va. " Calvin E. Stowe, D.D., Congregationalist, Cambridge, Mass. " Jambs Steong, D.D., Methodist, Madison, N. J. " C. V. A. Van Dyck, M.D., Missionary, Beyroot, Syria. " Taylee Lewis, LL.D., Reformed. Schenectady, N. T. The followhig comprises the American New Testament company as originally formed : Bishop Alpbbd Lee, D.D., Episcopalian, Wilmington, Delaware. Pbop. Ezea Abbott, D.D., LL.D., Unitarian, Cambridge, Mass. Rev. G. R. Ceooks, D.D., Methodist, New York City. Peof. H. B. Hackett, D.D., LL.D., Baptist, Rochester, N. T. " Chables Hodge, D.D., LL.D., Presbyterian, Princeton, N. J. " A. C. Kendbick, D.D., Baptist, Rochester, N. Y. " Matthew B. Riddle, D.D., Reformed, Hartford, Conn. " Henky B. Smith, D.D., LL.D., Presbyterian, New York City. " J. Heney Thaybe, D.D., Congregationalist, Andover, Mass. W. F. Waeben, D.D., Methodist, Boston, Mass. Rev. E. a. Washburn, D.D., Episcopalian, New York City. " Theo. D. Woolsey, D.D., LL.D., Congregationalist, New Haven, Conn. Pbop. Philip Schapp, D.D., Presbyterian, New York City. The first meeting of the American committee was held on the seventh day of December, 1871, in the study of Dr. SchaS, No. 40 Bible House, New York, for the purpose of organiza tion and the adoption of a constitution. Prof. Henry B. Smith, D.D., was chosen chairman, and Prof. George E. „^. -*w,^ "^ :i<^ ' r FfflLir scMrr. h. ^c„ lLo ^. 1881.] CONSTITUTION ADOPTED. 435 Day, D. D., secretary. The following constitution was adopted : ^ ' I. The American Committee, invited by the British Committee en gaged iu the revision of the Authorized English Version of the Holy Scriptures to co-operate with them, shall be com posed of Biblical scholars and divines in the United States. ' II. This Committee shall have power to elect its officers, to add to its number, and to fill its own vacancies. ' III. The officers shall consist of a President, a Corresponding Sec retary, and a Treasurer. The President shall conduct the official correspondence with the British revisers. The Sec retary shall conduct the home correspondence. 'IV. New members of the Committee, and corresponding members, must be nominated at a previous meeting, and elected unani mously by ballot. ' V. The American Committee shall co-operate with the British Com panies on the basis of the principles and rules of revision adopted by the British Committee. ' VI. The American Committee shall consist of two companies, the one for the revision of the Authorized Version of the Old Testa ment, the other for the revision of the Authorized Version of the New Testament. ' VII. Each Company shall elect its own Chairman and Recording Sec retary. ' VIII. The British Companies will submit to the American Companies, from time to time, such portions of their work as have passed the first revision, and the American Companies will transmit their criticisms and suggestions to the British Companies be fore the second revision. ' IX. A joint meeting of the American and British Companies shall be held, if possible, in London, before final action. ' X. The American Committee to pay their own expenses.' At this meeting a resolution was read and approved as adopted by the British committee, to the effect that copies of the first revision granted to the American companies should ' This constitution, also the above lists of the American Old and New Testament committees, were transcribed from Dr. Schaff's Introduction to Revision of English Version of N. T., pp. xvi.-xviii. New York, 1873. 436 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XI. be held in confidence and in no way made public, since in the second revision important changes might be made. This grant accordingly was made July 17, 1872, and in due time copies of the revised version of the first three Gospels were received ; also copies of the first revision of the books of Genesis, Exodus and Leviticus were received, and the books distributed among the members respectively of the two com panies. ^ From the first the work has gone on with the utmost harmony between the English and American companies. Since the original formation of the American Old Testament company, the following changes have taken place : Professors Charles M. Mead, D.D. (Congregationalist), Andover, Mass., and Charles A. Aiken, D.D. (Presbyterian), Princeton, N. J., were elected as members of the committee Dec. 27, 1872. Prof Howard Osgood, D.D. (Baptist), Rochester, N. Y., and Rev. Talbot W. Chambers, D.D. (Presbyterian), were elected as members, respectively, iu March and December, 1874. Tay ler Lewis, LL.D., Professor Emeritus of Greek and He brew, Union College, Schenectady, N. Y., died in 1877, In the American New Testament company the following changes have taken place : Prof James Hadley, LL,D, (Con gregationalist), New Haven, Conn., was chosen a member of this company in October, 1872 ; he died on the fourteenth of November of the same year. Prof, Henry B. Smith, D.D., LL.D,, attended but one session of the committee, being com pelled to resign on account of ill health. He died in 1877, Prof H, B. Hackett, D. D., LL, D., died in 1876, Prof Charies Hodge, D.D., LL,D., died in 1878. Rev, G. R. Crooks, D.D., and Prof W, F, Warren, resigned as they found it impracti cable for them to attend. There were added to this company by election Prof, Charles Short, LL.D, (Episcopal), New York City, Oct, 6, 1872; Rev. Howard Crosby, D.D., LL.D. (Pres byterian), New York City, and Prof Timothy Dwight, D.D. (Congregationalist), New Haven, Conn., Dec. 22, 1872; Prof Thomas Chase, LL.D. (Friend), Haverford College, Pa., and ' Schaff's Introduction to Revision of Eng. Version of N. T., p. xix. 1831.J RECEPTION OF THE NEW REVISION. 437 Rev. J. K. Burr, D.D. (Methodist), Hoboken, N. J., respec tively in March and May, 1873.1 The New Testament joint companies have completed their work, and the Revised New Testament will be published in a few weeks. The following information respecting the pro gress made by the Old Testament companies is from a private letter received from Prof. George E. Day., D. D., of New Haven, Conn., dated January 20, 1881 : " The whole of the 0. T. has been gone over once by both the English and American Companies, except Ecclesiastes, Proverbs, and Solo mon's Song, but the revision of these three books and the final revision of the others, will probably occupy from two to four years." « This new revision is remarkable in the history of revisions of the English Bible, in that it is international and inter denominational. Established on so broad a basis, the move ment promises the best results. Then the times are most favorable. The blinding enthusiasm of recent discoveries iu the field of Exegesis has passed away. Professed critics and Biblical scholars have had time to weigh and estimate aright the invaluable helps which have been brought to light. Be sides, in the past history of the English language, probably there never was a time when the Saxon element of our lan guage was so highly appreciated by scholars. In addition to this we have the pledge of the revisers that the simple lan guage of our English Bible shall not be meddled with ; that as few alterations in phraseology as possible shall be made, and even in these cases the style of the Authorized version shall be retained. And yet it is fruitless to speculate in regard to the reception, or rather final adoption, of this Anglo-American Revision, Certainly no new version or revision ever created such widespread expectation. Doubtless it will find a place on study tables and private book shelves, and as a critical 1 The lists of the American companies above, with the changes that have taken place since their appointment, are here given as revised by Prof. Georje E. Day, D.D., Secretary of American Revision Committee. 438 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL work will attract intelligent readers of the Scriptures, but the unanswered question is. Will the people adopt it in the Church aud in the family as their Enghsh Bible ? Since the above was written, and after unexpected delay, the long looked-for Revised New Testament was published simul taneously in England and in this country, May 20, 1881. Upon its first issue the number of copies sold was something new in the book trade. The New York agent for the Oxford University press is reported as saying, before the book was issued, "that he had good reason to expect orders for 200,000 copies of the Oxford edition before the date of publication (May 17), notwithstanding the fact that half a dozen cheap reprints have already been announced all over the country." If reports in our public prints are true, his estimate fell short a hundred thousand, since upon the first issue it is said that 300,000 copies were sent out from New York city. Certainly no such revival of Bible interest, not only in the sale, but in the perusal of the Scriptures, which is just now extending throughout the whole counti-y, has ever before been known. The columns of the secular as well as the religious press, are burdened with articles on the New revision. The tone of these articles is for the most part conciliatory, though in some instances there is noticeable a quiet opposition. The first im pression upon a cursory examination of the New revision is unfavorable. Alterations simply as alterations, at first sight offend. It would seem that for a long time to come general approval must be withheld. The middle-aged say : " I am too old to give up my old familiar Bible." Those who are younger and who have looked with some interest for the appearance of the Revised version, are not a little '¦' vexed over some of the improvements upon, the Authorized version." Pastors of churches are quietly examining the work before they speak. Students of the Bible will find upon every page changes for the better, and will often wonder why more changes were not made. But its final adoption must depend upon the people. The wisest friends of the New revision are not anxious for its 1881.] PREFACE OF THE NEW REVISION. 439 hasty adoption. They remember that our present Bible was about forty years in gaining a permanent place in the hearts of the people. Yet in this case history will hardly repeat itself. What is done in this age must be done quickly. Independent of the real worth of this revision, a serious objection to adopting it in Church and family worship is, that changes iu words and phrases attract universal attention, and thus awaken a critical spirit, which is a hindrance to devotion. Continued use, however, sooner or later must obviate such objection. The title-page reads : " The New Testament of Our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ Translated out of the Greek : Being the Version set forth A. D. 1611 compared with the most Ancient Authorities and Revised A. D. 1881. Printed for the Universities of Oxford and Cambridge Cambridge at the University Press 1881." A card on the opposite page reads: "This edition is authorised by the American Com mittee of Revision "; and is signed by Philip Schaff, President, and George E. Day, Secretary. New York, May 20, 1881. There are here also the names of the English printers ; also the imprint of J. B. Lippincott & Co., 715 and 717 Market street, Philadelphia. The preface comprises a modest but clear statement of the work which the revisers set before themselves and their man ner of doing it. There is no display of learning, but there is manifested a conscious ability and an honest purpose to dis charge the responsibility imposed upon them. The preface is divided into several general heads : I. A short account is given of the Authorized version. II. The origin and progress of the Revised version. Under this head they say : "The whole time devoted to the work has been ten years and a half. The First Revision occupied about six years ; the Second, about two years and a half. The remaining time has been spent in the consider ation of the suggestions from America on the Second Revision, and of many details and reserved questions arising out of our own labours." III. A brief account of the particulars of the 440 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP, XL present revision. Under this head, in speaking of the Greek text to be chosen, that they were by the instruction of the fourth rule, "to follow the authority of documentary evidence without deference to any printed text of modern times Different schools of criticism have been represented among us, and have together contributed to the final result." In speak ing of the translation, they say that by the first rule, "our task was revision, not re-translation," and yet they confess that they found themselves " constrained by faithfulness to intro duce changes which might not at first sight appear to be included under the rule," By the second rule "alterations to be introduced should be expressed as far as possible, in the language of the Authorised Version or of the Versions that preceded it," They claim to have adhered to this rule, ex cepting in a few cases where they failed "to find any word in the older stratum of our language that appeared to convey the precise meaning of the original. There, and there only, we have used words of a later date ; but not without having first assured ourselves that they are to be found in the writings of the best authors of the period to which they belong." In regard to the marginal notes they say : " These Notes fall into four main groups : first, notes specifying such differences of reading as were judged to be of sufficient importance to re quire a particular notice ; secondly, notes indicating the exact rendering of words to which, for the sake of English idiom, we were obliged to give a less exact rendering in the text ; thirdly, notes, very few in number, affording some explana tion which the original appeared to require; fourthly, alter native renderings in difficult or debateable passages." Under the head of supplementary matters, they enumerate: first, " the use of Italics," which they sought to diminish rather than increase; second, the arrangement of the "Sacred Text in Paragraphs." The facilities for reference afforded by chap ter and verse divisions, they have retained " by placing the nu merals on the inside margin of each page"; third, "the mode of printing quotations from the Poetical Books of the Old Testa ment." Their design in this was not only to direct the " atten- 1881.] GREEK TEXT TO BE ADOPTED. 441 tion to the poetic character of the quotation, but also to make its force and pertinence more fully felt "; fourth, " the punc tuation," in which they declare that their "practice has been to maintain what has sometimes been called the heavier sys tem of stopping, or, in other words, that system which, espe cially for convenience in reading aloud, suggests such pauses as will best ensure a clear and intelligent setting forth of the true meaning of the words"; and lastly, "the titles of the Books of the New Testament," which they deemed best to leave unchanged. They conclude their preface by "humbly com mending their labours to Almighty God, and praying that his favour and blessing may be vouchsafed to that which has been done in his name, that the Gospel of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ may be more clearly and more freshly shewn forth to all who shall be readers of this Book." The fourth rule laid down for the guidance of the revisers had special reference to the Greek text they were to adopt. Wisely they were not confined to any given Text by modern editors, but left free to make choice of that for which the evi dence was "decicjedly preponderating." And when any such reading differed from the Textus Receptus, they were to indi cate the same in the margin. They have followed this rule but iu part. So extensive were the Textual changes that the attempt to record them in the margin " proved inconvenient." As an offset against this omission, they state that " the Uni- . versity Presses have undertaken to print them in connexion with complete Greek texts of the New Testament." " In this connection the revisers rightly say in their preface, that "Textual criticism as applied to the Greek New Testament, forms a special study of much intricacy and difficulty, and even now leaves room for considerable variety of opinion among competent critics." In the first revision iu every case ' The New Testament in the Original Greek, according to the Text fol lowed in the AutJwr'.zed V('rs~'on . . together idth the Variations adopted in the Revised Version. Edited by Dr. Scrivener. 442 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XI. of various reading of the Greek, after full discussion, the decision was arrived at by a vote of the majority. But in the second revision, "a majority of two thirds was required to retain or introduce a reading at variance with the reading presumed to underlie the Authorised Version." This was in accordance with tho fifth rule, and the revisers remark that under the workings of this rule, "many readings previously adopted were brought again into debate, and either re-afifirmed or set aside." In the case of important changes demanded by Textual criticism, note is made of the same in the margin. The following examples are noticeable : Matt. VI. 9-13 Give us this day our daily bread. And forgive us our debts, as we also have forgiven our debtors. And bring us not into temp tation, but deliver us from the evil (one). The italics show the alterations made, which are the result of an honest application of Textual criticism to the received Greek text. These changes make sad havoc with sacred associations, and at first will strike harshly upon the ears of all. And yet so far as they are iu accordance with a correct Greek text, they ought to be heartily welcomed. For, our daily bread the margin notes that the Greek reads: "our bread for tlie coming day." For, the evil (one) the margin reads : "Or, evU." For the omission of the doxology the margin reads : " Many authorities, some ancient, but with variations, add For thine is the kingdom, and the power, and the glory, for ever. Amen." ¦ Mar, XVI. 9-30. These twelve verses, which constitute the closing words of the Gospel according to Mark, find a place in the Revised version, but they are sep arated from the chapter by a wide paragraph space. The note in the margin reads : ' ' The two oldest Greek manuscripts, and some other authori ties, omit from ver. 9 to the end. Some other authorities have a diff'erent ending to the Gospel." ^ John V. 3-4. Inthispassageapart of the third and the whole of the fourth verse is omitted from the text, though the ' Compare above, page 3S3. ^ Ibid, page 384. 1881.] CORRECT RENDERING OF GREEK TENSES. 443 portion omitted finds a place in the margin under the following note: "Many ancient authorities insert, wholly or in part, waiting for the moving of the water : for an angel of the Lord went down at certain seasons into the pool and troubled the water : whosoever then first after the troubling of the water stepped in was made whole, unth whatsoever disease he was holden." ' VII. 63.— VIII. 11. This passage, which relates to the case of the woman taken in adultery, finds a place in the Revised version, but it is put in brackets and is separated from the other text by wide paragraph spaces. The margin reads : " Most of the ancient authorities omit John vii. 53— viii. 11. Those which contain it vary much from each other." Acts VIII. 37. This verse is omitted from the text, but finds a place in the margin in the following note: "Some ancient authorities insert wholly or in part, ver. 37. And Philip said, If thou believest with all thy heart, thou mayest. And he answered amd said, Tbelieve that Jesus Christ is the Son of God." ^ I. John V. 7, 8. . . . For there are three who bear witness, the Spirit, and the water, and the blood : and the three agree in one. By comparison with the text of the Authorized version, it will be found that almost the whole of the seventh and a part of the eighth verse, has been omitted. Though this omission is without doubt correct, yet there is no note made of it in the margin.^ Considering the demands of Textual criticism, the revisers could not have dealt less strictly with these debatable passages. Even Biblical scholars and commentators have long indicated this line of treatment. Had the revisers yielded to strict crit ical demands, their dealings with these passages would have been far less lenient. The grammatical defect in the Authorized version is its confusion in rendering Greek tenses. In some instances the aorist is rendered by the perfect tense, and contrariwise the ¦ Compare above, page 384 ' Ibid, page 385. " Ibid, pages 384 385. * Ibid, pages 385, 386. 444 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL perfect by the aorist. Again, uot unfrequently, for the present the past tense is substituted. By simply correcting these defects, the Revised version sheds new light upon the sacred page, and thus yields a fresher meaning to its readers. To illustrate this, a few examples are here given. Matt. II. 15. . . . Out of Egypt did I call my son. The A. V. has : have I called my son. By this render ing of the A. V. not only is the Greek grammar violated, but, according to Lightfoot, " a historical connection is severed." The original passage is in Hosea xi. 1, and reads : . . . called my son out of Egypt. Acts XIX. 3. . . . Did ye receive the Holy Ghost when ye believed ? The A. V. reads : . . . Have ye received the Holy Ghost since ye beheved ? The intended inquiry here is not general as to any reception of the Holy Ghost " during a period since their baptism,'' as implied in the rendering of the A. v., but the inquiry is definite as to whether they received the Holy Ghost at the time they were received into the Church. n. Cor. V. 14. . . . that one died for all, therefore all died. " The rendering of the A. V., then were all dead," Alford says, " is inadmissible both from the con struction of the original and the context." ' The interpretation of the reading in the A. V. is that the death, here referred to, means, a death th/rough sin. But the context implies and the rendering of the R. V. indicates, " a death to sin," which is doubtless correct, and is a very difierent idea. I. Cor. XV. 4, 13. . . . and that he hath been raised on the third day that he hath been raised from the dead. The A. V. reads : . . he rose again the third day, .... he rose from the dead. The restoration of the perfect in each of these verses is needful for the sake of the context. The apostle is urging in this connection "not that Christ once rose from the grave, but that hairing risen, he lives forever as a first fruit or earnest of the resurrection." This same verb is repeated ' See Commentary, in loco. 1881.] RESULTS OF THIS REVISION, 445 some five times after the twelfth verse, and in each case the A. V. renders it correctly ; since the meaning of the apostle became " so patent on the face of St. Paul's language, that our translators could not fail to see it." II. Cor. XII. 3, 3. I know a man in Christ, fourteen years ago. . . And I know such a man. The A. V. reads iu each case : I knew, " which is a mistake in gram mar," says Alford, "and introduces serious con fusion, making it seem as if the fourteen years ago were the date of the knowledge, not, aa it really is, of the vision. '' Besides, the reading of the A. V. leaves it uncertain whether Paul refers to himself or to some other person as having seen the vision. Acts IL 47. And the Lord added to them day by day those that were being saved. This is an improvement npon the A. v., which reads : such as should be saved. Alford well remarks upon this passage, "Nothing is implied by this word .... whether all these were finaUy saved. It is only asserted that they were in the way of salvation when they were added to the Christian assembly." The responsibility resting upon the revisers extended to the original text as well as to the translation of the Authorized version. And one of the grand results of this revision is that it furnishes to the Enghsh reader the accumulated fruits of the labors of modern Greek scholarship. The profound research and extent of the labors of Textual critics can scarcely be estimated, much less appreciated ; and yet what ever of new discoveries brought to light have been thoroughly scanned and passed upon by the revisers, and so far as approved by their judgment, embodied in their work. But the alterations introduced from this source are not as serious and sweeping as might have been expected. In the following miscellaneous examples not a few will be found m which the changes are for the better : Mark VL 30. For Herod feared John . . . ^nA k&pt him safe And when he heard him he was much perplexed. 1 he A. v. KsAs: and observed him. . . ¦ he did many things. 446 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XL In the first clause ths change is for the better. There is a conffict of authorities relating to the latter clause but the probabilities are in favor of the reading of the Revised version. Luke XVIIL 12. ... I give tithes of all that I get. This is an important change and gives the correct mean ing of the text which was that he paid tithes of all that he acquired and not what he possessed or had laid up, as it reads in the Authorized version. Acts XXVI. 38. And Agrippa (said) unto Paul, With but little persuasion thou wouldestfain make me a Christian. This was said ironically and in every way different from the familiar reading of the A. V., almost thou per- suadest me ta be a Christian, which would appear to have been a serious utterance of Agrippa. All who have read Alford or Lange are prepared for this change. GaL V, 17, .... That ye may not do the things that ye would. In this conflict as here depicted by Paul, between the flesh and the Spirit, the render ing of the A. V. would seem to make the flesh the stronger principle when it reads: . . . so that ye cannot do the things that ye would. But by this rendering of the Revised version the Spirit becomes the stronger power and according to the preceding verse, they who walk by the Spirit shall not fulfil the lust of the flesh. II. Thess. II. 1. Now we beseech you, brethren, touching the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ. The rendering of the A. v., by the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ, introduces a formula of adjuration, " a construction which," according to Alford, "is not found in the New Testament." See his Commentary in loco. I. Pet. II. 31. For hereunto were ye called : because Christ also suf fered for you, leaving you an example, that ye should foUow his steps. The A. V. reads : Christ also suffered for ixs, leaving us an example, that ye should follow his steps. This confusion in the use of the pronoun is avoided in the reading of the Revised version. Rev. IV. 6, . . . four living creatures full of eyes be fore and behind. The Authorized version reads : .... four beasts full of eyes before and behind. 1881.] TREATMENT OF GREEK ARTICLE. 447 This was a most unfortunate rendering as it in no way distinguishes these living creatures from the beast described in chapter xiii. 1, also xiv. 9. The correction as in the R, V. is most desirable. XXII. 14 Blessed are they that wash their robes that they may have the right (to come) to the tree of life. This is an improvement upon the Authorized version which reads : Blessed are they that do his com mandments. The force of the Greek article, as is well known, was neg lected by King James' translators. They left it out when it had a place in the original text, and they inserted it when it had no such place. The following examples show its restora tion by the Revised version. Matt. II. 4. IV. 5. VIL 34 Luke IL 16. John XII. 13. Rom. V, 15. Col. L Heb. XI. 19. 10. where the Christ should be born. on the pinnacle of the temple. which built his house upon the rock. and the babe lying in the manger. took the branches of the palm trees. For if by the trespass of the one the many died, much more did the grace of God, and the gift by the grace of the one man, Jesus Christ, abound unto tlie many. The con trast in this and the following verses of the con text, is between the one and the many.' that in him should all the fulness dwell. For he looted for the city which hath ihe foundations whose builder and maker is God. The following show its omission where it was wrongly in serted by the Authorized version : Matt. XXVII. 4 betrayed innocent blood. The A. V. has : betrayed the innocent blood. Luke IIL 14. And soldiers also asked him. The A. V. has : And the soldiers likewise demanded of him. Compare page 349, above. 448 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XI. John IV. 37 and they marvelled that he was speaking with a woman. The A. V. has : . . . . that he talked with the woman. Thereby intimat ing that they understood her character. Acts XVII. 33. . . . To an unknown God. The A. V. has : ... To tlie unknown God. Rom. II. 14. For when Gentiles which have no law do by nature the things of the law. The A. V. has : . . when the Gentiles. But the meaning is any, not all of the Gentiles, as in the reading of the R. V. I. Tim. VI. 10. For the love of money is a root of all kinds of evil. The A. V. has : the root. The revisers had a broad field before them in correcting the Authorized version in its treatment of Greek prepositions. But in this, as in that of the Greek article, they have not entered upon it as freely as might have been expected. It is true that much of the incorrectness in the Authorized version, in respect to prepositions, is traceable to change of meaning in these prepositions, rather than to error in the translators. But even in cases of archaisms our revisers too frequently fail in making the needful alterations. The following, however, are examples of important improvements : Matt. IV. 6. . . . And on their hands they shall bear thee up. The A. V. has : in their hands. V. 31. Ye have heard that it was said to them of old time. This is much better than by them as in the A. V. Mark XI. 17 My house shall be called a house of prayer /or all the nations. The A. V. incorrectly reads : My house shall be called of all nations the house of prayer. Luke XXIII. 15. No, nor yet Herod : for he sent him back unto us ; and behold, nothing worthy of death hath been done by him. The A. V. incorrectly reads : . . . nothing worthy of death is done unto him. I. Cor. VIII, 6 and one Lord, Jesus Christ, through whom are all things, and we through him. The A. V. reads ¦ ... by whom are all things, and we by him. 188J.J OBSOLETE WORDS RETAINED. 449 Heb. VL 7. . . . and bringeth forth herbs meet for them for whose sake it is also tilled. The A. V. reads : . . . herbs meet for them by whom it is dressed. VII. 9. And, so to say, through Abraham even Levi, who re ceiveth tithes, hath paid tithes. The A. V. has : . . . who receiveth tithes paid tithes in Abraham. Bev. XV. 3. And I saw as it were a glassy sea mingled with fire ; and them that come victorious from the beast, . . . standing by the glassy sea. The A. V. reads : . . . stand on the sea of glass. Many words in the Authorized version are modern in form, but obsolete in meaning. On account of this they are more hurtful to the sense of the passage, where they occur, since ou account of their familiar form they awaken no suspicion of their changed meaning. As examples we have such words as prevent in the sense of precede, by and by in the sense of im mediately and coast in the sense of border. This class of words is not large, considering that they belong to a printed text that has come down to us, with but few changes, from the first quarter of the seventeenth century. Our revisers have done a most acceptable service in substituting words modern in mean ing in place of these obsolete terms ; yet too often they allow obsolete words to remain which ought to have been displaced. Nothing is gained by retaining the word charger in Matt. xiv. 8. The word may mean one who charges, or a war horse, but in the sense of a large dish or platter, as it is used iu this connec tion, it is obsolete. The same may be said of the word haling found in Acts viii. 3. If, according to Walker, the word hale "is corrupted beyond recovery into haul," andi. consequently the word haling into hauling, let us by all means have the cor ruption, with its plain meaning. Another misleading word retained by the revisers is quick in the sense of living, as found in I, Pet, iv, 5, The word quick is good Saxon, and in its primary sense means life, living, alive. But it has lost this sense, and now means active, swift, fleet. This word is hke- wise retained in Acts x. 42 and in II. Tim. iv. 1, but not in Heb. iv, 12, which reads: For the word of God is living 450 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP, XL and active, and sharper than any two-edged sword. So again the word instant in the sense of urgent is retained in the Revised version, II, Tim. iv, 2 reads : be instant in season, out of season. In tljiis country at least the word instant is used to express something immediate, quick, without delay. But in the only place in the New Testament of the Authorized version where the word refers to time, as in Luke ii, 38, which reads : And she coming in at that instant gave thanks likewise unto the Lord ; the revisers ignore the word altogether and read : And coming at that very hour she gave thanks unto God. The use of the word, and not the correctness of the translation, is here in question. Let it be said, however, that in Rom. xii. 12, this word instant of the A. V. is rightly dis placed by steadfastly. Other examples of archaisms might be cited wherein the revisers, if they had replaced them by modei-n terms, would not have gone beyond their rules, nor injured the style of the sacred text. In the examples that fol low the changes will be recognized as improvements. Matt. VI. 34. Be not therefore anxious for the morrow : for the mor row will be anxious for itself. The A. V. reads : . . 710 thought, . . . shall take thought. XVII. 35. . . . And when he came into the house, Jesus spake fi/rst to him. The A. V. reads : . . Jesus prevented him. Mark VL 20. Herod feared John . . . and kept him safe. The A. V. has : . . . and obse-rved him. Luke I. 63. And he asked for a writing tablet. The A. V. has : writing table. VII. 4 And they, when they came to Jesus, besought him earnestly. The A. V. has : . . . besought him instantly. XXL 9. . . . for these things must needs come to pass flrst ; but the end is not immediately. The A. V. has : . . . but the end is not by and by. Acts XXI. 15. And after these days we took up our baggage. The A. V. has : carriages. Rom. I. 13. . . .1 purposed to come unto you (and was hindered hitherto). The A. V. has : . . . (but was let hitherto). 1881. LATINIZED WORDS INTRODUCED. 451 L Cor. X. 34. Let no man seek his own, but (each) his neighbour's (good). The A. V. has : . . . but every man another's (wealth). ¦^^- 39. . . . eateth and drinketh JMdg'fimerei unto him self, if he discern not the body. The A. V. has : ¦ . . damnation. II. Cor. VIIL 1. Moreover, brethren, we make known to you. The A. V. has : ... -we do you to ¦wit. Phil. III. 30. For our citizenship is in heaven. The A. V. has : For our conversation is in heaven. rv. 8. Finally, brethren, whatsoever things are true, what soever things are honourable. The A. V. has: honest. I. Thess. rv. 15. . . . shall in no wise precede them that are fallen asleep. The A. V. has : prevent. I. Tim. II. 9. In like manner, that women adorn themselves in mod est apparel, with shamefastness and sobriety. This word shamefastness belonged to the first edition of the Authorized version, but by a typographical blunder was changed into, shamefacedness as in our present Bibles, a word opposite in meaning from shamefastness. The word is now obsolete and its Saxon meaning is gone beyond recovery, and why the revisers sought to restore it is diffi cult to understand. V. 4. . . . But if any widow hath children or ^ro«cJ- children. The A. V. has : or nephews. The second rule, laid down for the guidance of the revisers, required that when changes were necessary the phrasing should be conformed, as far as practicable, to the language and style of the Authorized version. In their preface the revisers claim to "have faithfully adhered" to this rule. The difiiculty of the task may well excuse a few exceptions. And yet a little more of the inborn love of Saxon simplicity in language might have saved them from such words as : stupor, clanging, narra tive, interrogation, accurately, announce, attendant, appa rition, factious, effulgence, tranquil, vauntings, probation, some of which are not found in Shakespeare, whatever may be said of other " standard writers " of the date of the Authorized version. To the above must be added a long list of other new 452 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XI. words which may or may not displace words and phrases more appropriate to the "language of Canaan," But however un fortunate the revisers may have been in introducing a few Latinized words, yet in theory and practice they reaffirm the Saxon element of our language. While it is difficult to estab lish a literal connection running back from the Authorized version through Tyndale to Wycliffe, yet such connection now is fully established in the Revised version. The revisers say in their preface : " We have habitually consulted the earlier Versions ; and in our sparing introduction of words not found in them or in the Authorized Version, we have usually satis fied ourselves that such words were employed by standard writers of nearly the same date, and had also that general hue which justified their introduction into a Version which has held the highest place in the classical literature of our language," The following list furnishes specimens of the new words found in the Revised version intentionally inti'oduced for the sake of bettering the translation. Some of these words were adopted from the Old Testament, others professedly from earlier ver sions, while others are entire strangers to our New Testament vocabulary. The new words are in italics and may be found below in their respective connections. Matt. VI. 38. And why are ye anxious. The A. V. has : take ye thought. IX. 17. Neither do (men) put new wine into old u>ine skins. The A. V. has : bottles. XIV. 26. . . . It is an apparition. The A. V. has : XVII. 15. For he is epileptic. The A, V. has : lunatick. Mark II. 31. ... a piece of undressed cloth on an old garment. This is after the Genevan version, 1557. The A. V. has : new cloth. VT. 53. . . . and moored to the shore. The A. V. has : drew to the shore. Luke I. 1. . . to draw up, in the sense of to write ; slIso, narrative. The A.V. has: . . to set forth; and, declaration. 1881,] NEW WORDS INTRODUCED. 453 3. . . . haying traced the course of B.]l things accurately. The A. V. reads : . . perfect under standing of all things from the very first. rv. 20. . . . and gave it back to the attendant. This is better than, minister of the A. V. which from its modern restricted sense gives a, wrong impression. But the word attendant scarcely ex- pres.ses the official character of the " keeper of the rolls " of the synagogue. V. 37. . . . sitting at the place of toll. The A.V. has : . . the receipt of custom. John X. 13. . . . and the wolf snatcheth them. The A. V. has : catcheth them. XVII. 12 guarded them. The A. V. has : kept. Acts VII. 13. . . . and Joseph's race became manifest unto Pharaoh. The A. V. has : kindred, XII. 7. . . . and a light shined in the cell. The A. V. has : prison. XIV. 5. . . . there was made an onset. The A. V. has : an assault. XVIII. 14. . . . or of wicked villany. The A. V. has : wicked lewdness. XXII. 38. . . . With a great sum obtained I this citizenship. The A. V. has : this freedom. XXV. 31. But when Paul had appealed to be kept for the de cision of the emperor. The A. V. has : Augustus. XXVI. 10. ... I gave my vote. The A. V. reads : I gave my voice against them. XXVII. 17. . • fearing lest they should be cast upon the Syrtis, they lowered the gear, and so were driven. There were two celebrated syrtes on the coast of Africa. One was called Syrtis major and the other Syrtis minor. They are described as " sand banks or shoals dangerous to navigation." The A. V. reads : . . fearing lest they should fall into the quicksands. Tyndale, the Great Bible and the Genevan version read : Syrtes. 18. . . . they began to throw (the freight) overboard. The A. V. reads : . . they lightened the ship. g9_ . . a certain bay with a beach. The A. V. has : shore. 454 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XI. 40. . . . and hoisting up the foresail. The A. V. has : mainsail. Rom. II. 8. . . . unto them that are factious. The A. V. has : contentious. V. 4. And patience probation ; and probation hope. X. 7. . . into the abyss. The A. V. has : the XI. 8. . . . n spirit of stupor. The A. V. has : . . oi slumber. I. Cor. IX. 25. . . . that striveth in the games. The A. V. has : . . for the mastery, XIII. 1. . . . sounding brass, or a clanging cymbal. The A. V. has : ... or a tinkling cymbal. II. Cor. I. 17. . . . did I shew fickleness. The A. V. has: lightness. GaL VI. 17 for I bear branded on my body. The A. V. reads : . . . for I bear in my body. Phil. III. 1. ... to me indeed is not irksome. The A. V. has : . . is not grievous. 14. I press on toward the goal. The A. V. has : . . . the mark. I. Tim. II. 3. . . may lead a tranquil and quiet life. The A. V. has : peaceable. Heb. I. 3. Who being the effulgence of his glory. The A. V, reads : . . . the brightness of his glory. XII. 3. . . . the author and perfecter of our faith. The A. V. has : finisher. James I. 33. . . . beholding his natural face in a mir ror. This after Wycliffe. The A. V. has: a glass. II. 19. . . the devils also believe, and «AM£icZc»-. The A. V. has : tremble. IV. 16. . . . ye glory in your vauntings. The A. V. has : boastings. I. Peter III. 31. . . . but the interrogation of a good con science toward God. The A. V, has : , . . the answer of a good conscience. I. John I. 5. . . . and announce unto you. The A. V. has: declare. Rev. XVT. 1. . . . and pour out the seven bowls of the wrath of God. The A. V. has : vials. XVIII. 17. . . . and mariners. This word after Wycliffe. The A. V. has : sailors. 1881.] THE AMERICAN APPENDIX. 455 The above list might be greatly increased, as the number of this class of words is from necessity large. It is a famihar fact that King James' translators felt constrained to adopt a variety of words in translating single Greek terms. They doubtless carried this feature of their work to an extreme. The present revisers, at the expense of variety in style, and for the sake of faithfulness to the Greek, have rendered the recurring Greek word by the same EngUsh word. Conse quently many English words have dropped out of the New Testament vocabulary. Whether the new words introduced into the Revised version, such as the above, will counter balance this loss, there is as yet no means of determining.^ The appendix comprises the suggestions of the American committee which were not approved by the English com mittee. It manifests a disagreement which was not expected by the friends of the work on this side of the water. From the rules laid down it was expected that something of an equality would exist, and at the close a joint meeting of the British and American companies would be held in London before final action. But unfortunately, or it may be fortu nately, this meeting proved impracticable; and instead, a compromise was agreed upon by which the readings preferred by the American committee were to be printed in an appendix to the English edition, the American committee agreeing not to issue a rival edition for "a term of fourteen years." But, as has been well said, while the appendix shows the dis agreements, yet it signifies but little compared with the text, which embodies the substantial agreements of the two com mittees. By actual comparison of their independent work it has been found " that in about half the changes the two com mittees had arrived independently at the same conclusion." Whatever of jealousy, therefore, may have been felt by Amer ican fi-iends of the enterprise on this ground, should be laid ' There is a Concordance, however, of the Revised version already in course of preparation. 456 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611, [CHAP, XI, aside ; and especially so since the members themselves of the American committee are satisfied. Besides, conservative op posers of the New revision ought to be contented, since the American revisers were by far more radical and progressive in the changes they proposed than their brethren of the Eng lish committee. The following are selected examples of the changes preferred by the American committee, which fall in the appendix under the general head of "Classes of Pas- I. Strike out " S." (i. e. Saint) from the title of the Gospels and from the heading of the pages. III. For " Holy Ghost " adopt uniformly the rendering " Holy Spirit." IV. At the word " worship " in Matt. ii. 3, etc., add the marginal note " The Greek word denotes an act of reverence, whether paid to man (see chap, xviii. 36) or to God (see chap. iv. 10)." V. Put into the text uniformly the marginal rendering " through " in place of "by" when it relates to prophecy, viz. in Matt. ii. 5, 17, 23: iii. 3; iv. 14, &c. VIL Substitute modern forms of speech for the following archaisms, viz. " who" or "that" for "which" when used of persons; "are" for " be" in the present indicative; "know," "knew " for " wot " " wist " ; " drag " or " drag away " for " hale." IX. After "baptize" let the marg. "Or, in" and the text "with" exchange places. X. Let the word " testament " be everywhere changed to " covenant " (without an alternate in the margin), except in Heb. ix. 15-17. XIV. Let the use of " fulfil " be confined to those cases in which it denotes " accomplish," " bring to pass," or the like. In the Gospel according to Matthew the appendix furnishes some twenty- three preferences which were not adopted by the English committee. The following are selected examples: Matt. III. 10. For " is the axe laid unto " read " the axe lieth at " So in Luke iii. 9. VI. 11. Let the marg. read Gr. our bread for the coming day, or our needful bread. So in Luke xi. 3. 37. For "his stature" read " the measure of his life" (with marg. Or, his stature) So in Luke xii. 25. IX. 6, 8. For " power " read '• authority " (see marg. ') So in Mark ii. 10 ; Luke v. 24 1881.] THE AMERICAN APPENDIX, 457 XX 1. For " that is " read " that was " XXIIL 9. For " Father, which is in heaven " read " Father, even he who is in heaven. " 23. For "judgement " read "justice " So in Luke xi. 43. XXVI. 29. For " I will not drink " read " I shall not drink " Simi larly in Mark xiv. 35; Luke xxii. 16, 18. In the Gospel according to Mark the appendix has but seven preferences not approved by the English committee. The following are selected examples : Mark X. 13. For " bought " read " were bringing " So in Luke xviii. 15. 33. ' ' And they that followed " etc., omit the marg. 45. For " For verily " etc. read " For the Son of man also " etc. XI. 34. For " have received " read " receive " with marg. Gr. re ceived. The Gospel of Luke has thirty-three and the Gospel of John twenty-three of these preferences; so throughout the New Testament some books have more and some less. The follow ing selections, however, will suffice : Luke 1. 70. For " since the world began " read " of old " Similarly Acts iii. 21 ; xv. 18. IV. 1. For " by the Spirit " read ' ' in the Spirit " and omit the marg. VIII. 29. For " commanded " read " was commanding " 33. For " were choked " read " were drowned " IX. 46. For " should be greatest " read " was the greatest " XXII. 24. For " is accounted " read " was accounted " XXIIL 3. " Christ a king " omit the marg. 33. For " instant " read " urgent " 46. Let margin and text exchange places. XXIV. 30. Bead " he took the bread and blessed ; and breaking it he gave to them " 38. For " reasonings " read " questionings " John II. 17. For " The zeal of thine house " read " Zeal for thy house " III. 20. For " ill " read " evil " So in v. 39. VII. 38. For "out of the belly" read " from within him" (with marg. Gr. out of Ms belly.) VIIL 44. For " stood " read " standeth " and omit marg. ' 53, 53. For " is dead" and " are dead " read " died " [Compare vi. 49, 58.] 458 REVISIONS AND TRANSLATIONS SINCE 1611. [CHAP. XI, 58. For " was " read " was born " and omit marg. * XVI. 35, 29 For " proverbs " read " dark sayings " XVIL 24 For "I wiU " read " I desire " \/ XXI. 7. " Was naked " add marg. Or, had on his under ga/rment only. In the above selections and so throughout the whole appen dix, the changes proposed will for the most part commend themselves to American taste and judgment. ^ And while there may be a regret that there should have been any dif ferences at the last, yet there is occasion for rejoicing that the appendix is not more extensive than it is ; especially when we consider that the committees were composed of independent thinkers, separated by so many thousand miles and influenced by distinct National tastes. Besides, a careful examination of the appendix shows that the differences relate to neither doc trine nor precept, but touch upon archaisms, obsolete words, Greek grammar and simple matters of taste and style. The Revised version, therefore, must ever be regarded as a monu ment sacred to the memory of a united Christian scholarship. And the Appendix must ever be looked upon, not as a symbol of disagreement, but as a remarkable illustration of the high degree of harmony which prevailed between the Anglo- American Revisers. CHAPTER XII, THE REVISED VERSION OF THE OLD TESTAMENT AND THE REVISED BIBLE AS A WHOLE, A. D. 1881-1885. AN APPENDED CHAPTER. INTEREST in the revision of the so-called Authorized version, centered largely in the New Testament, After waiting ten years for the revisers to complete their work, the public were eager for its appearance. In its reception by way of sales, there is nothing in the history of the book-trade, much less of Bible publications, that can compare with it. ^ The demand, at first, far surpassed the supply, " Orders for a million Oxford copies of the Revised New Testament, were received before the book was issued. A telegram from Lon don, May 21, 1881, reported the sale of two million copies of the Revised New Testament in that city."^ The eagerness of the American public on the first arrival of the books in New York to obtain copies, is fresh in the minds of this generation. The daily papers of the country united in fan ning the flame. As a matter of public interest, and enter prise as well, it is worthy of record, that the four Gospels, the Acts of the Apostles, and the Epistle to the Romans, were sent by telegram from New York to Chicago, and printed in two daily papers of that city, The Tribune and The Times, of May 22, 1881. These papers contained, besides the above, the remaining parts of the New Testament, which were taken from copies of the printed book so soon as it was received. ' ' Compare p. 438, above. * Schaff's Companion to the Greek New Test. , and EngUsh Version, p. 404. New York, 1883. " Compare Ibid, p. 405. 460 RECEPTION OF REVISED VERSION. [CHAP. XIL " The Tribune employed for the purpose ninety- two compos itors and five correctors, and the whole work was completed in twelve hours."* The sales in this country were enormous. Besides the English editions, there were some thirty or more American reprints put upon the market. All this, and even more, was a reality, though it seems but a dream, it being a thing so un precedented in the history of Bible versions. ^ In striking contrast was the reception of the Revised Old Testament, four years later. The publication created scarcely a wave of excitement, compared with the storm which attended that of the New Testament. Possibly this was to have been expected. In architecture, it is the superstructure that attracts attention. Yet the foundation in its outlines is that which decides the possibilities of the building. So while the New Testament revision, in the nature of the case, attracts the attention of all, yet when its foundation is subjected to change, there should be a marked interest in such undertaking. There are many facts concerning the Old Testament Script ures that command the interest of the student even of the English Bible; such as the antiquity of the language, the his tory of the text in manuscripts, also in printed Bibles. The limited space allotted to this chapter forbids but a brief account of these particulars. In regard to the antiquity of the Hebrew language, there is a well grounded claim that it is the oldest form of human speech known. The question raised and learnedly discussed is whether or not the language contained in the earliest books of the Old Testament, is the very same that Abraham brought with him into Canaan. The principal argument favoring this is that, " as the most important proper names in the first part of Genesis are founded on Hebrew etymologies, the essential con- ' Schaff's Companion to the Greek New Test., and English Version, p. 405, note. " See by way of contrast the account of the reception of Tyndale's translation of the N. T., pp 104, 105, 106, above. B.C. 1491-350,] ANTIQUITY OF HEBREW LANGUAGE 461 nection of these names with their etymological origins involves the historical credibility of the records themselves, and leaves no room for any other conclusion than that the Hebrew lan guage is cojeval with the earliest history of man. " * In a some what modified form, Havernick, who treats the whole subject fairly and exhaustively, says: " On a closer investigation, from more points of view than one, the old orthodox opinion so commends itself, that we may regard the position that the later language of the descendants of Abraham stood at least in a very intimate relation to the original tongue, as one which, so far as in such a case is possible, is well founded. "^ Again in speaking of the Hebrew text of the Old Testaaient, he says: " Here even it presents the imposing spectacle of a language issuing from the deepest shadows of antiquity, and which, from its sublime simplicity, must be called the basis and the key of all the other Oriental languages."^ As a matter of convenience, the history of the Old Testa ment Scriptures may be divided into two periods. The first extends from Moses to the formation of the Canon by Ezra; the second from Ezra to the era of the first printed Hebrew Bibles. The existence and preservation of the Sacred writings of the Jews during the first period is attested by the writings them selves. It is recorded in Deuteronomy that Moses wrote and delivered the law to the priests, and commanded them to read it to all the people; also that they should put it by the side of the ark of the covenant. * Again, in II. Kings are recorded the particulars of the finding of the book of the law in the house of the Lord. ^ Then in Isaiah there is the exhortation : ' ' Seek 1 Kitto's Cyclopcedia, Art. Hebrew Language, p. 833. New Tork, 1853. a Havernick's Introduction to Old Test, p. 131. Clark's For. Theol. Lib., Vol. XXVIII. Edinburgh, 1853. » Ibid, p. 136. * Deut. xxxi. 9-12, 36. Compare L Kings viii. 9 and II. Chron. v. 10. The book of the law was placed by the side of, not in, the ark. « II. Kings xxii. 8 462 DECAY OF THE LANGUAGE. [CHAP. XII. ye out of the book of the Lord, and read."* The books that Daniel consulted were the prophecies of Jeremiah. ^ The con servation of the»text during this first period is comparatively assured by the religious care exercised by the priests, also by the extreme reverence in which the Sacred writings were held by the people. But a passing notice can be taken of the adverse criticism in regard to the books of the Old Testament in their historical relation to each other, and as to their authors. Biblical scholars, including those in sympathy as well as those out of sympathy with a Divine revelation, have delved into this com paratively unworked field ; and while they have brought forth things good and bad, it becomes the Christian scholar to sepa rate the wheat from the chaff, and thus confirm the confidence of the people, that no criticism, be it ever so high, if it be rightly applied, can add to or take from the revealed truth of the Old Testament. The close of the first period is marked by radical changes in the history of the Jewish people. It is impossible to draw the line, but during the years of the Babylonian captivity and those immediately following, the Jews lost their native tongue. There are some who think the decay of the language began as early as B.C. 720, when the Assyrian deportation of the ten tribes brought the language into injurious proximity to the Aramaic idiom. * In this change, which doubtless was gradual, not only did the common people lose their native tongue, and the lan guage of their Sacred books become a dead letter to them ; but the ancient Hebrew characters also suffered change. The shape of the letters was made to conform to that of the Ara maic, which is the square character of our printed Hebrew Bibles. 1 Isaiah xxxiv. 16. * Daniel ix. 3; also, Jer. xxv. 11, 13. » Compjire Kitto's Cyclopcedia, Art. Hebrew Language, p. 834. New York, 1883. B.C. 600-A.D.lOO.] LABORS OF THE MASSORETS. 463 The ancient Jewish doctors were awake to the interest of their Sacred writings from the first evidence of decay in the language. One of the important duties of the Men of the Great Synagogue was, according to the Rabbins, to " surround the Thorah with a Hedge." Havernick defends this tradition against the attacks of some critics, and quotes others, show ing that they accepted the truth of this tradition, as well as the existence and work of the Men of the Great Synagogue. * These were followed by the Talmudists, who gathered up the traditions respecting their Sacred books, which had been handed down for centuries. The Talmudic period extended from A. D. 200 to A. D. 600. These Talmudic scribes were followed by the Massorets, whose labors began about A. D. 600. They counted, as did the Talmudists before them, how often each letter in the Hebrew alphabet was found in each book, and noted the peculiarity of any given letter. The same minute labor was bestowed upon the words, as to how often they were found at the beginning or middle or close of certain verses. Then as to the verses, they noted how many there were in each book ; and in the Pentateuch and Psalms they com puted which were the middle verses, words, and letters,* Mystical meanings were attached to these words as well as to other special marks found in the text. ' A more important result of the labors of the Massorets was the collection of readings, from various manuscripts, which they regarded as preferable. Technically, the reading in the text was called Kethib, and the reading to be substituted was called Keri. These preferred readings were at first kept in a ' Introduction to the Old Test, pp. 39, 40. Clark's For. Theol. Lib., Vol. XXVIIL Edinburgh, 1852. 2 " So minute were their observations, that they noted the verses, such as Zech. vi. 11— amounting to twenty-six in the whole Bible— which con tain in themselves all the letters of the Hebrew alphabet." Roberts' Old Test. Revision, note, p. 143. N"ew York, 1883. « Compare Smith's Bible Diet, Art. Old Test, p. 3318. New York, 1873. 464 HEBREW ACCENTS. [OHAP. XII, book, separate from the text, but afterward found a place in the margin of the manuscript. ' ' In effect, however, our manu scripts often exhibit the text with the Keri incorporated."! Of still greater importance was the originating, by the Masso rets, of the vowel signs, or, as some more wisely think, the adoption of these signs. Havernick says, this work of the Mas sorets " must be viewed as strictly regulated by adherence to the traditions handed down to them."* For the sake of " exposi tion of the meaning " of the ancient text, what had been a pro hibition was now, " through the pressure of circumstances, to be sanctioned. " * This necessity arose from the gradual decay of the language. As a living tongue, through the inherent vowel elements, it was easily understood. But as a dead language, it is readily seen, by way of illustration, that B R D could be read,' by inserting the necessary vowel points, either as Bird, Bard, Beard or Bread. The word translated bells, in Zech. xiv. 20,, has been cited as an example in which, by a different pointing, it would mean shadows. Again, the word translated bed, Gen. xlvii. 31, by a different pointing may mean staff; and so it reads in Heb. xi. 21, which comes through the Septuagint. Closely connected with the system of vocalization was thatol the accents. These play an important part in the text of the Hebrew. They not only mark the different meanings of the same word, but are used as means of punctuation. The important bearing of this system upon a correct interpretation of the text, may be understood from the following declaration of Rabbi Aben Ezra: "Any interpretation which is not in accordance with the arrangements of the accents, thou shalt not consent to it, nor shalt thou listen to it."* The object of the Massorets in these varied and almost end- 1 Smith's Bible Diet, Art. Old Test, p. 3219. * Havernick's Introduction to Old Test, p. 263. Clark's For. TheoL Lib., Vol. XXVIII. Edinburgh, 1852. » lbid, p. 263. * As cited in Smith's Bible Diet, Art. Old Test., p. 3230. New York. 1872. B.C. 175-A.D. 70.] MANUSCRIPTS OF OLD TESTAMENT. 465 less labors was to conserve the ancient text ; while the object of the Jewish doctors, by means of the Targums, was to extend a knowledge of the Scriptures among the people. These Tar gums, then, were versions in paraphrase of the Jewish script ures in Aramaic, which was at this time the common speech of the Jewish people. There are evidences which go to show that there were written Targums of several Old Testament books in the time of the Maccabees. ^ There are eleven Targums known, in three of which there are the four books of Moses. Of these three, that of Oukelos is regarded as the best. The translation is so literal that even the Jews use it as a lexicon. Oukelos is said by Jewish tradi tion to have been a disciple of Hillel, and therefore to have lived about the beginning of the Christian era. * The Targums were highly prized by the Jews; and as they bear with more or less importance upon the critical text of the Old Testament, they are prized likewise by Christian scholars. The manuscripts of the Old Testament books are divided into those used in the synagogues and those held by private individuals. The synagogue rolls were regarded as doubly sacred. The Talmud gave special directions as to the prepa ration of the skins and of the ink, also laid down strict rules for copyists in their work of transcription. In case of two mistakes the roll might be corrected and used, but in case of three the whole roll must be destroyed. ^ This, among other provisions, indicates the supreme care exercised by the Jews in preserving the purity of the text. The manuscripts we have are Massoretic, and few date back beyond the twelfth century. Kennicott and Bruns claimed that one collated by them dated back to the tenth century ; while De Rossi dates one of his owu back to the eighth century. * 1 Compare Kitto's Cyclopcedia, Art. Targums, p. 826. New York, 1853. ^ Ibid, pp. 826, 827. " Compare Havernick's iwfro. to Old Test, p. 288, note. Clark's For. Theo. Lib., Vol. XXVIII. Edinburgh, 1852 * Compare Smith's Bible Diet, Art. OU Test, p. 3221. New York, 1873. 466 "profane" MANUSCRIPTS. [CHAP. XIL By the Massoretic settlement of the text, the correct tran scription was rendered more difiicult. Accordingly great attention was paid from that time among the Jews to the va riations arising through transcription, and careful avoidance of these was made by means of well connected copies. "Thus arose," says Havernick, '¦'¦standard MSS., strictly conformed to the Massoretic text, and carefully preserved, which were used for the emendation of others, and enjoyed great celebrity, "i Manuscripts intended for private use were held in less es teem, and were called profane. " The greater part are writ ten on parchment, some on cotton paper, a few on common paper. The ink is thoroughly black. "^ " The whole of the MSS. are demonstrably the production of Jewish copyists, a few by Proselytes ; . . . but it is certain that none are the pro duction of Christians or monks, as has been alleged. "^ There is another false charge that has been refuted, which claims that the Jews, by making slight changes in passages referring to the Messiah, have perverted the meaning of these passages. But not only have these prophecies been faithfully handed down,* but also those uttered against the Jews, So that this people, in their scattered and torn condition, not only have been unwilling witnesses to, but honest transmitters of, the sure word of prophecy. In addition to the brief account of printed Bibles given on page 341, above, it may be added that the Hebrew Bible, which became the standard, was that of Joseph Athias, Am sterdam, 1661, Another celebrated edition of the Hebrew Bible was that of Van der Hooght, which was printed at 1 Havernick's Intro, to Old Test Clark's For. Theo. Lib., p. 286, Vol. XXVIII. Edinburgh, 1852. « Ibid, p. 389. 8 Ibid, p. 390. * There is a notable exception to the above in respect to Isaiah ix. 5, where certain Jewish interpreters, by no violence to the text excepting by a disregard of the accents, read: "The God who is called Won derful, Counsellor, the mighty God, the everlasting Father, calls his name the Prince of peace." See Roberts' Old Test. Revision, p. 151 New York, 1883. Compare also p. 354, above. B.C. 285-247.] THE SEPTUAGINT, 467 Amsterdam and Utrecht in 1705, This Bible is still of good reputation, not only for its accuracy and plainness of type, but from the fact that it constitutes our present textus receptus. i Among other notable monuments that indicate changes in the people and in their book, the Septuagint is by no means the least important. This translation was made at Alexan dria, B.C. 285-247. The Greek language is now the language of civilization. It is spoken in Egypt, Syria, Armenia, and in Italy. The Jews as a people, about the time of the Captivity, outgrew the limits of their ancient tongue, and so adopted the Aramaic. So likewise in after years, becoming more widely scattered by engaging in trade in the most important cities, they outgrew the Aramaic and adopted the Greek language. And as it was with the people, so with the book. From the Hebrew it was translated into Aramaic, and afterwards into the Greek of the Septuagint. The once popular tradition that this translation was made in seventy-two days by seventy- two translators, and that they were confined in seventy-two separate cells, has been abundantly refuted. ^ There is evi dence that the work extended over years instead of days, and that it was done mainly in Egypt, especially at Alexandria. The Septuagint met such a want among the Hellenists that it soon acquired great authority. Yet by the strict Jews in Palestine it was bitterly opposed, and from their standpoint was full of danger to Judaism. In the course of time, how ever, it was not only adopted by individual Jews, but was introduced into their synagogues. Through the Septuagint the Greek language became the vehicle of religious thought. The difficulty here was not small, since words and phrases were to be changed from a common and worldly into a religious and spiritual use. Though as a translation it has its defects, yet it is valuable as ' Compare Smith's Bible Diet, Art. Old Test, p. 2333. New York, 1873. ^ Compare Herzog's Encyclopedia, Art. Alexandrian Version, p. 101. Philadelphia, 1858. 468 RULES FOR REVISION OF OLD TESTAMENT. [CHAP.XII. a means of correcting our Hebrew text. In the matter of language, it was a preparation for the Greek of the New Tes tament. " It [the Greek N. T.] shares with the Septuagint," says Dr. Schaff, "its sacred and Hebraizing character as dis tinct from the secular Hellenic literature." ' The numerous quotations of the New Testament from the Septuagint show how largely it entered into the life of Hebrew Christians. While Paul was a Hebrew of the Hebrews, yet he quotes from the Septuagint. And while the Saviour in conversation used the Aramaic, yet in addressing the people he evidently used the Greek, as his Scripture quotations are from the Old Tes tament of the Alexandrian version. ^ It is an interesting and well-established fact that the Septuagint was the accepted Bible of Christ and His Apostles. ^ In the revision of the Old Testament there was the same careful purpose as in that of the New Testament. In their distinct departments, the revisers compare most favorably as to piety and scholarship. Then they followed the same rules. * By the _^rs^ rule they were to introduce as few changes as were consistent with faithfulness ; and in the fourth rule they are permitted to adopt a text differing from that from which the Authorized version was made. This opened a wide door to New Testament revisers, but a very narrow one to the revisers of the Old Testament. By means of the life labors of German and English scholars in the field of modern textual criticism, ^ a wealth of material was brought to the very doors of the revisers. This material had not only been mined but minted, and was ready for use. Even to ordinary readers, by means of German commentaries in English dress, and by other critical commentaries as well, ' A Companion to the Greek Testament and the English Version, p. 25. New York, 1883. " See Matt. xxi. 42; Mark xii. 34; Luke xxiv. 33. ' Compare Dr. Roberts in his Old Testament Revision, p. 189. * See above, pp.' 431-434. " See above. Mod. Textual Griticis'n, pp. 373-377; also pp. 441, 442 1885.] MASSORETIC • TEXT, 469 the work of the Revised version of the New Testament had been largely anticipated. Not but that the revisers went to the original sources, but the paths to these sources had been well trodden, and thus were very familiar. But with all this preparation, the revisers in giving a brief account of their work say, in substance, that while a revision of the Greek text was a necessity, yet they did not feel it their duty to con struct a continuous and complete text, but that " a sufficiently laborious task remained in deciding between the rival claims of various readings which might properly affect the transla tion." 1 As no such thorough and extended handling of the Hebrew, Greek, and Latin sources bearing directly upon the text of the Old Testament had been made, the revisers, in carrying out th.e fourth rule, were almost limited to the re ceived or Massoretic text. And so they inform us in their preface that "they thought it most prudent to adopt the Massoretic text as the basis of their work."^ In dealing with this text they sought what they believed to be the best read ings. In exceptional cases, on account of extreme difficulties, readings were adopted on the authority of ancient versions, and such departures are found indicated in the margin. ' A slight examination of the marginal notes will show the dili gence and faithfulness of the revisers in using all the light before them in obtaining the true meaning of the text and consequently, the mind of the Spirit. * A very notable case of the necessity of the change of a single word was that of the uniform use of people in the Authorized version instead of peoples. By way of explanation the revisers say : "The word 'peoples' was nowhere used by King James's translators in the Old Testament, and in the New Testament it occurs only twice (Rev. x. 11 ; xvii. 15). The effect of this was to leave the rendering of numerous passages inadequate or obscure, or even positively misleading. Thus, 1 Preface of R. V. of N. T, p. xiii. Isted., roy. 8vo. Cambridge, 1881. 2 Preface of R. V. of 0. T., p. vi. 1st ed., roy. 8vo. Oxford, 1885. ¦¦ Compare Ibid, p. vii. * Compare Ibid, p. xiii. 470 ¦ CHANGE In SINGLE WORD. [CHAP. XII. in one of the best known Psalms (Ps. Ixvii.), where the Sep tuagint has Xaoi and the Vulgate populi, the English had ' Let the people praise thee, 0 God ; let all the people praise thee ;' leaving it at least doubtful whether the ' nations ' of verse 4, or God's people, Israel, be referred to."^ In thus bringing out the true meaning of the original, a great service has been rendered to the readers of the Old Tes tament, in that in prophecy and promise the marked distinc tion between Jews and Gentiles may be understood. If a blessing or a curse is pronounced, we know upon whom it falls, whether upon God's chosen people or upon the peoples or nations without. In Isaiah viii. 9 we read in the Author ized version, "Associate yourselves, 0 je people, and ye shall be broken in pieces." This would seem to be a threatening against the Jews. But according to the Hebrew and in the Revised version it reads: " Make an uproar, 0 ye peoples, and ye shall be broken in pieces. . . . Take counsel together, and it shall be brought to nought : . . . for God is with us." Instead of a threatening, it becomes a pledge of protection to God's chosen people. So in Isaiah xiv. 6 the Authorized version reads: "He who smote the joeq^Ze in wrath." This would seem to refer to the Jews. But the Revised version reads: "That smote the peoples in wrath." Thus making it clear that the Gentiles are intended. On the contrary, we find that when promises are uttered to the Gentiles, the blessings are seem ingly bestowed upon the Jews. Isaiah Ixii. 10, the Author ized version reads: "Go through, go through the gates; pre pare ye the way of the people ; . . . lift up a standard for the people." But the Revised version reads : " . . . lift up an ensign for the peoples." Again, in Isaiah Iv. 4 the Authorized version reads : " Behold, I have given him for a witness to the people, a leader and commander to the people. " But the Revised version reads : " Behold, I have given him for a witness to the peoples, a leader and a commander to the peoples." ' Preface of R. V. of 0. T., p. viii. 1st ed. roy. 8vo. Oxford, 1885. 1885.] ENLARGING OUR VOCABULARY. 471 It is a matter of regretHo^m'anylhat the British revisers did not heed the request of their American brethren to " sub stitute the Divine name ' Jehovah ' wherever it occurs in the Hebrew text for 'the Lord' and 'God.'"i But they thought it advisable to follow the usage of the Authorized version. And so the special changes indicated were relegated to the Appendix. Something of the same disappointment is felt in regard to the numerous other changes suggested by the American com mittee, which were placed in the Appendix. In respect to language, the revisers thought it to be "no part of their duty to reduce it to conformity with modern usage." In this they were partly right; and yet they kindly acknowledge that there might be ground for "a friendly difference of opinion." To American readers at least there is abundant ground for dif ference of opinion ; yet possibly in the line of so-called archaic words there are changes recommended in which many Amer icans will sympathize with the English revisers. There is no question but that the trend of sentiment has been for some time toward the conservation of the Saxon ele ment of our tongue. The growing popularity of the study of early English in our colleges and the gathering up of old English words in our latest and best dictionaries are evi dences of a growing public sentiment in favor of enlarging instead of contracting our vocabulary. The British commit tee claim that the principle by which they were guided was clear and consistent. "Where an archaic word or expres sion was liable to be misunderstood, or at least was not per fectly intelligible, they have substituted for it another, in equally good use at the time the Authorized Version was made, and expressing all that the archaism was intended to cohvey, but more familiar to the modem reader." * In looking over the Appendix for archaisms, take the fol- 1 Appendix R. V. ofO. T., p. 633. 1st ed., roy. 8vo. Oxford, 1885. s Preface ofR. V. of 0. T., p. x. Roy. 8vo. Oxford, 1885. 472 CHANGES PROPOSED IN APPENDIX. [CHAP. XII. lowing examples, which the British committee seemingly did well to retain : The word astonied, in Ezra ix. 3, is recommended to be displaced by astonished. According to the dictionaries it is an archaic word, ' but in its connection it is quite intelligible. Outside of the Bible , : 'it has fallen into disuse, excepting in poetry, where many worthy Saxon and Middle English words flnd an asylum. The word is not only intelligible, but carries with it a depth of feeling which is lacking in the word astonished. Attempt the substitution in this and other places where it occurs, and you will doubtless be glad that it still finds a place in the Bible. Again, take the word disannul, found in Isaiah xiv. 37, for which annul is to be substituted. Disannul is by no means an archaic word, although the Standard Dictionary, 1894, so marks it. The Century Dictionary, 1889, however, does not. Its intel ligibility cannot be called in question, and it certainly carries with it an intensity of meaning. The word has a place in Shake speare. Misdeem, in Deut. xxxii. 37, is another example. For this our Amer ican revisers would have us substitute judge amiss. This word misdeem is another good Middle English word that we are not called to banish from our vocabulary. Then there is the word rumour, II. Kings xix. 7, for which tidings is to be substituted. In neither of these last examples can it be charged that there is the least archaic smell about them. In the word eschewed, Job i. 1, for which it is recommended to sub stitute turned away from, we have a very rare Bible word, as it is confined to the book of Job and to I. Peter iii. 11. The word finds a place in Shakespeare. Eschewed carries with avoid ance from the sense of fear. It is a rare coin, and valuable on account of its intrinsic worth. We associate the word with the book of Job. It had a place in the Authorized version of the New Testament, but the revisers banished it. We have the British committee of the Old Testament to thank that this word is not entirely lost to our Bible vocabulary. Again, the Appendix objects, with perhaps good reason, to the word tired, II. Kings ix. 30, and would substitute attired. This change is somewhat questionable, since it is an early English word referring to the special aot of putting on the tiara. The word is obsolete, yet having special reference to a special act is a reason for its retention. Besides, in its connection the word is intelligible. 1885.J EXAMPLES OF ARCHAIC WORDS. 473 In following out the rule where archaic words were liable to be misunderstood and others to be substituted, take the following as illustrations : Gen. L 11. Ex. XXVIII. 33. XXXVI. 13. Deut. XIX. 8. I. Sam. VIII. 13. XX. 40. XXVII. 10. Job XVIII. 19. Ps. V. 6. LXXXVIII. 13. CXXIV. 3. Is. III. 22. Jer. XLVL 4. Ezek. XXVII. 16. XVI. 4. its kind, for his kind. coat of mail, for habergeon. clasps of gold, for taches of gold. thy border, for thy coast. plow his ground, for ear his ground. his weapons, for his artillery. made a raid, for a road. son's son, for nephew. speak lies, for speak leasing. come before 'thee, for prevent swallowed us up alive, for swal lowed us up quick shawls and the satchels,'^ for and the coats of mail, for brigandines. traded, for occupied. cleanse, for supple. Such changes as the above are found throughout the Old Testament, and they exercise an important function in making clear the sense of very many passages. While the revisers were employed in so good a work, allowing them the privilege and right to retain a class of archaic words as above intimated, yet it is somewhat disappointing that they should pass over so many words that, on account of their obsolescence, obscure the text. The following are cited as examples : They retain decision, Joel iii. 14, instead of threshing ; charger. Num. vii. 13, instead ot platter ; preventest, Ps. xxi. 3, instead of meei- est Again, the revisers retain health, Ps. xliii. 5, instead of sub stituting help. The word health in the sense of power to give help has been lost beyond recovery ; hence, for the sake of bringing out the meaning of the sentence, the word help is desirable. The same is true in respect to the word conversation, Ps. 1. 23. which 1 Possibly money bags. Compare II. Kings v. 23. 474 CHANGES IN FAMILIAR PASSAGES. [CHAP. XII. is retained instead of way ; so likewise the word prevented, in Ps. cxix. 147, instead of anticipated, where it obscures the sense of the passage. In dealing with the Hebrew word Shedl, which corresponds to Hades in the Greek, the revisers manifest their usual conservative spirit. In historical narratives, the grave and the pit are retained in the text with Sheol in the margin; while in the poetical writings they have put Sheol in the text and grave in the margin. ^ The American revisers would in every case put Sheol wherever it is rendered the grave, the pit, and hell in the text, and omit these readings from the margins. There is a class of familiar passages which, by reason of their beauty and moral power, have been treasured up as very precious in the memory of many Bible readers. The discov ery that any of these have suffered change at the hands of the revisers will prove a serious disappointment. Especially is this true in cases where the reason for change is quite inadequate, so that the loss sustained is greater than the supposed gain. But the case is radically different where the rendering of the Authorized version is quite impossible with any kind of faithfulness to the original. Take the fol lowing, in which there are examples of both these extremes : Gen. XVL 13. . . . Thoxx Ood seest me. The R. V. reads : Thou art a Ood that seeth. Job XIII. 15. Though he slay me, yet will / trust in him. The R. V. reads: Though he slay me yet will I wait for him. In each of these examples there seems to be a softening down by reason of indirectness. Ps. I. 3. And he shall be like a tree planted by the rivers of water. The R. V. reads : And he shall be like a tree planted by the streams of water. VII. 11. . . . and God is a/ngry ¦with the wicked every day. The R. V. reads: . . Yea, a God that hath indignation every daiy. The object of the anger as expressed in the A. V. is not in the original. Dr. J. A. Alexander thinks that " although the object is not expressed in the origi- » Comp. Preface, p. ix., R. V. of 0. T. Oxford, 1885 1885.] CHANGES IN FAMILIAR PASSAGES. 475 nal, it is obvious, and is rendered more conspicu ous by this omission." '¦ Ps. XXXII. 8. I will instruct thee and teach thee in the way which thou shalt go. I will guide thee with mine eye. The R. V. reads : . . . I will counsel thee with mine eye upon thee. The great disappointment here lies in the fact that- many readers regard these as the words of God to David. Dr. Alex ander pronounces it a gratuitous assumption that there should be two different speakers in two suc cessive verses, without anything to indicate n. change. The conclusion is, therefore, that David is addressing a friend to whom he promises to point out the way of safety. ^ XC. 13. So teach us to number our days, that we may apply our hearts unto wisdom. The R; V. reads: ; . . That we may get us an heart of liiisdom. There' ' is difficulty, here in the construction. Dr. Alex ander declares t\e rendering of the A. 'V. " forced and ungrammatical. " So that the reading of the R. V. may be regarded as more correct and so far desirable. Prov. XIII. 15. . . . but the way of transgressors is hard. The R. V. reads : . . . but the way of the treach erous is rugged. This is nearer the Hebrew. Yet Moses Stuart acknowledges that hard in the sense of difficult "gives us what the Hebrew aims at yet not exactly what it expresses. " His transla tion is no more satisfactory than that of the R. V. He translates: "... but the way of the treach erous is stony. "' XVIII. 34. A man that hath friends must shew himself friendly. The R. V. reads : He that maketh many friends doeth it to his own destruction. This apparently is an opposite sentiment.- The reading of the A. V. is certainly preferable. Stuart, in his Com mentary, admits that many of the critics agree with the A. V., yet he prefers to read: "A man of friends will show himself as base."* In the 1 Alexander on PsaZms, in loco. New York, 1853. ^ Ibid, in loco. » Commentary on the Book of Proverbs, in loco. Andover, 1863. * Ibid, in loco. 476 CHANGES IN FAMILIAR PASSAGES. [CHAP. XII. disagreement of the critics, we are left free to bemoan the change. Ecel. I. 14. . • • and, behold, all is vanity and vexa tion of spirit The R. V. reads: . . . and a striving after wind. This conforms to the judg ment of most critics, but to ordinary ears the A. V. conveys the meaning better. Is. XXVII. 8. . . . He slayeth his rough wind in the day of the east wind. The R. V. reads : . . . Ke hath removed her with his rough blast in the day of the east wind. Evidently there is difficulty connected with this whole passage. The connec tion seems to favor the reading of the R. V., there fore the loss of this familiar passage must be ac cepted. Jer. XVII. 9. The heart is deceitful above all things, and desper ately wicked. The R. V. reads: . . . and it is desperately sick. Instead of sick, the word dis eased has been suggested. The word wicked may be tod strong, but neither of the above render ings is an improvement. Hab. II. 15. Woe unto him that giveth his neighbour drink, that puttest thy bottle to him, and makest him drunken also. . . . The R. V. reads: . . . that add- est thy venom thereto, and makest him drunken also. . . . This familiar passage doubtless has been often misapplied to social drinking; but the reference is to the forcing of drink upon another for the purpose of gaining power over him for evil. Hag. II 7. And I will shake all nations, and the Desire of all riations shall come. The R. V. reads : . . . and the desirable things of all nations shall come. One of the revisers speaking of this change, says "that the title, ' the Desire of all nations,' seems so exactly descriptive of Christ . . . that we would fain retain it if we could. But it is simply an impossible rendering of the original." ^ The advantages of the revisers over those of 1611 were manifold. Besides superior editions of the Septuagint and ' Roberts' Old Testament Revision, p. 88. New York, 1883. 1885,] EXAMPLES OF IMPROVEMENTS. 477 Vulgate and other sources not available in 1611, great advance had been made in the grammar and lexicography of the He brew language. Gesenius, the celebrated Jewish philologist, was the first to apply the historico-logical methods to Hebrew lexicography. The importance of this is seen in bringing out both the original significance of the word and its later or historical meanings in the usage of different ages and writers. > In the graip.matical field, not only Gesenius, but Ewald and others had labored most satisfactorily. On account of these advances much may rightly be expected from the labors of the revisers, and the more carefully their work is examined, the more evident their faithfulness tvill appear. As examples of marked improvements, the following are inserted: Gen. XXXVI. 34. . . . this was that Anah that found the mules in the wilderness. The R. V. reads ; . . this is Anah who found the hot springe in the wilderness. XLIX. 6. . . . and in their sell-will they digged down a wall. The R. V. reads : and in their self- will they hougfied cm ox. XLIX. 10. . . . nor a law giver from between his feet, until Shiloh come ; and unto him shall the gath ering of tlie people be. The R. V. reads : Nor ihe ruler's staff from between his feet until Shiloh come; and unto him shall the obedience of tlie peoples be. This change is important as showing that the Gentiles are here referred to, and not the Jews. Ex. III. 23. But every woman shall borrow of her neighbour. The R. V. reads : . . . shall ask of her neighbour. See also Ex. xii. 35, 36. XX. 13. Thou shalt not kill The R. V. reads: Thou shalt do no murder. Under some circumstances it may be lawful to kill, but not to do murder. XXXIV. IS. . . . cut down their groves. The R. V. reads : their Asherim. The margin reads : Proba- ' Compare Preface, Robinson's Gesenius, p. iv., Sth ed. Boston, 1854. 478 IMPROVEMENTS IN. TRANSLATIONS.- [CHAP; XII.- bly the wooden symbols of a goddess Asherah.- So in other places. Lev. XVIII. 18. Neither shalt thou take a wife to her sister, to vex her . . . beside the other in her life time. The R. V. reads: . . . to le a rival to her. This is supposed to make the matter plain that this pas sage affords no foundation for the vexed question of marrying the sister of a deceased wife. Doubt less polygamy is connived at here, but it is re- ' stricted. It is forbidden that two sisters shall become at the same time wives ol one man. Pew incorrect interpretations have so widely affected; individual consciences and English state law as this. ^ Judges XV.. 19. But God clave an hollow place that was in the jaw, and there came water thereout. The R. V. reads: But God clave the hollow place that is in.Lehi . . . Notwithstanding that the preferajble reading is ' • giveninfchemarginof the A. V.,andthattheword jaw is another name lor the district ol Lehi, and "so called from a chain ol steep craggy rocks, just as single rocks are ealled teeth," ^ yet the impression ol the ordinary reader is that the water came out of the jawbone used by Samson. II. Chron. 1. 16. And Solomon had, horses brought out ol Egypt, and linen ycirn; the king's merchants receive the linen yarn at a price. The R. V. reads: And the horses which Solomon had were brought out ol Egypt ; the king's merchants received them in droves, each drove at a price. Dr. Chambers, one ol the O. T. revisers, says: "Linen yarn is , certainly a mistranslation." XI. 15. And he ordained him priests lor the high places, ¦ I and lor the devils, and lor the calves which he , , ¦ had made. The R. V. reads : . . . Ior the high places and lor the he goats. So in Leviticus xvii. 7, instead ol devils, the R. V. reads: And ' "It is simply a matter ol regret and reproach, that English law h^s not yet acknowledged the validity ol the marriages in question, while so much suffering and sorrow have followed in conseqnence." — Dr. Roberts in 0. T. Revision, p. 57. New York, 1883. * Robinson's In the history of English versions, one revision has not infre quently opened the way for another, but in this case there would seem to be insuperable difficulties in the way. An American edition comprising the suggestions of the American company, which were relegated to the Appendix both in the Old and New Testaments, is a possibility, but not a proba bility for an indefinite time to come. At least at present there is no intimation of such a demand on the part of the American public. It would seem, then, that the Revised Bible, as we have 1 " A revision ol the Revision, by recommitment to the old, or by the appointment of a new Committee, is surrounded by almost as many difficulties as the original movement. "-Dr. Schaff's Companion to the Greek Test and the Eng. Version, p. 416. New York, 1885. 494 NOTE CONCERNING APOCRTPHA. [CHAP.XII. received it from the hands of the Anglo-American companies, is a finality for years to come. And it ought to be looked upon not as a New Bible, but as the Old Bible renewed. In woof and warp it is the same, but has been emended with material in color and texture as near the old as possible. This Bible, then, is simply what the revisers claim for it in their title-pages; Being THE Version set forth A. D. 1611 compared with the most ANCIENT authorities, AND REVISED A. D. 1881 — 1885. Note. — Word has been received' Irom London, under date ol Octo ber 15, 1895, that the revision ol the Apocrypha has been completed, and will be issued Irom the Oxford Press in various sizes uniform with the Revised Old and New Testament. " It would be out ol place in this connection, even il the work had been published, to attempt a critical notice ol it. The Apocrypha has a history and a literature ol its own. It lound a secondary place in the Septuagint, but no recognition what ever in the H ebrew Bible, and consequently does not belong to the Canon ol the Old Testament. The early Greek and Roman lathers quoted parts ol the Apocrypha as Scripture. The Council ol Trent endorsed some of the books and rejected others. The name was given originaUy as a title of honor, and meant hidden. But as early as the second century the title was so degraded as to mean spurious — a meaning which it bears to this day. There is no doubt but that the Apocrypha fllls an important gap in the history of the Jews and ol their literature Irom the close ol the Canon ol the Old Testament to the times of the New Testament ; and yet it is known to contain much that is unreliable and unhistorical, and much more that has been styled as "arrant romance." An old writer says: " The attentive reader must perceive that these books want the majesty of inspired scripture; and, that there is in them a variety ol things wicked, lalse, and disagreeable to the Oracles of God." Yet, strange to say, since the times ol the Reformation, the Apocrypha has lound a place in some of the editions of the English Bible, and now is honored by being revised by the English Revision Committee, or by at least a part of them, and it is ordered to be bound separately in various sizes uniform with the Revised Old and New Testament. It is certainly a matter of congratulation, however, that such counsel as that of Prof. Alexander Roberts, D.D., a member ol the English Committee on Revision, did not prevail, since he says in his Old Testament Revision, p. 136: "A .great boon would be conferred on ordinary English readers, il at least the Book ol Wisdom, Ecclesiasticus, and the Books ol Maccabees were printed in our common editions ol the Bible." INDEX. .^fric, the first to translate the historical books of the Bible into Saxon, 39. His method in translating, 39. His estimate of the importance of reading the Scriptures, 39, 40. His Saxon ver sion of the Ten Commandments, 40, 41. He closes the Saxon period of Bible versions, 41. His Heptateuch, 6S. Aidan,, Bishop, founded the monastery of Lindisfarne, 31. Alan, William, one of the translators of the Rheims New Testament, 296. Was made a cardinal, 397. Alcuin, corrects the Latin Bible, 31. Aldhelm,, Bishop, translated the Latin Psalter into Saxon, 28. His reputed piety, 23, 29. An example of Latin culture among the Anglo-S.ixons, 29. Alexander's., William, translation of the Pentateuch for the Society of Friends, 419. His design was to adapt the Bible to audible reading in the family circle, 419. Alexandrinus^ Codex, short account of, note. 373. Alfred, King, translated selections of the Bible into Saxon, 33, 33. His version of the Ten Commandments, 33; speci men of, 33, 31. The language spoken in the time of, 34, American Bible Society Revision of the Authorized version, 4^0. Made minor corrections, 429. Public alarm occa sioned by, 421. Standard of, revoked, 421. Examples of changes in, but re ceded from in most c^ses^ 433, 423. American Bible Union Revision of the New Testament, 426: also of Penta teuch, 426. Adopted the paragraph form in printing, 427. Rules pre scribed to the revisers of, 4^7. Excel lence of the work assured from the character of the revisers of, 427. The use of the word immerse limits it to the Baptist denomination, 437. Speci mens of translation from, 437, 438. Andrews. Dean, one of the translators of King James' Bible, 339. Anglo- AmericELTi Revision, 429. Origin of, 429, English Old Testament revisers of, 430. English New Testament re visers of, 430, 431. General principles foUowed by the revisers of, 431, 433. Changes in EngUsh companies on, 432, 433, Scholarsnip and catholicity of English revisers of, 433. Expenses of, defrayed by University Presses, 433. The Apocrypha to be included in,note, 433. American committee on, 433, ^. American Old Testament company on, 434, American New Testament company on, 434, 435. Constitution adopted by American committee on, 435. Changes in American companies on, 436. Progress in the work of, 437. International and interdenomina tional, 437. Timea favorable for mak ing, 437, Wide-spread expectation concerning, 437. The unanswerable question respecting, 438. The New Testament of, published simultane ously in England and in this country, 438. Public interest excited by ap pearance of the N, T. of, 438. The question of its final adoption, 438, 439. Preface, N. T. of 439-441. Greek text to be followed by N. T. revisers of, 440. Based upon the Textus Beceptus, 441. Its treatment of debatable pas. sages, 442, 443. Its correct treatment of Greek tenses, 444, 445. Improve ments in, from an emended Greek text, 445-447. Its treatment of the Greek article, 447 ; also of Greek prep ositions, 44S, 449. Obsolete words re tained in N. T. of, 449, 450 ; also die- placed by, 450, 451. New words intro duced in N. T. of, 451-455. Its literal- ness for the sake of faithftilnese to the Greek, 455. N. T. appendix of, com prises suggestions of American, not adopted by English committee, 455- 458; also a monument to the mem ory of a united Christian scholarship, 458. Arber's Pho-Htographed facsimile of Tyn dale's New Testament, 103, Ascham, Roger, taught his age the power of the English language, 339. His apology for writing his works in En glish, ^0, The complaint of, in time of Elizabeth, 254, 355. Augustine. Roman missionary to Britain, " 17. Certain books brought by him to England, 18, Authorized Version, or King James' Bible, its origin in the Hampton Court Coun cil, 335, 326. Puritan? the chief movers in, 326. No special demand for, 321?" Expenses of, not defrayed by the king, 338. Translators of, appointed, 327; also list of, 828, 339 ; also noted for their piety and their learning, 339, 40G INDEX. Eules followed ty translators of, 3.30, 831. Some six years employed in the completion of, 331, 332. Title-page of, 332, 333. Dedication and preface of, 333-336. Two editions of, printed in first year, 336, 337. Wide-spread op position to, 337, 338. Genevan Bible the serious rival of, 338. Au edition of, published in 1649, with Genevan annotations, 338. Became the ac cepted English Bible, 339. No au- tliority for the names. Authorized Version and King James' Bible, 339. Authorities accessible to translators of, 339,310. The fimdamental Greek text of, 312, 343. Bishop's Bible, the basis of, 344. Its relation to previous Enghsh versions, 343-347. Its rendor- in-js of Greek prepositions, 347, 34S; also of Greek articles, 3^, 349. Its rendering of a single Greek word by several English words, 350-352; also of several Greek words by a single English word, 352-3&1. Shrors in punctuation of, 354, 355. Its influence npon English language and literature, 335-361, 391. The Bible of the people, 358. Its relation to English literature, 360. Its relation to Protestant reli gion, 361, 362. Typographical errors in, 363. Gross errors of, 364-366. Manuscript of, 366. The oneness of oiH" modern English Bibles with, 367. Eebraic element in, 367, 368. Archa isms in, 369. Obsolete words in, 370. Textual criticism in its application to, 872-388. Debatable passages in, 383- S3C. Integrity of, 337. Necessity for revision of, 387. l^rly proposal for a revision of, 389, 390. Inflnence of, 391. The Anglo-JVmerican Eevision of, 429-458. Baber, H. H. , liis edition of Wycliffe's New Testament, 73, 74. Bacon, Lord, had no confidence in the vi tality of the English language, 253. Backster, Margery, accused Ior possessing the New Testament in English, 74. Ball, John, a leader of insurrections in the time of Wycliffe, 60. Barne.', Dr. Robert, raised the standard of learning at Cambridge, 141. Arrested by Wolsey, 144. Barker and Lncas' edition of the Bible, 1632, gross errors in, 364. Baufie^d, Richard, bis martyrdom at Smith fleld, 1531. 117. Becke^ Bdniimd, his edition of Matthewe's Bible, 105. Specimen from his trans lation, 195, 19(i. Bede, the Venerable, his translations of the Scrintures into the Saxon, 30. Bellamifs New Translation of the Bible, 410. Demerits of, 410, 411. Speci mens from, 411. Bertha, Ethelherf.'s queen, 17. Beza, Theodore, his residence at Geneva, 241. Applied to, by Elizabeth to refute the Kheims version, 312. His Greek text used by King James' translators, 342,343. Bezos, Codex, a short acconnt of, nate, 374. Bible, its inflnence upon the languages into which it is translated, 79. Con fusion in accounts of English editions of, 112, 173. Welcomed by the people, 185. In English opposed by the pa pists, 186, 187. Editions of, known as "Bibles of Greatest Volume," 199, 216, 218, 219. Supposed relation of the English, to heresy, 232. Text of, divided into verses, 235, 236. Verte divisions of, concerning, 236, 237. Commentaries on, use and abuse of, 247-249. The Book of the household, 256. Literary influence of, 256-358, 301. Religions influence of, 257, 271, 2r2, 391. Eirst printed edition of the Hebrew, 341. Bomberg's Hebrew, 341. Corruptions in English editions of, 305, 366. The English, a standard of language, 359 ; also its relation to lit erature. 360. Human side of, 376. Re vival of interest in, 438. Bible Classes, for mutml improvement, note, 247. Forbidden by Queen Eliza beth, 247. .BeB and Barker obtained possession of manuscript of King James' Bible, 306. Bilney, Thomas, reads the New Testament of Erasmus, 95, 140. Meets with Fiyth and Tyndale, 95, 96. Burned at the stake, 1531, 116. BisJiop's Bible, Archbishop Parker the chief mover of, 272. Reasons for is suing, 272. Plan, revision of, 373. Rules for revisers of, 273, 274. Fa vored by the bishops, 274. Several names of, 275. Not licensed by Queen Elizabeth, 275. Title-pages of, 376. Preface of, 276, 277. Based upon Cranmer's Bible, 277. Compared with Cranmer's Bible, 278, 279. Specimen from Old Testament of, 379-231 . Schol arship of New Testament of, 281. Spe cimen from N. T. of, 281-284. Happy renderings, examples from, 283. Lan guage of, 284, 285. Familiar terms in, ^5. Explanatory terms in text of, 386, 287. Latinisms in, 387, 288. Ob solete words in, 288. Obscene words to be excluded from. 288, 289. Pas sages, omitted in public reading of, 289. Annotations of, 288-291. Ciren- lation of, 291, 292. The basis of King James' Bible, 292. Hated by the papists, 292, 263. Defended by Dr. Frfike, 293. Black Death, fearful ravages of. 60 Steywey'*, Dr. Benj., corrected Bible, 396. Regarded as standard by Oxford press, 396. Errors in, 397. Bodleioh. .Tohn, licensed to print the Gene van Bible, 275. Botet/n, Queen Anne, belonged to the New Testament party, 133. Received from Tyndale a copy of his New Testament, note, 1.33. Execution of, note, 157. Bomberg^s Hebrew Bible, 341. INDEX. 497 Brewster, James, sufibred martyrdom for the Word of God, 80. Bristow, Richard, one of the translators of Eheims New Testament, 397. The Rheims annotations attributed to him, 297. Buck and Daniel's corrected Bible, 364. BnekingJiam, Prior, his sermon against the Scriptures in English, 143. .Bwo-Bible, the nickname of Matthewe's Bible, 198. C. Cmdmon^ the cowherd of Whitby, 22. Bede s account of, 22, 23. His metri cal paraphrase, 24. The ancient, 25. Specimens of his paraphrase, 24-27. Calvin, John, his residence at Geneva, 241. Campbell's, Alexander, revision of New Testament, 411. Its make up, 411, 412. Extracts from preface of, 412. Speci men of translation from, 412, 413. Campbell, Dr. George, his version of the Four Gospels, 399. His Philosophy of Rhetoric, 399. His Four Gospels appropriated by Alexander Campbell, 400. Specimens of unfortunate render ings in his translation, 400. Cawm Law, tenets of, 54. Cartwright, Thomas, his Confutation of Eheims translation, 312. His scholar ship, 312. An eloquent preacher, 312. CastaZio's version of the Bible, its in fluence upon the Genevan version, note, 343. Done in classical Latin, 340. Caxton, WilUam, and the introduction of printing into England, 88. Chaderton, 'Dr., one of the translators of King James' Bible, 829. Challoner, Dr. Richard, his revision of the Douay Bible, 331. Conformed it to text of King James' Bible, 321. Spe cimens of nis translation, 322, 823. His annotations, 323. Charter, The Great, signed by King John, 44. Its principles already in English law, 44. ChaiMier. Geoffrey, his vocabulary, more Saxon than Langland's, 83. Was Wycliffe's ideal of good poet, 86. Re ligions influence of his poetry, 86. Was studied in time of Henry VIH. for the sake of his English, 322 Cheke, Sir John, his translation of Gospel of M.atthew, 225. A purist by princi ple, 235, 236. Examples of words coined by. 326. His refoi-m in ortho graphy, '226, 337. Specimen from his translation, 227, 228. Tendency of the language in time of. 228. 229. Christianity, Latin, introduced among tlie Saxons, 17, 18. Not the Romanized, of later times, 19, 20. In Ireland, 20. Civil Law, its characteristics, 54. Clarke. Dr.. cited, no<«. 386. . Clement VIII., his edition of Latm Vul gate, 3J5. ,,, „ , CocM'p.us 'dtivea Tyndale from Cologne, 100. Colet, Dean, studied early poets for sake of English style, 125. Colman, Bishop, in the Whitby council. 23. ColumM, founded the monastery of lona, 21. Conant, Dr. T. J., one of the revisers of the American Bible Union Revision, 427 ; also of the Anglo-American Re vision, 434. Cornwaile, John, in 1536, honored his mother tongue, 83. Coverdale, Myles, his birth and education, 144. Accompanied Barnes to London, 145. Enjoyed the patronage of Crom well, 145, 147. At Bumstede, 146. His connection with Tyndale question able. 147. A representative of the moderate party, 149. Whether he translated from the Hebrew, 155, 160. His conscientiousness as a translator, 160, 161. Richness of his style, 161, 163. Use of quaint expressions, 167, 168. Charged with perverting the Latin Bible, 169. His Diglott New Testament, 169, 170. Returned to England, 170. Engaged to put forth the Bible in another translation, 171, 199. Letters to Lord Cromwell, 200- 304. At Geneva during the Marian persecution, 241. The life and death of, 393, 294. Coverdale's Bible, undertaken as a com promise, 147, 148. Ready for the press. 153. Printed at Zurich, 154. Whether Van Meteren was translator of, 154. The flrst whole EngUsh Bible printed, 164. Title-page of, 154, 155. Dis- a'reement m titles ; also in dedica tions of, 155, 156. Prologue of, 166. Unfavorable reception of, by papists, 157. Injunction bearing upon, 158. Favorable reception of, by the people, 159. Based upon the Zurich Bible ; •-' also the original Hebrew, 160. Speci men of translation from, 161-166. Fol lowed the Septuagint in numbering the Psalms, note, 162. Changes in, for the better, 166, 167. Quaint expressions in, 167, 168. Obsolete words in, 168. Awakens opposition of papists, 169. Second edition of, licensed, 182. Cranmer, Archbishop, moves for a new translation of Scriptures, 153. His at tempt unsuccessful, 158. Relations to the Bible of 1537, 180-182. His letter respecting public reading of Bible, 187 188. Opposed the Six Articles, 206,' 207. His meeting with Gardiner, 209 Arranges for second edition of Great Bible, 309. His prologue printed as late as 1583, note, 311. Subverts Gardiner's scheme, 220. Suffered mar tyrdom during reign of Mary, 232 A friend of Evangelical party. 245. Cranmer's Bible, the price of, 309. Delay in printing of, 209, 310. Coverdale s testimony concerning, 310. Second edition of Great Bible, 210. Title-page of 310. Copy of in British Museum, 211 Prologue of, 211-213. Proclama- 498 INDEX. tion concerning, 213. Set up in Paul's church, 213. Cranmer's part in editing of, 214. Coverdale the chief reviser of, 214. Supplementary clauses in, 214. Compared with Cromwell's Bible, 315. Six editions of, 216. Criticism, Modern textual, 373-377. The day of alarm concerning, passed, 376. Tregelles on, 376, 377. Summary of facts bearing upon, 377-.379. Applica tion of, to our received English Bible, 380-387. As applied to the Eeceived Greek text, 441. Its demands npon the Anglo-American Revisers, 442, 443. Cromwell, Lord, His policy in regard to Tyndale, 116. A patron of Miles Cov erdale, 145, 147, 148, 316. His in junctions respecting reading the Bible, 183, 184. His part in issuing the Great Bible. 1539, 199-204. His con nection with the condemnation of Lambert, 206. His influence fast wan ing, 208. A victim to jealousy of his enemies. 216. Compared with Cran mer, 216, 317. His statesmanship, 217. Craimier's regard for. 217. Beheaded, 1540, 217. The Great Bibles, the result of his enterprise, 219. After his death Eomish party came into power, 219. CromuieU's Bible, edited by Coverdale, 199. Grafton and Whitechurch, the printers of, 199. Issued from Paris, 199. Cromwell's connection with, 199- 201. The printers of, threatened, 202. Completed in London, 203. Annota tions of, 203. Title of, 204. Holbein's frontispiece to, 204, 205. Prefatory matter of, 205. Chief characteristic of, 205. Based upon Matthewe's Bible, 205. Latin version of Pagninus used in revising O. T. of, 205, 206. Greek Testament of Erasmus used in revising N. T. of, 206. Specimen of translation from, 206. Favored by Henry VIIL, 208. CurcVs, Father, translation of New Tes tament into Italian, 1881, note, 340. Cuthbert's, St., Gospels, 36. D. Balaier's, Anthony, story of the persecu tion of Garret, 107-110. Banes, invasion of, 31, 32. Dante broke from the Latin, 253. D'Aubigne's estimate of character of Wyclifl'e, 84. Dickinson's Rodolphus, version of New Testament, 415. Fashionable language of, 416. Remarkable preface to, 416, 417. Specimen of translations iVom, 417, 418. Annotations of, 418, 419. Diglott New Testament, three editions of, 169. 170. Dillinc/ham, Francis, one of the translators of King James' Bible, 339. Diodati'.'.; John, Italian version of the Bible, 340. Douay Bible, motive for translation of, 295, 296. Chief doers in translating. 296, 297. New Testament of, flrst printed, 297. Old Testament of. remained in mannscript, 313. Trans lated from Clementine edition of Vul- fate, 315. Title-page of, 316. Old 'estament of, attracted but little at tention, 816, Unacceptable to English Catholics, 316. Two editions of, 313. Imperfections of, not because from the Vulgate, 317. Dr. Nary's estimate of, 320. Tendency to liberality among revisers of, 323. Is not the Roman Catholic Bible of to-day, 323. Downes, Andrew, one of the translators of King James' Bible, 329. Durham ]3ook, contains Saxon versions of the Gospels, 36, 37. Known as St. Cuthbert's Gospels, and Lindisfarne Gospels, 36. Supposed miraculous powers of, 36, 37. Specimen of trans lation from, 37. K. Early English, specimens of, 51. EdwardlJX.,'m% reign, a period of glory and of shame, 60 ; also an epoch in history of English language, 81. In tellectual awakening during reign of, 52. Edward VI. favored the Reformation and the English Bible, 224, 225. . Elizabeth, Queen, opposed the preaching of the Gospel, 247. Classic ideals, during reign of, 254. Italian language fashionable at the court of, 254. New fangled English in time of, 255. Char acteristics of the age of, 255. Her reign a transitional period, 266. Her ideals and policy, 266-268. Refused, in form,- spiritual supremacy, 267. Re vival of popery during time of, 268. Morals and manners during reign of, 270, 271. Visited by her sister Mary, 271. Date of her death, 324. Elyot, Sir Thomas, charged with the duty of seizing Tyndale, 117. Encha^ridion of Erasmus, translated by Tyndale, 96. Its influence in the family of Sir John Walsh, 96. Endhoven, Christopher, charged with the crime of printing English New Testa ments, 111. English language, its formation during Norman Conquest, 43. Early speci mens of, 47, 51. In the time of Wycliffe, 67. A rich mine of 73. In fluence of translations of the Bible npon, 79, 81, 83, 239. Restored to the courts in time of Edward HI., 81. In the time of Tyndale, 128, 129. Epoch in the history of, 223. In time of Edward III., 228, 229. Growing in importance, 229. Its vitality doubted by Lord Bacon, 253. Its conflict with the Latin, 253. In the time of Eliza beth, 255, 285. The Bible the standard of 256, 356, 357. Growing confldence in the permanence of, 358. Dr. John son praises, 266. Sir Philip Sidney on, 226, 257. The representative of a trae INDEX. 499 democracy, 857, 358. Saxon element of, appreciated by scholars, 437. Ephriemi, Codex, a short account of, note, 373, 374. Erasmus, his flrst visit to England, 89. His Greek Testament, 90-94. Favors an English version of the Scriptures, 91, 332. A professed papist, 92. Taught Greek at Cambridge, 95. His Greek Testament at Cambridge, 140, 141. Wrote his Praise of Folly in Latin. 223. His Paraphrase, 230. His fifth edition of Greek Testament, fol lowed by Stevens, 842. Ethelbert, King of Kent, 17. His address to the Roman missionaries, 17. Eyre ami Strahan's corrected edition of the Bible, 1806, 366. in. Foxe, the martyrologist, the chief biog- raplier of Tyndale, 95, 97. Relates the story of Garret's sufferings, 107- 110. Relates the particulars of Tyn dale's arrest, 134, 135. His estimate of Tv'itlale's character, 133. French Bible, Genevan revision of, 340. Fryth, .lohn, short account of, 118. Im mediate effects of his martyrdom, 113. Estimate of character of Tyndale, 133. Ilis letter to Tyndale, 178. Fulke, Dr, William, Master of Pembroke Hall, 235. His defense of English Scriptures, 265, 292, 293. His answ-ers to Rhemish Annotations, 313. Fuller. Dr. Thomas, his estimate of the Rheims translation, 303. GJ-. Gardiner, Bishop, his influence with the king, 206. His opposition to English Bible, 219-221, 300, 301. His design commented on by Fuller, 221. His plan thwarted by Cranmer, 221, 323. The compromise of, 353. Garret, Thomas, the first distributer of Tyndale's printed Testaments, 104. Concealed Testaments in " dark cor ners," 104. Story of his persecution, 107-110. Suffered martyrdom at Smith- field, 111. Geddes, Dr. Alexander, favored English versiou of Bible, 398. Translated a portion of Old Testament, 399. Speci men of his translation, 399. Gen£van Bible, translated by English ex iles, 341. Important link in chain of revision, 241. Dedication of, 241, 243. Preface of, 342, 243. Originai sources of, note, 343. Scholarship of the trans lators of, 243. Based upon the Great Bible, 243 Excerpts from Old Testa ment of, 243, 344. The child of Prot estantism, 245. Chief characferistics of, 246 Its marginal note's, 34634<). Its "manpes of cosmographie," 249, 250. Its illustrations, 250. Wide cir culation of, 250-252. Published at Edinburgh, note, 251. Language of, 253. Its infiuence duriug reign of Elizabeth, 256. The book of thu uonsi'- hold, 256. Obsolete words in, S;5.,2c8. A store-house of pure English, i:5S. Title-page of, 258. Specimens of trans lations from, 359. Popularity of, 264. Its objectionable notes, 364. Romish attack upou, 264, 265. Fulke's de fense of, 365. Parker's Bible opposed to, 265. Survival of, against all oppo sition, 265. Bequeathed its excellen cies to the Authorized version, 2ti6. Gennan language infiuenced by transla tion of Bible into it, 79, 356. Gilby, Anthony, one of the translators of the Genevan Bible, 241. Grafton, Richard, connected with White church in printing Bible, 179. His letter to Cromwell, 179, 180. Greek language, its study opposed by papists, 139, 140. Sir T. More defended the use of, 189, And study of Saxon English, 222, Greek text, followed by King James' re visers, 342, 843. Mill's Critical, and Bentley's, occasions of alarm, 376. Adopted by Anglo-American revisers, 441, 443. Gregory, the Great, his regard for the Holy Scriptures, 20. Grocyn, William, taught Greek at Oxford, 89. Guthlac's Saxon version of the Latin Psalter, 37. Specimen from, 37, 28. H. Backer, Father, a Bible reader and New Testament distributer, 105. Arrested, 107, 143. Sacket, iigent of Henry VIH. to prevent printing of New Testaments, 111. Hackett, Dr. H. B., one of the revisers of American Bible Union Revision. 427. Hampton Court Council convened by James I., 324 ; also presided over by him, 335, 326. Motion for new trans lation of Bible made in, 326. Harmon, Richard, prosecuted for dealing in English New Testaments, 111. Harrison, Thomas, one of the translators of King James' Bible, 829. Harwood. Edward, his liberal translation of New Testament, 394, 395. Speci men of his translation, 395, 396. Hebraisms, in Tremellius' version of O. T., 1579, 340. In King James' Bible, 367, .368. Henry VTII, notified by Cocblasns of the printing of New Testaments by Tyn dale, 100. His reply to Luther, 101. Favors the Scriptures in English, 114, 149-1.51. Latimer's letter to, 151. His relation to the English Bible, 183, 208. Jealous for his reputation for orthodoxy, 207. Reproves Bishop Gardiner, 209. Revival of religion and language during reign of, 222. Closing years of reign of, 233. His death, 224. A Catholic rather than a 500 INDEX. Protestant, 224. His regard for Cran mer, 224. Hereford, Nicholas de, the translator of Old Testament of the Wycliffite ver sions, 66. Summoned before synod and excommunicated, 66. A literal translator, 68. Marsh's opinion of, 68. Hilda, the Abbess of Whitby, 21. Holbein's, Hans, frontispiece to Cromwell's Bible, 304, 205. HoUand, Dr., one of the translators of King James' Bible, 329. Hugo de St. Cher, Cardinal, divides the Latin Bilile into sections, 235, 336. Hunn, Richard, the martyr, 80. Huss, John, testifies respecting the writ ings of Wycliffe, 59. His independence of Wycliffe, 84. Hyll, Nicolas, his revision of the Matth ewe's Bible, 196. Specimen of trans lation from, 197. Hyll and Reynold's edition of Matthewe's Bible, 196. Idioms, Old English, 131. Hebrew, 367, 368. Improved Version of New Testament, 406. Published by Unitarian Society, 408. Based upon Archbishop Newcome's translation, 406. How it supports the Unitarian scheme, 407, 408-410. Speci men of translation from, 408. Anno tations of, 403-410. Initial letters, involving exegetical deci sions, 423, 423. Italian Bible, Diodati's, 340. Cuvci's New Testament, note, 340. J. James I. succeeded Elizabeth, 824. His speech in the Assembly at Edinburgh, .324. Called the Hampton Court Coun cil, 324. Took sides against the Puri tans, 325. Seized by his own nobility, 335. Favored a new translation of the Bible, 326 ; also appointed learned men to make the same. 327, 32S. Jerome's revision of the Vulgate, 375. His motives not understood, .375. Jesseif. Henrv. proposed a revision of King James' Bible, 389. Jewel, Bishop, cited. 269. •Tuda, Leo, his Latin version of the Old Testament, 340. K. Kendrick. Dr. A. C, one of the revisers of American Bible Union Revision, 427. Kennicott, Dr.. published the Hebrew Bible, 397, 398. Kiliv. Dr,, one of the translators of King James' Bible, .329. King James' Bible, see Authorized Ver- SlOQ. Knox, John, preached during reign of Ed ward VL and Queen Mary, 330, 231. His adoption of the Genevan Bible, 246. L. Lancaster, Duke of, defends the Wycliffe Bible, 63. Language, influenced by Vernacular ver sions of the Scriptures, 79. English, an important element in the conflict between the hierachy and the people, 223, 333. Its relation to religion, 223. Langland, his Vision and Creed, 83. Rid icules the friars, 83. 83. His vocabu lary compared with Chaucer's, 83. In influence compared with Wycliffe, 83. Latimer. Hugh, converted through Bilney, 140, 141. Maintained publicly that the Scnptures ougnt to be read by all, 143. His reply to Prior Buckingham, 143, 144. Letter to Henry VIIL, 151. Suffered martyrdom during reign of Mary, 281, 232. His appearance before the Commissioners, note, 231. Latinisms, in the Bishop's Bible, 287, 2S8. Few adopted from time of Tyndale, 1535, to King James' revisers, 1611, 359. Latin language, sacred because language of the Church service, 61. An ele ment in the conflict between Rome and the people, 62. The effect of translating the Bible into, 79, 355, 356. Chief comer stone of Romish Church," 222, 323. " To become 'the nniversal language, 922. Tho lan guage of literature, 223. Dethrone ment of, 252. Regarded as the eternal language. 253. Imperial in its nature, 357. Ln tin Christianity dependent upon, .353. Laurentius, Augustine's successor, 18. Lawrence, one of the revisers of the Bishop's Bible, 273. Layamon, Brut of. a poem in Semi-Saxon, 43. It began the new English htera ture, 44. Lewis, John, bis edition of Wycliffe'sNew Te«;tament, 73. Linacre, Dr. Thomas, a reputed scholar but ignorant of the Scriptures, 89. Lindisfarne Gospels. 36. Lingard's. Dr., translation of the Four Gospels, 323. Livelye, Prof., one of the translators of King James' Bible, 3''9. Lollards, the followers of Wycliffe so called in derision. 61. Senaratcd themselves from the Romish Church, 63. Perse cution of, 80. In sympathy with the New opinions during reign of Henry VTII., 245. Prospered under the reign of Edward VI.. S45. Known as Non conformists and Protestants in the reign of Elizabeth, 245, 246 ; and since the troubles at Frankfort as Puritans. 246. Lord's Praver. version of the. in the Four Saxon Gospels, 36. Saxon version of. INDEX. 501 in the Durham Book, 37. Saxon ver sion of, in Rushworth Gloss, 38, 39 Early English version of, 51. Wycliflite version of. 66, 67. Tyndale's version of, 1625, 131 ; and of 15S4, 122. Whit tingham's version of, 238. Genevan version of. 359, Tomson's version of, 262. Version of, in the Bishop's Bible 288, 284. Rheims version of, 308. Lowth, Bishop, his version of the Prophecy of Isaiah, 397, 898. Was foremost among Hebrew scholars, 397. His translation made from a corrected text, 398. Imther, Martin, learned principles of the Reformation from a Latin Bible, 817. 1/y/y, John, the author of the Anatomy of Wit, 355. The character of, 255. His new-fangled English, 255. Mace, W., his "doughty" translation of the New Testament, 391. Specimens from, 392. Macrae's translation of the Bible, 404. Introduction of explanatory passages in, 405. Specimen of, 405, 406. Manuscript of King James' Bible, 866. Manuscripts, Greek, of N. T. earlier aud later, note, 372. Short account of earliest, note, 373, 374. Autographic copies of, 378. Importance of, as wit nesses, 379. Martin, Gregory, the chief doer of the Rheims version, 265, 296.- Rallies the Protestants on their various trans lations, 293, 293. His scholarship, 296. Taught Hebrew in the College of Donay, 296. Mary, Queen, popish persecution during reign of, 231-2;13. Matthewe, Thomas, the name, connected with Bible of 1537, 174. Theories re specting. 174, 175. Matthewe's Bible, edited by John Rogers, 176. Made up largely from Tyndale, 177. The enterprise of, kept secret, 179. Probably printed at Antwerp, 179. Introduced into England by Grafton, 179. Favorably received, 188. Occasion of offense given by, 188, 189. The basis of subsequent English ver sions, 189. Title-page and prefatory matter of, 190. Taverner's revised edition of, 190, 191. Edition of, 1540, 195. Becke's revision of, with speci men, 195. Edition of, by Hyll and Eeynolds, 196. HyU's edition of, with specimens. 196-198. Maundeville, Sir John, wrote his travels in Latin, 82. Mendicant friars, attacked by Wychffe, 55. Trampled upon rights of the regu lar clergy, 55. Begged for bread yet lived in luxury, 56. Their authority over the poor people, 56. Millenan/ petition. 324. Milman ,his chapter on Wycliffe m History of Latin Christianity, 34. Monasteries, dissolution of, 208. Abom inations of, 208. Monastic orders, Dominican and Francis can, their relation to the Church of Rome, 55. Their assumed dignity, 6C. Their power over the people, 66 Wycliffe's attack upon, 66. Monmouth, Humphrey, a friend and pa tron of Tyndale, 98. Montanus, Arias, his Latin version of the Old Testament, 340. More, Sir Thomas, his character, 89, 90 Erasmus the guest of, when wrote Praise of Folly, 90, Dis cx.aminalion of George Constantyne. 113, 113. His hatred of Heresy, 113. Defends Greek learning, 139. Composed his Utopia in Latin, 333. MUnster, Sebastian, his Latin translation of Old Testament, 205, 340. N. Nary, Dr. Cornelius, translated New Testa ment from the Vulgate, 320. His estimate of Douay Bible, 320. His manner in translating, 820, 321. His annotations, 321. Nathan, Isaac, introduced verse divisions in Latin text of the Bible, 286. Neander, does justice to the character of Wycliffe, 84. Newcome's, Archbishop, version of New Testament, 402, based on Griesl.ach's text, 403, 406. New Testament, price of mannscript copy ci,'note, 74; also printed copy of, note, 104, note, 105. Public burning of, 105, 106, 113, 114. Nicolas v., and the. Revival of learning in Italy, 88. Nix^ Bishop, his sympathy with Warham m stopping circulation of New Testa ments, 106. His hatred of heretics, 114. Norman Conquest, epoch in history of Saxon language, 41, 42. O. Origen's Hexapla, 374. Ormin, author of the Ormnlum, 45. Ormulum, metrical paraphrase of Scrip ture, 45. Specimen of, 45-47. Oswy, King of istorthumbrians, 22. Overal, Dean, one of the translators of King James' Bible, 329. P. Pagninus, Sanctes, his Latin version used bv the revisers of Cromwell's Bible, 205. Introduced verse divisions into Latin Bible, 236. Literalness of his version, 339. . Parker Matthew, his reasons for putting forth the Bishop's Bible. 372. His plan in the work, 373. Had the co operation of his bishops, 374. His letter to Secretary Cecil, 375. Pearl Bible, notorious for gross errors, 365. 502 INDEX. Pentateuch, Tyndale's, 114. Loss of manu script of, dodbtful, 115. Pdyt and Redman's edition of Matthewe's Bible, 195. Philipps, Henry, an account of his be trayal of Tyndale, 1B4. Phrases, happy Scriptural, to whom in debted for, 383. Polyglott, Complutensian, 341. The Ant werp, 342. Brian Walton's, 375. Pope's VVar over the text ol the Latin Vulg;ite, 314, 315. Porson,Vrot., cited, note, 386. Poyntz, Thomas, Tyndale dwelt at house of 133, 184. Sought Tyndale's re lease, 1.35. His imprisonment and es cape, 135. Prxmunire, statute of, act of Parliament against, 53. Preaching, revival of Apostolic, 141. Char- uctcr of, by monks and friars, 141, Printing, introduced into England by Caxton, 88. Protestantism, in the time of Queen Eliza beth, 266-^6cJ. And an open Bible, 361. Provisors, celebrated act of Parliament against, 58. Psalm xxiii., Guthlac's version of, 27, 28. Schorham's early English version of, 48. Rolle's early English version of, 49. Wycliffe's version of, 70 Cover- dale's version of, 162. In Cromwell's Bible, 206. In Genevan Bible, 244. In Bishop's Bible, 280, 281. Psalm cxix., the octonary Psalm, note, 277. Psalms, numbering of, note, 70. Cover- dale's translation of, 161. Singing of, 269, 270. Punctuation, changed the meaning of a Messianic prophecy, 354. Exegetical importance of, 422, 423. Puritans, over-confident respecting friend ship of Elizabeth, 266 Convictions and energy of, 268, 269. Hopefuiness- of, 269. Their singingof Psalms, 269. The millenary petition of, 269. 'Their vain expectations upon the accession of Janies I., 334. And the Christian Sabbath, 362, Prayer meetings held by, note, 362. Their mistake in reach ing after political power, 390. Purver, Antony, his version of the Bible for the Society of Friends, 392, 898. His translation published, 893. Speci mens from his translation, 393, 394. Purvey, John, author of the later text of the WycliiBte versions, 70. His man ner in translating, 71. An eloquent defender of the Wycliffle doctrines, 71. Styled " Wycliffe's Glosser," 71. Pykas, John, his manuscript copy of Paul's Epistles, 146. Q. Quentel and the Byrcmans, printers at Co logne, 109, Restoration in 1660, an era of darkness, 390. The age of Bunyan, Milton and Newton, 390. Bevivals, Religious, 141, 142. At Bum stede, 145, 146. Watched by Romish bishops, 147. Remsion, Critical, of Gospel of John and several Epistles of St. Paul, 423. Spe cimen of translation from, 424. Beynolds, Dr., leader of Puritan party, 325, 339. In Hampton Court Council, 325, 326. Favors new translation of the Scriptures, 325, 326. One of the trans lators of King James' Bible, 329. Reynolds, J., one of the translators of Eheims New Testament, 297. Rheims New Testament, was printed be fore the Old Testament, 297. Title- page of, 297. Preface of, 298-300. Reasons why it was translated from Latin Vulgate, 299. Latin words re tained in, 300. 801. Dark phrases in, 302, 303. Specimen of translation from, 303, 304. The language of, 304. Latin derivatives in, 304, 305. Its influence upon the English vocabulary, 305, 306. Its Saxonisms, 307, 308. An untruthful translation, 308, 309. Annotations of, 309-313. Preface and annotations an swered by Dr. Fulke, 313, Contro versy concerning, 313, 316. Rincke, Herman, Wolsey's agent to buy up English books and arrest Tyndale, 112. Rogers, John, educated at Cambridge, 175. Editor of Matthewe's Bible, 175. 176. Called to Antwerp, 175. Associated with Tyndale, 176, His design iu editing Matthewe's Bible, 177, Suf fered martjTdom, 331, RoUe, Richard, the hermit of Hampole, 48-50. His version of the Psalms, 49. Specimen of his translation, 49. Romanism, its relation to the Latin lan guage, 62, Its spirit in withholding the Bible from the people, 62-64. Row, Prof, his proposal for a revision of King James* Bible, 389. Roye. William, the assistant of Tyndale, 99, 100. Rushworth Gloss, contains the Gospels in Latin with au interlinear Saxon trans lation, 37, 38. Matthewe's Gospel of, an independent translation, 38, ^Spe* cimen ot translation from, 38, 89. Sabbath observance, reform in, during reign of Elizabeth, 271, 272. Samson, Thomas, one of the translators of the Genevan Bible, 241 Sandys, Bishop, one of the revisers of the , Bishop's Bible, 274. His letter to Arch bishop Parker 274. SavUe, Mr., one of the most learned lay men of his day, 829. Sawyer's, L. A., translation of New Testa ment, 434. Based upon Tischendorf's INDEX, 503 Greek text, 424. Ignores chapter and verse divisions, 425. Specimens of translatiou from, 425, 426. Saxons, the introduction of Christianity among, 17-19. Influence of Irish Church in conversion of, 30-22. . Ver nacular versions of Scripture among, 34. 35. Norman Conquest of ^. Na tionality of, threatened, 43. Their victorious struggle with the Normaus, 44. Their love of freedom, 44. He braic spirit oti 44. New era ot Bible translation among, 45. Saxon language, in the time of King Al fred, 34. In the time ot William the Conqueror, 43, 43. Survival of, 43. Democratic in its nature and tenden cies, 357. Saxon versions of the Four Gospels, 85. Purity in language of, 35. Specimen of translation from, 36. Known as the Durham Book, 36, 37 ; specimen of translation from, 37. Known as the Rushworth Gloss, 37, 38; specimen of translation from, 38, 39. Relation to succeeding English versions, 41 , 43. Importance of, as historic monuments, 53. Scarlett's, Nathaniel, version of New Tes tament, 403. Conformed to thc tenets of the Universalists, 403. Printed in form of dialogue, 403. Specimen of translation from, 404. Schlegel, cited on influence of the Bible on the German language, 79. Schorham, William de, his version of the Psalms, 48. Specimen of translation from, 48. Scriptures, Holy, how regarded before the time ot Innocent HI., 19, 30. Early English versions of, 4.5. Earliest En- flish prose versiou of, 47, 48. Romish atred of, 62-64. Influence of Vernacu lar versions of, 79, 127, 330. To be with held from the laity, 150. Demand of the people for, 151, 153. Papists accede to nght of the people to, 157. Public reading of, 213. Disputes arising from public reading of, 214. Proclamation against, 334. Professorships for ex pounding, 330. How to read, 348, 249. Commentaries on, 348. Human side of, 376. Shakespeare's poetry, 360, 361. Shamfastness, the word, first introduced in early edition of A. V., 897. Dis placed by shamefacedness, 897. Re introduced in Anglo-American Revi sion, though obsolete, 451. Sinaiticus, Codex, an extended account of flnding of, note, 374, 375. Six Bloody Articles, described by Fuller, 207. Transcribed in condensed form, note. 307. Repealed in reign of Ed ward VI., 235. Sixtus v., his text of Latin Vulgate, 314, 315. , ^. Smith, Dr., one of the translators ot King James' Bible. 329. Sowle Hele, a Scri|)ture paraphrase in verse, 47. Specimen from, 47. Standish, Bishop, his attack np m the Greek Testament of Erasmus. 92-94. Stephens, Eobert, divides the Greek text into verses, 235, 2;i6. His third edition of Greek Testament, 342. Supremacy, the act of, 207. Swift, Dean, on the infiuence of the Bible upon the English laiigu.age, 866, 867. Taverner, Richard, his revision of Mat thewe's Bible, 190, 191. A friend of the New Testament party, 192. Ap pointed to a protcssorshii> by Wolsey, 193. Charged with concealing New Testaments, 193. Committed to the tower, 193. Licensed to preach the Gospel, 193. Death of, 193, 194. Taverner's Bible, its title-pages and pre fatory malter, 191. Undertaken by instigation of the printers, 193. Sec ond edition of, 194, Becke's revision of, 194. Specimen of translation from Becke's, 195, 196. Teigh, Dr., one of the translators of King James' Bible, 329. Ten Commandments^ Alfred's Saxon ver sion of, 33. .^trie's Saxon version of, 40. Teutonic language, its conflict with the Latin tongue, 63. Revival of the Teutonic element in speech, 81, 82; also in religion, 83. Textual criticism, see Criticism, modern textual. Textus Receptus of N. T., 848. Is the standard text, 879. Necessary depar tures from, 3T9. Is the Elzevir text, ¦note, 370. Basis of Anglo-American Revision, with large exceptions, 441. Thoulouse Council, 19. Tischendorf, his discovery of the Sinaitic manuscript, note, 874, 375. His prefer ence for the readings of the Sinaitic MS., 373. Tomson, Lawrence, a noted linguist, 360. His revision of the New Testament, 359, 360. Tomson's, Lawrence, translation of New Testament, 359. Title-page of, 260. Its treatment of the article, 360. Its influence upon English vocabulary, 261, 263. Specimens of translation from, 363, 263. Annotations of, 268. Bound np with Old Testament ot Ge nevan Bible, 264. . Tonstal, Bishop, refuses to patronize Tyn dale 98. His injunctions against En ghsh New Testament, 105. His public denunciations and burning of New Testaments, 105, 106. One of the com missioners at Cambray, 112. Buys New Testament of Packington, 112. Kindles a fire of New Testaments, which the people denounce, 118. Tonstal and Heath's edition of Cranmer s Bible 217. Evidence of Cromwell s fall on title-page of, 317. A strange 504 INDEX. anomaly, 218. Title-page of, 218. An " unobserved fact" concerning. 218. Tregelles cited, 376, 377. His critical text of Greek Testament, 379. Tremelli-us' Latin version of Old Testa ment, 340. Trent, Council of. its decree repecting Latin Vulgate, 314. Tyball, John, obtains of Friar Barnes a New Testament in English, 145. Tyler, Wat, a leader. of insurrections in the time ot Wycliffe, 60. Tyndale, William, the one work of his life. 94 Date of his birth, 94. Studied at Oxford, 94, 95. Removed to Cam bridge, 95. Met with Bilney aud Fryth, 95, 96 Was tutor in family of Sir J. Walsh, 96, 97. In London at house of Humplirey Monmouth, 98. Tonstal refused hiin patronage, 98. Crossed sea to Hamburg, 99. Pro ceeded with translation of New Testa ment, 99. Began the printing of his N, T. at Cologne, 103. Escaped to Worms, and completed two editions of N. 1., 100. Wolsey's desire to ar rest, 107. Vaughan has special com mission to arrest, 114. Translated the Pentateuch, 114 115, 132, 133, 153. Vaughan's interviews with, 115, 116. Controversy with Joye, 119. Revises his New "Testament, 119. Specimens of his translation, 121-124. Defends English translations of the Bible, 125, 126. His relation to Wycliffe, 126, 137. Dwelt openly at Antwerp, 133 Be trayed, 138, 134. Efforts for his re lease, 135. Seized by Romish au thority, 135. His letter from prison, 136, 137, 173. Trial, condemnation and execution of. 137. Character and in fluence of, 137, 138. Carried on his translatiou while in prison, 176. His purpose to translate the whole Bible, 177, 173. Tyndale's printed New Testament, the work begun at Cologne, 100. Two editions issued at Worms, 100. Ques tions as to thc date and place of print ing of 101. Relic of quarto edition, 102. Two copies of octavo edition of, 102. Brought into England, 103. The way prepared for, 103, 104. Thomas Garret, the first distributer of, 104. Value of copy in American money, note, 104. Publicly denounced and burned, 105, 106. Edition of, put forth by Dutch printers, 106, Attempts to arrest circulation ot. 111, 112. Revised edition of, 119. Specimens of trans lation from, 130-134. Influence ot, upon subsequent versions, 127. Words from Latin and French used in, 127, 128, Obsolete words and archaic forms in, 129-131. Old English idiom in, 131. Second revision, two issues of, 131, 182. Peculiar orthography of, 182. The first printed New Testament on English ground, 1.35, 186. Title-page of London edition of, 136. Scattered broadcast among the people, 142. TJ. Unitarians, Society of, 403. Improved New Testament of, 406. Universalists, Scarlett's translation of New Testament conformed to tenets of, 403. Utopia, More's, the first edition of, note, 90. , "V. Vaticanus, Codex, a short account ot, note, 378. Vaughan, his letter to Cromwell, respect ing Tyndale, 115. His account of second interview with Tyndale, 116. Vernacular Versions, Romish policy set tled in respect to, 19. Their sustained attack against Romish Church, 223. Verse divisions, of Holy Scriptures, 235, 236. Sense of text sometimes inter rupted by, 336, 337. Benefits from, 237. Vulgate, Latin, its superiority as claimed by papists, 314. Decreed as authentic, 314. The papal war over the text of, 314. 315. Clementine edition of, 314, 316. Not sufficiently appreciated by Protestants, 817, 319. The Bible ot Western Christendom, 317, 319. An early witness to the text and interpre tation of the Bible, 317, 319. The teacher of Martin Luther, 317, 319. Its influence upon the English language, 818. Examples of words received from, 318, 319. Wakefield, Gilbert, a classical scholar, 400. His version of the New Testament, 401. His choice of words, 401. Spe cimen from his version, 401, 402. Uni tarian tendency of his translation, 402. Walton, Brian, his Polyglott, the occasion of a bitter controversy, 375, 376. Warham, Archbishop, bougiit up New Testaments tor the sake of burning them, 106. Webster's, Dr. Noah, Amended Bible, 413. Design of, 414. Examples of changes made in, 415. Wetham, Dr. E., his translation of New Testament, 321. His criticism of Dr. Nary's version. 321. His popish views respecting the Bible, 331. TniOn/, Monastery ot, 21. Council of, 22. Whitgift, Archbishop, his friendship for Cartwright, 313, Whilti^ngham, William, at Geneva, 284. His translation of New Testament, 234. His part in the translation of Genevan Bible, 241. WhittingharrCs New Testament, title-page of, 234. Verse divisions in. 285. Based upon Matthewe's Bible, 287. Annota tions ot, 237. Specimen ot translation from, 238. Superior renderings ot. INDEX, 505 239, 340. A stepping stone to revision ot whole Bible, 341. Wllfnth. Abbot, 22. William, the Conqueror, his tyranny, 42, 43. Wt'son's Arte ot Rhetoricke, 329. Wittenburgh, Tyndale's visit to, doubtful 99, too. Wulsey, Cardinal, his agency in attempt ing the arrest ot Tyndale, 111, 112. Lis treatment ot heresy, 113. Words, used in common by Wycliffe, Tyn dale and revisers of the A. V., 137. C )ined by Cheke, 225. In ation, 359. Wordi. Latin, in the Saxon language, 29. Untranslated in Rheims version, 301- 3)3. Words, New, in the Rheims version, 306. In Biblical vocabulary of Anglo-Amer ican Revision, 451-454. Words, Obscene, excluded from the Bishop's Bible, 23S, 389. True deli cacy in avoiding, 419, 420. Words, Obsolete, in the Wycliffite versions, 75-77, In Tyndale's New Testament, 139, 130, In Genevan Bible, 257, 253. In Coverdale's Bible. 163. In the Bisliop's Bible, 283. Retained in the Anglo-American Eevision, 449, 450. Worthington, Thomas, one of tlie trans lator's of the Douay Bible, and author of the notes to Old Testament, 297, 816. Wycliffe, John, his birth and early educa tion, 53. A master of scholastic learn ing, 54, 55. His work on the Eeality of Universal Conceptions, 55. An op ponent of the Mendicants, 55. His attack upon the Friars, 56. Defended the State against the hierarchy. 57. A member of the Commission at Bruges, 63. Was chaplain to Edward III., 59. His lectures at Oxford University, 59. Summoned before ecclesiastical coun cils, 59. Deserted by his political friends, 59. Pleads his own cause, 60. Took up his abode at Lutterworth, 60. Organized a preaching ministry, 60, 61. "Began translating the Bible, 61. Exhuming aud burning of his bones, 63, 64. His share in putting forth the Wycliffite versions, 64-66, His excel lence as a translator, 67. Mannscript Bible of, 74. The Greatest English Eofo-mer, 80, 31. His extended in fluence. 83. His character as estimated by Church historians, 83, S4. His in- telleclual and moral character, 84, 85. Little known of his social life, 85. Compared with Luther, 85. Was Chaucer's ideal of a good parson, 35, 86. Surrounded by his friends at Lut terworth, 86, 87. His death, 87. Wycliffite Versions, the earliest of, made about 1380, 61. Romish hatred' of, 62- 64. Data for fixing time of transla tion of, 64, Wycliffe's share in trans lating, 64. An earlier and later text of, 65. Respective authorships and dates of 65. Authors of earlier text of 65, 66. Specimens of earlier text from N. T. of, 66, 67. Traceable to Saxon origin, 63. Specimen of earlier text from O. T. of, 63-70. Numbering of Psalms in, 69, 70. Later text of, 70, 71. Specimen of later text from O. T. of, 72, 78. Forshall and Madden's edition of, 73. The later version ot N. T. of flrst printed, 73; and re printed in Bagster's Hexapla, 73. The earlier version of N. T. of, not printed till 1848, 73. Manuscripts of, widely circulated, 74. The later displaced the earlier MSS. of, 74. Containing separate books of New Testament of, 74, 75. Price of a New Testament of, note, 74. Strange orthography of, 75. Obsolete words in, 76, 77. Superior renderings of,' 77, 78. Religious in fluence of. 80. Persecution on account of, 80. The visible links connecting the Reformation of XVI. with that ot XIV. century, 80. Old brown manu scripts of, 81, 103, note, 105, 245, 246, Based upon the Latin Vulgate, .317. Their influence in appropriating words from the Vulgate, 820. X. Ximenes', Cardinal, Complutensian Poly glott, 341 ; not published till 1522, nofe, 91. Pains in issuing, 341. ZSrich Bible, the basis ot Coverdale's translation, 160, 161. INDEX TO CHAPTER XII. Accents, Hebrew, Importance of, 464. American scholars, cooperation of, 485. Not much expected from, note, 486. Appendix, suggested changes relegated to, 471. Examples of unfavorable changes suggested in, 472. Apocrypha, revision of, note, 494. Has a history of its own, IMd. No place in Hebrew Bible, lbid. Meaning of the word, Itnd. " Disagreeable to Oracles of God," Jttid. Finds a place in some editions of the English Bible, lbid. Revised by British Committee, lbid. Issued in uniform size with Revised Old and New Testaments, lbid. Archaic words, principle observed by Brit ish Committee concerning, 471. Ex amples of, where wisely retained, 472. Examples of, where modern words sub stituted for, 473. Examples of, where possibly unwisely retained, 473. 474. Bibles, Hebrew, printed editions of. 466. Standard edition of, lbid. Van der Hooght's celebrated edition among, 466. Onr Text^us Receptus among, 467. D. Doctrinal changes, no signiflcance in his tory of Bible revisions, 483. Charges of, against Authorized version, .^3. Also against Coverdale's Bible, note, lbid. In Anglo-American revision, instead of, the doctrinal tone stronger. Familiar passages, disappointment from changes in, 474, Examples of changes made in, 475, 476. Finance Committee, list of American, 488, 489. H. Hebrew language, antiquity of, 460, 461. Basis of all other Oriental languages, 461. Decay of, 462. Asalivmgtongne, 464. As dead, lbid. Vowel signs anti accents of, lbid. Advance in the gram mar and lexicography of, 477, Hebrew characters, changed to Aramaic forms, 462. Higher criticism, in its relation to Old Testament, 462. Improvements, in the Revised Old Testa ment, 477. Examples of, from the ad vance in knowledge of Hebrew, 477, 478. Examples of, from advance in knowledge of Geography of the Orient, 479. Examples of, from advance in knowledge of Natural History of Bible lands, 480. In the Book of Job, 480, 481. In the Book of Psalms, 482. Inspiration, doctrine of, emphasized in the Eevised version, 484, 435. J. Jews, Sacred writings of, 461. Radical changes in history of, 462. Loss of na tive tongue of, lbid. Faithful in trans mitting the Sacred Scriptures, 466. k:. Kethib and Keri, technical meanings ot the words, 468, 464. Language, English, some idiomatic changes m, unavoidable, 489. Responsibility concerning, recognized by the Revisers, 490. IVI. "Jfcraof the Great Synagogue," tradition of, 463. Massorets, period of, 463. Labors of, 463, 464. Manuscripts of Old Testament, for use in synagogues, 465. Directions of Tal mud concerning, lbid. Purity of, lbid. Date of earliest, lbid. Massoretic text the standard of, 466. For private use. Ibid. Done by Jewish copyists, Md. False charges of changes in, Ibid. Peoples, importance of the word, 469, 470. R. Revised Bible as a whole, inherited excel lencies ot, 489, 490. Attacks upon, lbid. Idioms of, 490. Possible fate of, lbid. Opposition to, in England, 491. Esti mate of, in America, 492. Growing influence ot, in this country, 498. Has come to stay, lbid. To be accepted as the old Bible renewed, 494. INDEX TO CHAPTER XII. 507 Revised New Testament, reception of, 459. American reprints ol, 460. The way prepared for, 468. The work of, largely anticipated, 469. Revised Old Testament, reception of, 460. Improvements in, 477 483. Revision of Authorized version, demand for, 486. Originated with Biblical schol ars, lbid. Underlying motive in, 486, 487. Early promoters of, lbid. Se rious objections to, lbid. Expenses ol, how met in this country, also iu England, 488. Rules for deuliug with language in, 490. Revisers of New Testament, a wealth of material prepared for, 468. Laborious task before, 469. Revisers of Old Testament, compare favor ably with those of New Testament, 468. FoUow same rules, lbid. A nar row door opened to, lbid. Limited to Massoretic text, 469. Their diligence and faithfulness, lbid. Advantages of, 476. Much rightly expected from la bors of, 477. Sacred writings of the Jews, existence and preservation of, 461. Became a dead letter, 463. Jewish doctors awake to the interest of, 463. Saxon element of our tongue, conserva tion of, 471, Septuagint, the importance of, 467. Date, translation of, lbid. Opposed by Jews in Palestine, lbid. Introduced in syna gogues, lbid. Vehicle of religious thought, lbid. A preparation for the Greelc of the New Testament, 468. New Testament quotations from, lbid. 'The accepted Bible in the time of the Sav iour, lbid. Sheol and Hades, the revisers' dealings with the words, 474. T. Talmud, its directions for preparing the skins for manuscripts, 465. Talmudists, work of, 468. Period of, lbid. Targums, nature of, 465. Number of, md. That of Onltelos, lbid. Highly prized by Christian scholars, lbid. The, importance of the word, as bearing ou the Messiahship of Christ, 484. V. Vocalmlary, English, tendency to enlarge, 471. Vowel points, adopted by the Massorets, 464. Necessity of, lbid. 3 9002 08844 3891 ' " "J, ^ *4-.- »-«i ./V